This is a modern-English version of Tarzan the Untamed, originally written by Burroughs, Edgar Rice.
It has been thoroughly updated, including changes to sentence structure, words, spelling,
and grammar—to ensure clarity for contemporary readers, while preserving the original spirit and nuance. If
you click on a paragraph, you will see the original text that we modified, and you can toggle between the two versions.
Scroll to the bottom of this page and you will find a free ePUB download link for this book.
Tarzan the Untamed
By
Edgar Rice Burroughs
CONTENTS
CHAPTER | |
I | Murder and Pillage |
II | The Lion's Cave |
III | In the German Lines |
IV | When the Lion Fed |
V | The Golden Locket |
VI | Vengeance and Mercy |
VII | When Blood Told |
VIII | Tarzan and the Great Apes |
IX | Dropped from the Sky |
X | In the Hands of Savages |
XI | Finding the Airplane |
XII | The Black Flier |
XIII | Usanga's Reward |
XIV | The Black Lion |
XV | Mysterious Footprints |
XVI | The Night Attack |
XVII | The Walled City |
XVIII | Among the Maniacs |
XIX | The Queen's Story |
XX | Came Tarzan |
XXI | In the Alcove |
XXII | Out of the Niche |
XXIII | The Flight from Xuja |
XXIV | The Tommies |
Chapter I
Murder and Pillage
Hauptmann Fritz Schneider trudged wearily through the somber aisles of the dark forest. Sweat rolled down his bullet head and stood upon his heavy jowls and bull neck. His lieutenant marched beside him while Underlieutenant von Goss brought up the rear, following with a handful of askaris the tired and all but exhausted porters whom the black soldiers, following the example of their white officer, encouraged with the sharp points of bayonets and the metal-shod butts of rifles.
Hauptmann Fritz Schneider walked wearily through the gloomy paths of the dark forest. Sweat dripped down his bald head, pooling on his heavy jowls and thick neck. His lieutenant marched next to him while Underlieutenant von Goss brought up the back, following with a group of askaris and the tired, nearly exhausted porters, whom the Black soldiers, following the example of their white officer, urged on with the sharp ends of bayonets and the metal-tipped ends of rifles.
There were no porters within reach of Hauptmann Schneider so he vented his Prussian spleen upon the askaris nearest at hand, yet with greater circumspection since these men bore loaded rifles—and the three white men were alone with them in the heart of Africa.
There were no porters nearby for Hauptmann Schneider, so he let loose his frustration on the closest askaris, but with more caution since these men had loaded rifles—and the three white men were alone with them in the heart of Africa.
Ahead of the hauptmann marched half his company, behind him the other half—thus were the dangers of the savage jungle minimized for the German captain. At the forefront of the column staggered two naked savages fastened to each other by a neck chain. These were the native guides impressed into the service of Kultur and upon their poor, bruised bodies Kultur's brand was revealed in divers cruel wounds and bruises.
Ahead of the captain marched half of his company, with the other half following behind—this setup helped minimize the dangers of the wild jungle for the German officer. At the front of the line, two naked natives stumbled along, chained together by the neck. They were the local guides forced into the service of civilization, and their battered bodies showed the harsh marks of civilization's cruelty in various wounds and bruises.
Thus even in darkest Africa was the light of German civilization commencing to reflect itself upon the undeserving natives just as at the same period, the fall of 1914, it was shedding its glorious effulgence upon benighted Belgium.
Thus even in the darkest parts of Africa, the light of German civilization was beginning to shine on the unworthy natives just as at the same time, in the fall of 1914, it was casting its glorious brightness on the ignorant people of Belgium.
It is true that the guides had led the party astray; but this is the way of most African guides. Nor did it matter that ignorance rather than evil intent had been the cause of their failure. It was enough for Hauptmann Fritz Schneider to know that he was lost in the African wilderness and that he had at hand human beings less powerful than he who could be made to suffer by torture. That he did not kill them outright was partially due to a faint hope that they might eventually prove the means of extricating him from his difficulties and partially that so long as they lived they might still be made to suffer.
It’s true that the guides had led the group off course; but that’s how it often goes with many African guides. It didn’t matter that their failure was due to ignorance rather than bad intentions. Hauptmann Fritz Schneider only needed to know that he was lost in the African wilderness and that there were humans around him who were weaker and could be tortured. The reason he didn’t kill them immediately was partly because he held a slight hope that they might eventually help him get out of his mess, and partly because as long as they were alive, he could still make them suffer.
The poor creatures, hoping that chance might lead them at last upon the right trail, insisted that they knew the way and so led on through a dismal forest along a winding game trail trodden deep by the feet of countless generations of the savage denizens of the jungle.
The unfortunate creatures, trusting that luck might finally guide them onto the right path, insisted they knew where to go and thus continued on through a gloomy forest along a winding path worn deep by the feet of countless generations of the wild inhabitants of the jungle.
Here Tantor, the elephant, took his long way from dust wallow to water. Here Buto, the rhinoceros, blundered blindly in his solitary majesty, while by night the great cats paced silently upon their padded feet beneath the dense canopy of overreaching trees toward the broad plain beyond, where they found their best hunting.
Here, Tantor the elephant took his winding path from the dusty wallow to the water. Here, Buto the rhinoceros stumbled awkwardly in his lonely grandeur, while at night the big cats moved quietly on their soft paws beneath the thick cover of towering trees toward the wide plain ahead, where they found their best hunting.
It was at the edge of this plain which came suddenly and unexpectedly before the eyes of the guides that their sad hearts beat with renewed hope. Here the hauptmann drew a deep sigh of relief, for after days of hopeless wandering through almost impenetrable jungle the broad vista of waving grasses dotted here and there with open park like woods and in the far distance the winding line of green shrubbery that denoted a river appeared to the European a veritable heaven.
It was at the edge of this plain that suddenly appeared before the guides' eyes, causing their heavy hearts to beat with renewed hope. Here, the captain let out a deep sigh of relief, for after days of aimless wandering through nearly impassable jungle, the wide view of waving grasses, scattered with open, park-like woods, and in the distance, the winding line of green shrubs that marked a river seemed to the European like a true paradise.
The Hun smiled in his relief, passed a cheery word with his lieutenant, and then scanned the broad plain with his field glasses. Back and forth they swept across the rolling land until at last they came to rest upon a point near the center of the landscape and close to the green-fringed contours of the river.
The Hun smiled with relief, exchanged a friendly word with his lieutenant, and then looked over the wide plain with his binoculars. He swept back and forth across the rolling land until he finally focused on a spot near the center of the landscape, close to the green-edged curves of the river.
"We are in luck," said Schneider to his companions. "Do you see it?"
"We're in luck," Schneider said to his friends. "Do you see it?"
The lieutenant, who was also gazing through his own glasses, finally brought them to rest upon the same spot that had held the attention of his superior.
The lieutenant, who was also looking through his own glasses, finally focused on the same spot that had captured his superior's attention.
"Yes," he said, "an English farm. It must be Greystoke's, for there is none other in this part of British East Africa. God is with us, Herr Captain."
"Yes," he said, "an English farm. It has to be Greystoke's, since there isn't another one in this part of British East Africa. God is with us, Captain."
"We have come upon the English schweinhund long before he can have learned that his country is at war with ours," replied Schneider. "Let him be the first to feel the iron hand of Germany."
"We've encountered the English schweinhund long before he could have learned that his country is at war with ours," replied Schneider. "Let him be the first to experience the iron fist of Germany."
"Let us hope that he is at home," said the lieutenant, "that we may take him with us when we report to Kraut at Nairobi. It will go well indeed with Herr Hauptmann Fritz Schneider if he brings in the famous Tarzan of the Apes as a prisoner of war."
"Let's hope he's at home," said the lieutenant, "so we can take him with us when we report to Kraut in Nairobi. It would definitely look good for Herr Hauptmann Fritz Schneider if he brings in the famous Tarzan of the Apes as a prisoner of war."
Schneider smiled and puffed out his chest. "You are right, my friend," he said, "it will go well with both of us; but I shall have to travel far to catch General Kraut before he reaches Mombasa. These English pigs with their contemptible army will make good time to the Indian Ocean."
Schneider smiled and puffed out his chest. "You’re right, my friend," he said, "it'll be good for both of us; but I’ll have to travel a long way to catch General Kraut before he gets to Mombasa. Those English idiots with their pathetic army will make good time to the Indian Ocean."
It was in a better frame of mind that the small force set out across the open country toward the trim and well-kept farm buildings of John Clayton, Lord Greystoke; but disappointment was to be their lot since neither Tarzan of the Apes nor his son was at home.
It was with a better mindset that the small group set out across the open land toward the neat and well-maintained farm buildings of John Clayton, Lord Greystoke; however, disappointment awaited them since neither Tarzan of the Apes nor his son was at home.
Lady Jane, ignorant of the fact that a state of war existed between Great Britain and Germany, welcomed the officers most hospitably and gave orders through her trusted Waziri to prepare a feast for the black soldiers of the enemy.
Lady Jane, unaware that a war was going on between Great Britain and Germany, warmly welcomed the officers and instructed her trusted Waziri to prepare a feast for the enemy's black soldiers.
Far to the east, Tarzan of the Apes was traveling rapidly from Nairobi toward the farm. At Nairobi he had received news of the World War that had already started, and, anticipating an immediate invasion of British East Africa by the Germans, was hurrying homeward to fetch his wife to a place of greater security. With him were a score of his ebon warriors, but far too slow for the ape-man was the progress of these trained and hardened woodsmen.
Far to the east, Tarzan of the Apes was quickly making his way from Nairobi to the farm. In Nairobi, he had learned about the World War that had already begun, and, expecting an imminent invasion of British East Africa by the Germans, he was rushing home to get his wife to a safer location. Along with him were a group of his skilled warriors, but their swift progress was far too slow for the ape-man.
When necessity demanded, Tarzan of the Apes sloughed the thin veneer of his civilization and with it the hampering apparel that was its badge. In a moment the polished English gentleman reverted to the naked ape man.
When the situation called for it, Tarzan of the Apes shed the superficial layer of his civilization along with the restrictive clothing that came with it. In an instant, the refined English gentleman transformed back into the bare ape man.
His mate was in danger. For the time, that single thought dominated. He did not think of her as Lady Jane Greystoke, but rather as the she he had won by the might of his steel thews, and that he must hold and protect by virtue of the same offensive armament.
His partner was in danger. For now, that one thought took over. He didn’t think of her as Lady Jane Greystoke, but rather as the woman he had won through his strength, and that he must hold on to and protect with that same force.
It was no member of the House of Lords who swung swiftly and grimly through the tangled forest or trod with untiring muscles the wide stretches of open plain—it was a great he ape filled with a single purpose that excluded all thoughts of fatigue or danger.
It wasn't a member of the House of Lords who moved quickly and seriously through the dense forest or walked tirelessly across the vast open land—it was a huge ape driven by a single purpose that pushed aside any thoughts of exhaustion or danger.
Little Manu, the monkey, scolding and chattering in the upper terraces of the forest, saw him pass. Long had it been since he had thus beheld the great Tarmangani naked and alone hurtling through the jungle. Bearded and gray was Manu, the monkey, and to his dim old eyes came the fire of recollection of those days when Tarzan of the Apes had ruled supreme, Lord of the Jungle, over all the myriad life that trod the matted vegetation between the boles of the great trees, or flew or swung or climbed in the leafy fastness upward to the very apex of the loftiest terraces.
Little Manu, the monkey, scolding and chattering in the upper levels of the forest, saw him pass by. It had been a long time since he had seen the great Tarmangani naked and alone racing through the jungle. Bearded and gray, Manu the monkey felt a spark of memories in his dim old eyes of the days when Tarzan of the Apes ruled supreme, Lord of the Jungle, over all the countless creatures that moved through the dense vegetation between the trunks of the great trees, or flew, swung, or climbed in the leafy heights up to the very top of the tallest terraces.
And Numa, the lion, lying up for the day close beside last night's successful kill, blinked his yellow-green eyes and twitched his tawny tail as he caught the scent spoor of his ancient enemy.
And Numa, the lion, lounging for the day next to last night's successful kill, blinked his yellow-green eyes and flicked his tawny tail as he picked up the scent of his old enemy.
Nor was Tarzan senseless to the presence of Numa or Manu or any of the many jungle beasts he passed in his rapid flight towards the west. No particle had his shallow probing of English society dulled his marvelous sense faculties. His nose had picked out the presence of Numa, the lion, even before the majestic king of beasts was aware of his passing.
Nor was Tarzan unaware of Numa, Manu, or any of the many jungle animals he encountered in his quick run to the west. His brief exposure to English society hadn't dulled his exceptional senses at all. He had detected Numa, the lion, even before the majestic king of beasts realized he was there.
He had heard noisy little Manu, and even the soft rustling of the parting shrubbery where Sheeta passed before either of these alert animals sensed his presence.
He had heard the loud little Manu, and even the gentle rustling of the bushes as Sheeta passed before either of these alert animals detected him.
But however keen the senses of the ape-man, however swift his progress through the wild country of his adoption, however mighty the muscles that bore him, he was still mortal. Time and space placed their inexorable limits upon him; nor was there another who realized this truth more keenly than Tarzan. He chafed and fretted that he could not travel with the swiftness of thought and that the long tedious miles stretching far ahead of him must require hours and hours of tireless effort upon his part before he would swing at last from the final bough of the fringing forest into the open plain and in sight of his goal.
But no matter how sharp the ape-man's senses were, how quickly he moved through the wild land he called home, or how strong his muscles were, he was still human. Time and space set unyielding limits on him, and no one understood this truth better than Tarzan. He felt frustrated that he couldn't travel as fast as a thought, knowing that the long, exhausting miles ahead would demand hours and hours of relentless effort before he could finally swing from the last branch of the border forest into the open plains and see his destination.
Days it took, even though he lay up at night for but a few hours and left to chance the finding of meat directly on his trail. If Wappi, the antelope, or Horta, the boar, chanced in his way when he was hungry, he ate, pausing but long enough to make the kill and cut himself a steak.
Days went by, even though he only slept a few hours at night and relied on luck to find food right in his path. If Wappi, the antelope, or Horta, the boar, crossed his path when he was hungry, he would eat, stopping just long enough to make the kill and cut himself a steak.
Then at last the long journey drew to its close and he was passing through the last stretch of heavy forest that bounded his estate upon the east, and then this was traversed and he stood upon the plain's edge looking out across his broad lands towards his home.
Then finally, the long journey came to an end, and he was moving through the final stretch of dense forest that bordered his estate on the east. Once he crossed through it, he stood at the edge of the plain, gazing out over his vast lands towards his home.
At the first glance his eyes narrowed and his muscles tensed. Even at that distance he could see that something was amiss. A thin spiral of smoke arose at the right of the bungalow where the barns had stood, but there were no barns there now, and from the bungalow chimney from which smoke should have arisen, there arose nothing.
At first glance, his eyes narrowed and his muscles tightened. Even from that distance, he could tell that something wasn’t right. A thin spiral of smoke was rising from the right side of the bungalow where the barns used to be, but there were no barns there anymore, and from the chimney of the bungalow, where smoke should have been coming out, there was nothing.
Once again Tarzan of the Apes was speeding onward, this time even more swiftly than before, for he was goaded now by a nameless fear, more product of intuition than of reason. Even as the beasts, Tarzan of the Apes seemed to possess a sixth sense. Long before he reached the bungalow, he had almost pictured the scene that finally broke upon his view.
Once again, Tarzan of the Apes was racing forward, even faster than before, driven now by a nameless fear, more instinctual than logical. Like the animals, Tarzan seemed to have a sixth sense. Long before he arrived at the bungalow, he had nearly imagined the scene that finally came into view.
Silent and deserted was the vine-covered cottage. Smoldering embers marked the site of his great barns. Gone were the thatched huts of his sturdy retainers, empty the fields, the pastures, and corrals. Here and there vultures rose and circled above the carcasses of men and beasts.
Silent and empty stood the vine-covered cottage. Smoldering embers marked where his great barns used to be. The thatched huts of his hardworking servants were gone, as were the fields, pastures, and corrals. Here and there, vultures soared and circled above the remains of men and animals.
It was with a feeling as nearly akin to terror as he ever had experienced that the ape-man finally forced himself to enter his home. The first sight that met his eyes set the red haze of hate and bloodlust across his vision, for there, crucified against the wall of the living-room, was Wasimbu, giant son of the faithful Muviro and for over a year the personal bodyguard of Lady Jane.
It was with a feeling almost like terror that the ape-man finally made himself walk into his home. The first thing he saw filled his vision with a red haze of anger and bloodlust, because there, nailed to the wall of the living room, was Wasimbu, the giant son of the loyal Muviro and for more than a year the personal bodyguard of Lady Jane.
The overturned and shattered furniture of the room, the brown pools of dried blood upon the floor, and prints of bloody hands on walls and woodwork evidenced something of the frightfulness of the battle that had been waged within the narrow confines of the apartment. Across the baby grand piano lay the corpse of another black warrior, while before the door of Lady Jane's boudoir were the dead bodies of three more of the faithful Greystoke servants.
The broken and scattered furniture in the room, the dark stains of dried blood on the floor, and prints of bloody hands on the walls and woodwork showed just how horrific the battle that had taken place in the cramped apartment was. Across the baby grand piano lay the body of another black warrior, while in front of Lady Jane's boudoir door were the lifeless bodies of three more loyal Greystoke servants.
The door of this room was closed. With drooping shoulders and dull eyes Tarzan stood gazing dumbly at the insensate panel which hid from him what horrid secret he dared not even guess.
The door to this room was closed. With slumped shoulders and blank eyes, Tarzan stared silently at the lifeless panel that concealed the terrible secret he was too afraid to even imagine.
Slowly, with leaden feet, he moved toward the door. Gropingly his hand reached for the knob. Thus he stood for another long minute, and then with a sudden gesture he straightened his giant frame, threw back his mighty shoulders and, with fearless head held high, swung back the door and stepped across the threshold into the room which held for him the dearest memories and associations of his life. No change of expression crossed his grim and stern-set features as he strode across the room and stood beside the little couch and the inanimate form which lay face downward upon it; the still, silent thing that had pulsed with life and youth and love.
Slowly, with heavy feet, he walked toward the door. Tentatively, his hand reached for the knob. He paused for another long minute, and then with a sudden movement, he straightened his tall frame, threw back his broad shoulders, and with his head held high, pushed the door open and stepped into the room that held for him the most precious memories and associations of his life. No change of expression crossed his serious and stern features as he walked across the room and stood beside the little couch and the lifeless figure that lay face down on it; the still, silent body that had once been full of life, youth, and love.
No tear dimmed the eye of the ape-man, but the God who made him alone could know the thoughts that passed through that still half-savage brain. For a long time he stood there just looking down upon the dead body, charred beyond recognition, and then he stooped and lifted it in his arms. As he turned the body over and saw how horribly death had been meted he plumbed, in that instant, the uttermost depths of grief and horror and hatred.
No tear dimmed the eye of the ape-man, but the God who made him alone could know the thoughts that passed through that still half-wild brain. For a long time, he stood there just looking down at the dead body, burned beyond recognition, and then he bent down and picked it up in his arms. As he turned the body over and saw how terribly death had struck, he experienced, in that moment, the deepest levels of grief, horror, and hatred.
Nor did he require the evidence of the broken German rifle in the outer room, or the torn and blood-stained service cap upon the floor, to tell him who had been the perpetrators of this horrid and useless crime.
Nor did he need the proof of the broken German rifle in the outer room, or the ripped and blood-stained service cap on the floor, to know who had committed this horrible and pointless crime.
For a moment he had hoped against hope that the blackened corpse was not that of his mate, but when his eyes discovered and recognized the rings upon her fingers the last faint ray of hope forsook him.
For a moment, he had hoped that the charred body wasn't his partner's, but when he saw and recognized the rings on her fingers, the last glimmer of hope left him.
In silence, in love, and in reverence he buried, in the little rose garden that had been Jane Clayton's pride and love, the poor, charred form and beside it the great black warriors who had given their lives so futilely in their mistress' protection.
In silence, in love, and with respect, he buried the poor, charred body in the small rose garden that had been Jane Clayton's pride and joy, along with the brave black warriors who had given their lives so needlessly to protect their mistress.
At one side of the house Tarzan found other newly made graves and in these he sought final evidence of the identity of the real perpetrators of the atrocities that had been committed there in his absence.
At one side of the house, Tarzan found other freshly made graves, and in these, he searched for final proof of the true identities of the people responsible for the atrocities that had taken place there while he was gone.
Here he disinterred the bodies of a dozen German askaris and found upon their uniforms the insignia of the company and regiment to which they had belonged. This was enough for the ape-man. White officers had commanded these men, nor would it be a difficult task to discover who they were.
Here he dug up the bodies of a dozen German askaris and found the insignia of the company and regiment on their uniforms. This was enough for the ape-man. White officers had led these men, and it wouldn't be hard to find out who they were.
Returning to the rose garden, he stood among the Hun trampled blooms and bushes above the grave of his dead—with bowed head he stood there in a last mute farewell. As the sun sank slowly behind the towering forests of the west, he turned slowly away upon the still-distinct trail of Hauptmann Fritz Schneider and his blood-stained company.
Returning to the rose garden, he stood among the Huns' trampled blooms and bushes above the grave of his loved one—he stood there with his head bowed in a final silent goodbye. As the sun slowly sank behind the towering forests in the west, he turned away, following the still-visible path of Hauptmann Fritz Schneider and his blood-stained men.
His was the suffering of the dumb brute—mute; but though voiceless no less poignant. At first his vast sorrow numbed his other faculties of thought—his brain was overwhelmed by the calamity to such an extent that it reacted to but a single objective suggestion: She is dead! She is dead! She is dead! Again and again this phrase beat monotonously upon his brain—a dull, throbbing pain, yet mechanically his feet followed the trail of her slayer while, subconsciously, his every sense was upon the alert for the ever-present perils of the jungle.
His suffering was like that of a helpless animal—silent; but even without a voice, it was still intense. At first, his overwhelming grief dulled his other thoughts—his mind was so consumed by the disaster that it could only focus on one single idea: She is dead! She is dead! She is dead! This phrase repeated endlessly in his mind—a dull, throbbing ache, yet mechanically, his feet followed the path of her killer while, at the same time, every sense in him stayed alert to the constant dangers of the jungle.
Gradually the labor of his great grief brought forth another emotion so real, so tangible, that it seemed a companion walking at his side. It was Hate—and it brought to him a measure of solace and of comfort, for it was a sublime hate that ennobled him as it has ennobled countless thousands since—hatred for Germany and Germans. It centered about the slayer of his mate, of course; but it included everything German, animate or inanimate. As the thought took firm hold upon him he paused and raising his face to Goro, the moon, cursed with upraised hand the authors of the hideous crime that had been perpetrated in that once peaceful bungalow behind him; and he cursed their progenitors, their progeny, and all their kind the while he took silent oath to war upon them relentlessly until death overtook him.
Gradually, the weight of his immense grief gave rise to another emotion so powerful, so real, that it felt like a companion walking beside him. It was Hate—and it provided him a sense of solace and comfort, for it was a profound hate that uplifted him just as it has lifted countless others over time—hatred for Germany and Germans. It focused primarily on the killer of his partner, of course; but it encompassed everything German, both living and non-living. As this thought took a strong hold on him, he paused and, raising his face to Goro, the moon, cursed with an outstretched hand the perpetrators of the horrific crime that had taken place in that once peaceful bungalow behind him; he cursed their ancestors, their descendants, and all their kind as he silently vowed to wage war against them relentlessly until death claimed him.
There followed almost immediately a feeling of content, for, where before his future at best seemed but a void, now it was filled with possibilities the contemplation of which brought him, if not happiness, at least a surcease of absolute grief, for before him lay a great work that would occupy his time.
There came almost instantly a sense of contentment, because where his future had seemed like an empty void, now it was filled with possibilities that brought him, if not happiness, at least a break from deep sorrow, as ahead of him lay a significant task that would keep him busy.
Stripped not only of all the outward symbols of civilization, Tarzan had also reverted morally and mentally to the status of the savage beast he had been reared. Never had his civilization been more than a veneer put on for the sake of her he loved because he thought it made her happier to see him thus. In reality he had always held the outward evidences of so-called culture in deep contempt. Civilization meant to Tarzan of the Apes a curtailment of freedom in all its aspects—freedom of action, freedom of thought, freedom of love, freedom of hate. Clothes he abhorred—uncomfortable, hideous, confining things that reminded him somehow of bonds securing him to the life he had seen the poor creatures of London and Paris living. Clothes were the emblems of that hypocrisy for which civilization stood—a pretense that the wearers were ashamed of what the clothes covered, of the human form made in the semblance of God. Tarzan knew how silly and pathetic the lower orders of animals appeared in the clothing of civilization, for he had seen several poor creatures thus appareled in various traveling shows in Europe, and he knew, too, how silly and pathetic man appears in them since the only men he had seen in the first twenty years of his life had been, like himself, naked savages. The ape-man had a keen admiration for a well-muscled, well-proportioned body, whether lion, or antelope, or man, and it had ever been beyond him to understand how clothes could be considered more beautiful than a clear, firm, healthy skin, or coat and trousers more graceful than the gentle curves of rounded muscles playing beneath a flexible hide.
Stripped of all the outward signs of civilization, Tarzan had also mentally and morally returned to the state of the savage beast he had been raised as. His civilization had always been just a superficial layer put on for the sake of the woman he loved, as he thought it made her happier to see him that way. In reality, he had always held a deep contempt for the outward signs of so-called culture. For Tarzan of the Apes, civilization meant a restriction of freedom in every sense—freedom of action, thought, love, and even hate. He hated clothes—uncomfortable, ugly, constricting things that somehow reminded him of the bonds tying him to the lives of the unfortunate beings he had seen in London and Paris. Clothes represented the hypocrisy of civilization—a pretense that wearers were ashamed of what the clothes covered, of the human form created in the image of God. Tarzan knew how silly and pathetic the lower orders of animals looked in civilized clothing, as he had seen several unfortunate creatures dressed up in various traveling shows in Europe. He also understood how ridiculous and pitiful humans appeared in them since the only men he had seen in the first twenty years of his life had been, like himself, naked savages. The ape-man held a strong admiration for a well-muscled, well-proportioned body, whether it be a lion, an antelope, or a man, and he could never grasp how clothing could be seen as more beautiful than smooth, healthy skin, or how a coat and trousers could be seen as more graceful than the gentle curves of rounded muscles beneath a flexible hide.
In civilization Tarzan had found greed and selfishness and cruelty far beyond that which he had known in his familiar, savage jungle, and though civilization had given him his mate and several friends whom he loved and admired, he never had come to accept it as you and I who have known little or nothing else; so it was with a sense of relief that he now definitely abandoned it and all that it stood for, and went forth into the jungle once again stripped to his loin cloth and weapons.
In civilization, Tarzan encountered greed, selfishness, and cruelty that were far worse than what he had known in his familiar, wild jungle. Although civilization had given him his partner and a few friends he loved and respected, he never fully accepted it like you or I would, having known little else. So, with a sense of relief, he finally left it all behind, along with everything it represented, and stepped back into the jungle, wearing only his loincloth and carrying his weapons.
The hunting knife of his father hung at his left hip, his bow and his quiver of arrows were slung across his shoulders, while around his chest over one shoulder and beneath the opposite arm was coiled the long grass rope without which Tarzan would have felt quite as naked as would you should you be suddenly thrust upon a busy highway clad only in a union suit. A heavy war spear which he sometimes carried in one hand and again slung by a thong about his neck so that it hung down his back completed his armament and his apparel. The diamond-studded locket with the pictures of his mother and father that he had worn always until he had given it as a token of his highest devotion to Jane Clayton before their marriage was missing. She always had worn it since, but it had not been upon her body when he found her slain in her boudoir, so that now his quest for vengeance included also a quest for the stolen trinket.
The hunting knife from his father hung at his left hip, his bow and quiver of arrows were slung over his shoulders, and wrapped around his chest, over one shoulder and under the opposite arm, was the long grass rope. Without it, Tarzan would have felt just as exposed as you would if you were suddenly dropped onto a busy highway wearing only a union suit. He sometimes carried a heavy war spear in one hand or slung it by a thong around his neck so it hung down his back, completing his gear and outfit. The diamond-studded locket with pictures of his mother and father that he had always worn until he gave it to Jane Clayton as a token of his deepest love before their marriage was gone. She had always worn it since then, but it wasn’t on her when he found her murdered in her boudoir, so now his quest for revenge also included a search for the stolen locket.
Toward midnight Tarzan commenced to feel the physical strain of his long hours of travel and to realize that even muscles such as his had their limitations. His pursuit of the murderers had not been characterized by excessive speed; but rather more in keeping with his mental attitude, which was marked by a dogged determination to require from the Germans more than an eye for an eye and more than a tooth for a tooth, the element of time entering but slightly into his calculations.
Toward midnight, Tarzan began to feel the physical toll of his long hours of travel and to understand that even his strong muscles had their limits. His pursuit of the murderers hadn't been about racing ahead; instead, it reflected his mindset, which was defined by a stubborn determination to demand more from the Germans than just an eye for an eye or a tooth for a tooth. Time played a minor role in his calculations.
Inwardly as well as outwardly Tarzan had reverted to beast and in the lives of beasts, time, as a measurable aspect of duration, has no meaning. The beast is actively interested only in NOW, and as it is always NOW and always shall be, there is an eternity of time for the accomplishment of objects. The ape-man, naturally, had a slightly more comprehensive realization of the limitations of time; but, like the beasts, he moved with majestic deliberation when no emergency prompted him to swift action.
Inwardly as well as outwardly, Tarzan had become more like a beast, and in the world of animals, time doesn’t really matter. A beast focuses only on the NOW, and since it’s always NOW and always will be, there’s an endless amount of time to achieve goals. The ape-man, of course, had a somewhat better understanding of time's limitations; however, like the animals, he moved with a dignified slowness unless there was an emergency that required quick action.
Having dedicated his life to vengeance, vengeance became his natural state and, therefore, no emergency, so he took his time in pursuit. That he had not rested earlier was due to the fact that he had felt no fatigue, his mind being occupied by thoughts of sorrow and revenge; but now he realized that he was tired, and so he sought a jungle giant that had harbored him upon more than a single other jungle night.
Having devoted his life to revenge, it became his default state, so he didn't rush and took his time in the pursuit. The reason he hadn't rested before was that he hadn’t felt tired; his thoughts were consumed by sorrow and revenge. But now he realized he was exhausted, so he looked for a jungle giant that had sheltered him on more than one jungle night.
Dark clouds moving swiftly across the heavens now and again eclipsed the bright face of Goro, the moon, and forewarned the ape-man of impending storm. In the depth of the jungle the cloud shadows produced a thick blackness that might almost be felt—a blackness that to you and me might have proven terrifying with its accompaniment of rustling leaves and cracking twigs, and its even more suggestive intervals of utter silence in which the crudest of imaginations might have conjured crouching beasts of prey tensed for the fatal charge; but through it Tarzan passed unconcerned, yet always alert. Now he swung lightly to the lower terraces of the overarching trees when some subtle sense warned him that Numa lay upon a kill directly in his path, or again he sprang lightly to one side as Buto, the rhinoceros, lumbered toward him along the narrow, deep-worn trail, for the ape-man, ready to fight upon necessity's slightest pretext, avoided unnecessary quarrels.
Dark clouds raced across the sky, occasionally blocking the bright face of Goro, the moon, warning the ape-man of an approaching storm. In the heart of the jungle, the shadows from the clouds created a deep darkness that could almost be felt—a darkness that would have terrified you and me, accompanied by the sounds of rustling leaves and snapping twigs, and the chilling moments of complete silence where even the wildest imagination might envision lurking predators ready to pounce. Yet Tarzan moved through it all, unbothered but always aware. He swung lightly down to the lower levels of the towering trees when a subtle instinct alerted him that Numa was on a kill right in his path, or he would leap to the side as Buto, the rhinoceros, lumbered toward him along the narrow, well-worn trail, because the ape-man, always ready to fight at the slightest provocation, avoided unnecessary conflicts.
When he swung himself at last into the tree he sought, the moon was obscured by a heavy cloud, and the tree tops were waving wildly in a steadily increasing wind whose soughing drowned the lesser noises of the jungle. Upward went Tarzan toward a sturdy crotch across which he long since had laid and secured a little platform of branches. It was very dark now, darker even than it had been before, for almost the entire sky was overcast by thick, black clouds.
When he finally swung himself into the tree he was aiming for, the moon was hidden by a thick cloud, and the treetops were swaying wildly in a strengthening wind that drowned out the quieter sounds of the jungle. Tarzan climbed upward toward a sturdy branch where he had long ago built and secured a small platform made of branches. It was very dark now, even darker than before, as almost the entire sky was covered by thick, black clouds.
Presently the man-beast paused, his sensitive nostrils dilating as he sniffed the air about him. Then, with the swiftness and agility of a cat, he leaped far outward upon a swaying branch, sprang upward through the darkness, caught another, swung himself upon it and then to one still higher. What could have so suddenly transformed his matter-of-fact ascent of the giant bole to the swift and wary action of his detour among the branches? You or I could have seen nothing—not even the little platform that an instant before had been just above him and which now was immediately below—but as he swung above it we should have heard an ominous growl; and then as the moon was momentarily uncovered, we should have seen both the platform, dimly, and a dark mass that lay stretched upon it—a dark mass that presently, as our eyes became accustomed to the lesser darkness, would take the form of Sheeta, the panther.
Right now, the man-beast stopped, his keen nostrils flaring as he sniffed the air around him. Then, with the speed and grace of a cat, he leaped out onto a swaying branch, jumped up through the darkness, grabbed another branch, swung onto it, and then to an even higher one. What could have suddenly changed his straightforward climb of the massive trunk into this quick and cautious maneuver among the branches? You or I wouldn’t have seen anything—not even the small platform that had just been above him and was now directly below him—but as he swung over it, we would have heard a threatening growl; and then, as the moon briefly came out from behind the clouds, we would have dimly seen both the platform and a dark shape lying on it—a dark shape that, as our eyes adjusted to the lesser darkness, would reveal itself to be Sheeta, the panther.
In answer to the cat's growl, a low and equally ferocious growl rumbled upward from the ape-man's deep chest—a growl of warning that told the panther he was trespassing upon the other's lair; but Sheeta was in no mood to be dispossessed. With upturned, snarling face he glared at the brown-skinned Tarmangani above him. Very slowly the ape-man moved inward along the branch until he was directly above the panther. In the man's hand was the hunting knife of his long-dead father—the weapon that had first given him his real ascendancy over the beasts of the jungle; but he hoped not to be forced to use it, knowing as he did that more jungle battles were settled by hideous growling than by actual combat, the law of bluff holding quite as good in the jungle as elsewhere—only in matters of love and food did the great beasts ordinarily close with fangs and talons.
In response to the cat's growl, a low and equally fierce growl rumbled up from the ape-man's deep chest—a warning growl that told the panther he was intruding on the other's territory; but Sheeta was not in the mood to back down. With his face twisted in a snarl, he glared at the brown-skinned Tarmangani above him. The ape-man slowly moved along the branch until he was directly above the panther. In his hand was the hunting knife of his long-dead father—the weapon that had first given him real dominance over the jungle's beasts; but he hoped he wouldn’t have to use it, knowing that many jungle disputes were resolved through terrifying growling rather than actual fighting, with the law of bluff applying just as much in the jungle as anywhere else—only in matters of love and food did the great beasts usually engage with fangs and talons.
Tarzan braced himself against the bole of the tree and leaned closer toward Sheeta.
Tarzan braced himself against the trunk of the tree and leaned closer to Sheeta.
"Stealer of balus!" he cried. The panther rose to a sitting position, his bared fangs but a few feet from the ape-man's taunting face. Tarzan growled hideously and struck at the cat's face with his knife. "I am Tarzan of the Apes," he roared. "This is Tarzan's lair. Go, or I will kill you."
"Thief of my kill!" he shouted. The panther sat up, its exposed fangs just a few feet from the ape-man's mocking face. Tarzan growled fiercely and swung his knife at the cat's face. "I am Tarzan of the Apes," he yelled. "This is Tarzan's home. Leave, or I will kill you."
Though he spoke in the language of the great apes of the jungle, it is doubtful that Sheeta understood the words, though he knew well enough that the hairless ape wished to frighten him from his well-chosen station past which edible creatures might be expected to wander sometime during the watches of the night.
Though he spoke the language of the jungle's great apes, it's unlikely that Sheeta understood the words, even though he knew very well that the hairless ape wanted to scare him away from his carefully chosen spot where tasty creatures might pass by during the night.
Like lightning the cat reared and struck a vicious blow at his tormentor with great, bared talons that might well have torn away the ape-man's face had the blow landed; but it did not land—Tarzan was even quicker than Sheeta. As the panther came to all fours again upon the little platform, Tarzan un-slung his heavy spear and prodded at the snarling face, and as Sheeta warded off the blows, the two continued their horrid duet of blood-curdling roars and growls.
Like lightning, the cat jumped up and delivered a brutal strike at his tormentor with sharp claws that could have easily ripped off the ape-man's face if it had hit; but it didn’t hit—Tarzan was even faster than Sheeta. As the panther got back on all fours on the small platform, Tarzan took off his heavy spear and poked at the snarling face, and while Sheeta blocked the strikes, the two kept up their horrifying duet of chilling roars and growls.
Goaded to frenzy the cat presently determined to come up after this disturber of his peace; but when he essayed to leap to the branch that held Tarzan he found the sharp spear point always in his face, and each time as he dropped back he was prodded viciously in some tender part; but at length, rage having conquered his better judgment, he leaped up the rough bole to the very branch upon which Tarzan stood. Now the two faced each other upon even footing and Sheeta saw a quick revenge and a supper all in one. The hairless ape-thing with the tiny fangs and the puny talons would be helpless before him.
Driven to madness, the cat soon decided to go after this intruder disrupting his peace; but whenever he tried to leap to the branch holding Tarzan, he found the sharp spear tip always aimed at him. Each time he fell back, he was sharply jabbed in a sensitive spot. Eventually, rage overcoming his better judgment, he climbed up the rough trunk to the very branch where Tarzan stood. Now the two faced each other on equal ground, and Sheeta saw a quick way to get revenge and a meal all at once. The hairless ape-like creature with the small teeth and weak claws would be no match for him.
The heavy limb bent beneath the weight of the two beasts as Sheeta crept cautiously out upon it and Tarzan backed slowly away, growling. The wind had risen to the proportions of a gale so that even the greatest giants of the forest swayed, groaning, to its force and the branch upon which the two faced each other rose and fell like the deck of a storm-tossed ship. Goro was now entirely obscured, but vivid flashes of lightning lit up the jungle at brief intervals, revealing the grim tableau of primitive passion upon the swaying limb.
The heavy branch bent under the weight of the two animals as Sheeta carefully made her way out onto it and Tarzan slowly backed away, growling. The wind had picked up to gale force, causing even the tallest trees of the forest to sway, groaning under its power, while the branch where the two confronted each other moved up and down like the deck of a ship caught in a storm. Goro was completely hidden now, but bright flashes of lightning briefly illuminated the jungle, revealing the intense scene of raw emotion on the swaying branch.
Tarzan backed away, drawing Sheeta farther from the stem of the tree and out upon the tapering branch, where his footing became ever more precarious. The cat, infuriated by the pain of spear wounds, was overstepping the bounds of caution. Already he had reached a point where he could do little more than maintain a secure footing, and it was this moment that Tarzan chose to charge. With a roar that mingled with the booming thunder from above he leaped toward the panther, who could only claw futilely with one huge paw while he clung to the branch with the other; but the ape-man did not come within that parabola of destruction. Instead he leaped above menacing claws and snapping fangs, turning in mid-air and alighting upon Sheeta's back, and at the instant of impact his knife struck deep into the tawny side. Then Sheeta, impelled by pain and hate and rage and the first law of Nature, went mad. Screaming and clawing he attempted to turn upon the ape-thing clinging to his back. For an instant he toppled upon the now wildly gyrating limb, clutched frantically to save himself, and then plunged downward into the darkness with Tarzan still clinging to him. Crashing through splintering branches the two fell. Not for an instant did the ape-man consider relinquishing his death-hold upon his adversary. He had entered the lists in mortal combat and true to the primitive instincts of the wild—the unwritten law of the jungle—one or both must die before the battle ended.
Tarzan stepped back, pulling Sheeta farther from the trunk of the tree and out onto the narrowing branch, where his footing became increasingly unstable. The cat, furious from the pain of spear wounds, was ignoring the limits of caution. He had already reached a point where he could barely keep his balance, and it was at this moment that Tarzan decided to charge. With a roar that mingled with the booming thunder above, he leaped toward the panther, who could only swipe helplessly with one massive paw while clinging to the branch with the other; but the ape-man avoided that deadly arc. Instead, he jumped over the threatening claws and snapping teeth, twisting in mid-air and landing on Sheeta's back, and at the moment of impact, his knife sank deep into the tawny side. Then Sheeta, driven by pain, hatred, rage, and the primal law of Nature, went wild. Screeching and clawing, he tried to turn on the ape-thing gripping his back. For a moment, he lost his balance on the now wildly shaking branch, clung on desperately to save himself, and then tumbled downward into the darkness with Tarzan still holding on. They crashed through breaking branches as they fell. Not for a second did the ape-man think of letting go of his opponent. He had entered a life-and-death battle, and true to the primal instincts of the wild—the unwritten law of the jungle—one or both had to die before the fight was over.
Sheeta, catlike, alighted upon four out-sprawled feet, the weight of the ape-man crushing him to earth, the long knife again imbedded in his side. Once the panther struggled to rise; but only to sink to earth again. Tarzan felt the giant muscles relax beneath him. Sheeta was dead. Rising, the ape-man placed a foot upon the body of his vanquished foe, raised his face toward the thundering heavens, and as the lightning flashed and the torrential rain broke upon him, screamed forth the wild victory cry of the bull ape.
Sheeta, like a cat, landed on four outstretched feet, the weight of the ape-man pinning him to the ground, the long knife once again embedded in his side. The panther tried to get up but only sank back down. Tarzan felt the giant muscles beneath him relax. Sheeta was dead. Standing up, the ape-man placed a foot on the body of his defeated enemy, lifted his face toward the roaring sky, and as the lightning flashed and the heavy rain poured down on him, let out the fierce victory cry of the bull ape.
Having accomplished his aim and driven the enemy from his lair, Tarzan gathered an armful of large fronds and climbed to his dripping couch. Laying a few of the fronds upon the poles he lay down and covered himself against the rain with the others, and despite the wailing of the wind and the crashing of the thunder, immediately fell asleep.
Having achieved his goal and chased the enemy from his hideout, Tarzan collected a bunch of large leaves and climbed up to his wet bed. He placed some of the leaves on the poles, lay down, and covered himself with the rest to shield himself from the rain. Despite the howling wind and booming thunder, he quickly fell asleep.
Chapter II
The Lion's Cave
The rain lasted for twenty-four hours and much of the time it fell in torrents so that when it ceased, the trail he had been following was entirely obliterated. Cold and uncomfortable—it was a savage Tarzan who threaded the mazes of the soggy jungle. Manu, the monkey, shivering and chattering in the dank trees, scolded and fled at his approach. Even the panthers and the lions let the growling Tarmangani pass unmolested.
The rain went on for twenty-four hours, and for most of that time, it poured hard, so when it finally stopped, the trail he had been following was completely gone. Cold and uncomfortable—it was a wild Tarzan who made his way through the wet jungle. Manu, the monkey, shivering and chattering in the damp trees, scolded him and ran away as he got closer. Even the panthers and lions let the growling Tarmangani pass without bothering him.
When the sun shone again upon the second day and a wide, open plain let the full heat of Kudu flood the chilled, brown body, Tarzan's spirits rose; but it was still a sullen, surly brute that moved steadily onward into the south where he hoped again to pick up the trail of the Germans. He was now in German East Africa and it was his intention to skirt the mountains west of Kilimanjaro, whose rugged peaks he was quite willing to give a wide berth, and then swing eastward along the south side of the range to the railway that led to Tanga, for his experience among men suggested that it was toward this railroad that German troops would be likely to converge.
When the sun came out again on the second day and the vast, open plain allowed the full heat of Kudu to warm his cold, brown body, Tarzan felt his spirits lift; but he was still a grim, unfriendly brute moving steadily south, where he hoped to pick up the Germans' trail again. He was now in German East Africa and planned to go around the mountains west of Kilimanjaro, whose rugged peaks he was more than happy to avoid, and then head east along the southern side of the range to the railway that led to Tanga. His experiences with people suggested that German troops would likely gather around this railroad.
Two days later, from the southern slopes of Kilimanjaro, he heard the boom of cannon far away to the east. The afternoon had been dull and cloudy and now as he was passing through a narrow gorge a few great drops of rain began to splatter upon his naked shoulders. Tarzan shook his head and growled his disapproval; then he cast his eyes about for shelter, for he had had quite enough of the cold and drenching. He wanted to hasten on in the direction of the booming noise, for he knew that there would be Germans fighting against the English. For an instant his bosom swelled with pride at the thought that he was English and then he shook his head again viciously. "No!" he muttered, "Tarzan of the Apes is not English, for the English are men and Tarzan is Tarmangani;" but he could not hide even from his sorrow or from his sullen hatred of mankind in general that his heart warmed at the thought it was Englishmen who fought the Germans. His regret was that the English were human and not great white apes as he again considered himself.
Two days later, from the southern slopes of Kilimanjaro, he heard the distant boom of cannons far to the east. The afternoon had been dull and cloudy, and now, as he passed through a narrow gorge, a few large drops of rain began to splatter on his bare shoulders. Tarzan shook his head and growled in disapproval; then he looked around for shelter, having had enough of the cold and soaking. He wanted to hurry towards the sound of the cannon, knowing there were Germans fighting against the English. For a moment, he felt swell with pride at the thought that he was English, but then he shook his head again forcefully. "No!" he muttered, "Tarzan of the Apes is not English, because the English are men and Tarzan is Tarmangani;" but he couldn’t hide even from his sadness or his brooding hatred of humanity in general that his heart warmed at the thought of Englishmen fighting the Germans. His regret was that the English were human and not great white apes, as he believed himself to be.
"Tomorrow," he thought, "I will travel that way and find the Germans," and then he set himself to the immediate task of discovering some shelter from the storm. Presently he espied the low and narrow entrance to what appeared to be a cave at the base of the cliffs which formed the northern side of the gorge. With drawn knife he approached the spot warily, for he knew that if it were a cave it was doubtless the lair of some other beast. Before the entrance lay many large fragments of rock of different sizes, similar to others scattered along the entire base of the cliff, and it was in Tarzan's mind that if he found the cave unoccupied he would barricade the door and insure himself a quiet and peaceful night's repose within the sheltered interior. Let the storm rage without—Tarzan would remain within until it ceased, comfortable and dry. A tiny rivulet of cold water trickled outward from the opening.
"Tomorrow," he thought, "I’ll head that way and find the Germans," and then he focused on the immediate task of finding some shelter from the storm. Soon, he spotted the low and narrow entrance to what looked like a cave at the base of the cliffs that formed the northern side of the gorge. With his knife drawn, he approached the spot cautiously, knowing that if it was a cave, it was likely the home of some other creature. Before the entrance lay many large fragments of rock of various sizes, similar to others scattered along the entire base of the cliff. Tarzan thought that if he found the cave empty, he would barricade the door and ensure himself a quiet and peaceful night’s rest inside. Let the storm rage outside—Tarzan would stay inside until it passed, comfortable and dry. A small stream of cold water trickled out from the opening.
Close to the cave Tarzan kneeled and sniffed the ground. A low growl escaped him and his upper lip curved to expose his fighting fangs. "Numa!" he muttered; but he did not stop. Numa might not be at home—he would investigate. The entrance was so low that the ape-man was compelled to drop to all fours before he could poke his head within the aperture; but first he looked, listened, and sniffed in each direction at his rear—he would not be taken by surprise from that quarter.
Close to the cave, Tarzan knelt and sniffed the ground. A low growl came from him, and his upper lip curled back to show his sharp fangs. "Numa!" he muttered, but he didn't stop. Numa might not be home—he would check it out. The entrance was so low that the ape-man had to drop to all fours before he could poke his head inside; but first, he looked, listened, and sniffed in each direction behind him—he wouldn't let himself be caught off guard from that side.
His first glance within the cave revealed a narrow tunnel with daylight at its farther end. The interior of the tunnel was not so dark but that the ape-man could readily see that it was untenanted at present. Advancing cautiously he crawled toward the opposite end imbued with a full realization of what it would mean if Numa should suddenly enter the tunnel in front of him; but Numa did not appear and the ape-man emerged at length into the open and stood erect, finding himself in a rocky cleft whose precipitous walls rose almost sheer on every hand, the tunnel from the gorge passing through the cliff and forming a passageway from the outer world into a large pocket or gulch entirely enclosed by steep walls of rock. Except for the small passageway from the gorge, there was no other entrance to the gulch which was some hundred feet in length and about fifty in width and appeared to have been worn from the rocky cliff by the falling of water during long ages. A tiny stream from Kilimanjaro's eternal snow cap still trickled over the edge of the rocky wall at the upper end of the gulch, forming a little pool at the bottom of the cliff from which a small rivulet wound downward to the tunnel through which it passed to the gorge beyond. A single great tree flourished near the center of the gulch, while tufts of wiry grass were scattered here and there among the rocks of the gravelly floor.
His first look inside the cave showed a narrow tunnel with daylight at the far end. The inside of the tunnel wasn’t so dark that the ape-man couldn’t see it was empty for now. Moving carefully, he crawled toward the other end, fully aware of what it would mean if Numa suddenly came into the tunnel in front of him; but Numa didn't show up, and the ape-man eventually emerged into the open and stood up, finding himself in a rocky cleft with steep walls rising almost straight up on all sides. The tunnel from the gorge passed through the cliff, creating a passageway from the outside world into a large pocket or gorge completely surrounded by steep rock walls. Aside from the small passage from the gorge, there was no other way into the gorge, which was about a hundred feet long and fifty feet wide, and looked like it had been carved out of the rocky cliff by water over many ages. A tiny stream from Kilimanjaro’s eternal snowcap still trickled over the edge of the rocky wall at the upper end of the gorge, forming a small pool at the bottom of the cliff, from which a little rivulet wound down to the tunnel, passing through to the gorge beyond. A single large tree thrived near the center of the gorge, while tufts of wiry grass were scattered here and there among the rocks of the gravelly floor.
The bones of many large animals lay about and among them were several human skulls. Tarzan raised his eyebrows. "A man-eater," he murmured, "and from appearances he has held sway here for a long time. Tonight Tarzan will take the lair of the man-eater and Numa may roar and grumble upon the outside."
The bones of many large animals lay scattered around, and among them were several human skulls. Tarzan raised his eyebrows. "A man-eater," he murmured, "and it looks like he's been in charge here for a long time. Tonight, Tarzan will take the man-eater's lair, and Numa can roar and grumble outside."
The ape-man had advanced well into the gulch as he investigated his surroundings and now as he stood near the tree, satisfied that the tunnel would prove a dry and quiet retreat for the night, he turned to retrace his way to the outer end of the entrance that he might block it with boulders against Numa's return, but even with the thought there came something to his sensitive ears that froze him into statuesque immobility with eyes glued upon the tunnel's mouth. A moment later the head of a huge lion framed in a great black mane appeared in the opening. The yellow-green eyes glared, round and unblinking, straight at the trespassing Tarmangani, a low growl rumbled from the deep chest, and lips curled back to expose the mighty fangs.
The ape-man had made his way deep into the ravine as he examined his surroundings, and now, as he stood by the tree, confident that the tunnel would provide a dry and quiet place to rest for the night, he turned to retrace his steps back to the entrance so he could block it with boulders to prevent Numa’s return. But just as he thought this, something caught his sensitive ears, freezing him in place, his eyes fixed on the mouth of the tunnel. A moment later, the head of a massive lion, framed by a thick black mane, appeared in the opening. Its yellow-green eyes glared, round and unblinking, directly at the intruding Tarmangani. A low growl rumbled from its deep chest, and its lips curled back, revealing its powerful fangs.
"Brother of Dango!" shouted Tarzan, angered that Numa's return should have been so timed as to frustrate his plans for a comfortable night's repose. "I am Tarzan of the Apes, Lord of the Jungle. Tonight I lair here—go!"
"Brother of Dango!" shouted Tarzan, furious that Numa's return had come at such a time to ruin his plans for a relaxing night. "I am Tarzan of the Apes, Lord of the Jungle. I'm staying here tonight—leave!"
But Numa did not go. Instead he rumbled forth a menacing roar and took a few steps in Tarzan's direction. The ape-man picked up a rock and hurled it at the snarling face. One can never be sure of a lion. This one might turn tail and run at the first intimation of attack—Tarzan had bluffed many in his time—but not now. The missile struck Numa full upon the snout—a tender part of a cat's anatomy—and instead of causing him to flee it transformed him into an infuriated engine of wrath and destruction.
But Numa didn’t back down. Instead, he let out a threatening roar and took a few steps toward Tarzan. The ape-man grabbed a rock and threw it at the snarling face. You can never be sure with a lion. This one might back off at the first sign of danger—Tarzan had intimidated many in his time—but not this time. The rock hit Numa square on the snout—a sensitive spot for a cat—and rather than making him run away, it turned him into an angry force of fury and destruction.
Up went his tail, stiff and erect, and with a series of frightful roars he bore down upon the Tarmangani at the speed of an express train. Not an instant too soon did Tarzan reach the tree and swing himself into its branches and there he squatted, hurling insults at the king of beasts while Numa paced a circle beneath him, growling and roaring in rage.
Up went his tail, stiff and straight, and with a series of terrifying roars, he charged at the Tarmangani like an express train. Just in time, Tarzan reached the tree, swung himself into its branches, and there he crouched, throwing insults at the king of beasts while Numa walked in circles beneath him, growling and roaring in anger.
It was raining now in earnest adding to the ape-man's discomfort and disappointment. He was very angry; but as only direct necessity had ever led him to close in mortal combat with a lion, knowing as he did that he had only luck and agility to pit against the frightful odds of muscle, weight, fangs, and talons, he did not now even consider descending and engaging in so unequal and useless a duel for the mere reward of a little added creature comfort. And so he sat perched in the tree while the rain fell steadily and the lion padded round and round beneath, casting a baleful eye upward after every few steps.
It was really raining now, making the ape-man feel even more uncomfortable and disappointed. He was very angry; however, since only sheer necessity had ever pushed him to fight a lion, and knowing he had only luck and agility against the terrifying strength, weight, fangs, and claws, he didn't even think about climbing down to take part in such an unfair and pointless fight just for a bit more comfort. So he sat up in the tree as the rain fell steadily while the lion walked around below, glancing up with a menacing look every few steps.
Tarzan scanned the precipitous walls for an avenue of escape. They would have baffled an ordinary man; but the ape-man, accustomed to climbing, saw several places where he might gain a foothold, precarious possibly; but enough to give him reasonable assurance of escape if Numa would but betake himself to the far end of the gulch for a moment. Numa, however, notwithstanding the rain, gave no evidence of quitting his post so that at last Tarzan really began to consider seriously if it might not be as well to take the chance of a battle with him rather than remain longer cold and wet and humiliated in the tree.
Tarzan looked over the steep walls for a way to escape. They would have confused an ordinary person, but the ape-man, used to climbing, spotted several places where he could potentially find a foothold—risky, perhaps, but enough to give him a reasonable chance of getting away if Numa would just move to the far end of the gorge for a moment. However, even with the rain, Numa showed no signs of leaving his spot, so Tarzan seriously began to think that it might be better to take the chance of fighting him rather than staying cold, wet, and embarrassed in the tree any longer.
But even as he turned the matter over in his mind Numa turned suddenly and walked majestically toward the tunnel without even a backward glance. The instant that he disappeared, Tarzan dropped lightly to the ground upon the far side of the tree and was away at top speed for the cliff. The lion had no sooner entered the tunnel than he backed immediately out again and, pivoting like a flash, was off across the gulch in full charge after the flying ape-man; but Tarzan's lead was too great—if he could find finger or foothold upon the sheer wall he would be safe; but should he slip from the wet rocks his doom was already sealed as he would fall directly into Numa's clutches where even the Great Tarmangani would be helpless.
But just as he was thinking it over, Numa suddenly turned and walked majestically toward the tunnel without looking back. The moment he disappeared, Tarzan dropped lightly to the ground on the opposite side of the tree and took off at full speed toward the cliff. As soon as the lion entered the tunnel, he quickly backed out again and, pivoting in a flash, charged across the gulch after the fleeing ape-man; but Tarzan's lead was too significant—if he could find a grip on the sheer wall, he would be safe; but if he slipped on the wet rocks, his fate would be sealed as he would fall right into Numa's grasp where even the Great Tarmangani would be powerless.
With the agility of a cat Tarzan ran up the cliff for thirty feet before he paused, and there finding a secure foothold, he stopped and looked down upon Numa who was leaping upward in a wild and futile attempt to scale the rocky wall to his prey. Fifteen or twenty feet from the ground the lion would scramble only to fall backward again defeated. Tarzan eyed him for a moment and then commenced a slow and cautious ascent toward the summit. Several times he had difficulty in finding holds but at last he drew himself over the edge, rose, picked up a bit of loose rock, hurled it at Numa and strode away.
With the agility of a cat, Tarzan sprinted up the cliff for thirty feet before he paused. Finding a secure foothold, he stopped and looked down at Numa, who was leaping up in a wild and futile attempt to scale the rocky wall to reach his prey. Fifteen or twenty feet off the ground, the lion would scramble only to fall backward again, defeated. Tarzan watched him for a moment and then started a slow and cautious climb toward the top. He struggled a few times to find handholds, but eventually, he pulled himself over the edge, stood up, picked up a loose rock, threw it at Numa, and walked away.
Finding an easy descent to the gorge, he was about to pursue his journey in the direction of the still-booming guns when a sudden thought caused him to halt and a half-smile to play about his lips. Turning, he trotted quickly back to the outer opening of Numa's tunnel. Close beside it he listened for a moment and then rapidly began to gather large rocks and pile them within the entrance. He had almost closed the aperture when the lion appeared upon the inside—a very ferocious and angry lion that pawed and clawed at the rocks and uttered mighty roars that caused the earth to tremble; but roars did not frighten Tarzan of the Apes. At Kala's shaggy breast he had closed his infant eyes in sleep upon countless nights in years gone by to the savage chorus of similar roars. Scarcely a day or night of his jungle life—and practically all his life had been spent in the jungle—had he not heard the roaring of hungry lions, or angry lions, or love-sick lions. Such sounds affected Tarzan as the tooting of an automobile horn may affect you—if you are in front of the automobile it warns you out of the way, if you are not in front of it you scarcely notice it. Figuratively Tarzan was not in front of the automobile—Numa could not reach him and Tarzan knew it, so he continued deliberately to choke the entrance until there was no possibility of Numa's getting out again. When he was quite through he made a grimace at the hidden lion beyond the barrier and resumed his way toward the east. "A man-eater who will eat no more men," he soliloquized.
Finding an easy way down to the gorge, he was about to continue his journey toward the still-thundering guns when a sudden thought made him stop and a half-smile flicker on his lips. Turning, he quickly trotted back to the outer entrance of Numa's tunnel. Close by, he listened for a moment and then quickly began to gather large rocks and stack them at the entrance. He had almost sealed the opening when the lion appeared on the inside—a very fierce and angry lion that pawed and scratched at the rocks and let out mighty roars that made the ground shake; but those roars didn't scare Tarzan of the Apes. He had fallen asleep countless nights in the past on Kala's shaggy chest, lulled by the savage chorus of similar roars. Hardly a day or night of his jungle life—and nearly all his life had been spent in the jungle—had gone by without hearing the roars of hungry lions, angry lions, or love-struck lions. Such sounds affected Tarzan like the honking of a car horn might affect you—if you’re in front of the car, it warns you to get out of the way; if you’re not in front of it, you hardly notice it. Figuratively, Tarzan was not in front of the car—Numa couldn’t reach him, and Tarzan knew it, so he continued to block the entrance until there was no chance of Numa getting out again. Once he was done, he made a face at the hidden lion behind the barrier and resumed his journey eastward. "A man-eater who will eat no more men," he muttered to himself.
That night Tarzan lay up under an overhanging shelf of rock. The next morning he resumed his journey, stopping only long enough to make a kill and satisfy his hunger. The other beasts of the wild eat and lie up; but Tarzan never let his belly interfere with his plans. In this lay one of the greatest differences between the ape-man and his fellows of the jungles and forests. The firing ahead rose and fell during the day. He had noticed that it was highest at dawn and immediately after dusk and that during the night it almost ceased. In the middle of the afternoon of the second day he came upon troops moving up toward the front. They appeared to be raiding parties, for they drove goats and cows along with them and there were native porters laden with grain and other foodstuffs. He saw that these natives were all secured by neck chains and he also saw that the troops were composed of native soldiers in German uniforms. The officers were white men. No one saw Tarzan, yet he was here and there about and among them for two hours. He inspected the insignia upon their uniforms and saw that they were not the same as that which he had taken from one of the dead soldiers at the bungalow and then he passed on ahead of them, unseen in the dense bush. He had come upon Germans and had not killed them; but it was because the killing of Germans at large was not yet the prime motive of his existence—now it was to discover the individual who slew his mate.
That night, Tarzan lay under an overhanging rock shelf. The next morning, he continued his journey, stopping only briefly to hunt and satisfy his hunger. While the other wild animals ate and rested, Tarzan never let his appetite interfere with his plans. This was one of the biggest differences between him and the other creatures of the jungles and forests. The sounds of combat rose and fell throughout the day. He noticed they were loudest at dawn and right after dusk, and that they almost stopped during the night. In the middle of the afternoon on the second day, he came across troops moving toward the front lines. They looked like raiding parties, driving goats and cows along with them, and there were native porters carrying grain and other food items. He noticed that these natives were all chained by the neck and that the troops consisted of native soldiers in German uniforms. The officers were white men. No one saw Tarzan, yet he was around them for two hours. He inspected the insignia on their uniforms and noticed they were different from the one he had taken from a dead soldier at the bungalow, then he moved ahead of them, unseen in the thick brush. He had encountered Germans and didn't kill them; his main focus wasn’t on killing Germans at large yet—it was to find the individual who had killed his mate.
After he had accounted for him he would take up the little matter of slaying ALL Germans who crossed his path, and he meant that many should cross it, for he would hunt them precisely as professional hunters hunt the man-eaters.
After he dealt with him, he would tackle the small issue of killing ALL Germans who got in his way, and he intended for many to get in his way because he would track them down just like professional hunters track man-eaters.
As he neared the front lines the troops became more numerous. There were motor trucks and ox teams and all the impedimenta of a small army and always there were wounded men walking or being carried toward the rear. He had crossed the railroad some distance back and judged that the wounded were being taken to it for transportation to a base hospital and possibly as far away as Tanga on the coast.
As he got closer to the front lines, the number of troops increased. There were motor trucks and ox teams, along with all the equipment of a small army, and there were always injured soldiers walking or being carried towards the rear. He had crossed the railroad a while ago and figured that the wounded were being taken there for transport to a base hospital, possibly all the way to Tanga on the coast.
It was dusk when he reached a large camp hidden in the foothills of the Pare Mountains. As he was approaching from the rear he found it but lightly guarded and what sentinels there were, were not upon the alert, and so it was an easy thing for him to enter after darkness had fallen and prowl about listening at the backs of tents, searching for some clew to the slayer of his mate.
It was sunset when he arrived at a big camp tucked away in the foothills of the Pare Mountains. As he approached from behind, he noticed it was only lightly guarded, and the few sentinels were not on high alert. So, it was simple for him to slip in after nightfall and wander around, eavesdropping behind tents, searching for any clue about the killer of his partner.
As he paused at the side of a tent before which sat a number of native soldiers he caught a few words spoken in native dialect that riveted his attention instantly: "The Waziri fought like devils; but we are greater fighters and we killed them all. When we were through the captain came and killed the woman. He stayed outside and yelled in a very loud voice until all the men were killed. Underlieutenant von Goss is braver—he came in and stood beside the door shouting at us, also in a very loud voice, and bade us nail one of the Waziri who was wounded to the wall, and then he laughed loudly because the man suffered. We all laughed. It was very funny."
As he paused by a tent where several local soldiers were sitting, he overheard a few words in their dialect that immediately grabbed his attention: "The Waziri fought like demons; but we're better fighters, and we took them all out. After we finished, the captain came and killed the woman. He stayed outside and yelled really loudly until all the men were dead. Underlieutenant von Goss is braver—he came in and stood by the door shouting at us, also at the top of his lungs, and told us to nail one of the wounded Waziri to the wall, and then he laughed out loud because the guy was in pain. We all laughed. It was really funny."
Like a beast of prey, grim and terrible, Tarzan crouched in the shadows beside the tent. What thoughts passed through that savage mind? Who may say? No outward sign of passion was revealed by the expression of the handsome face; the cold, gray eyes denoted only intense watchfulness. Presently the soldier Tarzan had heard first rose and with a parting word turned away. He passed within ten feet of the ape-man and continued on toward the rear of the camp. Tarzan followed and in the shadows of a clump of bushes overtook his quarry. There was no sound as the man beast sprang upon the back of his prey and bore it to the ground for steel fingers closed simultaneously upon the soldier's throat, effectually stifling any outcry. By the neck Tarzan dragged his victim well into the concealment of the bushes.
Like a fierce predator, dark and menacing, Tarzan crouched in the shadows next to the tent. What thoughts raced through that wild mind? Who can say? No outward sign of emotion showed on the handsome face; his cold, gray eyes revealed only intense vigilance. Soon, the soldier Tarzan had first heard stood up and, with a final word, walked away. He passed within ten feet of the ape-man and continued toward the back of the camp. Tarzan followed and, hidden in the shadows of a cluster of bushes, caught up with his target. There was no sound as the man-beast leaped onto the back of his prey, taking him down as his steel-like fingers closed around the soldier's throat, effectively silencing any cry. By the neck, Tarzan dragged his victim deep into the cover of the bushes.
"Make no sound," he cautioned in the man's own tribal dialect as he released his hold upon the other's throat.
"Don't make a sound," he warned in the man's own tribal dialect as he let go of the other’s throat.
The fellow gasped for breath, rolling frightened eyes upward to see what manner of creature it might be in whose power he was. In the darkness he saw only a naked brown body bending above him; but he still remembered the terrific strength of the mighty muscles that had closed upon his wind and dragged him into the bushes as though he had been but a little child. If any thought of resistance had crossed his mind he must have discarded it at once, as he made no move to escape.
The guy gasped for breath, his scared eyes looking up to see what kind of creature had him in its grip. In the dark, all he saw was a bare brown body hovering over him; but he still remembered the incredible strength of the powerful muscles that had cut off his air and pulled him into the bushes like he was just a little kid. If he had thought about fighting back, he quickly pushed that idea away, as he didn’t make any attempt to escape.
"What is the name of the officer who killed the woman at the bungalow where you fought with the Waziri?" asked Tarzan.
"What’s the name of the officer who shot the woman at the bungalow where you fought the Waziri?" asked Tarzan.
"Hauptmann Schneider," replied the black when he could again command his voice.
"Hauptmann Schneider," the man replied when he could finally control his voice again.
"Where is he?" demanded the ape-man.
"Where is he?" the ape-man asked.
"He is here. It may be that he is at headquarters. Many of the officers go there in the evening to receive orders."
"He is here. He might be at headquarters. A lot of the officers go there in the evening to get their orders."
"Lead me there," commanded Tarzan, "and if I am discovered I will kill you immediately. Get up!"
"Take me there," Tarzan ordered, "and if I'm caught, I'll kill you right away. Get up!"
The black rose and led the way by a roundabout route back through the camp. Several times they were forced to hide while soldiers passed; but at last they reached a great pile of baled hay from about the corner of which the black pointed out a two-story building in the distance.
The black rose and took a roundabout way back through the camp. They had to hide a few times as soldiers walked by; but eventually, they arrived at a large stack of baled hay, from which the black pointed out a two-story building in the distance.
"Headquarters," he said. "You can go no farther unseen. There are many soldiers about."
"Headquarters," he said. "You can't go any further without being seen. There are a lot of soldiers around."
Tarzan realized that he could not proceed farther in company with the black. He turned and looked at the fellow for a moment as though pondering what disposition to make of him.
Tarzan realized that he couldn't go any further with the guy. He turned and looked at him for a moment, as if thinking about what to do with him.
"You helped to crucify Wasimbu, the Waziri," he accused in a low yet none the less terrible tone.
"You helped to crucify Wasimbu, the Waziri," he accused in a low but still terrifying tone.
The black trembled, his knees giving beneath him. "He ordered us to do it," he plead.
The guy shook, his knees buckling under him. "He told us to do it," he pleaded.
"Who ordered it done?" demanded Tarzan.
"Who had it done?" asked Tarzan.
"Underlieutenant von Goss," replied the soldier. "He, too, is here."
"Underlieutenant von Goss," the soldier replied. "He’s here too."
"I shall find him," returned Tarzan, grimly. "You helped to crucify Wasimbu, the Waziri, and, while he suffered, you laughed."
"I'll find him," Tarzan replied grimly. "You helped to crucify Wasimbu, the Waziri, and while he was suffering, you laughed."
The fellow reeled. It was as though in the accusation he read also his death sentence. With no other word Tarzan seized the man again by the neck. As before there was no outcry. The giant muscles tensed. The arms swung quickly upward and with them the body of the black soldier who had helped to crucify Wasimbu, the Waziri, described a circle in the air—once, twice, three times, and then it was flung aside and the ape-man turned in the direction of General Kraut's headquarters.
The guy stumbled back. It was like in the accusation he also saw his own death sentence. Without another word, Tarzan grabbed the man by the neck again. Just like before, there was no cry. The huge muscles tensed up. The arms swung quickly upward, and with them, the body of the black soldier who had helped to crucify Wasimbu, the Waziri, spun in the air—once, twice, three times—and then he was thrown aside as the ape-man turned towards General Kraut's headquarters.
A single sentinel in the rear of the building barred the way. Tarzan crawled, belly to the ground, toward him, taking advantage of cover as only the jungle-bred beast of prey can do. When the sentinel's eyes were toward him, Tarzan hugged the ground, motionless as stone; when they were turned away, he moved swiftly forward. Presently he was within charging distance. He waited until the man had turned his back once more and then he rose and sped noiselessly down upon him. Again there was no sound as he carried the dead body with him toward the building.
A lone guard at the back of the building blocked his path. Tarzan crawled on his belly toward him, using the cover like only a jungle-trained predator can. When the guard was looking his way, Tarzan lay flat on the ground, still as a statue; when the guard looked away, he moved quickly forward. Soon he was close enough to charge. He waited until the man had his back turned again and then he stood up and rushed silently at him. Again, there was no sound as he carried the lifeless body toward the building.
The lower floor was lighted, the upper dark. Through the windows Tarzan saw a large front room and a smaller room in rear of it. In the former were many officers. Some moved about talking to one another, others sat at field tables writing. The windows were open and Tarzan could hear much of the conversation; but nothing that interested him. It was mostly about the German successes in Africa and conjectures as to when the German army in Europe would reach Paris. Some said the Kaiser was doubtlessly already there, and there was a great deal of damning Belgium.
The lower floor was lit, while the upper floor was dark. Through the windows, Tarzan saw a large front room and a smaller room at the back. In the front room, there were many officers. Some walked around chatting with each other, while others sat at field tables writing. The windows were open, and Tarzan could hear a lot of the conversation, but nothing that caught his interest. It was mostly about the German victories in Africa and guesses about when the German army in Europe would arrive in Paris. Some people said the Kaiser was probably already there, and there was a lot of criticism of Belgium.
In the smaller back room a large, red-faced man sat behind a table. Some other officers were also sitting a little in rear of him, while two stood at attention before the general, who was questioning them. As he talked, the general toyed with an oil lamp that stood upon the table before him. Presently there came a knock upon the door and an aide entered the room. He saluted and reported: "Fräulein Kircher has arrived, sir."
In the small back room, a large, red-faced man sat behind a table. Some other officers were also seated a bit behind him, while two stood at attention in front of the general, who was questioning them. As he spoke, the general fiddled with an oil lamp that was on the table in front of him. Soon, there was a knock on the door, and an aide walked into the room. He saluted and reported, "Fräulein Kircher has arrived, sir."
"Bid her enter," commanded the general, and then nodded to the two officers before him in sign of dismissal.
"Tell her to come in," the general ordered, then nodded to the two officers in front of him as a sign to dismiss them.
The Fräulein, entering, passed them at the door. The officers in the little room rose and saluted, the Fräulein acknowledging the courtesy with a bow and a slight smile. She was a very pretty girl. Even the rough, soiled riding habit and the caked dust upon her face could not conceal the fact, and she was young. She could not have been over nineteen.
The young woman walked in and passed them at the door. The officers in the small room stood up and saluted, and she acknowledged the gesture with a bow and a small smile. She was a very pretty girl. Even with her worn riding outfit and the dirt on her face, it was clear she was attractive, and she was young. She couldn’t have been more than nineteen.
She advanced to the table behind which the general stood and, taking a folded paper from an inside pocket of her coat, handed it to him.
She walked up to the table where the general was standing and, pulling out a folded paper from an inside pocket of her coat, handed it to him.
"Be seated, Fräulein," he said, and another officer brought her a chair. No one spoke while the general read the contents of the paper.
"Please take a seat, miss," he said, and another officer brought her a chair. Everyone remained silent while the general read the contents of the paper.
Tarzan appraised the various people in the room. He wondered if one might not be Hauptmann Schneider, for two of them were captains. The girl he judged to be of the intelligence department—a spy. Her beauty held no appeal for him—without a glimmer of compunction he could have wrung that fair, young neck. She was German and that was enough; but he had other and more important work before him. He wanted Hauptmann Schneider.
Tarzan assessed the different people in the room. He thought one of them might be Captain Schneider since two of them were captains. He figured the girl was from the intelligence department—a spy. Her beauty didn't interest him at all—without feeling any remorse, he could have easily broken that delicate, young neck. She was German, and that was enough for him; however, he had other, more important tasks at hand. He was looking for Captain Schneider.
Finally the general looked up from the paper.
Finally, the general looked up from the paper.
"Good," he said to the girl, and then to one of his aides, "Send for Major Schneider."
"Good," he said to the girl, and then to one of his aides, "Get Major Schneider to come here."
Major Schneider! Tarzan felt the short hairs at the back of his neck rise. Already they had promoted the beast who had murdered his mate—doubtless they had promoted him for that very crime.
Major Schneider! Tarzan felt the short hairs on the back of his neck stand up. They had already promoted the beast who killed his mate—no doubt they had promoted him for that very crime.
The aide left the room and the others fell into a general conversation from which it became apparent to Tarzan that the German East African forces greatly outnumbered the British and that the latter were suffering heavily. The ape-man stood so concealed in a clump of bushes that he could watch the interior of the room without being seen from within, while he was at the same time hidden from the view of anyone who might chance to pass along the post of the sentinel he had slain. Momentarily he was expecting a patrol or a relief to appear and discover that the sentinel was missing, when he knew an immediate and thorough search would be made.
The aide walked out of the room, and the others started chatting, which made it clear to Tarzan that the German East African forces outnumbered the British significantly and that the British were taking heavy losses. The ape-man was so well hidden in a bunch of bushes that he could see what was happening inside the room without being noticed, while also staying out of sight from anyone who might pass by the spot where the sentinel he had killed was stationed. He was anticipating that a patrol or a relief would show up soon and realize the sentinel was missing, leading to an immediate and thorough search.
Impatiently he awaited the coming of the man he sought and at last he was rewarded by the reappearance of the aide who had been dispatched to fetch him accompanied by an officer of medium size with fierce, upstanding mustaches. The newcomer strode to the table, halted and saluted, reporting. The general acknowledged the salute and turned toward the girl.
Impatiently, he waited for the man he was looking for, and finally, he was rewarded when the aide he had sent to get him returned, bringing with him an officer of average build with fierce, prominent mustaches. The newcomer walked to the table, stopped, and saluted, making his report. The general acknowledged the salute and turned to the girl.
"Fräulein Kircher," he said, "allow me to present Major Schneider—"
"Miss Kircher," he said, "let me introduce Major Schneider—"
Tarzan waited to hear no more. Placing a palm upon the sill of the window he vaulted into the room into the midst of an astounded company of the Kaiser's officers. With a stride he was at the table and with a sweep of his hand sent the lamp crashing into the fat belly of the general who, in his mad effort to escape cremation, fell over backward, chair and all, upon the floor. Two of the aides sprang for the ape-man who picked up the first and flung him in the face of the other. The girl had leaped from her chair and stood flattened against the wall. The other officers were calling aloud for the guard and for help. Tarzan's purpose centered upon but a single individual and him he never lost sight of. Freed from attack for an instant he seized Major Schneider, threw him over his shoulder and was out of the window so quickly that the astonished assemblage could scarce realize what had occurred.
Tarzan didn't want to hear any more. He placed a hand on the window sill and jumped into the room filled with shocked Kaiser's officers. In one stride, he reached the table and, with a sweep of his arm, sent the lamp crashing into the general's belly. In his frantic attempt to escape burning, the general fell backward, chair and all, onto the floor. Two aides lunged at the ape-man, but he grabbed the first one and threw him at the other. The girl jumped from her chair and pressed herself against the wall. The other officers were shouting for the guards and for help. Tarzan's focus was on just one person, and he never lost track of him. With a brief moment free from attack, he grabbed Major Schneider, threw him over his shoulder, and was out the window so fast that the astonished crowd barely processed what had happened.
A single glance showed him that the sentinel's post was still vacant and a moment later he and his burden were in the shadows of the hay dump. Major Schneider had made no outcry for the very excellent reason that his wind was shut off. Now Tarzan released his grasp enough to permit the man to breathe.
A quick look revealed that the guard's spot was still empty, and moments later, he and his load were in the shadows of the hay pile. Major Schneider hadn't shouted out for a very good reason—he couldn't catch his breath. Now Tarzan loosened his hold just enough to let the man breathe.
"If you make a sound you will be choked again," he said.
"If you make a noise, you'll be choked again," he said.
Cautiously and after infinite patience Tarzan passed the final outpost. Forcing his captive to walk before him he pushed on toward the west until, late into the night, he re-crossed the railway where he felt reasonably safe from discovery. The German had cursed and grumbled and threatened and asked questions; but his only reply was another prod from Tarzan's sharp war spear. The ape-man herded him along as he would have driven a hog with the difference that he would have had more respect and therefore more consideration for a hog.
Cautiously and with endless patience, Tarzan moved past the last outpost. Forcing his captive to walk ahead of him, he continued west until late into the night, crossing the railway again where he felt relatively safe from being found. The German had cursed, complained, threatened, and asked questions; but Tarzan's only response was another jab from his sharp war spear. The ape-man guided him along as he would a pig, except he would have shown more respect and consideration for a pig.
Until now Tarzan had given little thought to the details of revenge. Now he pondered what form the punishment should take. Of only one thing was he certain—it must end in death. Like all brave men and courageous beasts Tarzan had little natural inclination to torture—none, in fact; but this case was unique in his experience. An inherent sense of justice called for an eye for an eye and his recent oath demanded even more. Yes, the creature must suffer even as he had caused Jane Clayton to suffer. Tarzan could not hope to make the man suffer as he had suffered, since physical pain may never approach the exquisiteness of mental torture.
Until now, Tarzan had given little thought to the details of revenge. Now he considered what form the punishment should take. The only thing he was certain of was that it must end in death. Like all brave men and courageous beasts, Tarzan had little inclination to torture—none, in fact; but this situation was unique in his experience. An inherent sense of justice called for an eye for an eye, and his recent oath demanded even more. Yes, the creature must suffer just as he had caused Jane Clayton to suffer. Tarzan knew he couldn’t make the man suffer as he had suffered, since physical pain could never match the intensity of mental torture.
All through the long night the ape-man goaded on the exhausted and now terrified Hun. The awful silence of his captor wrought upon the German's nerves. If he would only speak! Again and again Schneider tried to force or coax a word from him; but always the result was the same—continued silence and a vicious and painful prod from the spear point. Schneider was bleeding and sore. He was so exhausted that he staggered at every step, and often he fell only to be prodded to his feet again by that terrifying and remorseless spear.
All night long, the ape-man urged the worn-out and now frightened Hun. The chilling silence of his captor drove the German mad. If only he would say something! Time after time, Schneider tried to either force or persuade him to speak, but the result was always the same—unending silence and a painful jab from the spear tip. Schneider was bleeding and in pain. He was so drained that he stumbled with every step, often falling, only to be jabbed back to his feet by that terrifying and relentless spear.
It was not until morning that Tarzan reached a decision and it came to him then like an inspiration from above. A slow smile touched his lips and he immediately sought a place to lie up and rest—he wished his prisoner to be fit now for what lay in store for him. Ahead was a stream which Tarzan had crossed the day before. He knew the ford for a drinking place and a likely spot to make an easy kill. Cautioning the German to utter silence with a gesture the two approached the stream quietly. Down the game trail Tarzan saw some deer about to leave the water. He shoved Schneider into the brush at one side and, squatting next him, waited. The German watched the silent giant with puzzled, frightened eyes. In the new dawn he, for the first time, was able to obtain a good look at his captor, and, if he had been puzzled and frightened before, those sensations were nothing to what he experienced now.
It wasn't until morning that Tarzan made a decision, and it struck him like a flash of inspiration. A slow smile spread across his lips as he immediately looked for a spot to relax and rest—he wanted his prisoner to be in good shape for what was coming next. Ahead was a stream that Tarzan had crossed the day before. He knew the shallow area was a good drinking spot and a perfect place for an easy kill. Signaling to the German to stay completely silent, the two quietly approached the stream. Following the game trail, Tarzan spotted some deer getting ready to leave the water. He pushed Schneider into the brush on one side and, squatting next to him, waited. The German watched the silent giant with confused, scared eyes. In the new dawn light, he was finally able to get a clear look at his captor, and if he had been puzzled and scared before, those feelings were nothing compared to what he felt now.
Who and what could this almost naked, white savage be? He had heard him speak but once—when he had cautioned him to silence—and then in excellent German and the well-modulated tones of culture. He watched him now as the fascinated toad watches the snake that is about to devour it. He saw the graceful limbs and symmetrical body motionless as a marble statue as the creature crouched in the concealment of the leafy foliage. Not a muscle, not a nerve moved. He saw the deer coming slowly along the trail, down wind and unsuspecting. He saw a buck pass—an old buck—and then a young and plump one came opposite the giant in ambush, and Schneider's eyes went wide and a scream of terror almost broke from his lips as he saw the agile beast at his side spring straight for the throat of the young buck and heard from those human lips the hunting roar of a wild beast. Down went the buck and Tarzan and his captive had meat. The ape-man ate his raw, but he permitted the German to build a fire and cook his portion.
Who could this nearly naked, white savage be? He had heard him speak only once—when he had warned him to be quiet—and then in perfect German, with the refined tone of someone cultured. He watched him now like a fascinated toad watching a snake ready to swallow it. He saw the graceful limbs and symmetrical body perfectly still like a marble statue as the creature crouched hidden in the leafy underbrush. Not a muscle, not a nerve moved. He noticed the deer slowly making its way along the trail, unaware and downwind. He saw an old buck pass by—then a young, plump one approached the giant in hiding, and Schneider's eyes widened with terror as he nearly screamed upon seeing the agile beast at his side leap straight for the throat of the young buck, hearing from those human lips the hunting roar of a wild animal. Down went the buck, and Tarzan and his captive had meat. The ape-man ate his raw, but he allowed the German to start a fire and cook his share.
The two lay up until late in the afternoon and then took up the journey once again—a journey that was so frightful to Schneider because of his ignorance of its destination that he at times groveled at Tarzan's feet begging for an explanation and for mercy; but on and on in silence the ape-man went, prodding the failing Hun whenever the latter faltered.
The two stayed in bed until late in the afternoon and then continued their journey—a journey that terrified Schneider due to his lack of knowledge about its destination. At times, he begged Tarzan for an explanation and for mercy, practically groveling at his feet. But the ape-man kept moving forward in silence, nudging the struggling Hun whenever he hesitated.
It was noon of the third day before they reached their destination. After a steep climb and a short walk they halted at the edge of a precipitous cliff and Schneider looked down into a narrow gulch where a single tree grew beside a tiny rivulet and sparse grass broke from a rock-strewn soil. Tarzan motioned him over the edge; but the German drew back in terror. The Ape-man seized him and pushed him roughly toward the brink. "Descend," he said. It was the second time he had spoken in three days and perhaps his very silence, ominous in itself, had done more to arouse terror in the breast of the Boche than even the spear point, ever ready as it always was.
It was noon on the third day when they finally reached their destination. After a steep climb and a short walk, they stopped at the edge of a steep cliff, and Schneider looked down into a narrow ravine where a single tree stood next to a small stream and thin grass peeked out from the rocky soil. Tarzan gestured for him to come closer to the edge, but the German recoiled in fear. The Ape-man grabbed him and roughly pushed him toward the brink. "Get down," he said. It was the second time he had spoken in three days, and maybe his silence, which was ominous in itself, had instilled even more fear in the heart of the German than the ever-present threat of his spear.
Schneider looked fearfully over the edge; but was about to essay the attempt when Tarzan halted him. "I am Lord Greystoke," he said. "It was my wife you murdered in the Waziri country. You will understand now why I came for you. Descend."
Schneider looked nervously over the edge but was about to make the attempt when Tarzan stopped him. "I am Lord Greystoke," he said. "It was my wife you killed in the Waziri country. Now you understand why I came for you. Climb down."
The German fell upon his knees. "I did not murder your wife," he cried. "Have mercy! I did not murder your wife. I do not know anything about—"
The German dropped to his knees. "I didn't kill your wife," he shouted. "Have mercy! I didn't kill your wife. I don't know anything about—"
"Descend!" snapped Tarzan, raising the point of his spear. He knew that the man lied and was not surprised that he did. A man who would murder for no cause would lie for less. Schneider still hesitated and pled. The ape-man jabbed him with the spear and Schneider slid fearfully over the top and began the perilous descent. Tarzan accompanied and assisted him over the worst places until at last they were within a few feet of the bottom.
"Get down!" Tarzan ordered, lifting the tip of his spear. He knew the man was lying and wasn’t surprised by it. A man who would kill without reason would also lie for less. Schneider still hesitated and begged. The ape-man poked him with the spear, and Schneider fearfully started to climb down. Tarzan guided him through the toughest spots until they were finally just a few feet from the ground.
"Be quiet now," cautioned the ape-man. He pointed at the entrance to what appeared to be a cave at the far end of the gulch. "There is a hungry lion in there. If you can reach that tree before he discovers you, you will have several days longer in which to enjoy life and then—when you are too weak to cling longer to the branches of the tree Numa, the man-eater, will feed again for the last time." He pushed Schneider from his foothold to the ground below. "Now run," he said.
"Quiet now," warned the ape-man. He pointed to the entrance of what looked like a cave at the far end of the gulch. "There’s a hungry lion in there. If you can make it to that tree before he sees you, you’ll have a few more days to enjoy life, and then—when you're too weak to hang on to the branches, Numa, the man-eater, will feed on you one last time." He shoved Schneider from his spot to the ground below. "Now run," he said.
The German trembling in terror started for the tree. He had almost reached it when a horrid roar broke from the mouth of the cave and almost simultaneously a gaunt, hunger mad lion leaped into the daylight of the gulch. Schneider had but a few yards to cover; but the lion flew over the ground to circumvent him while Tarzan watched the race with a slight smile upon his lips.
The German, shaking with fear, headed for the tree. He was almost there when a terrible roar erupted from the cave, and at the same moment, a gaunt, starving lion jumped into the light of the gulch. Schneider had only a few yards left to go, but the lion raced across the ground to get around him while Tarzan watched the chase with a slight smile on his face.
Schneider won by a slender margin, and as Tarzan scaled the cliff to the summit, he heard behind him mingled with the roaring of the baffled cat, the gibbering of a human voice that was at the same time more bestial than the beast's.
Schneider won by a narrow margin, and as Tarzan climbed the cliff to the top, he heard behind him, mixed with the roaring of the frustrated cat, the chattering of a human voice that was at the same time more animalistic than the beast's.
Upon the brink of the cliff the ape-man turned and looked back into the gulch. High in the tree the German clung frantically to a branch across which his body lay. Beneath him was Numa—waiting.
Upon the edge of the cliff, the ape-man turned and looked back into the ravine. High in the tree, the German clung desperately to a branch that his body was draped over. Below him was Numa—waiting.
The ape-man raised his face to Kudu, the sun, and from his mighty chest rose the savage victory cry of the bull ape.
The ape-man lifted his face to Kudu, the sun, and from his powerful chest came the fierce victory roar of the bull ape.
Chapter III
In the German Lines
Tarzan was not yet fully revenged. There were many millions of Germans yet alive—enough to keep Tarzan pleasantly occupied the balance of his life, and yet not enough, should he kill them all, to recompense him for the great loss he had suffered—nor could the death of all those million Germans bring back his loved one.
Tarzan had not yet fully avenged himself. There were still millions of Germans alive—more than enough to keep Tarzan occupied for the rest of his life, but not enough, even if he killed them all, to make up for the huge loss he had experienced—nor could the deaths of all those millions of Germans bring back his loved one.
While in the German camp in the Pare Mountains, which lie just east of the boundary line between German and British East Africa, Tarzan had overheard enough to suggest that the British were getting the worst of the fighting in Africa. At first he had given the matter but little thought, since, after the death of his wife, the one strong tie that had held him to civilization, he had renounced all mankind, considering himself no longer man, but ape.
While in the German camp in the Pare Mountains, which are just east of the border between German and British East Africa, Tarzan had overheard enough to suggest that the British were losing the fight in Africa. At first, he didn’t think much of it, since after his wife’s death—the only strong connection he had to civilization—he had turned his back on all humanity, seeing himself as no longer a man, but an ape.
After accounting for Schneider as satisfactorily as lay within his power he circled Kilimanjaro and hunted in the foothills to the north of that mightiest of mountains as he had discovered that in the neighborhood of the armies there was no hunting at all. Some pleasure he derived through conjuring mental pictures from time to time of the German he had left in the branches of the lone tree at the bottom of the high-walled gulch in which was penned the starving lion. He could imagine the man's mental anguish as he became weakened from hunger and maddened by thirst, knowing that sooner or later he must slip exhausted to the ground where waited the gaunt man-eater. Tarzan wondered if Schneider would have the courage to descend to the little rivulet for water should Numa leave the gulch and enter the cave, and then he pictured the mad race for the tree again when the lion charged out to seize his prey as he was certain to do, since the clumsy German could not descend to the rivulet without making at least some slight noise that would attract Numa's attention.
After dealing with Schneider as best as he could, he circled Kilimanjaro and hunted in the foothills to the north of that great mountain, realizing that there was no hunting at all near the armies. He found some enjoyment in occasionally imagining the German he had left in the branches of the lone tree at the bottom of the high-walled gulch where the starving lion was trapped. He could picture the man's mental suffering as he grew weaker from hunger and crazed by thirst, knowing that sooner or later he would fall exhausted to the ground where the gaunt man-eater waited. Tarzan wondered if Schneider would have the guts to go down to the little stream for water if Numa left the gulch and entered the cave, and then he envisioned the frantic dash for the tree again when the lion charged out to grab his prey, which he was sure would happen since the awkward German couldn’t approach the stream without making some noise that would draw Numa’s attention.
But even this pleasure palled, and more and more the ape-man found himself thinking of the English soldiers fighting against heavy odds and especially of the fact that it was Germans who were beating them. The thought made him lower his head and growl and it worried him not a little—a bit, perhaps, because he was finding it difficult to forget that he was an Englishman when he wanted only to be an ape. And at last the time came when he could not longer endure the thought of Germans killing Englishmen while he hunted in safety a bare march away.
But even this pleasure faded, and more and more the ape-man found himself thinking about the English soldiers fighting against overwhelming odds and especially about the fact that it was Germans who were defeating them. The thought made him lower his head and growl, and it bothered him quite a bit—partly because he was struggling to forget that he was an Englishman when he only wanted to be an ape. Eventually, the time came when he could no longer tolerate the idea of Germans killing Englishmen while he hunted safely just a short distance away.
His decision made, he set out in the direction of the German camp, no well-defined plan formulated; but with the general idea that once near the field of operations he might find an opportunity to harass the German command as he so well knew how to do. His way took him along the gorge close to the gulch in which he had left Schneider, and, yielding to a natural curiosity, he scaled the cliffs and made his way to the edge of the gulch. The tree was empty, nor was there sign of Numa, the lion. Picking up a rock he hurled it into the gulch, where it rolled to the very entrance to the cave. Instantly the lion appeared in the aperture; but such a different-looking lion from the great sleek brute that Tarzan had trapped there two weeks before. Now he was gaunt and emaciated, and when he walked he staggered.
His mind made up, he headed toward the German camp, without a clear plan in place, but generally thinking that once he was close to the action, he might find a way to disrupt the German command like he was so skilled at doing. He took a path along the gorge near the gulch where he had left Schneider, and, giving in to his natural curiosity, he climbed the cliffs to the edge of the gulch. The tree was empty, and there was no sign of Numa, the lion. He picked up a rock and threw it into the gulch, where it rolled right to the cave’s entrance. Immediately, the lion appeared in the opening, but he looked so different from the sleek, powerful beast Tarzan had trapped there two weeks earlier. Now, he was thin and emaciated, and he staggered as he walked.
"Where is the German?" shouted Tarzan. "Was he good eating, or only a bag of bones when he slipped and fell from the tree?"
"Where's the German?" shouted Tarzan. "Was he tasty, or just a bag of bones when he slipped and fell from the tree?"
Numa growled. "You look hungry, Numa," continued the ape-man. "You must have been very hungry to eat all the grass from your lair and even the bark from the tree as far up as you can reach. Would you like another German?" and smiling he turned away.
Numa growled. "You look hungry, Numa," the ape-man continued. "You must have been really hungry to eat all the grass from your den and even the bark from the tree as high up as you can reach. Want another German?" He smiled and turned away.
A few minutes later he came suddenly upon Bara, the deer, asleep beneath a tree, and as Tarzan was hungry he made a quick kill, and squatting beside his prey proceeded to eat his fill. As he was gnawing the last morsel from a bone his quick ears caught the padding of stealthy feet behind him, and turning he confronted Dango, the hyena, sneaking upon him. With a growl the ape-man picked up a fallen branch and hurled it at the skulking brute. "Go away, eater of carrion!" he cried; but Dango was hungry and being large and powerful he only snarled and circled slowly about as though watching for an opportunity to charge. Tarzan of the Apes knew Dango even better than Dango knew himself. He knew that the brute, made savage by hunger, was mustering its courage for an attack, that it was probably accustomed to man and therefore more or less fearless of him and so he un-slung his heavy spear and laid it ready at his side while he continued his meal, all the time keeping a watchful eye upon the hyena.
A few minutes later, he suddenly stumbled upon Bara, the deer, sleeping under a tree. Tarzan was hungry, so he quickly killed it and squatted beside his prey to eat as much as he wanted. While he was gnawing the last bit of meat from a bone, his sharp ears picked up the sound of stealthy footsteps behind him. Turning around, he found Dango, the hyena, sneaking up on him. With a growl, the ape-man picked up a fallen branch and threw it at the sneaky animal. "Go away, eater of carrion!" he shouted. But Dango was hungry, and being strong and large, he just snarled and slowly circled around, seeming to wait for a chance to attack. Tarzan of the Apes knew Dango better than the hyena knew himself. He realized that the starving beast was gathering its courage for an attack, that it was likely used to humans and therefore not too afraid of him. So, he unslung his heavy spear and kept it ready at his side while he continued to eat, always keeping a watchful eye on the hyena.
He felt no fear, for long familiarity with the dangers of his wild world had so accustomed him to them that he took whatever came as a part of each day's existence as you accept the homely though no less real dangers of the farm, the range, or the crowded metropolis. Being jungle bred he was ready to protect his kill from all comers within ordinary limitations of caution. Under favorable conditions Tarzan would face even Numa himself and, if forced to seek safety by flight, he could do so without any feeling of shame. There was no braver creature roamed those savage wilds and at the same time there was none more wise—the two factors that had permitted him to survive.
He felt no fear, as his long experience with the dangers of his wild world had made him so accustomed to them that he accepted whatever came his way as part of each day's life, just as you deal with the everyday yet very real dangers of a farm, the open range, or a busy city. Being raised in the jungle, he was ready to defend his kill from anyone, within reasonable limits of caution. Under the right circumstances, Tarzan would confront even Numa himself, and if he needed to escape, he could do so without any sense of shame. There was no braver creature roaming those savage lands, and at the same time, none wiser—the two qualities that had allowed him to survive.
Dango might have charged sooner but for the savage growls of the ape-man—growls which, coming from human lips, raised a question and a fear in the hyena's heart. He had attacked women and children in the native fields and he had frightened their men about their fires at night; but he never had seen a man-thing who made this sound that reminded him more of Numa angry than of a man afraid.
Dango might have attacked sooner if it weren't for the fierce growls of the ape-man—growls that, coming from a human, stirred both curiosity and fear in the heart of the hyena. He had gone after women and children in the native fields and had scared their men around the fires at night; but he had never encountered a man-thing that made this sound, which reminded him more of an angry Numa than of a scared human.
When Tarzan had completed his repast he was about to rise and hurl a clean-picked bone at the beast before he went his way, leaving the remains of his kill to Dango; but a sudden thought stayed him and instead he picked up the carcass of the deer, threw it over his shoulder, and set off in the direction of the gulch. For a few yards Dango followed, growling, and then realizing that he was being robbed of even a taste of the luscious flesh he cast discretion to the winds and charged. Instantly, as though Nature had given him eyes in the back of his head, Tarzan sensed the impending danger and, dropping Bara to the ground, turned with raised spear. Far back went the brown, right hand and then forward, lightning-like, backed by the power of giant muscles and the weight of his brawn and bone. The spear, released at the right instant, drove straight for Dango, caught him in the neck where it joined the shoulders and passed through the body.
When Tarzan finished his meal, he was about to stand up and throw a clean-picked bone at the beast before leaving, intending to leave the leftovers for Dango. However, a sudden thought stopped him, and instead, he picked up the deer carcass, threw it over his shoulder, and headed toward the gulch. For a few steps, Dango followed, growling, but then realizing he was being denied even a taste of the juicy meat, he threw caution to the wind and charged. Instantly, as if Nature had given him eyes in the back of his head, Tarzan sensed the approaching danger. He dropped Bara to the ground and turned with his spear raised. His right hand shot back and then forward with lightning speed, backed by the power of his massive muscles and strength. The spear, released at the perfect moment, struck straight for Dango, hitting him in the neck where it met the shoulders and passing through his body.
When he had withdrawn the shaft from the hyena Tarzan shouldered both carcasses and continued on toward the gulch. Below lay Numa beneath the shade of the lone tree and at the ape-man's call he staggered slowly to his feet, yet weak as he was, he still growled savagely, even essaying a roar at the sight of his enemy. Tarzan let the two bodies slide over the rim of the cliff. "Eat, Numa!" he cried. "It may be that I shall need you again." He saw the lion, quickened to new life at the sight of food, spring upon the body of the deer and then he left him rending and tearing the flesh as he bolted great pieces into his empty maw.
When he pulled the arrow out of the hyena, Tarzan put both animals over his shoulder and continued toward the canyon. Below, Numa lay in the shade of the solitary tree, and at the ape-man's call, he slowly got to his feet. Even though he was weak, he still growled fiercely and even attempted a roar at the sight of his enemy. Tarzan let the two bodies drop over the edge of the cliff. "Eat, Numa!" he called out. "I might need you again later." He watched as the lion, rejuvenated at the sight of food, leaped onto the deer’s body and then left him tearing into the flesh, gulping down large chunks into his empty mouth.
The following day Tarzan came within sight of the German lines. From a wooded spur of the hills he looked down upon the enemy's left flank and beyond to the British lines. His position gave him a bird's-eye view of the field of battle, and his keen eyesight picked out many details that would not have been apparent to a man whose every sense was not trained to the highest point of perfection as were the ape-man's. He noted machine-gun emplacements cunningly hidden from the view of the British and listening posts placed well out in No Man's Land.
The next day, Tarzan spotted the German lines. From a wooded section of the hills, he looked down at the enemy's left flank and further out to the British lines. His vantage point gave him a comprehensive view of the battlefield, and his sharp eyesight noticed many details that wouldn't have been obvious to someone whose senses weren't trained to the highest level like the ape-man's. He observed machine-gun positions cleverly concealed from the British and listening posts placed far out in No Man's Land.
As his interested gaze moved hither and thither from one point of interest to another he heard from a point upon the hillside below him, above the roar of cannon and the crack of rifle fire, a single rifle spit. Immediately his attention was centered upon the spot where he knew a sniper must be hid. Patiently he awaited the next shot that would tell him more surely the exact location of the rifleman, and when it came he moved down the steep hillside with the stealth and quietness of a panther. Apparently he took no cognizance of where he stepped, yet never a loose stone was disturbed nor a twig broken—it was as though his feet saw.
As his curious gaze darted from one point of interest to another, he heard from a spot on the hillside below him, above the noise of cannon fire and the crack of rifles, a single shot. Instantly, he focused on the area where he knew a sniper must be hiding. Patiently, he waited for the next shot that would reveal the exact location of the rifleman, and when it came, he moved down the steep hillside with the stealth and quiet of a panther. It seemed like he wasn’t even aware of where he was stepping, yet not a loose stone was disturbed nor a twig snapped—it was as if his feet had eyes.
Presently, as he passed through a clump of bushes, he came to the edge of a low cliff and saw upon a ledge some fifteen feet below him a German soldier prone behind an embankment of loose rock and leafy boughs that hid him from the view of the British lines. The man must have been an excellent shot, for he was well back of the German lines, firing over the heads of his fellows. His high-powered rifle was equipped with telescope sights and he also carried binoculars which he was in the act of using as Tarzan discovered him, either to note the effect of his last shot or to discover a new target. Tarzan let his eye move quickly toward that part of the British line the German seemed to be scanning, his keen sight revealing many excellent targets for a rifle placed so high above the trenches.
As he walked through a cluster of bushes, he reached the edge of a low cliff and noticed a German soldier lying flat on a ledge about fifteen feet below him, concealed behind a pile of loose rocks and leafy branches that masked him from the British lines. This guy must have been a great shot since he was well behind the German lines, aiming over the heads of his comrades. His powerful rifle had a scope, and he was also carrying binoculars, which he was using when Tarzan spotted him, either to see the impact of his last shot or to find a new target. Tarzan quickly shifted his gaze to the section of the British line that the German was watching, his sharp eyesight revealing plenty of excellent targets for a rifle positioned so high above the trenches.
The Hun, evidently satisfied with his observations, laid aside his binoculars and again took up his rifle, placed its butt in the hollow of his shoulder and took careful aim. At the same instant a brown body sprang outward from the cliff above him. There was no sound and it is doubtful that the German ever knew what manner of creature it was that alighted heavily upon his back, for at the instant of impact the sinewy fingers of the ape-man circled the hairy throat of the Boche. There was a moment of futile struggling followed by the sudden realization of dissolution—the sniper was dead.
The Hun, clearly pleased with what he had seen, set down his binoculars and picked up his rifle again, positioning the butt against his shoulder and taking careful aim. At that exact moment, a brown figure leaped out from the cliff above him. There was no noise, and it's unlikely the German ever identified what kind of creature landed heavily on his back, for at the moment of impact, the strong hands of the ape-man wrapped around the Boche's hairy throat. There was a brief moment of pointless struggle followed by the harsh realization of death—the sniper was dead.
Lying behind the rampart of rocks and boughs, Tarzan looked down upon the scene below. Near at hand were the trenches of the Germans. He could see officers and men moving about in them and almost in front of him a well-hidden machine gun was traversing No Man's Land in an oblique direction, striking the British at such an angle as to make it difficult for them to locate it.
Lying behind the barrier of rocks and branches, Tarzan looked down at the scene below. Close by were the German trenches. He could see officers and soldiers moving around in them, and right in front of him, a concealed machine gun was sweeping across No Man's Land at an angle that made it hard for the British to identify its position.
Tarzan watched, toying idly with the rifle of the dead German. Presently he fell to examining the mechanism of the piece. He glanced again toward the German trenches and changed the adjustment of the sights, then he placed the rifle to his shoulder and took aim. Tarzan was an excellent shot. With his civilized friends he had hunted big game with the weapons of civilization and though he never had killed except for food or in self-defense he had amused himself firing at inanimate targets thrown into the air and had perfected himself in the use of firearms without realizing that he had done so. Now indeed would he hunt big game. A slow smile touched his lips as his finger closed gradually upon the trigger. The rifle spoke and a German machine gunner collapsed behind his weapon. In three minutes Tarzan picked off the crew of that gun. Then he spotted a German officer emerging from a dugout and the three men in the bay with him. Tarzan was careful to leave no one in the immediate vicinity to question how Germans could be shot in German trenches when they were entirely concealed from enemy view.
Tarzan watched, idly fiddling with the rifle of the dead German. Soon, he started examining the gun's mechanics. He looked again at the German trenches and adjusted the sights, then he positioned the rifle on his shoulder and took aim. Tarzan was a great shot. With his civilized friends, he had hunted big game using modern weapons, and although he had only killed for food or in self-defense, he had enjoyed shooting at inanimate targets thrown into the air and had unknowingly honed his skills with firearms. Now, he was truly ready to hunt big game. A slow smile spread across his face as his finger slowly tightened on the trigger. The rifle fired, and a German machine gunner fell behind his weapon. Within three minutes, Tarzan took out the entire crew of that gun. Then he noticed a German officer coming out of a dugout along with three men in the bay with him. Tarzan was careful to ensure that no one in the immediate area would question how Germans could be shot in their own trenches while remaining completely hidden from enemy view.
Again adjusting his sights he took a long-range shot at a distant machine-gun crew to his right. With calm deliberation he wiped them out to a man. Two guns were silenced. He saw men running through the trenches and he picked off several of them. By this time the Germans were aware that something was amiss—that an uncanny sniper had discovered a point of vantage from which this sector of the trenches was plainly visible to him. At first they sought to discover his location in No Man's Land; but when an officer looking over the parapet through a periscope was struck full in the back of the head with a rifle bullet which passed through his skull and fell to the bottom of the trench they realized that it was beyond the parados rather than the parapet that they should search.
Adjusting his aim again, he took a long-distance shot at a machine-gun crew on his right. With steady focus, he took them out one by one. Two guns fell silent. He watched soldiers running through the trenches and picked off several of them. By now, the Germans knew something was wrong—that a skilled sniper had found a vantage point overlooking this section of the trenches. At first, they tried to locate him in No Man's Land, but when an officer peering over the barricade through a periscope was hit in the back of the head by a bullet that went through his skull and dropped to the bottom of the trench, they realized they needed to search beyond the back of the barricade instead of just the front.
One of the soldiers picked up the bullet that had killed his officer, and then it was that real excitement prevailed in that particular bay, for the bullet was obviously of German make. Hugging the parados, messengers carried the word in both directions and presently periscopes were leveled above the parados and keen eyes were searching out the traitor. It did not take them long to locate the position of the hidden sniper and then Tarzan saw a machine gun being trained upon him. Before it had gotten into action its crew lay dead about it; but there were other men to take their places, reluctantly perhaps; but driven on by their officers they were forced to it and at the same time two other machine guns were swung around toward the ape-man and put into operation.
One of the soldiers picked up the bullet that had killed his officer, and that’s when real excitement took over in that part of the trench, because the bullet was clearly made by the Germans. Huddled against the parados, messengers spread the word in both directions, and soon periscopes were raised above the parados, with sharp eyes scanning for the traitor. It didn’t take long for them to find the position of the hidden sniper, and then Tarzan saw a machine gun aimed at him. Before it could fire, its crew lay dead around it; but other men quickly stepped in to replace them, reluctantly perhaps, but driven on by their officers, and at the same time, two other machine guns were swung around towards the ape-man and activated.
Realizing that the game was about up Tarzan with a farewell shot laid aside the rifle and melted into the hills behind him. For many minutes he could hear the sputter of machinegun fire concentrated upon the spot he had just quit and smiled as he contemplated the waste of German ammunition.
Realizing that the game was to take down Tarzan, he set aside the rifle and slipped into the hills behind him. For several minutes, he could hear the bursts of machine gun fire directed at the spot he had just left and smiled as he thought about the waste of German ammunition.
"They have paid heavily for Wasimbu, the Waziri, whom they crucified, and for his slain fellows," he mused; "but for Jane they can never pay—no, not if I killed them all."
"They have paid dearly for Wasimbu, the Waziri, whom they crucified, and for his murdered comrades," he thought. "But for Jane, they can never pay—no, not even if I killed them all."
After dark that night he circled the flanks of both armies and passed through the British out-guards and into the British lines. No man saw him come. No man knew that he was there.
After dark that night, he moved around the sides of both armies and slipped through the British outposts and into the British lines. No one noticed him arrive. No one knew he was there.
Headquarters of the Second Rhodesians occupied a sheltered position far enough back of the lines to be comparatively safe from enemy observation. Even lights were permitted, and Colonel Capell sat before a field table, on which was spread a military map, talking with several of his officers. A large tree spread above them, a lantern sputtered dimly upon the table, while a small fire burned upon the ground close at hand. The enemy had no planes and no other observers could have seen the lights from the German lines.
Headquarters of the Second Rhodesians were set up in a protected spot, far enough behind the front lines to be relatively safe from enemy observation. They were even allowed to have lights on, and Colonel Capell sat at a field table, which had a military map laid out on it, chatting with a few of his officers. A large tree provided shade above them, a lantern flickered faintly on the table, and a small fire crackled nearby. The enemy had no aircraft, and no other observers could have seen the lights from the German lines.
The officers were discussing the advantage in numbers possessed by the enemy and the inability of the British to more than hold their present position. They could not advance. Already they had sustained severe losses in every attack and had always been driven back by overwhelming numbers. There were hidden machine guns, too, that bothered the colonel considerably. It was evidenced by the fact that he often reverted to them during the conversation.
The officers were talking about the enemy's advantage in numbers and how the British could only hold their current position. They couldn’t move forward. They had already suffered heavy losses in every attack and had consistently been pushed back by overwhelming forces. There were also hidden machine guns that troubled the colonel a lot. This was clear because he frequently brought them up during the conversation.
"Something silenced them for a while this afternoon," said one of the younger officers. "I was observing at the time and I couldn't make out what the fuss was about; but they seemed to be having a devil of a time in a section of trench on their left. At one time I could have sworn they were attacked in the rear—I reported it to you at the time, sir, you'll recall—for the blighters were pepperin' away at the side of that bluff behind them. I could see the dirt fly. I don't know what it could have been."
"Something hushed them up for a bit this afternoon," said one of the younger officers. "I was watching at the time and I couldn't figure out what the commotion was about; but it looked like they were really struggling in a part of the trench on their left. At one point, I could have sworn they were being attacked from behind—I reported it to you then, sir, you'll remember—because the guys were firing away at the side of that hill behind them. I could see the dirt flying. I have no idea what it could have been."
There was a slight rustling among the branches of the tree above them and simultaneously a lithe, brown body dropped in their midst. Hands moved quickly to the butts of pistols; but otherwise there was no movement among the officers. First they looked wonderingly at the almost naked white man standing there with the firelight playing upon rounded muscles, took in the primitive attire and the equally primitive armament and then all eyes turned toward the colonel.
There was a faint rustling in the branches of the tree above them, and at the same moment, a nimble brown figure dropped down into their midst. Hands instinctively went to the grips of their pistols, but there was no other movement among the officers. First, they gazed in amazement at the nearly naked white man standing there, with the firelight highlighting his toned muscles, took in his primitive clothing and equally basic weaponry, and then all eyes shifted to the colonel.
"Who the devil are you, sir?" snapped that officer.
"Who the hell are you, sir?" snapped that officer.
"Tarzan of the Apes," replied the newcomer.
"Tarzan of the Apes," said the newcomer.
"Oh, Greystoke!" cried a major, and stepped forward with outstretched hand.
"Oh, Greystoke!" exclaimed a major, stepping forward with his hand extended.
"Preswick," acknowledged Tarzan as he took the proffered hand.
"Preswick," Tarzan said as he shook the offered hand.
"I didn't recognize you at first," apologized the major. "The last time I saw you you were in London in evening dress. Quite a difference—'pon my word, man, you'll have to admit it."
"I didn't recognize you at first," the major said apologetically. "The last time I saw you, you were in London wearing evening dress. Quite a change—honestly, you have to admit it."
Tarzan smiled and turned toward the colonel. "I overheard your conversation," he said. "I have just come from behind the German lines. Possibly I can help you."
Tarzan smiled and turned to the colonel. "I heard your conversation," he said. "I just came from behind the German lines. I might be able to help you."
The colonel looked questioningly toward Major Preswick who quickly rose to the occasion and presented the ape-man to his commanding officer and fellows. Briefly Tarzan told them what it was that brought him out alone in pursuit of the Germans.
The colonel looked at Major Preswick with questions in his eyes, and Major Preswick quickly stepped up to introduce the ape-man to his commanding officer and colleagues. Tarzan briefly explained what had led him to venture out alone in pursuit of the Germans.
"And now you have come to join us?" asked the colonel.
"And now you've come to join us?" asked the colonel.
Tarzan shook his head. "Not regularly," he replied. "I must fight in my own way; but I can help you. Whenever I wish I can enter the German lines."
Tarzan shook his head. "Not usually," he replied. "I have to fight in my own way; but I can help you. I can enter the German lines whenever I want."
Capell smiled and shook his head. "It's not so easy as you think," he said; "I've lost two good officers in the last week trying it—and they were experienced men; none better in the Intelligence Department."
Capell smiled and shook his head. "It's not as easy as you think," he said; "I've lost two good officers in the last week trying it—and they were experienced men; none better in the Intelligence Department."
"Is it more difficult than entering the British lines?" asked Tarzan.
"Is it harder than getting through the British lines?" asked Tarzan.
The colonel was about to reply when a new thought appeared to occur to him and he looked quizzically at the ape-man. "Who brought you here?" he asked. "Who passed you through our out-guards?"
The colonel was about to respond when a new thought seemed to strike him, and he looked at the ape-man with curiosity. "Who brought you here?" he asked. "Who got you past our guards?"
"I have just come through the German lines and yours and passed through your camp," he replied. "Send word to ascertain if anyone saw me."
"I just made it through the German lines and yours and went through your camp," he replied. "Send a message to find out if anyone saw me."
"But who accompanied you?" insisted Capell.
"But who went with you?" insisted Capell.
"I came alone," replied Tarzan and then, drawing himself to his full height, "You men of civilization, when you come into the jungle, are as dead among the quick. Manu, the monkey, is a sage by comparison. I marvel that you exist at all—only your numbers, your weapons, and your power of reasoning save you. Had I a few hundred great apes with your reasoning power I could drive the Germans into the ocean as quickly as the remnant of them could reach the coast. Fortunate it is for you that the dumb brutes cannot combine. Could they, Africa would remain forever free of men. But come, can I help you? Would you like to know where several machinegun emplacements are hidden?"
"I came alone," Tarzan replied, straightening up to his full height. "You civilized men are as good as dead in the jungle. Manu, the monkey, is wise compared to you. I’m amazed you even survive—only your numbers, your weapons, and your ability to think save you. If I had a few hundred great apes with your level of reasoning, I could drive the Germans into the ocean faster than the last of them could reach the coast. It's lucky for you that the dumb animals can’t team up. If they could, Africa would be forever free of humans. But tell me, can I help you? Would you like to know where some machine-gun positions are hidden?"
The colonel assured him that they would, and a moment later Tarzan had traced upon the map the location of three that had been bothering the English. "There is a weak spot here," he said, placing a finger upon the map. "It is held by blacks; but the machine guns out in front are manned by whites. If—wait! I have a plan. You can fill that trench with your own men and enfilade the trenches to its right with their own machine guns."
The colonel promised him that they would, and a moment later Tarzan marked on the map the positions of three that had been troubling the English. "There's a weak point here," he said, pointing at the map. "It's held by Black soldiers, but the machine guns in front are operated by white soldiers. If—wait! I've got an idea. You can fill that trench with your own troops and target the trenches to its right with their own machine guns."
Colonel Capell smiled and shook his head. "It sounds very easy," he said.
Colonel Capell smiled and shook his head. "It sounds really easy," he said.
"It IS easy—for me," replied the ape-man. "I can empty that section of trench without a shot. I was raised in the jungle—I know the jungle folk—the Gomangani as well as the others. Look for me again on the second night," and he turned to leave.
"It’s easy—for me," replied the ape-man. "I can clear that section of trench without firing a shot. I grew up in the jungle—I know the jungle people—the Gomangani and the others. Look for me again on the second night," and he turned to leave.
"Wait," said the colonel. "I will send an officer to pass you through the lines."
"Wait," said the colonel. "I'll send an officer to get you through the lines."
Tarzan smiled and moved away. As he was leaving the little group about headquarters he passed a small figure wrapped in an officer's heavy overcoat. The collar was turned up and the visor of the military cap pulled well down over the eyes; but, as the ape-man passed, the light from the fire illuminated the features of the newcomer for an instant, revealing to Tarzan a vaguely familiar face. Some officer he had known in London, doubtless, he surmised, and went his way through the British camp and the British lines all unknown to the watchful sentinels of the out-guard.
Tarzan smiled and walked away. As he left the small group near headquarters, he noticed a tiny figure wrapped in a heavy officer's overcoat. The collar was turned up, and the military cap's visor was pulled down low over the person's eyes; however, as the ape-man passed, the fire's light briefly illuminated the newcomer's face, revealing a vaguely familiar face to Tarzan. He guessed it was an officer he had known in London and continued on his way through the British camp and lines, unnoticed by the watchful sentinels on guard.
Nearly all night he moved across Kilimanjaro's foothills, tracking by instinct an unknown way, for he guessed that what he sought would be found on some wooded slope higher up than he had come upon his other recent journeys in this, to him, little known country. Three hours before dawn his keen nostrils apprised him that somewhere in the vicinity he would find what he wanted, and so he climbed into a tall tree and settled himself for a few hours' sleep.
Nearly all night he moved through the foothills of Kilimanjaro, instinctively following an unknown route, believing that what he was looking for would be found on a wooded slope higher up than he had discovered in his previous trips in this relatively unfamiliar country. Three hours before dawn, his sharp sense of smell told him that he would find what he wanted nearby, so he climbed into a tall tree and settled in for a few hours of sleep.
Chapter IV
When the Lion Fed
Kudu, the sun, was well up in the heavens when Tarzan awoke. The ape-man stretched his giant limbs, ran his fingers through his thick hair, and swung lightly down to earth. Immediately he took up the trail he had come in search of, following it by scent down into a deep ravine. Cautiously he went now, for his nose told him that the quarry was close at hand, and presently from an overhanging bough he looked down upon Horta, the boar, and many of his kinsmen. Un-slinging his bow and selecting an arrow, Tarzan fitted the shaft and, drawing it far back, took careful aim at the largest of the great pigs. In the ape-man's teeth were other arrows, and no sooner had the first one sped, than he had fitted and shot another bolt. Instantly the pigs were in turmoil, not knowing from whence the danger threatened. They stood stupidly at first and then commenced milling around until six of their number lay dead or dying about them; then with a chorus of grunts and squeals they started off at a wild run, disappearing quickly in the dense underbrush.
Kudu, the sun, was high in the sky when Tarzan woke up. The ape-man stretched his massive limbs, ran his fingers through his thick hair, and swung down lightly to the ground. He immediately picked up the trail he had come searching for, following it by scent into a deep ravine. He moved cautiously now, as his nose indicated that the prey was nearby, and soon from an overhanging branch, he looked down on Horta, the boar, and many of his relatives. Unshouldering his bow and choosing an arrow, Tarzan nocked the shaft and, drawing it back, took careful aim at the largest of the pigs. In the ape-man's teeth were more arrows, and no sooner had the first one flown, than he had nocked and shot another. Instantly, the pigs were thrown into chaos, confused about where the threat was coming from. They stood there blankly at first and then started milling around until six of their number lay dead or dying around them; then, with a chorus of grunts and squeals, they bolted, disappearing quickly into the thick underbrush.
Tarzan then descended from the tree, dispatched those that were not already dead and proceeded to skin the carcasses. As he worked, rapidly and with great skill, he neither hummed nor whistled as does the average man of civilization. It was in numerous little ways such as these that he differed from other men, due, probably, to his early jungle training. The beasts of the jungle that he had been reared among were playful to maturity but seldom thereafter. His fellow-apes, especially the bulls, became fierce and surly as they grew older. Life was a serious matter during lean seasons—one had to fight to secure one's share of food then, and the habit once formed became lifelong. Hunting for food was the life labor of the jungle bred, and a life labor is a thing not to be approached with levity nor prosecuted lightly. So all work found Tarzan serious, though he still retained what the other beasts lost as they grew older—a sense of humor, which he gave play to when the mood suited him. It was a grim humor and sometimes ghastly; but it satisfied Tarzan.
Tarzan climbed down from the tree, finished off those that weren’t already dead, and started to skin the bodies. As he worked quickly and skillfully, he didn’t hum or whistle like most civilized men do. In many small ways like this, he was different from other men, likely due to his upbringing in the jungle. The wild animals he grew up with were playful until they reached adulthood, but that changed quickly. His fellow apes, especially the males, became aggressive and grumpy as they aged. Life was serious during tough times—one had to fight to get enough food, and that fighting habit stuck for life. Hunting for food was the main job for those raised in the jungle, and it’s not something to take lightly. So, Tarzan approached all work with seriousness, although he kept what others lost as they aged—a sense of humor, which he expressed when he felt like it. It was a dark humor and sometimes disturbing; but it made Tarzan content.
Then, too, were one to sing and whistle while working on the ground, concentration would be impossible. Tarzan possessed the ability to concentrate each of his five senses upon its particular business. Now he worked at skinning the six pigs and his eyes and his fingers worked as though there was naught else in all the world than these six carcasses; but his ears and his nose were as busily engaged elsewhere—the former ranging the forest all about and the latter assaying each passing zephyr. It was his nose that first discovered the approach of Sabor, the lioness, when the wind shifted for a moment.
Then again, if someone were to sing and whistle while working in the field, it would be impossible to concentrate. Tarzan had the ability to focus all five of his senses on their specific tasks. As he skinned the six pigs, his eyes and fingers worked as if nothing else in the world mattered except those six carcasses; meanwhile, his ears and nose were actively engaged elsewhere—the ears scanning the surrounding forest and the nose testing each passing breeze. It was his nose that first detected the approach of Sabor, the lioness, when the wind shifted for a moment.
As clearly as though he had seen her with his eyes, Tarzan knew that the lioness had caught the scent of the freshly killed pigs and immediately had moved down wind in their direction. He knew from the strength of the scent spoor and the rate of the wind about how far away she was and that she was approaching from behind him. He was finishing the last pig and he did not hurry. The five pelts lay close at hand—he had been careful to keep them thus together and near him—an ample tree waved its low branches above him.
As clearly as if he had seen her with his own eyes, Tarzan knew that the lioness had picked up the scent of the freshly killed pigs and had immediately moved downwind toward them. He could tell from the strength of the scent trail and the wind's direction approximately how far away she was and that she was coming up behind him. He was finishing the last pig and took his time. The five pelts lay nearby—he had been careful to keep them all together and close to him—an ample tree swayed its low branches above him.
He did not even turn his head for he knew she was not yet in sight; but he bent his ears just a bit more sharply for the first sound of her nearer approach. When the final skin had been removed he rose. Now he heard Sabor in the bushes to his rear, but not yet too close. Leisurely he gathered up the six pelts and one of the carcasses, and as the lioness appeared between the boles of two trees he swung upward into the branches above him. Here he hung the hides over a limb, seated himself comfortably upon another with his back against the bole of the tree, cut a hind quarter from the carcass he had carried with him and proceeded to satisfy his hunger. Sabor slunk, growling, from the brush, cast a wary eye upward toward the ape-man and then fell upon the nearest carcass.
He didn't even look up because he knew she wasn't in sight yet; however, he strained his ears a little more for the first sign of her coming closer. Once he had finished skinning, he stood up. Now he heard Sabor in the bushes behind him, but not too close yet. Slowly, he gathered the six pelts and one of the carcasses, and as the lioness came into view between two trees, he swung up into the branches above. He draped the hides over a limb, settled onto another branch with his back against the trunk, cut a hind quarter from the carcass he had brought with him, and started to satisfy his hunger. Sabor crept out, growling, from the underbrush, glanced up cautiously at the ape-man, and then pounced on the nearest carcass.
Tarzan looked down upon her and grinned, recalling an argument he had once had with a famous big-game hunter who had declared that the king of beasts ate only what he himself had killed. Tarzan knew better for he had seen Numa and Sabor stoop even to carrion.
Tarzan looked down at her and smiled, remembering a debate he once had with a well-known big-game hunter who claimed that the king of the jungle only ate what he had personally taken down. Tarzan knew better because he had witnessed Numa and Sabor lower themselves to eating carrion.
Having filled his belly, the ape-man fell to work upon the hides—all large and strong. First he cut strips from them about half an inch wide. When he had sufficient number of these strips he sewed two of the hides together, afterwards piercing holes every three or four inches around the edges. Running another strip through these holes gave him a large bag with a drawstring. In similar fashion he produced four other like bags, but smaller, from the four remaining hides and had several strips left over.
Having filled his stomach, the ape-man got to work on the hides—all large and durable. First, he cut strips from them about half an inch wide. Once he had enough of these strips, he sewed two of the hides together, then pierced holes every three or four inches around the edges. Threading another strip through these holes created a large bag with a drawstring. In the same way, he made four smaller bags from the remaining hides and had several strips left over.
All this done he threw a large, juicy fruit at Sabor, cached the remainder of the pig in a crotch of the tree and swung off toward the southwest through the middle terraces of the forest, carrying his five bags with him. Straight he went to the rim of the gulch where he had imprisoned Numa, the lion. Very stealthily he approached the edge and peered over. Numa was not in sight. Tarzan sniffed and listened. He could hear nothing, yet he knew that Numa must be within the cave. He hoped that he slept—much depended upon Numa not discovering him.
Once he finished, he threw a big, juicy fruit at Sabor, stashed the rest of the pig in a fork of the tree, and swung off toward the southwest through the middle levels of the forest, carrying his five bags with him. He headed straight to the edge of the gulch where he had trapped Numa, the lion. Quietly, he approached the edge and peeked over. Numa was nowhere in sight. Tarzan sniffed and listened. He couldn't hear anything, but he knew that Numa must be in the cave. He hoped the lion was asleep—much depended on Numa not noticing him.
Cautiously he lowered himself over the edge of the cliff, and with utter noiselessness commenced the descent toward the bottom of the gulch. He stopped often and turned his keen eyes and ears in the direction of the cave's mouth at the far end of the gulch, some hundred feet away. As he neared the foot of the cliff his danger increased greatly. If he could reach the bottom and cover half the distance to the tree that stood in the center of the gulch he would feel comparatively safe for then, even if Numa appeared, he felt that he could beat him either to the cliff or to the tree, but to scale the first thirty feet of the cliff rapidly enough to elude the leaping beast would require a running start of at least twenty feet as there were no very good hand- or footholds close to the bottom—he had had to run up the first twenty feet like a squirrel running up a tree that other time he had beaten an infuriated Numa to it. He had no desire to attempt it again unless the conditions were equally favorable at least, for he had escaped Numa's raking talons by only a matter of inches on the former occasion.
Cautiously, he lowered himself over the edge of the cliff and silently began descending toward the bottom of the gulch. He frequently paused, listening and watching for any signs coming from the cave's mouth at the far end of the gulch, about a hundred feet away. As he got closer to the base of the cliff, his danger significantly increased. If he could reach the bottom and cover half the distance to the tree in the center of the gulch, he would feel relatively safe, since even if Numa appeared, he believed he could outrun him to either the cliff or the tree. However, scaling the first thirty feet of the cliff quickly enough to escape the leaping animal would require a running start of at least twenty feet, as there weren't many good handholds or footholds near the bottom—he had previously dashed up the first twenty feet like a squirrel racing up a tree when he outran an angry Numa. He had no intention of attempting that again unless the conditions were just as favorable, considering he had narrowly escaped Numa's claws by only a few inches last time.
At last he stood upon the floor of the gulch. Silent as a disembodied spirit he advanced toward the tree. He was half way there and no sign of Numa. He reached the scarred bole from which the famished lion had devoured the bark and even torn pieces of the wood itself and yet Numa had not appeared. As he drew himself up to the lower branches he commenced to wonder if Numa were in the cave after all. Could it be possible that he had forced the barrier of rocks with which Tarzan had plugged the other end of the passage where it opened into the outer world of freedom? Or was Numa dead? The ape-man doubted the verity of the latter suggestion as he had fed the lion the entire carcasses of a deer and a hyena only a few days since—he could not have starved in so short a time, while the little rivulet running across the gulch furnished him with water a-plenty.
At last, he stood on the floor of the gulch. Quiet as a ghost, he moved toward the tree. He was halfway there with no sign of Numa. He reached the scarred trunk from which the starving lion had eaten the bark and even shredded some of the wood, yet Numa still hadn't shown up. As he pulled himself up to the lower branches, he started to wonder if Numa was in the cave after all. Could it be that he had broken through the rock barrier that Tarzan had used to seal off the other end of the passage leading to the outside world? Or was Numa dead? The ape-man questioned the truth of the latter idea since he had fed the lion whole carcasses of a deer and a hyena just a few days ago—there was no way he could have starved in such a short time, especially with the little stream running through the gulch providing plenty of water.
Tarzan started to descend and investigate the cavern when it occurred to him that it would save effort were he to lure Numa out instead. Acting upon the thought he uttered a low growl. Immediately he was rewarded by the sound of a movement within the cave and an instant later a wild-eyed, haggard lion rushed forth ready to face the devil himself were he edible. When Numa saw Tarzan, fat and sleek, perched in the tree he became suddenly the embodiment of frightful rage. His eyes and his nose told him that this was the creature responsible for his predicament and also that this creature was good to eat. Frantically the lion sought to scramble up the bole of the tree. Twice he leaped high enough to catch the lowest branches with his paws, but both times he fell backward to the earth. Each time he became more furious. His growls and roars were incessant and horrible and all the time Tarzan sat grinning down upon him, taunting him in jungle billingsgate for his inability to reach him and mentally exulting that always Numa was wasting his already waning strength.
Tarzan began to climb down and explore the cave when he realized it might be easier to draw Numa out instead. Acting on that idea, he let out a low growl. Immediately, he was rewarded by the sound of movement inside the cave, and a moment later, a wild-eyed, ragged lion charged out, ready to confront anything, as long as it was edible. When Numa spotted Tarzan, plump and sleek, sitting in the tree, he transformed into a picture of furious rage. His eyes and nose told him that this creature was responsible for his situation and that it was also a tasty meal. The lion frantically tried to climb up the tree trunk. Twice he jumped high enough to grab the lowest branches with his paws, but both times he fell back to the ground. With each failed attempt, he grew more enraged. His growls and roars were nonstop and terrifying, while Tarzan sat above him, grinning and taunting him in jungle slang for not being able to reach him, feeling triumphant that Numa was wasting his already dwindling strength.
Finally the ape-man rose and un-slung his rope. He arranged the coils carefully in his left hand and the noose in his right, and then he took a position with each foot on one of two branches that lay in about the same horizontal plane and with his back pressed firmly against the stem of the tree. There he stood hurling insults at Numa until the beast was again goaded into leaping upward at him, and as Numa rose the noose dropped quickly over his head and about his neck. A quick movement of Tarzan's rope hand tightened the coil and when Numa slipped backward to the ground only his hind feet touched, for the ape-man held him swinging by the neck.
Finally, the ape-man stood up and took off his rope. He carefully arranged the coils in his left hand and the noose in his right, then positioned himself with each foot on one of two branches that were about level with each other, pressing his back firmly against the tree trunk. There he stood, shouting insults at Numa until the beast was once again provoked into leaping up at him. As Numa jumped, the noose dropped swiftly over his head and around his neck. A quick motion with Tarzan's rope hand tightened the coil, and when Numa fell back to the ground, only his hind feet touched, because the ape-man had him swinging by the neck.
Moving slowly outward upon the two branches Tarzan swung Numa out so that he could not reach the bole of the tree with his raking talons, then he made the rope fast after drawing the lion clear of the ground, dropped his five pigskin sacks to earth and leaped down himself. Numa was striking frantically at the grass rope with his fore claws. At any moment he might sever it and Tarzan must, therefore, work rapidly.
Moving slowly outward on the two branches, Tarzan swung Numa away so he couldn't reach the trunk of the tree with his sharp claws. Then he secured the rope after pulling the lion clear of the ground, dropped his five pigskin sacks to the ground, and jumped down himself. Numa was frantically clawing at the grass rope. At any moment he could cut it, so Tarzan had to work quickly.
First he drew the larger bag over Numa's head and secured it about his neck with the draw string, then he managed, after considerable effort, during which he barely escaped being torn to ribbons by the mighty talons, to hog-tie Numa—drawing his four legs together and securing them in that position with the strips trimmed from the pigskins.
First, he pulled the larger bag over Numa's head and tightened it around his neck with the drawstring. Then, after a lot of struggle, during which he nearly got shredded by the powerful claws, he managed to hog-tie Numa—bringing his four legs together and securing them that way with strips cut from the pigskins.
By this time the lion's efforts had almost ceased—it was evident that he was being rapidly strangled and as that did not at all suit the purpose of the Tarmangani the latter swung again into the tree, unfastened the rope from above and lowered the lion to the ground where he immediately followed it and loosed the noose about Numa's neck. Then he drew his hunting knife and cut two round holes in the front of the head bag opposite the lion's eyes for the double purpose of permitting him to see and giving him sufficient air to breathe.
By this time, the lion's struggles had almost stopped—it was clear that he was quickly being choked, and since that wasn’t the goal of the Tarmangani, he climbed back into the tree, untied the rope from above, and lowered the lion to the ground. He then followed it down and loosened the noose around Numa's neck. Next, he took out his hunting knife and cut two round holes in the front of the head bag, right in front of the lion's eyes, both to let him see and to give him enough air to breathe.
This done Tarzan busied himself fitting the other bags, one over each of Numa's formidably armed paws. Those on the hind feet he secured not only by tightening the draw strings but also rigged garters that fastened tightly around the legs above the hocks. He secured the front-feet bags in place similarly above the great knees. Now, indeed, was Numa, the lion, reduced to the harmlessness of Bara, the deer.
This done, Tarzan focused on putting the other bags on each of Numa's powerfully armed paws. He secured the bags on the hind feet not just by tightening the drawstrings, but also by attaching garters that held tightly around the legs above the hocks. He secured the front-feet bags in the same way, just above the large knees. Now, indeed, Numa, the lion, was reduced to the harmlessness of Bara, the deer.
By now Numa was showing signs of returning life. He gasped for breath and struggled; but the strips of pigskin that held his four legs together were numerous and tough. Tarzan watched and was sure that they would hold, yet Numa is mightily muscled and there was the chance, always, that he might struggle free of his bonds after which all would depend upon the efficacy of Tarzan's bags and draw strings.
By now, Numa was showing signs of coming back to life. He gasped for air and fought against his restraints, but the strips of pigskin that held his four legs together were plentiful and strong. Tarzan observed and felt confident that they would hold, yet Numa was incredibly strong, and there was always the risk that he might break free from his bindings. After that, everything would rely on how effective Tarzan's bags and drawstrings were.
After Numa had again breathed normally and was able to roar out his protests and his rage, his struggles increased to Titanic proportions for a short time; but as a lion's powers of endurance are in no way proportionate to his size and strength he soon tired and lay quietly. Amid renewed growling and another futile attempt to free himself, Numa was finally forced to submit to the further indignity of having a rope secured about his neck; but this time it was no noose that might tighten and strangle him; but a bowline knot, which does not tighten or slip under strain.
After Numa had calmed down and was able to roar out his protests and anger, his struggles intensified dramatically for a brief period; however, since a lion's endurance isn't directly related to its size and strength, he soon became exhausted and lay still. Amid more growling and another ineffective attempt to free himself, Numa was ultimately forced to accept the added humiliation of having a rope tied around his neck; but this time, it wasn’t a noose that could tighten and choke him; it was a bowline knot, which doesn’t tighten or slip under tension.
The other end of the rope Tarzan fastened to the stem of the tree, then he quickly cut the bonds securing Numa's legs and leaped aside as the beast sprang to his feet. For a moment the lion stood with legs far outspread, then he raised first one paw and then another, shaking them energetically in an effort to dislodge the strange footgear that Tarzan had fastened upon them. Finally he began to paw at the bag upon his head. The ape-man, standing with ready spear, watched Numa's efforts intently. Would the bags hold? He sincerely hoped so. Or would all his labor prove fruitless?
The other end of the rope Tarzan tied to the base of the tree, then he quickly cut the ropes that were holding Numa's legs and jumped aside as the lion sprang to its feet. For a moment, the lion stood with its legs wide apart, then it raised one paw and then the other, shaking them vigorously to shake off the strange footwear that Tarzan had put on them. Finally, it started to paw at the bag on its head. The ape-man, holding his spear at the ready, watched Numa's attempts closely. Would the bags hold? He really hoped so. Or would all his hard work be for nothing?
As the clinging things upon his feet and face resisted his every effort to dislodge them, Numa became frantic. He rolled upon the ground, fighting, biting, scratching, and roaring; he leaped to his feet and sprang into the air; he charged Tarzan, only to be brought to a sudden stop as the rope securing him to the tree tautened. Then Tarzan stepped in and rapped him smartly on the head with the shaft of his spear. Numa reared upon his hind feet and struck at the ape-man and in return received a cuff on one ear that sent him reeling sideways. When he returned to the attack he was again sent sprawling. After the fourth effort it appeared to dawn upon the king of beasts that he had met his master, his head and tail dropped and when Tarzan advanced upon him he backed away, though still growling.
As the things clinging to his feet and face resisted every attempt to shake them off, Numa started to panic. He rolled on the ground, struggling, biting, scratching, and roaring; he jumped to his feet and leaped into the air; he charged at Tarzan, only to come to a sudden halt as the rope holding him to the tree tightened. Then Tarzan stepped in and hit him sharply on the head with the shaft of his spear. Numa stood up on his hind legs and swiped at the ape-man, but in return, he got a smack on one ear that sent him stumbling sideways. When he charged again, he was knocked down once more. After the fourth try, it seemed to dawn on the king of beasts that he had met his match; his head and tail drooped, and when Tarzan approached him, he backed away, still growling.
Leaving Numa tied to the tree Tarzan entered the tunnel and removed the barricade from the opposite end, after which he returned to the gulch and strode straight for the tree. Numa lay in his path and as Tarzan approached growled menacingly. The ape-man cuffed him aside and unfastened the rope from the tree. Then ensued a half-hour of stubbornly fought battle while Tarzan endeavored to drive Numa through the tunnel ahead of him and Numa persistently refused to be driven. At last, however, by dint of the unrestricted use of his spear point, the ape-man succeeded in forcing the lion to move ahead of him and eventually guided him into the passageway. Once inside, the problem became simpler since Tarzan followed closely in the rear with his sharp spear point, an unremitting incentive to forward movement on the part of the lion. If Numa hesitated he was prodded. If he backed up the result was extremely painful and so, being a wise lion who was learning rapidly, he decided to keep on going and at the end of the tunnel, emerging into the outer world, he sensed freedom, raised his head and tail and started off at a run.
Leaving Numa tied to the tree, Tarzan went into the tunnel and removed the barricade from the other end. After that, he headed back to the gulch and walked straight toward the tree. Numa was lying in his way, and as Tarzan got closer, he growled threateningly. The ape-man pushed him aside and untied the rope from the tree. This led to a thirty-minute struggle as Tarzan tried to push Numa through the tunnel in front of him, while Numa stubbornly resisted. Finally, through the liberal use of his spear point, the ape-man managed to force the lion to move ahead of him and eventually got him into the passageway. Once inside, the situation became easier since Tarzan stayed right behind, wielding his sharp spear point as a constant encouragement for Numa to keep moving. If Numa hesitated, he got prodded. If he tried to back up, it was very painful, so, being a smart lion who was learning quickly, he decided to keep moving. When they reached the end of the tunnel and emerged into the outside world, Numa sensed freedom, lifted his head and tail, and took off running.
Tarzan, still on his hands and knees just inside the entrance, was taken unaware with the result that he was sprawled forward upon his face and dragged a hundred yards across the rocky ground before Numa was brought to a stand. It was a scratched and angry Tarzan who scrambled to his feet. At first he was tempted to chastise Numa; but, as the ape-man seldom permitted his temper to guide him in any direction not countenanced by reason, he quickly abandoned the idea.
Tarzan, still on his hands and knees just inside the entrance, was caught off guard and ended up sprawled on his face, being dragged a hundred yards across the rocky ground before Numa finally stopped. It was a scratched and furious Tarzan who got back to his feet. At first, he felt like getting mad at Numa; but since the ape-man usually didn’t let his anger lead him in ways that didn’t make sense, he quickly let go of that thought.
Having taught Numa the rudiments of being driven, he now urged him forward and there commenced as strange a journey as the unrecorded history of the jungle contains. The balance of that day was eventful both for Tarzan and for Numa. From open rebellion at first the lion passed through stages of stubborn resistance and grudging obedience to final surrender. He was a very tired, hungry, and thirsty lion when night overtook them; but there was to be no food for him that day or the next—Tarzan did not dare risk removing the head bag, though he did cut another hole which permitted Numa to quench his thirst shortly after dark. Then he tied him to a tree, sought food for himself, and stretched out among the branches above his captive for a few hours' sleep.
Having taught Numa the basics of being led, he now urged him forward, and thus began one of the strangest journeys in the untold history of the jungle. That day was significant for both Tarzan and Numa. Initially, the lion showed open defiance, but gradually moved through stages of stubborn resistance and reluctant compliance until he finally surrendered. By nightfall, he was a very tired, hungry, and thirsty lion; however, there would be no food for him that day or the next—Tarzan dared not risk removing the head bag, although he did cut another hole that allowed Numa to drink shortly after dark. Afterward, he tied him to a tree, searched for food for himself, and then settled among the branches above his captive for a few hours of sleep.
Early the following morning they resumed their journey, winding over the low foothills south of Kilimanjaro, toward the east. The beasts of the jungle who saw them took one look and fled. The scent spoor of Numa, alone, might have been enough to have provoked flight in many of the lesser animals, but the sight of this strange apparition that smelled like a lion, but looked like nothing they ever had seen before, being led through the jungles by a giant Tarmangani was too much for even the more formidable denizens of the wild.
Early the next morning, they continued their journey, winding over the low hills south of Kilimanjaro, heading east. The jungle animals that spotted them took one look and ran away. The scent of Numa alone could have scared off many of the smaller animals, but seeing this strange creature that smelled like a lion but looked like nothing they had ever encountered before, being led through the jungle by a giant Tarmangani, was too much even for the more powerful inhabitants of the wild.
Sabor, the lioness, recognizing from a distance the scent of her lord and master intermingled with that of a Tarmangani and the hide of Horta, the boar, trotted through the aisles of the forest to investigate. Tarzan and Numa heard her coming, for she voiced a plaintive and questioning whine as the baffling mixture of odors aroused her curiosity and her fears, for lions, however terrible they may appear, are often timid animals and Sabor, being of the gentler sex, was, naturally, habitually inquisitive as well.
Sabor, the lioness, caught a whiff of her master’s scent mixed with that of a Tarmangani and Horta, the boar, from a distance and trotted through the forest to check it out. Tarzan and Numa heard her approaching because she let out a sad and questioning whine as the confusing mix of smells stirred both her curiosity and her fears. Even though lions can seem fierce, they’re often timid, and since Sabor was female, she was naturally more inquisitive.
Tarzan un-slung his spear for he knew that he might now easily have to fight to retain his prize. Numa halted and turned his outraged head in the direction of the coming she. He voiced a throaty growl that was almost a purr. Tarzan was upon the point of prodding him on again when Sabor broke into view, and behind her the ape-man saw that which gave him instant pause—four full-grown lions trailing the lioness.
Tarzan took his spear off his back because he realized he might have to fight to keep his prize. Numa stopped and turned his angry head toward the approaching female. He let out a deep growl that was almost like a purr. Tarzan was about to urge him on again when Sabor appeared, and behind her, the ape-man saw something that made him hesitate—four adult lions following the lioness.
To have goaded Numa then into active resistance might have brought the whole herd down upon him and so Tarzan waited to learn first what their attitude would be. He had no idea of relinquishing his lion without a battle; but knowing lions as he did, he knew that there was no assurance as to just what the newcomers would do.
To push Numa into fighting back might have attracted the whole herd to him, so Tarzan held off to see what their reaction would be. He had no intention of giving up his lion without a fight; but since he understood lions well, he realized there was no guarantee about how the newcomers would behave.
The lioness was young and sleek, and the four males were in their prime—as handsome lions as he ever had seen. Three of the males were scantily maned but one, the foremost, carried a splendid, black mane that rippled in the breeze as he trotted majestically forward. The lioness halted a hundred feet from Tarzan, while the lions came on past her and stopped a few feet nearer. Their ears were upstanding and their eyes filled with curiosity. Tarzan could not even guess what they might do. The lion at his side faced them fully, standing silent now and watchful.
The lioness was young and sleek, and the four males were in their prime—some of the most handsome lions he had ever seen. Three of the males had sparse manes, but one, the biggest, had a magnificent, black mane that flowed in the breeze as he strode confidently forward. The lioness stopped a hundred feet from Tarzan, while the lions moved past her and came to a halt a few feet closer. Their ears were perked up, and their eyes were filled with curiosity. Tarzan couldn’t even guess what they might do next. The lion next to him faced them squarely, now standing still and alert.
Suddenly the lioness gave vent to another little whine, at which Tarzan's lion voiced a terrific roar and leaped forward straight toward the beast of the black mane. The sight of this awesome creature with the strange face was too much for the lion toward which he leaped, dragging Tarzan after him, and with a growl the lion turned and fled, followed by his companions and the she.
Suddenly, the lioness let out another small whine, prompting Tarzan's lion to unleash a powerful roar and leap directly at the black-maned beast. The sight of this intimidating creature with the unusual face was overwhelming for the lion it charged at, causing it to turn and run, pulling Tarzan along with it, and with a growl, the lion fled, chased by his companions and the lioness.
Numa attempted to follow them; Tarzan held him in leash and when he turned upon him in rage, beat him unmercifully across the head with his spear. Shaking his head and growling, the lion at last moved off again in the direction they had been traveling; but it was an hour before he ceased to sulk. He was very hungry—half famished in fact—and consequently of an ugly temper, yet so thoroughly subdued by Tarzan's heroic methods of lion taming that he was presently pacing along at the ape-man's side like some huge St. Bernard.
Numa tried to chase after them; Tarzan held him back, and when Numa turned on him in anger, Tarzan mercilessly struck him on the head with his spear. After shaking his head and growling, the lion eventually moved off in the direction they had been going, but it took an hour for him to stop sulking. He was really hungry—almost starving, in fact—and was therefore in a bad mood, yet he was so fully subdued by Tarzan's brave lion-taming techniques that he soon started walking alongside the ape-man like a giant St. Bernard.
It was dark when the two approached the British right, after a slight delay farther back because of a German patrol it had been necessary to elude. A short distance from the British line of out-guard sentinels Tarzan tied Numa to a tree and continued on alone. He evaded a sentinel, passed the out-guard and support, and by devious ways came again to Colonel Capell's headquarters, where he appeared before the officers gathered there as a disembodied spirit materializing out of thin air.
It was dark when the two got close to the British right, after a brief delay back further due to a German patrol they had to avoid. Not far from the British line of sentinels, Tarzan tied Numa to a tree and went on alone. He slipped past a sentinel, got through the out-guard and support, and took indirect routes to reach Colonel Capell's headquarters again, where he showed up before the gathered officers like a ghost appearing out of nowhere.
When they saw who it was that came thus unannounced they smiled and the colonel scratched his head in perplexity.
When they saw who had arrived unexpectedly, they smiled, and the colonel scratched his head in confusion.
"Someone should be shot for this," he said. "I might just as well not establish an out-post if a man can filter through whenever he pleases."
"Someone should be shot for this," he said. "I might as well not set up a outpost if a guy can sneak through whenever he wants."
Tarzan smiled. "Do not blame them," he said, "for I am not a man. I am Tarmangani. Any Mangani who wished to, could enter your camp almost at will; but if you have them for sentinels no one could enter without their knowledge."
Tarzan smiled. "Don't blame them," he said, "because I'm not just a man. I'm Tarmangani. Any Mangani who wanted to could come into your camp pretty much whenever they wanted; but if you have them as your guards, no one could get in without them knowing."
"What are the Mangani?" asked the colonel. "Perhaps we might enlist a bunch of the beggars."
"What are the Mangani?" the colonel asked. "Maybe we could recruit a group of those beggars."
Tarzan shook his head. "They are the great apes," he explained; "my people; but you could not use them. They cannot concentrate long enough upon a single idea. If I told them of this they would be much interested for a short time—I might even hold the interest of a few long enough to get them here and explain their duties to them; but soon they would lose interest and when you needed them most they might be off in the forest searching for beetles instead of watching their posts. They have the minds of little children—that is why they remain what they are."
Tarzan shook his head. "They're the great apes," he explained; "my people, but you can't rely on them. They can't focus long enough on a single thought. If I told them about this, they would be really interested for a little while—I might even keep a few engaged long enough to bring them here and explain their duties to them; but soon they'd lose interest, and when you needed them the most, they might wander off into the forest looking for beetles instead of keeping watch. They have the minds of little children—that's why they stay as they are."
"You call them Mangani and yourself Tarmangani—what is the difference?" asked Major Preswick.
"You call them Mangani and yourself Tarmangani—what’s the difference?" asked Major Preswick.
"Tar means white," replied Tarzan, "and Mangani, great ape. My name—the name they gave me in the tribe of Kerchak—means White-skin. When I was a little balu my skin, I presume, looked very white indeed against the beautiful, black coat of Kala, my foster mother and so they called me Tarzan, the Tarmangani. They call you, too, Tarmangani," he concluded, smiling.
"Tar means white," Tarzan said, "and Mangani means great ape. My name—the name they gave me in the Kerchak tribe—means White-skin. When I was a little balu, I guess my skin looked really white against the gorgeous black fur of Kala, my foster mother, so they called me Tarzan, the Tarmangani. They call you Tarmangani too," he added with a smile.
Capell smiled. "It is no reproach, Greystoke," he said; "and, by Jove, it would be a mark of distinction if a fellow could act the part. And now how about your plan? Do you still think you can empty the trench opposite our sector?"
Capell smiled. "It's not a criticism, Greystoke," he said; "and honestly, it would be quite an achievement if someone could pull it off. So, what about your plan? Do you still believe you can clear the trench across from our sector?"
"Is it still held by Gomangani?" asked Tarzan.
"Is Gomangani still in control of it?" asked Tarzan.
"What are Gomangani?" inquired the colonel. "It is still held by native troops, if that is what you mean."
"What are Gomangani?" asked the colonel. "They're still held by local troops, if that's what you're referring to."
"Yes," replied the ape-man, "the Gomangani are the great black apes—the Negroes."
"Yes," replied the ape-man, "the Gomangani are the big black apes—the Black people."
"What do you intend doing and what do you want us to do?" asked Capell.
"What are you planning to do and what do you want us to do?" asked Capell.
Tarzan approached the table and placed a finger on the map. "Here is a listening post," he said; "they have a machine gun in it. A tunnel connects it with this trench at this point." His finger moved from place to place on the map as he talked. "Give me a bomb and when you hear it burst in this listening post let your men start across No Man's Land slowly. Presently they will hear a commotion in the enemy trench; but they need not hurry, and, whatever they do, have them come quietly. You might also warn them that I may be in the trench and that I do not care to be shot or bayoneted."
Tarzan moved closer to the table and pointed at the map. "This is a listening post," he said; "they have a machine gun there. A tunnel connects it to this trench at this point." As he spoke, his finger traced different spots on the map. "Give me a bomb, and when you hear it explode in this listening post, let your men start crossing No Man's Land slowly. Soon, they'll hear some noise in the enemy trench, but they don't need to rush, and whatever they do, they should move quietly. You might want to remind them that I could be in the trench and I don't want to be shot or stabbed."
"And that is all?" queried Capell, after directing an officer to give Tarzan a hand grenade; "you will empty the trench alone?"
"And that's it?" Capell asked, after telling an officer to hand Tarzan a hand grenade; "Are you going to clear the trench by yourself?"
"Not exactly alone," replied Tarzan with a grim smile; "but I shall empty it, and, by the way, your men may come in through the tunnel from the listening post if you prefer. In about half an hour, Colonel," and he turned and left them.
"Not exactly alone," replied Tarzan with a grim smile; "but I’ll handle it, and by the way, your men can come in through the tunnel from the listening post if you'd like. In about half an hour, Colonel," and he turned and left them.
As he passed through the camp there flashed suddenly upon the screen of recollection, conjured there by some reminder of his previous visit to headquarters, doubtless, the image of the officer he had passed as he quit the colonel that other time and simultaneously recognition of the face that had been revealed by the light from the fire. He shook his head dubiously. No, it could not be and yet the features of the young officer were identical with those of Fräulein Kircher, the German spy he had seen at German headquarters the night he took Major Schneider from under the nose of the Hun general and his staff.
As he walked through the camp, a memory suddenly flashed in his mind, triggered by a reminder of his earlier visit to headquarters. He recalled the image of the officer he had seen when he left the colonel during that other visit, and at the same time, he recognized the face illuminated by the firelight. He shook his head, unsure. No, it couldn't be, yet the young officer's features were identical to those of Fräulein Kircher, the German spy he had encountered at German headquarters the night he took Major Schneider right under the noses of the Hun general and his staff.
Beyond the last line of sentinels Tarzan moved quickly in the direction of Numa, the lion. The beast was lying down as Tarzan approached, but he rose as the ape-man reached his side. A low whine escaped his muzzled lips. Tarzan smiled for he recognized in the new note almost a supplication—it was more like the whine of a hungry dog begging for food than the voice of the proud king of beasts.
Beyond the last line of guards, Tarzan moved quickly toward Numa, the lion. The beast was lying down as Tarzan got closer, but he stood up as the ape-man reached him. A low whine came from his muzzled lips. Tarzan smiled because he recognized in that sound almost a plea—it was more like the whine of a hungry dog asking for food than the voice of the proud king of beasts.
"Soon you will kill—and feed," he murmured in the vernacular of the great apes.
"Soon you'll kill—and feed," he whispered in the language of the great apes.
He unfastened the rope from about the tree and, with Numa close at his side, slunk into No Man's Land. There was little rifle fire and only an occasional shell vouched for the presence of artillery behind the opposing lines. As the shells from both sides were falling well back of the trenches, they constituted no menace to Tarzan; but the noise of them and that of the rifle fire had a marked effect upon Numa who crouched, trembling, close to the Tarmangani as though seeking protection.
He untied the rope from around the tree and, with Numa right beside him, sneaked into No Man's Land. There was barely any rifle fire, and only an occasional shell confirmed that artillery was present behind the enemy lines. Since the shells from both sides were landing far behind the trenches, they posed no threat to Tarzan; however, the sounds of the shells and the gunfire had a significant impact on Numa, who huddled, shaking, close to the Tarmangani as if looking for safety.
Cautiously the two beasts moved forward toward the listening post of the Germans. In one hand Tarzan carried the bomb the English had given him, in the other was the coiled rope attached to the lion. At last Tarzan could see the position a few yards ahead. His keen eyes picked out the head and shoulders of the sentinel on watch. The ape-man grasped the bomb firmly in his right hand. He measured the distance with his eye and gathered his feet beneath him, then in a single motion he rose and threw the missile, immediately flattening himself prone upon the ground.
Cautiously, the two beasts moved forward toward the Germans' listening post. In one hand, Tarzan held the bomb the English had given him, and in the other was the coiled rope connected to the lion. Finally, Tarzan spotted the position just a few yards ahead. His sharp eyes distinguished the head and shoulders of the sentry on watch. The ape-man gripped the bomb tightly in his right hand. He gauged the distance visually and crouched down, then in one smooth motion, he sprang up and threw the missile, immediately dropping flat on the ground.
Five seconds later there was a terrific explosion in the center of the listening post. Numa gave a nervous start and attempted to break away; but Tarzan held him and, leaping to his feet, ran forward, dragging Numa after him. At the edge of the post he saw below him but slight evidence that the position had been occupied at all, for only a few shreds of torn flesh remained. About the only thing that had not been demolished was a machine gun which had been protected by sand bags.
Five seconds later, there was a massive explosion in the middle of the listening post. Numa jumped, startled, and tried to pull away, but Tarzan grabbed him and, standing up, dashed forward, pulling Numa along with him. At the edge of the post, he looked down and saw very little evidence that the place had been occupied at all; only a few scraps of torn flesh were left. The only thing that hadn’t been destroyed was a machine gun, which had been shielded by sandbags.
There was not an instant to lose. Already a relief might be crawling through the communication tunnel, for it must have been evident to the sentinels in the Hun trenches that the listening post had been demolished. Numa hesitated to follow Tarzan into the excavation; but the ape-man, who was in no mood to temporize, jerked him roughly to the bottom. Before them lay the mouth of the tunnel that led back from No Man's Land to the German trenches. Tarzan pushed Numa forward until his head was almost in the aperture, then as though it were an afterthought, he turned quickly and, taking the machine gun from the parapet, placed it in the bottom of the hole close at hand, after which he turned again to Numa, and with his knife quickly cut the garters that held the bags upon his front paws. Before the lion could know that a part of his formidable armament was again released for action, Tarzan had cut the rope from his neck and the head bag from his face, and grabbing the lion from the rear had thrust him partially into the mouth of the tunnel.
There wasn't a second to waste. A rescue could already be making its way through the communication tunnel, since the sentinels in the enemy trenches must have realized that the listening post had been destroyed. Numa hesitated to follow Tarzan into the hole; but the ape-man, who wasn't in the mood to wait, yanked him down roughly to the bottom. In front of them was the entrance to the tunnel that connected No Man's Land to the German trenches. Tarzan pushed Numa forward until his head was nearly at the opening, then, almost as an afterthought, he quickly turned, grabbed the machine gun from the parapet, and placed it at the bottom of the hole nearby. After that, he turned back to Numa and swiftly cut the ties that held the bags to his front paws. Before the lion could realize that part of his powerful weaponry was free again, Tarzan had cut the rope from his neck and removed the head bag from his face, then, grabbing Numa from behind, he pushed him partially into the tunnel's mouth.
Then Numa balked, only to feel the sharp prick of Tarzan's knife point in his hind quarters. Goading him on the ape-man finally succeeded in getting the lion sufficiently far into the tunnel so that there was no chance of his escaping other than by going forward or deliberately backing into the sharp blade at his rear. Then Tarzan cut the bags from the great hind feet, placed his shoulder and his knife point against Numa's seat, dug his toes into the loose earth that had been broken up by the explosion of the bomb, and shoved.
Then Numa hesitated, only to feel the sharp jab of Tarzan's knife in his rear. Encouraging him on, the ape-man finally managed to push the lion far enough into the tunnel so that there was no chance of escape other than moving forward or intentionally backing into the sharp blade behind him. Then Tarzan sliced the bags from the lion's large hind feet, positioned his shoulder and the knife point against Numa's rear, dug his toes into the loose dirt loosened by the bomb's explosion, and pushed.
Inch by inch at first Numa advanced. He was growling now and presently he commenced to roar. Suddenly he leaped forward and Tarzan knew that he had caught the scent of meat ahead. Dragging the machine gun beside him the ape-man followed quickly after the lion whose roars he could plainly hear ahead mingled with the unmistakable screams of frightened men. Once again a grim smile touched the lips of this man-beast.
Inch by inch, Numa moved forward. He was growling now, and soon he started to roar. Suddenly, he sprang ahead, and Tarzan realized he had caught the scent of meat up ahead. Pulling the machine gun along with him, the ape-man quickly followed the lion, whose roars mixed with the unmistakable screams of terrified men. Once again, a grim smile appeared on the lips of this man-beast.
"They murdered my Waziri," he muttered; "they crucified Wasimbu, son of Muviro."
"They killed my Waziri," he said quietly; "they crucified Wasimbu, son of Muviro."
When Tarzan reached the trench and emerged into it there was no one in sight in that particular bay, nor in the next, nor the next as he hurried forward in the direction of the German center; but in the fourth bay he saw a dozen men jammed in the angle of the traverse at the end while leaping upon them and rending with talons and fangs was Numa, a terrific incarnation of ferocity and ravenous hunger.
When Tarzan reached the trench and stepped into it, there was no one in sight in that bay, nor in the next, nor the one after as he hurried toward the German center; but in the fourth bay, he saw a dozen men packed into the corner of the traverse at the end, while jumping on them and tearing at them with claws and teeth was Numa, a fierce embodiment of savagery and insatiable hunger.
Whatever held the men at last gave way as they fought madly with one another in their efforts to escape this dread creature that from their infancy had filled them with terror, and again they were retreating. Some clambered over the parados and some even over the parapet preferring the dangers of No Man's Land to this other soul-searing menace.
Whatever was holding the men finally gave way as they fought frantically with one another to escape this terrifying creature that had haunted them since childhood, and once again they were retreating. Some climbed over the defensive mound and some even over the barrier, choosing the dangers of No Man's Land over this other horrifying threat.
As the British advanced slowly toward the German trenches, they first met terrified blacks who ran into their arms only too willing to surrender. That pandemonium had broken loose in the Hun trench was apparent to the Rhodesians not only from the appearance of the deserters, but from the sounds of screaming, cursing men which came clearly to their ears; but there was one that baffled them for it resembled nothing more closely than the infuriated growling of an angry lion.
As the British moved slowly toward the German trenches, they first encountered terrified Black soldiers who ran into their arms, eager to surrender. The chaos unfolding in the German trench was obvious to the Rhodesians, not just from the looks of the deserters but also from the sounds of screaming and cursing men that reached their ears. However, there was one sound that puzzled them, as it was similar to the furious growling of an angry lion.
And when at last they reached the trench, those farthest on the left of the advancing Britishers heard a machine gun sputter suddenly before them and saw a huge lion leap over the German parados with the body of a screaming Hun soldier between his jaws and vanish into the shadows of the night, while squatting upon a traverse to their left was Tarzan of the Apes with a machine gun before him with which he was raking the length of the German trenches.
And when they finally got to the trench, the soldiers on the far left of the advancing British troops heard a machine gun start firing unexpectedly and saw a huge lion jump over the German defenses with a screaming German soldier in its jaws before disappearing into the night. Meanwhile, sitting on a raised section to their left was Tarzan of the Apes, operating a machine gun that he was using to shoot along the length of the German trenches.
The foremost Rhodesians saw something else—they saw a huge German officer emerge from a dugout just in rear of the ape-man. They saw him snatch up a discarded rifle with bayonet fixed and creep upon the apparently unconscious Tarzan. They ran forward, shouting warnings; but above the pandemonium of the trenches and the machine gun their voices could not reach him. The German leaped upon the parapet behind him—the fat hands raised the rifle butt aloft for the cowardly downward thrust into the naked back and then, as moves Ara, the lightning, moved Tarzan of the Apes.
The leading Rhodesians noticed something else—they saw a large German officer come out of a dugout just behind the ape-man. They watched him grab a discarded rifle with a fixed bayonet and sneak up on the seemingly unconscious Tarzan. They rushed forward, shouting warnings; but above the chaos of the trenches and the machine gun, their voices couldn't reach him. The German jumped onto the parapet behind him—the heavy hands lifted the rifle butt high for a cowardly downward stab into Tarzan's bare back, and then, like lightning, Tarzan of the Apes moved.
It was no man who leaped forward upon that Boche officer, striking aside the sharp bayonet as one might strike aside a straw in a baby's hand—it was a wild beast and the roar of a wild beast was upon those savage lips, for as that strange sense that Tarzan owned in common with the other jungle-bred creatures of his wild domain warned him of the presence behind him and he had whirled to meet the attack, his eyes had seen the corps and regimental insignia upon the other's blouse—it was the same as that worn by the murderers of his wife and his people, by the despoilers of his home and his happiness.
It wasn't a man who lunged at that German officer, swiping away the sharp bayonet like it was just a piece of straw in a child's hand—it was a wild animal, and a fierce growl came from those savage lips. As that unique instinct that Tarzan shared with the other jungle-dwelling creatures alerted him to the presence behind him, he spun around to confront the threat. His eyes recognized the corps and regimental insignia on the other's uniform—it was the same as that worn by the killers of his wife and his people, by the destroyers of his home and his happiness.
It was a wild beast whose teeth fastened upon the shoulder of the Hun—it was a wild beast whose talons sought that fat neck. And then the boys of the Second Rhodesian Regiment saw that which will live forever in their memories. They saw the giant ape-man pick the heavy German from the ground and shake him as a terrier might shake a rat—as Sabor, the lioness, sometimes shakes her prey. They saw the eyes of the Hun bulge in horror as he vainly struck with his futile hands against the massive chest and head of his assailant. They saw Tarzan suddenly spin the man about and placing a knee in the middle of his back and an arm about his neck bend his shoulders slowly backward. The German's knees gave and he sank upon them, but still that irresistible force bent him further and further. He screamed in agony for a moment—then something snapped and Tarzan cast him aside, a limp and lifeless thing.
It was a wild beast that clamped its teeth onto the Hun's shoulder—it was a wild beast whose claws targeted that thick neck. And then the boys of the Second Rhodesian Regiment witnessed something that would stay with them forever. They saw the giant ape-man lift the heavy German off the ground and shake him like a terrier shakes a rat—as Sabor, the lioness, sometimes shakes her prey. They watched the Hun's eyes bulge in horror as he desperately hit at the massive chest and head of his attacker with his useless hands. They saw Tarzan suddenly spin the man around, placing a knee in the middle of his back and an arm around his neck, slowly bending his shoulders backward. The German's knees buckled, and he sank onto them, but that unstoppable force continued to bend him further and further. He screamed in pain for a moment—then something snapped, and Tarzan tossed him aside, a limp and lifeless figure.
The Rhodesians started forward, a cheer upon their lips—a cheer that never was uttered—a cheer that froze in their throats, for at that moment Tarzan placed a foot upon the carcass of his kill and, raising his face to the heavens, gave voice to the weird and terrifying victory cry of the bull ape.
The Rhodesians moved ahead, a cheer on their lips—a cheer that never came out—a cheer that froze in their throats, because at that moment Tarzan set a foot on the body of his kill and, lifting his face to the sky, let out the strange and frightening victory cry of the bull ape.
Underlieutenant von Goss was dead.
Lieutenant von Goss was dead.
Without a backward glance at the awe-struck soldiers Tarzan leaped the trench and was gone.
Without looking back at the amazed soldiers, Tarzan jumped over the trench and disappeared.
Chapter V
The Golden Locket
The little British army in East Africa, after suffering severe reverses at the hands of a numerically much superior force, was at last coming into its own. The German offensive had been broken and the Huns were now slowly and doggedly retreating along the railway to Tanga. The break in the German lines had followed the clearing of a section of their left-flank trenches of native soldiers by Tarzan and Numa, the lion, upon that memorable night that the ape-man had loosed a famishing man-eater among the superstitious and terror-stricken blacks. The Second Rhodesian Regiment had immediately taken possession of the abandoned trench and from this position their flanking fire had raked contiguous sections of the German line, the diversion rendering possible a successful night attack on the part of the balance of the British forces.
The small British army in East Africa, after facing heavy losses against a much larger force, was finally starting to find its stride. The German offensive had been stopped, and the Germans were now slowly and stubbornly retreating along the railway to Tanga. The breakthrough in the German lines came after Tarzan and Numa, the lion, cleared a section of their left-flank trenches of native soldiers on that memorable night when the ape-man unleashed a starving man-eater among the superstitious and frightened locals. The Second Rhodesian Regiment quickly took control of the abandoned trench, and from there, their flanking fire targeted nearby sections of the German line, allowing the rest of the British forces to successfully launch a night attack.
Weeks had elapsed. The Germans were contesting stubbornly every mile of waterless, thorn-covered ground and clinging desperately to their positions along the railway. The officers of the Second Rhodesians had seen nothing more of Tarzan of the Apes since he had slain Underlieutenant von Goss and disappeared toward the very heart of the German position, and there were those among them who believed that he had been killed within the enemy lines.
Weeks had passed. The Germans were fiercely fighting for every inch of dry, thorny land and desperately holding onto their positions along the railway. The officers of the Second Rhodesians hadn’t seen Tarzan of the Apes since he had killed Underlieutenant von Goss and vanished toward the heart of the German lines, and some of them believed he had been killed inside enemy territory.
"They may have killed him," assented Colonel Capell; "but I fancy they never captured the beggar alive."
"They might have killed him," agreed Colonel Capell; "but I doubt they ever caught the guy alive."
Nor had they, nor killed him either. Tarzan had spent those intervening weeks pleasantly and profitably. He had amassed a considerable fund of knowledge concerning the disposition and strength of German troops, their methods of warfare, and the various ways in which a lone Tarmangani might annoy an army and lower its morale.
Nor had they, nor did they kill him either. Tarzan had spent those weeks in a pleasant and productive way. He had gathered a significant amount of knowledge about the layout and strength of German troops, their tactics, and the different ways a solitary Tarmangani could irritate an army and weaken its morale.
At present he was prompted by a specific desire. There was a certain German spy whom he wished to capture alive and take back to the British. When he had made his first visit to German headquarters, he had seen a young woman deliver a paper to the German general, and later he had seen that same young woman within the British lines in the uniform of a British officer. The conclusions were obvious—she was a spy.
At that moment, he was driven by a clear desire. There was a specific German spy he wanted to capture alive and bring back to the British. During his first visit to German headquarters, he had watched a young woman hand a document to the German general, and later he saw that same young woman within the British lines dressed in a British officer's uniform. The conclusions were obvious—she was a spy.
And so Tarzan haunted German headquarters upon many nights hoping to see her again or to pick up some clew as to her whereabouts, and at the same time he utilized many an artifice whereby he might bring terror to the hearts of the Germans. That he was successful was often demonstrated by the snatches of conversation he overheard as he prowled through the German camps. One night as he lay concealed in the bushes close beside a regimental headquarters he listened to the conversation of several Boche officers. One of the men reverted to the stories told by the native troops in connection with their rout by a lion several weeks before and the simultaneous appearance in their trenches of a naked, white giant whom they were perfectly assured was some demon of the jungle.
And so Tarzan haunted the German headquarters many nights, hoping to see her again or to pick up some clue about where she was, while at the same time he used various tricks to instill fear in the hearts of the Germans. His success was often shown by the snippets of conversation he overheard as he prowled through the German camps. One night, as he lay hidden in the bushes next to a regimental headquarters, he listened to the conversation of several German officers. One of the men brought up the stories shared by the native troops regarding their defeat by a lion several weeks before and the simultaneous appearance in their trenches of a naked, white giant whom they were absolutely sure was some kind of jungle demon.
"The fellow must have been the same as he who leaped into the general's headquarters and carried off Schneider," asserted one. "I wonder how he happened to single out the poor major. They say the creature seemed interested in no one but Schneider. He had von Kelter in his grasp, and he might easily have taken the general himself; but he ignored them all except Schneider. Him he pursued about the room, seized and carried off into the night. Gott knows what his fate was."
"The guy must have been the same one who burst into the general's headquarters and took Schneider," one person claimed. "I wonder why he chose the poor major. They say the guy only seemed interested in Schneider. He had von Kelter right there, and he could have easily grabbed the general himself, but he ignored everyone except Schneider. He went after him around the room, grabbed him, and took him off into the night. God knows what happened to him."
"Captain Fritz Schneider has some sort of theory," said another. "He told me only a week or two ago that he thinks he knows why his brother was taken—that it was a case of mistaken identity. He was not so sure about it until von Goss was killed, apparently by the same creature, the night the lion entered the trenches. Von Goss was attached to Schneider's company. One of Schneider's men was found with his neck wrung the same night that the major was carried off and Schneider thinks that this devil is after him and his command—that it came for him that night and got his brother by mistake. He says Kraut told him that in presenting the major to Fräulein Kircher the former's name was no sooner spoken than this wild man leaped through the window and made for him."
"Captain Fritz Schneider has some kind of theory," said another. "He told me just a week or two ago that he thinks he knows why his brother was taken—that it was a case of mistaken identity. He wasn't so sure about it until von Goss was killed, apparently by the same creature, the night the lion entered the trenches. Von Goss was part of Schneider's company. One of Schneider's men was found with his neck broken the same night the major was taken, and Schneider thinks this monster is after him and his unit—that it came for him that night and got his brother by mistake. He says Kraut told him that when they introduced the major to Fräulein Kircher, as soon as his name was mentioned, this wild man jumped through the window and went straight for him."
Suddenly the little group became rigid—listening. "What was that?" snapped one, eyeing the bushes from which a smothered snarl had issued as Tarzan of the Apes realized that through his mistake the perpetrator of the horrid crime at his bungalow still lived—that the murderer of his wife went yet unpunished.
Suddenly, the small group froze—listening. "What was that?" one of them snapped, glaring at the bushes from which a muffled snarl had come. Tarzan of the Apes understood that because of his mistake, the person responsible for the terrible crime at his bungalow still lived—that the murderer of his wife remained unpunished.
For a long minute the officers stood with tensed nerves, every eye riveted upon the bushes from whence the ominous sound had issued. Each recalled recent mysterious disappearances from the heart of camps as well as from lonely out-guards. Each thought of the silent dead he had seen, slain almost within sight of their fellows by some unseen creature. They thought of the marks upon dead throats—made by talons or by giant fingers, they could not tell which—and those upon shoulders and jugulars where powerful teeth had fastened and they waited with drawn pistols.
For a long minute, the officers stood with tense nerves, every eye fixed on the bushes where the ominous sound had come from. Each one remembered the recent mysterious disappearances from the center of the camps as well as from isolated guard posts. They thought of the silent dead they'd seen, killed almost in view of their comrades by some unseen creature. They recalled the marks on dead throats—made by claws or by giant fingers, they couldn't tell which—and those on shoulders and jugulars where powerful teeth had gripped, and they waited with their guns drawn.
Once the bushes moved almost imperceptibly and an instant later one of the officers, without warning, fired into them; but Tarzan of the Apes was not there. In the interval between the moving of the bushes and the firing of the shot he had melted into the night. Ten minutes later he was hovering on the outskirts of that part of camp where were bivouacked for the night the black soldiers of a native company commanded by one Hauptmann Fritz Schneider. The men were stretched upon the ground without tents; but there were tents pitched for the officers. Toward these Tarzan crept. It was slow and perilous work, as the Germans were now upon the alert for the uncanny foe that crept into their camps to take his toll by night, yet the ape-man passed their sentinels, eluded the vigilance of the interior guard, and crept at last to the rear of the officers' line.
Once the bushes shifted almost unnoticed, and a moment later, one of the officers unexpectedly fired into them; but Tarzan of the Apes was not there. In the time between the bushes moving and the shot being fired, he had vanished into the night. Ten minutes later, he was lurking on the edge of the part of the camp where the Black soldiers of a native company, led by Hauptmann Fritz Schneider, were camping for the night. The men were lying on the ground without tents, but there were tents set up for the officers. Tarzan crept toward these tents. It was a slow and risky task, as the Germans were now alert for the strange enemy that slipped into their camps to take his share at night, yet the ape-man got past their sentries, avoided the watchfulness of the interior guard, and finally crept to the back of the officers' line.
Here he flattened himself against the ground close behind the nearest tent and listened. From within came the regular breathing of a sleeping man—one only. Tarzan was satisfied. With his knife he cut the tie strings of the rear flap and entered. He made no noise. The shadow of a falling leaf, floating gently to earth upon a still day, could have been no more soundless. He moved to the side of the sleeping man and bent low over him. He could not know, of course, whether it was Schneider or another, as he had never seen Schneider; but he meant to know and to know even more. Gently he shook the man by the shoulder. The fellow turned heavily and grunted in a thick guttural.
Here he pressed himself against the ground close behind the nearest tent and listened. Inside, he heard the steady breathing of a sleeping man—just one. Tarzan felt satisfied. With his knife, he cut the ties of the rear flap and slipped in. He made no sound. The shadow of a falling leaf drifting softly to the ground on a still day could have been no quieter. He moved to the side of the sleeping man and leaned over him. He couldn't tell, of course, whether it was Schneider or someone else, since he had never seen Schneider; but he intended to find out and learn even more. Gently, he shook the man by the shoulder. The guy turned heavily and grunted in a thick, guttural way.
"Silence!" admonished the ape-man in a low whisper. "Silence—I kill."
"Shh!" the ape-man warned in a quiet voice. "Be quiet—I’ll kill."
The Hun opened his eyes. In the dim light he saw a giant figure bending over him. Now a mighty hand grasped his shoulder and another closed lightly about his throat.
The Hun opened his eyes. In the dim light, he saw a huge figure leaning over him. Now a powerful hand gripped his shoulder while another gently wrapped around his throat.
"Make no outcry," commanded Tarzan; "but answer in a whisper my questions. What is your name?"
"Don't make a sound," Tarzan commanded; "just answer my questions in a whisper. What's your name?"
"Luberg," replied the officer. He was trembling. The weird presence of this naked giant filled him with dread. He, too, recalled the men mysteriously murdered in the still watches of the night camps. "What do you want?"
"Luberg," replied the officer, shaking. The eerie presence of this naked giant terrified him. He remembered the men who were mysteriously killed during the quiet hours of the night in the camps. "What do you want?"
"Where is Hauptmann Fritz Schneider?" asked Tarzan, "Which is his tent?"
"Where is Hauptmann Fritz Schneider?" Tarzan asked. "Which tent is his?"
"He is not here," replied Luberg. "He was sent to Wilhelmstal yesterday."
"He’s not here," Luberg replied. "He was sent to Wilhelmstal yesterday."
"I shall not kill you—now," said the ape-man. "First I shall go and learn if you have lied to me and if you have your death shall be the more terrible. Do you know how Major Schneider died?"
"I won't kill you—yet," the ape-man said. "First, I’ll go find out if you’ve lied to me, and if you have, your death will be even more horrible. Do you know how Major Schneider died?"
Luberg shook his head negatively.
Luberg shook his head no.
"I do," continued Tarzan, "and it was not a nice way to die—even for an accursed German. Turn over with your face down and cover your eyes. Do not move or make any sound."
"I do," Tarzan continued, "and it wasn’t a pleasant way to die—even for a cursed German. Turn over onto your stomach and cover your eyes. Don’t move or make a sound."
The man did as he was bid and the instant that his eyes were turned away, Tarzan slipped from the tent. An hour later he was outside the German camp and headed for the little hill town of Wilhelmstal, the summer seat of government of German East Africa.
The man did as he was told, and the moment his eyes were averted, Tarzan slipped out of the tent. An hour later, he was outside the German camp and making his way to the small hill town of Wilhelmstal, the summer headquarters of the government of German East Africa.
Fräulein Bertha Kircher was lost. She was humiliated and angry—it was long before she would admit it, that she, who prided herself upon her woodcraft, was lost in this little patch of country between the Pangani and the Tanga railway. She knew that Wilhelmstal lay southeast of her about fifty miles; but, through a combination of untoward circumstances, she found herself unable to determine which was southeast.
Fräulein Bertha Kircher was lost. She felt humiliated and angry—it took a while for her to admit that she, who prided herself on her survival skills, was lost in this small area between the Pangani and the Tanga railway. She knew that Wilhelmstal was about fifty miles southeast of her; however, due to a series of unfortunate events, she couldn't figure out which way was southeast.
In the first place she had set out from German headquarters on a well-marked road that was being traveled by troops and with every reason to believe that she would follow that road to Wilhelmstal. Later she had been warned from this road by word that a strong British patrol had come down the west bank of the Pangani, effected a crossing south of her, and was even then marching on the railway at Tonda.
In the beginning, she left the German headquarters on a clearly marked road that was being used by troops, with every reason to believe she would continue along that road to Wilhelmstal. Later, she received a warning that a strong British patrol had moved down the west bank of the Pangani, crossed south of her, and was currently heading toward the railway at Tonda.
After leaving the road she found herself in thick bush and as the sky was heavily overcast she presently had recourse to her compass and it was not until then that she discovered to her dismay that she did not have it with her. So sure was she of her woodcraft, however, that she continued on in the direction she thought west until she had covered sufficient distance to warrant her in feeling assured that, by now turning south, she could pass safely in rear of the British patrol.
After stepping off the road, she ended up in dense brush, and since the sky was really cloudy, she soon needed to use her compass. It was only then that she realized, to her disappointment, that she didn’t have it with her. Still, she was confident in her skills and continued in what she believed was the west until she felt she had gone far enough to safely turn south, hoping to pass behind the British patrol.
Nor did she commence to feel any doubts until long after she had again turned toward the east well south, as she thought, of the patrol. It was late afternoon—she should long since have struck the road again south of Tonda; but she had found no road and now she began to feel real anxiety.
Nor did she start to feel any doubts until well after she had turned east, thinking she was far south of the patrol. It was late afternoon—she should have already found the road again south of Tonda; but she hadn't found any road, and now she was starting to feel real anxiety.
Her horse had traveled all day without food or water, night was approaching and with it a realization that she was hopelessly lost in a wild and trackless country notorious principally for its tsetse flies and savage beasts. It was maddening to know that she had absolutely no knowledge of the direction she was traveling—that she might be forging steadily further from the railway, deeper into the gloomy and forbidding country toward the Pangani; yet it was impossible to stop—she must go on.
Her horse had traveled all day without food or water, and night was coming, bringing with it the chilling realization that she was completely lost in a wild and uncharted area known mainly for its tsetse flies and fierce animals. It was infuriating to realize that she had no idea which way she was heading—that she might be moving further away from the railway, deeper into the dark and threatening land toward the Pangani; but stopping was not an option—she had to keep going.
Bertha Kircher was no coward, whatever else she may have been, but as night began to close down around her she could not shut out from her mind entirely contemplation of the terrors of the long hours ahead before the rising sun should dissipate the Stygian gloom—the horrid jungle night—that lures forth all the prowling, preying creatures of destruction.
Bertha Kircher wasn’t a coward, no matter what else she might have been, but as night started to settle in around her, she couldn’t completely block out thoughts of the terrifying long hours ahead until the morning sun would break through the dark, oppressive jungle night that brings out all the lurking, predatory creatures of destruction.
She found, just before dark, an open meadow-like break in the almost interminable bush. There was a small clump of trees near the center and here she decided to camp. The grass was high and thick, affording feed for her horse and a bed for herself, and there was more than enough dead wood lying about the trees to furnish a good fire well through the night. Removing the saddle and bridle from her mount she placed them at the foot of a tree and then picketed the animal close by. Then she busied herself collecting firewood and by the time darkness had fallen she had a good fire and enough wood to last until morning.
She discovered, just before dark, an open meadow-like area in the nearly endless bush. There was a small group of trees near the center, and she decided to set up camp there. The grass was tall and thick, providing food for her horse and a place for her to sleep, and there was plenty of dead wood around the trees to keep a good fire going all night. After removing the saddle and bridle from her horse, she placed them at the base of a tree and then tied the animal nearby. She then focused on gathering firewood, and by the time darkness fell, she had a strong fire and enough wood to last until morning.
From her saddlebags she took cold food and from her canteen a swallow of water. She could not afford more than a small swallow for she could not know how long a time it might be before she should find more. It filled her with sorrow that her poor horse must go waterless, for even German spies may have hearts and this one was very young and very feminine.
From her saddlebags, she took some cold food and took a sip of water from her canteen. She could only have a small sip because she didn’t know how long it would be before she could find more. It made her sad that her poor horse had to go without water, because even German spies can have feelings, and this one was very young and very feminine.
It was now dark. There was neither moon nor stars and the light from her fire only accentuated the blackness beyond. She could see the grass about her and the boles of the trees which stood out in brilliant relief against the solid background of impenetrable night, and beyond the firelight there was nothing.
It was now dark. There was no moon or stars, and the light from her fire only highlighted the darkness beyond. She could see the grass around her and the trunks of the trees that stood out sharply against the thick blackness of the night, and beyond the firelight, there was nothing.
The jungle seemed ominously quiet. Far away in the distance she heard faintly the boom of big guns; but she could not locate their direction. She strained her ears until her nerves were on the point of breaking; but she could not tell from whence the sound came. And it meant so much to her to know, for the battle-lines were north of her and if she could but locate the direction of the firing she would know which way to go in the morning.
The jungle felt eerily quiet. In the distance, she faintly heard the booming of large guns, but she couldn’t pinpoint where it was coming from. She strained to listen until her nerves were about to snap, but she still couldn't identify the source of the sound. Knowing that was crucial for her because the battle lines were to the north, and if she could figure out the direction of the gunfire, she would know which way to head in the morning.
In the morning! Would she live to see another morning? She squared her shoulders and shook herself together. Such thoughts must be banished—they would never do. Bravely she hummed an air as she arranged her saddle near the fire and pulled a quantity of long grass to make a comfortable seat over which she spread her saddle blanket. Then she un-strapped a heavy, military coat from the cantle of her saddle and donned it, for the air was already chill.
In the morning! Would she make it to see another day? She squared her shoulders and gathered her thoughts. She had to push those worries away—they wouldn’t help. Courageously, she hummed a tune as she set up her saddle by the fire and pulled over some long grass to create a comfy seat, which she covered with her saddle blanket. Then she unstrapped a heavy military coat from the back of her saddle and put it on, as the air was already chilly.
Seating herself where she could lean against the saddle she prepared to maintain a sleepless vigil throughout the night. For an hour the silence was broken only by the distant booming of the guns and the low noises of the feeding horse and then, from possibly a mile away, came the rumbling thunder of a lion's roar. The girl started and laid her hand upon the rifle at her side. A little shudder ran through her slight frame and she could feel the goose flesh rise upon her body.
Seating herself where she could lean against the saddle, she got ready to stay awake all night. For an hour, the silence was only disturbed by the distant sound of cannon fire and the quiet rustling of the horse eating. Then, possibly a mile away, the deep rumble of a lion's roar echoed. The girl jumped and put her hand on the rifle at her side. A slight shiver ran through her small frame, and she felt goosebumps rise on her skin.
Again and again was the awful sound repeated and each time she was certain that it came nearer. She could locate the direction of this sound although she could not that of the guns, for the origin of the former was much closer. The lion was up wind and so could not have caught her scent as yet, though he might be approaching to investigate the light of the fire which could doubtless be seen for a considerable distance.
Again and again, that terrible sound echoed, and each time she felt sure it was getting closer. She could pinpoint where the sound was coming from, even though she couldn’t do the same with the gunfire, since the latter was coming from much farther away. The lion was upwind, so he couldn't have picked up her scent yet, but he might be coming closer to check out the firelight, which could probably be seen from quite a distance.
For another fear-filled hour the girl sat straining her eyes and ears out into the black void beyond her little island of light. During all that time the lion did not roar again; but there was constantly the sensation that it was creeping upon her. Again and again she would start and turn to peer into the blackness beyond the trees behind her as her overwrought nerves conjured the stealthy fall of padded feet. She held the rifle across her knees at the ready now and she was trembling from head to foot.
For another hour filled with fear, the girl sat straining her eyes and ears into the dark void beyond her small circle of light. During that time, the lion didn’t roar again, but she constantly felt like it was creeping up on her. Time and again, she would jump and turn to look into the darkness beyond the trees behind her as her frayed nerves imagined the silent approach of padded feet. She held the rifle across her knees, ready, and was trembling from head to toe.
Suddenly her horse raised his head and snorted, and with a little cry of terror the girl sprang to her feet. The animal turned and trotted back toward her until the picket rope brought him to a stand, and then he wheeled about and with ears up-pricked gazed out into the night; but the girl could neither see nor hear aught.
Suddenly, her horse lifted its head and snorted, and with a small cry of fear, the girl jumped to her feet. The animal turned and trotted back toward her until the picket rope stopped him, then he turned around and, with his ears perked up, stared out into the night; but the girl could neither see nor hear anything.
Still another hour of terror passed during which the horse often raised his head to peer long and searchingly into the dark. The girl replenished the fire from time to time. She found herself becoming very sleepy. Her heavy lids persisted in drooping; but she dared not sleep. Fearful lest she might be overcome by the drowsiness that was stealing through her she rose and walked briskly to and fro, then she threw some more wood on the fire, walked over and stroked her horse's muzzle and returned to her seat.
Still another hour of terror passed, during which the horse often lifted its head to look intently into the darkness. The girl fed the fire occasionally. She noticed that she was getting very sleepy. Her heavy eyelids kept drooping, but she couldn’t allow herself to sleep. Afraid she might be overtaken by the drowsiness that was creeping in, she got up and paced back and forth. Then she added more wood to the fire, walked over to stroke her horse's muzzle, and returned to her seat.
Leaning against the saddle she tried to occupy her mind with plans for the morrow; but she must have dozed. With a start she awoke. It was broad daylight. The hideous night with its indescribable terrors was gone.
Leaning against the saddle, she tried to fill her mind with plans for the next day; but she must have dozed off. With a jolt, she woke up. It was broad daylight. The terrifying night with its unimaginable horrors was over.
She could scarce believe the testimony of her senses. She had slept for hours, the fire was out and yet she and the horse were safe and alive, nor was there sign of savage beast about. And, best of all, the sun was shining, pointing the straight road to the east. Hastily she ate a few mouthfuls of her precious rations, which with a swallow of water constituted her breakfast. Then she saddled her horse and mounted. Already she felt that she was as good as safe in Wilhelmstal.
She could hardly believe what her senses were telling her. She had slept for hours, the fire was out, and yet she and the horse were safe and alive, with no sign of any wild animals nearby. And best of all, the sun was shining, lighting the straight road to the east. Quickly, she ate a few bites of her precious rations, which together with a sip of water made up her breakfast. Then she saddled her horse and got on. Already, she felt like she was almost safe in Wilhelmstal.
Possibly, however, she might have revised her conclusions could she have seen the two pairs of eyes watching her every move intently from different points in the bush.
Possibly, she might have changed her conclusions if she had noticed the two pairs of eyes closely observing her every move from different spots in the bushes.
Light-hearted and unsuspecting, the girl rode across the clearing toward the bush while directly before her two yellow-green eyes glared round and terrible, a tawny tail twitched nervously and great, padded paws gathered beneath a sleek barrel for a mighty spring. The horse was almost at the edge of the bush when Numa, the lion, launched himself through the air. He struck the animal's right shoulder at the instant that it reared, terrified, to wheel in flight. The force of the impact hurled the horse backward to the ground and so quickly that the girl had no opportunity to extricate herself; but fell to the earth with her mount, her left leg pinned beneath its body.
Light-hearted and unaware, the girl rode across the clearing toward the bushes while right in front of her, two yellow-green eyes glared aggressively, a tawny tail twitched nervously, and large, padded paws readied beneath a sleek body for a powerful leap. The horse was almost at the edge of the bushes when Numa, the lion, jumped through the air. He hit the animal's right shoulder just as it reared up in terror to flee. The force of the impact knocked the horse backward to the ground so quickly that the girl couldn’t get away; she fell to the ground with her horse, her left leg pinned beneath its body.
Horror-stricken, she saw the king of beasts open his mighty jaws and seize the screaming creature by the back of its neck. The great jaws closed, there was an instant's struggle as Numa shook his prey. She could hear the vertebrae crack as the mighty fangs crunched through them, and then the muscles of her faithful friend relaxed in death.
Horrified, she watched as the king of the beasts opened his powerful jaws and grabbed the screaming creature by the back of its neck. The huge jaws closed, and there was a brief struggle as Numa shook his prey. She could hear the vertebrae snap as the massive fangs crunched through them, and then the muscles of her loyal friend relaxed in death.
Numa crouched upon his kill. His terrifying eyes riveted themselves upon the girl's face—she could feel his hot breath upon her cheek and the odor of the fetid vapor nauseated her. For what seemed an eternity to the girl the two lay staring at each other and then the lion uttered a menacing growl.
Numa was hunched over his prey. His chilling eyes were fixed on the girl's face—she could feel his warm breath against her cheek, and the smell of the foul vapor made her feel sick. For what felt like forever to the girl, they continued to stare at each other, and then the lion let out a threatening growl.
Never before had Bertha Kircher been so terrified—never before had she had such cause for terror. At her hip was a pistol—a formidable weapon with which to face a man; but a puny thing indeed with which to menace the great beast before her. She knew that at best it could but enrage him and yet she meant to sell her life dearly, for she felt that she must die. No human succor could have availed her even had it been there to offer itself. For a moment she tore her gaze from the hypnotic fascination of that awful face and breathed a last prayer to her God. She did not ask for aid, for she felt that she was beyond even divine succor—she only asked that the end might come quickly and with as little pain as possible.
Never before had Bertha Kircher felt such terror—never before had she had such reason to be afraid. At her hip was a pistol—a powerful weapon to face a man; but a weak thing to threaten the huge beast in front of her. She knew it could only make him more furious and yet she was determined to fight for her life, because she felt that death was inevitable. No human help could have saved her even if it had been available. For a moment she pulled her gaze away from the hypnotic terror of that monstrous face and whispered a last prayer to her God. She didn’t ask for help, knowing she was beyond even divine intervention—she only wished for a quick end with as little pain as possible.
No one can prophesy what a lion will do in any given emergency. This one glared and growled at the girl for a moment and then fell to feeding upon the dead horse. Fräulein Kircher wondered for an instant and then attempted to draw her leg cautiously from beneath the body of her mount; but she could not budge it. She increased the force of her efforts and Numa looked up from his feeding to growl again. The girl desisted. She hoped that he might satisfy his hunger and then depart to lie up, but she could not believe that he would leave her there alive. Doubtless he would drag the remains of his kill into the bush for hiding and, as there could be no doubt that he considered her part of his prey, he would certainly come back for her, or possibly drag her in first and kill her.
No one can predict what a lion will do in any situation. This one stared at the girl and growled for a moment before going back to feeding on the dead horse. Fräulein Kircher paused for a second, then tried to carefully pull her leg out from under her horse's body, but she couldn't move it. She increased her efforts, and Numa looked up from his meal to growl again. The girl stopped trying. She hoped he would finish eating and go away to rest, but she couldn't believe he would leave her alive. He would likely drag his kill into the bushes to hide it, and since there was no doubt he saw her as part of his meal, he would definitely come back for her, or maybe even drag her along first and kill her.
Again Numa fell to feeding. The girl's nerves were at the breaking point. She wondered that she had not fainted under the strain of terror and shock. She recalled that she often had wished she might see a lion, close to, make a kill and feed upon it. God! how realistically her wish had been granted.
Again, Numa began to eat. The girl's nerves were fraying. She couldn't believe she hadn't fainted from the fear and shock. She remembered often wishing to see a lion up close as it hunted and fed on its prey. Oh God! How vividly that wish had come true.
Again she bethought herself of her pistol. As she had fallen, the holster had slipped around so that the weapon now lay beneath her. Very slowly she reached for it; but in so doing she was forced to raise her body from the ground. Instantly the lion was aroused. With the swiftness of a cat he reached across the carcass of the horse and placed a heavy, taloned paw upon her breast, crushing her back to earth, and all the time he growled and snarled horribly. His face was a picture of frightful rage incarnate. For a moment neither moved and then from behind her the girl heard a human voice uttering bestial sounds.
Again she remembered her pistol. As she had fallen, the holster had moved so that the gun was now underneath her. Very slowly, she reached for it; but doing so forced her to lift her body off the ground. Instantly, the lion was alerted. With the speed of a cat, he lunged across the carcass of the horse and put a heavy, clawed paw on her chest, pinning her back to the ground, all the while growling and snarling ominously. His face was a picture of pure rage. For a moment, neither moved, and then from behind her, the girl heard a human voice making animalistic sounds.
Numa suddenly looked up from the girl's face at the thing beyond her. His growls increased to roars as he drew back, ripping the front of the girl's waist almost from her body with his long talons, exposing her white bosom, which through some miracle of chance the great claws did not touch.
Numa suddenly looked up from the girl's face at what was beyond her. His growls turned into roars as he pulled back, tearing the front of the girl's waist away from her body with his long claws, exposing her white chest, which, by some miracle, the huge claws did not touch.
Tarzan of the Apes had witnessed the entire encounter from the moment that Numa had leaped upon his prey. For some time before, he had been watching the girl, and after the lion attacked her he had at first been minded to let Numa have his way with her. What was she but a hated German and a spy besides? He had seen her at General Kraut's headquarters, in conference with the German staff and again he had seen her within the British lines masquerading as a British officer. It was the latter thought that prompted him to interfere. Doubtless General Jan Smuts would be glad to meet and question her. She might be forced to divulge information of value to the British commander before Smuts had her shot.
Tarzan of the Apes had watched the whole thing unfold from the moment Numa pounced on his prey. For a while before that, he had been observing the girl, and when the lion attacked her, he initially thought about letting Numa have her. After all, she was just a hated German and a spy too. He had seen her at General Kraut's headquarters, meeting with the German staff, and then he had spotted her within the British lines pretending to be a British officer. It was this last thought that made him decide to step in. General Jan Smuts would probably be glad to meet her and get some information from her. She might end up sharing valuable intelligence with the British commander before Smuts ordered her execution.
Tarzan had recognized not only the girl, but the lion as well. All lions may look alike to you and me; but not so to their intimates of the jungle. Each has his individual characteristics of face and form and gait as well defined as those that differentiate members of the human family, and besides these the creatures of the jungle have a still more positive test—that of scent. Each of us, man or beast, has his own peculiar odor, and it is mostly by this that the beasts of the jungle, endowed with miraculous powers of scent, recognize individuals.
Tarzan recognized not only the girl but also the lion. All lions might seem the same to you and me, but it's not the case for their close companions in the jungle. Each lion has its own distinct features, shape, and way of moving, just like how people are different from one another. On top of that, jungle animals have an even stronger way to identify each other—through scent. Every one of us, whether human or animal, has a unique smell, and it's mainly this distinctive odor that allows jungle beasts, who possess extraordinary smelling abilities, to recognize individuals.
It is the final proof. You have seen it demonstrated a thousand times—a dog recognizes your voice and looks at you. He knows your face and figure. Good, there can be no doubt in his mind but that it is you; but is he satisfied? No, sir—he must come up and smell of you. All his other senses may be fallible, but not his sense of smell, and so he makes assurance positive by the final test.
It’s the ultimate proof. You’ve seen it happen a thousand times—a dog hears your voice and looks at you. He knows your face and body. Sure, there’s no doubt in his mind that it’s you; but is he content? No way—he has to come over and give you a sniff. All his other senses might be unreliable, but not his sense of smell, so he makes sure by giving it that final check.
Tarzan recognized Numa as he whom he had muzzled with the hide of Horta, the boar—as he whom he handled by a rope for two days and finally loosed in a German front-line trench, and he knew that Numa would recognize him—that he would remember the sharp spear that had goaded him into submission and obedience and Tarzan hoped that the lesson he had learned still remained with the lion.
Tarzan recognized Numa as the lion he had muzzled with Horta's hide, the boar— the same one he had controlled with a rope for two days before finally releasing him in a German front-line trench. He knew Numa would recognize him; he would remember the sharp spear that had forced him into submission and compliance, and Tarzan hoped that the lesson he had learned still stayed with the lion.
Now he came forward calling to Numa in the language of the great apes—warning him away from the girl. It is open to question that Numa, the lion, understood him; but he did understand the menace of the heavy spear that the Tarmangani carried so ready in his brown, right hand, and so he drew back, growling, trying to decide in his little brain whether to charge or flee.
Now he stepped forward, calling to Numa in the language of the great apes—warning him to stay away from the girl. It's debatable whether Numa, the lion, actually understood him; but he did sense the threat of the heavy spear that the Tarmangani held ready in his brown right hand, so he backed off, growling, trying to figure out in his small brain whether to charge or run away.
On came the ape-man with never a pause, straight for the lion. "Go away, Numa," he cried, "or Tarzan will tie you up again and lead you through the jungle without food. See Arad, my spear! Do you recall how his point stuck into you and how with his haft I beat you over the head? Go, Numa! I am Tarzan of the Apes!"
On came the ape-man without stopping, heading straight for the lion. "Go away, Numa," he shouted, "or Tarzan will tie you up again and drag you through the jungle without any food. Look at Arad, my spear! Remember how its tip pierced you and how I hit you over the head with its handle? Go, Numa! I am Tarzan of the Apes!"
Numa wrinkled the skin of his face into great folds, until his eyes almost disappeared and he growled and roared and snarled and growled again, and when the spear point came at last quite close to him he struck at it viciously with his armed paw; but he drew back. Tarzan stepped over the dead horse and the girl lying behind him gazed in wide-eyed astonishment at the handsome figure driving an angry lion deliberately from its kill.
Numa scrunched his face into deep wrinkles, making his eyes nearly vanish as he growled, roared, and snarled repeatedly. When the spear tip finally got close, he swiped at it aggressively with his paw but then pulled back. Tarzan stepped over the dead horse, and the girl behind him watched in astonished disbelief as the striking figure aggressively drove an angry lion away from its prey.
When Numa had retreated a few yards, the ape-man called back to the girl in perfect German, "Are you badly hurt?"
When Numa had moved back a few yards, the ape-man called to the girl in flawless German, "Are you seriously hurt?"
"I think not," she replied; "but I cannot extricate my foot from beneath my horse."
"I don't think so," she said, "but I can't get my foot out from under my horse."
"Try again," commanded Tarzan. "I do not know how long I can hold Numa thus."
"Try again," Tarzan said. "I don’t know how long I can keep Numa in this position."
The girl struggled frantically; but at last she sank back upon an elbow.
The girl fought desperately, but finally she collapsed back onto her elbow.
"It is impossible," she called to him.
"It’s impossible," she shouted to him.
He backed slowly until he was again beside the horse, when he reached down and grasped the cinch, which was still intact. Then with one hand he raised the carcass from the ground. The girl freed herself and rose to her feet.
He backed up slowly until he was next to the horse again, then he reached down and grabbed the cinch, which was still secure. Then, with one hand, he lifted the carcass off the ground. The girl freed herself and got to her feet.
"You can walk?" asked Tarzan.
"Can you walk?" asked Tarzan.
"Yes," she said; "my leg is numb; but it does not seem to be injured."
"Yes," she said, "my leg is numb, but it doesn't seem to be injured."
"Good," commented the ape-man. "Back slowly away behind me—make no sudden movements. I think he will not charge."
"Good," the ape-man said. "Back away slowly behind me—don’t make any sudden moves. I don’t think he will charge."
With utmost deliberation the two backed toward the bush. Numa stood for a moment, growling, then he followed them, slowly. Tarzan wondered if he would come beyond his kill or if he would stop there. If he followed them beyond, then they could look for a charge, and if Numa charged it was very likely that he would get one of them. When the lion reached the carcass of the horse Tarzan stopped and so did Numa, as Tarzan had thought that he would and the ape-man waited to see what the lion would do next. He eyed them for a moment, snarled angrily and then looked down at the tempting meat. Presently he crouched upon his kill and resumed feeding.
With careful consideration, the two stepped back toward the bush. Numa paused for a moment, growling, before he slowly followed them. Tarzan wondered if he would move past his kill or stop there. If he pursued them further, they could be at risk of a charge, and if Numa charged, it was very likely one of them would get hurt. When the lion reached the carcass of the horse, Tarzan stopped, and so did Numa, just as Tarzan expected. The ape-man waited to see what the lion would do next. Numa stared at them for a moment, snarled in anger, and then glanced down at the tempting meat. Eventually, he crouched over his kill and continued to eat.
The girl breathed a deep sigh of relief as she and the ape-man resumed their slow retreat with only an occasional glance from the lion, and when at last they reached the bush and had turned and entered it, she felt a sudden giddiness overwhelm her so that she staggered and would have fallen had Tarzan not caught her. It was only a moment before she regained control of herself.
The girl let out a deep sigh of relief as she and the ape-man slowly walked back, only getting an occasional look from the lion. When they finally reached the bushes and stepped inside, she felt a wave of dizziness hit her, causing her to stagger. She would have fallen if Tarzan hadn't caught her. It only took a moment for her to regain her composure.
"I could not help it," she said, in half apology. "I was so close to death—such a horrible death—it unnerved me for an instant; but I am all right now. How can I ever thank you? It was so wonderful—you did not seem to fear the frightful creature in the least; yet he was afraid of you. Who are you?"
"I couldn't help it," she said, partly apologizing. "I was so close to death—such a terrible death—it shook me for a moment; but I’m fine now. How can I ever thank you? It was amazing—you didn’t seem scared of that terrifying creature at all; yet he was scared of you. Who are you?"
"He knows me," replied Tarzan, grimly—"that is why he fears me."
"He knows me," Tarzan replied grimly, "that’s why he fears me."
He was standing facing the girl now and for the first time he had a chance to look at her squarely and closely. She was very beautiful—that was undeniable; but Tarzan realized her beauty only in a subconscious way. It was superficial—it did not color her soul which must be black as sin. She was German—a German spy. He hated her and desired only to compass her destruction; but he would choose the manner so that it would work most grievously against the enemy cause.
He was now standing in front of the girl, and for the first time, he had the opportunity to look at her directly and closely. She was definitely stunning—that was clear; but Tarzan understood her beauty only on a subconscious level. It felt shallow—it didn't impact her soul, which he believed must be as dark as sin. She was German—a German spy. He despised her and only wanted to bring about her downfall; but he would choose a way that would hurt the enemy's mission the most.
He saw her naked breasts where Numa had torn her clothing from her and dangling there against the soft, white flesh he saw that which brought a sudden scowl of surprise and anger to his face—the diamond-studded, golden locket of his youth—the love token that had been stolen from the breast of his mate by Schneider, the Hun. The girl saw the scowl but did not interpret it correctly. Tarzan grasped her roughly by the arm.
He saw her bare breasts where Numa had ripped her clothes away, and hanging there against her soft, white skin, he noticed something that brought a sudden look of shock and anger to his face—the diamond-studded, gold locket from his youth—the love token that had been taken from his mate's chest by Schneider, the Hun. The girl noticed his grim expression but didn’t understand it correctly. Tarzan grabbed her roughly by the arm.
"Where did you get this?" he demanded, as he tore the bauble from her.
"Where did you get this?" he asked, yanking the ornament from her.
The girl drew herself to her full height. "Take your hand from me," she demanded, but the ape-man paid no attention to her words, only seizing her more forcibly.
The girl stood tall. "Take your hand off me," she demanded, but the ape-man ignored her words and grabbed her even more firmly.
"Answer me!" he snapped. "Where did you get this?"
"Answer me!" he snapped. "Where did you get this?"
"What is it to you?" she countered.
"What does it matter to you?" she replied.
"It is mine," he replied. "Tell me who gave it to you or I will throw you back to Numa."
"It’s mine," he said. "Tell me who gave it to you, or I’ll throw you back to Numa."
"You would do that?" she asked.
"You'd really do that?" she asked.
"Why not?" he queried. "You are a spy and spies must die if they are caught."
"Why not?" he asked. "You’re a spy, and spies have to die if they get caught."
"You were going to kill me, then?"
"You were planning to kill me, then?"
"I was going to take you to headquarters. They would dispose of you there; but Numa can do it quite as effectively. Which do you prefer?"
"I was going to take you to headquarters. They would get rid of you there; but Numa can handle it just as well. Which do you prefer?"
"Hauptmann Fritz Schneider gave it to me," she said.
"Hauptmann Fritz Schneider gave it to me," she said.
"Headquarters it will be then," said Tarzan. "Come!" The girl moved at his side through the bush and all the time her mind worked quickly. They were moving east, which suited her, and as long as they continued to move east she was glad to have the protection of the great, white savage. She speculated much upon the fact that her pistol still swung at her hip. The man must be mad not to take it from her.
"Then it's the headquarters," Tarzan said. "Let's go!" The girl walked beside him through the bush, her mind racing. They were heading east, which she liked, and as long as they kept going in that direction, she was happy to have the protection of the strong, white man. She thought a lot about the fact that her pistol was still hanging at her hip. He must be crazy not to take it from her.
"What makes you think I am a spy?" she asked after a long silence.
"What makes you think I'm a spy?" she asked after a long pause.
"I saw you at German headquarters," he replied, "and then again inside the British lines."
"I saw you at the German headquarters," he said, "and then again inside the British lines."
She could not let him take her back to them. She must reach Wilhelmstal at once and she was determined to do so even if she must have recourse to her pistol. She cast a side glance at the tall figure. What a magnificent creature! But yet he was a brute who would kill her or have her killed if she did not slay him. And the locket! She must have that back—it must not fail to reach Wilhelmstal. Tarzan was now a foot or two ahead of her as the path was very narrow. Cautiously she drew her pistol. A single shot would suffice and he was so close that she could not miss. As she figured it all out her eyes rested on the brown skin with the graceful muscles rolling beneath it and the perfect limbs and head and the carriage that a proud king of old might have envied. A wave of revulsion for her contemplated act surged through her. No, she could not do it—yet, she must be free and she must regain possession of the locket. And then, almost blindly, she swung the weapon up and struck Tarzan heavily upon the back of the head with its butt. Like a felled ox he dropped in his tracks.
She couldn't let him take her back to them. She had to reach Wilhelmstal immediately, and she was determined to do so, even if it meant using her pistol. She glanced at the tall figure. What an incredible creature! But he was still a brute who would kill her or have her killed if she didn’t act first. And the locket! She had to get that back—it must make its way to Wilhelmstal. Tarzan was now a foot or two ahead of her since the path was very narrow. Carefully, she pulled out her pistol. A single shot would do, and he was so close she couldn't miss. As she assessed the situation, her eyes lingered on his brown skin, the graceful muscles beneath it, and his perfectly shaped limbs and head—the kind of stature that a proud king of old might have envied. A wave of revulsion for what she was about to do washed over her. No, she couldn't go through with it—yet, she had to be free, and she had to get the locket back. Almost without thinking, she raised the weapon and struck Tarzan hard on the back of the head with the butt. He collapsed in his tracks like a fallen ox.
Chapter VI
Vengeance and Mercy
It was an hour later that Sheeta, the panther, hunting, chanced to glance upward into the blue sky where his attention was attracted by Ska, the vulture, circling slowly above the bush a mile away and downwind. For a long minute the yellow eyes stared intently at the gruesome bird. They saw Ska dive and rise again to continue his ominous circling and in these movements their woodcraft read that which, while obvious to Sheeta, would doubtless have meant nothing to you or me.
It was an hour later that Sheeta, the panther, was hunting when he happened to look up at the blue sky and noticed Ska, the vulture, circling slowly above the bush a mile away and downwind. For a long minute, his yellow eyes stared intensely at the eerie bird. He watched as Ska dove and then rose again to continue his unsettling circling, and in these movements, Sheeta understood something that, while clear to him, would likely have meant nothing to you or me.
The hunting cat guessed that on the ground beneath Ska was some living thing of flesh—either a beast feeding upon its kill or a dying animal that Ska did not yet dare attack. In either event it might prove meat for Sheeta, and so the wary feline stalked by a circuitous route, upon soft, padded feet that gave forth no sound, until the circling aasvogel and his intended prey were upwind. Then, sniffing each vagrant zephyr, Sheeta, the panther, crept cautiously forward, nor had he advanced any considerable distance before his keen nostrils were rewarded with the scent of man—a Tarmangani.
The hunting cat sensed that below Ska was some sort of living creature—either a beast eating its meal or a wounded animal that Ska wasn't ready to pounce on yet. In either case, it could be potential food for Sheeta, so the cautious feline moved in a roundabout way, stepping on soft, padded feet that made no noise, until the circling vulture and its target were upwind. Then, sniffing each passing breeze, Sheeta, the panther, quietly crept forward, and he hadn't progressed very far before his sharp nose caught the scent of a human—a Tarmangani.
Sheeta paused. He was not a hunter of men. He was young and in his prime; but always before he had avoided this hated presence. Of late he had become more accustomed to it with the passing of many soldiers through his ancient hunting ground, and as the soldiers had frightened away a great part of the game Sheeta had been wont to feed upon, the days had been lean, and Sheeta was hungry.
Sheeta stopped. He wasn’t a killer. He was young and strong; but he had always steered clear of this unwanted presence. Recently, he got used to it more with the many soldiers passing through his old hunting area, and since the soldiers had scared off a lot of the game Sheeta usually fed on, the days had been tough, and Sheeta was hungry.
The circling Ska suggested that this Tarmangani might be helpless and upon the point of dying, else Ska would not have been interested in him, and so easy prey for Sheeta. With this thought in mind the cat resumed his stalking. Presently he pushed through the thick bush and his yellow-green eyes rested gloatingly upon the body of an almost naked Tarmangani lying face down in a narrow game trail.
The circling Ska suggested that this Tarmangani might be helpless and about to die; otherwise, Ska wouldn’t have been interested in him, making him an easy target for Sheeta. With this in mind, the cat continued to stalk. Soon, he pushed through the thick bush, and his yellow-green eyes gleamed with satisfaction as they fell on the body of an almost naked Tarmangani lying face down in a narrow game trail.
Numa, sated, rose from the carcass of Bertha Kircher's horse and seized the partially devoured body by the neck and dragged it into the bush; then he started east toward the lair where he had left his mate. Being uncomfortably full he was inclined to be sleepy and far from belligerent. He moved slowly and majestically with no effort at silence or concealment. The king walked abroad, unafraid.
Numa, satisfied, got up from the remains of Bertha Kircher's horse and grabbed the partially eaten body by the neck, dragging it into the bushes. Then he headed east toward the den where he had left his mate. Feeling uncomfortably full, he was a bit sleepy and not in the mood to fight. He moved slowly and majestically, without trying to be quiet or hide. The king walked freely, unafraid.
With an occasional regal glance to right or left he moved along a narrow game trail until at a turn he came to a sudden stop at what lay revealed before him—Sheeta, the panther, creeping stealthily upon the almost naked body of a Tarmangani lying face down in the deep dust of the pathway. Numa glared intently at the quiet body in the dust. Recognition came. It was his Tarmangani. A low growl of warning rumbled from his throat and Sheeta halted with one paw upon Tarzan's back and turned suddenly to eye the intruder.
With an occasional regal glance to the right or left, he walked along a narrow game trail until he suddenly stopped at a turn, taken aback by what he saw—Sheeta, the panther, quietly sneaking up on the almost bare body of a Tarmangani lying face down in the dusty path. Numa stared intently at the still body in the dust. Recognition dawned. It was his Tarmangani. A low growl of warning rumbled from his throat, and Sheeta paused with one paw on Tarzan's back, turning suddenly to glare at the intruder.
What passed within those savage brains? Who may say? The panther seemed debating the wisdom of defending his find, for he growled horribly as though warning Numa away from the prey. And Numa? Was the idea of property rights dominating his thoughts? The Tarmangani was his, or he was the Tarmangani's. Had not the Great White Ape mastered and subdued him and, too, had he not fed him? Numa recalled the fear that he had felt of this man-thing and his cruel spear; but in savage brains fear is more likely to engender respect than hatred and so Numa found that he respected the creature who had subdued and mastered him. He saw Sheeta, upon whom he looked with contempt, daring to molest the master of the lion. Jealousy and greed alone might have been sufficient to prompt Numa to drive Sheeta away, even though the lion was not sufficiently hungry to devour the flesh that he thus wrested from the lesser cat; but then, too, there was in the little brain within the massive head a sense of loyalty, and perhaps this it was that sent Numa quickly forward, growling, toward the spitting Sheeta.
What was going on in those savage minds? Who can say? The panther seemed to be weighing the choice of defending its kill, growling ominously as if to warn Numa away from the prey. And Numa? Was the idea of ownership taking over his thoughts? The Tarmangani was his, or he belonged to the Tarmangani. Hadn’t the Great White Ape conquered and tamed him, and hadn't he also fed him? Numa remembered the fear he felt of this human-like creature and its cruel spear; but in savage minds, fear is more likely to create respect than hatred, so Numa found that he respected the being who had tamed him. He saw Sheeta, whom he looked down on, daring to bother the king of beasts. Jealousy and greed alone could have driven Numa to chase Sheeta away, even if the lion wasn’t hungry enough to eat the flesh he snatched from the smaller cat; but there was also a sense of loyalty in his primitive brain that pushed Numa forward, growling, toward the hissing Sheeta.
For a moment the latter stood his ground with arched back and snarling face, for all the world like a great, spotted tabby.
For a moment, the latter held his ground with an arched back and a snarling face, looking just like a big, spotted tabby cat.
Numa had not felt like fighting; but the sight of Sheeta daring to dispute his rights kindled his ferocious brain to sudden fire. His rounded eyes glared with rage, his undulating tail snapped to stiff erectness as, with a frightful roar, he charged this presuming vassal.
Numa didn't feel like fighting; but seeing Sheeta challenge his authority ignited a fierce anger in him. His wide eyes flared with rage, his tail stiffened in a sudden flash of aggression as he let out a terrifying roar and charged at this audacious rival.
It came so suddenly and from so short a distance that Sheeta had no chance to turn and flee the rush, and so he met it with raking talons and snapping jaws; but the odds were all against him. To the larger fangs and the more powerful jaws of his adversary were added huge talons and the preponderance of the lion's great weight. At the first clash Sheeta was crushed and, though he deliberately fell upon his back and drew up his powerful hind legs beneath Numa with the intention of disemboweling him, the lion forestalled him and at the same time closed his awful jaws upon Sheeta's throat.
It happened so suddenly and from such a short distance that Sheeta had no time to turn and run from the attack. Instead, he faced it with his sharp claws and snapping jaws, but everything was against him. His opponent had larger fangs, stronger jaws, massive talons, and the sheer weight of a lion on his side. In the first clash, Sheeta was overwhelmed, and even though he intentionally fell on his back and pulled his powerful hind legs up underneath Numa to try to disembowel him, the lion was quicker and clamped his terrifying jaws around Sheeta's throat.
It was soon over. Numa rose, shaking himself, and stood above the torn and mutilated body of his foe. His own sleek coat was cut and the red blood trickled down his flank; though it was but a minor injury, it angered him. He glared down at the dead panther and then, in a fit of rage, he seized and mauled the body only to drop it in a moment, lower his head, voice a single terrific roar, and turn toward the ape-man.
It was quickly done. Numa got up, shook himself off, and stood over the mangled body of his opponent. His own smooth fur was torn, and blood trickled down his side; even though it was just a minor wound, it frustrated him. He glared at the dead panther and then, in a burst of anger, he grabbed and clawed at the body only to drop it moments later, lower his head, let out a single powerful roar, and face the ape-man.
Approaching the still form he sniffed it over from head to foot. Then he placed a huge paw upon it and turned it over with its face up. Again he smelled about the body and at last with his rough tongue licked Tarzan's face. It was then that Tarzan opened his eyes.
Approaching the lifeless body, he sniffed it from head to toe. Then he placed a large paw on it and flipped it over so its face was up. He sniffed around the body again and finally, with his rough tongue, licked Tarzan's face. That’s when Tarzan opened his eyes.
Above him towered the huge lion, its hot breath upon his face, its rough tongue upon his cheek. The ape-man had often been close to death; but never before so close as this, he thought, for he was convinced that death was but a matter of seconds. His brain was still numb from the effects of the blow that had felled him, and so he did not, for a moment, recognize the lion that stood over him as the one he had so recently encountered.
Above him loomed the massive lion, its hot breath on his face, its rough tongue against his cheek. The ape-man had often faced death before, but never so closely as he did now; he believed that death was just seconds away. His mind was still hazy from the blow that had knocked him down, so he didn’t immediately recognize the lion above him as the one he had just recently encountered.
Presently, however, recognition dawned upon him and with it a realization of the astounding fact that Numa did not seem bent on devouring him—at least not immediately. His position was a delicate one. The lion stood astraddle Tarzan with his front paws. The ape-man could not rise, therefore, without pushing the lion away and whether Numa would tolerate being pushed was an open question. Too, the beast might consider him already dead and any movement that indicated the contrary was true would, in all likelihood, arouse the killing instinct of the man-eater.
Right now, though, it hit him that the amazing fact was Numa didn’t seem to be intent on eating him—at least not right away. His situation was tricky. The lion was standing over Tarzan with his front paws. The ape-man couldn’t get up without pushing the lion away, and it was unclear if Numa would accept being pushed. Plus, the beast might think he was already dead, and any movement that suggested otherwise would probably trigger the killing instinct of the man-eater.
But Tarzan was tiring of the situation. He was in no mood to lie there forever, especially when he contemplated the fact that the girl spy who had tried to brain him was undoubtedly escaping as rapidly as possible.
But Tarzan was getting fed up with the situation. He had no intention of lying there forever, especially when he thought about the fact that the girl spy who had tried to hit him over the head was definitely getting away as fast as she could.
Numa was looking right into his eyes now evidently aware that he was alive. Presently the lion cocked his head on one side and whined. Tarzan knew the note, and he knew that it spelled neither rage nor hunger, and then he risked all on a single throw, encouraged by that low whine.
Numa was now looking directly into his eyes, clearly realizing that he was alive. Soon, the lion tilted his head to one side and whined. Tarzan recognized the sound and understood that it meant neither anger nor hunger, and then he took a chance with a single throw, encouraged by that soft whine.
"Move, Numa!" he commanded and placing a palm against the tawny shoulder he pushed the lion aside. Then he rose and with a hand on his hunting knife awaited that which might follow. It was then that his eyes fell for the first time on the torn body of Sheeta. He looked from the dead cat to the live one and saw the marks of conflict upon the latter, too, and in an instant realized something of what had happened—Numa had saved him from the panther!
"Move, Numa!" he ordered, pressing his hand against the lion's tan shoulder and pushing him aside. Then he stood up, hand on his hunting knife, ready for whatever might come next. That was when he saw, for the first time, the mutilated body of Sheeta. He glanced from the lifeless cat to the living one and noticed the signs of a struggle on the latter as well, quickly understanding what had occurred—Numa had saved him from the panther!
It seemed incredible and yet the evidence pointed clearly to the fact. He turned toward the lion and without fear approached and examined his wounds which he found superficial, and as Tarzan knelt beside him Numa rubbed an itching ear against the naked, brown shoulder. Then the ape-man stroked the great head, picked up his spear, and looked about for the trail of the girl. This he soon found leading toward the east, and as he set out upon it something prompted him to feel for the locket he had hung about his neck. It was gone!
It seemed unbelievable, yet the evidence was clear. He faced the lion and, without fear, approached to examine its wounds, which he found to be superficial. As Tarzan knelt beside him, Numa rubbed an itchy ear against his bare, brown shoulder. Then the ape-man stroked the lion’s massive head, grabbed his spear, and looked for the girl’s trail. He quickly found it heading east, and as he started down the path, something made him check for the locket he had hung around his neck. It was gone!
No trace of anger was apparent upon the ape-man's face unless it was a slight tightening of the jaws; but he put his hand ruefully to the back of his head where a bump marked the place where the girl had struck him and a moment later a half-smile played across his lips. He could not help but admit that she had tricked him neatly, and that it must have taken nerve to do the thing she did and to set out armed only with a pistol through the trackless waste that lay between them and the railway and beyond into the hills where Wilhelmstal lies.
No sign of anger showed on the ape-man's face, except for a slight clenching of his jaw; but he touched the back of his head ruefully where a bump marked the spot where the girl had hit him, and a moment later, a half-smile appeared on his lips. He couldn't deny that she had outsmarted him cleverly, and it must have taken guts to do what she did and to venture out armed only with a pistol through the vast wilderness that stretched between them and the railway, and beyond into the hills where Wilhelmstal is located.
Tarzan admired courage. He was big enough to admit it and admire it even in a German spy, but he saw that in this case it only added to her resourcefulness and made her all the more dangerous and the necessity for putting her out of the way paramount. He hoped to overtake her before she reached Wilhelmstal and so he set out at the swinging trot that he could hold for hours at a stretch without apparent fatigue.
Tarzan respected bravery. He was confident enough to recognize and appreciate it, even in a German spy, but he realized that in this case, it only increased her cleverness and made her even more threatening, making it essential to eliminate her. He hoped to catch up with her before she got to Wilhelmstal, so he started off at a steady trot that he could maintain for hours without showing any signs of tiredness.
That the girl could hope to reach the town on foot in less than two days seemed improbable, for it was a good thirty miles and part of it hilly. Even as the thought crossed his mind he heard the whistle of a locomotive to the east and knew that the railway was in operation again after a shutdown of several days. If the train was going south the girl would signal it if she had reached the right of way. His keen ears caught the whining of brake shoes on wheels and a few minutes later the signal blast for brakes off. The train had stopped and started again and, as it gained headway and greater distance, Tarzan could tell from the direction of the sound that it was moving south.
That the girl could realistically expect to walk to town in under two days seemed unlikely, since it was a solid thirty miles away and part of it was hilly. Just as that thought crossed his mind, he heard the whistle of a train in the east and realized that the railway was back in operation after being shut down for several days. If the train was heading south, the girl would signal it if she made it to the right of way. His sharp ears picked up the sound of brake shoes against wheels, and a few minutes later, he heard the signal blast for the brakes to be released. The train had stopped, then started up again, and as it picked up speed and distance, Tarzan could tell from the sound's direction that it was moving south.
The ape-man followed the trail to the railway where it ended abruptly on the west side of the track, showing that the girl had boarded the train, just as he thought. There was nothing now but to follow on to Wilhelmstal, where he hoped to find Captain Fritz Schneider, as well as the girl, and to recover his diamond-studded locket.
The ape-man followed the path to the railway, which ended suddenly on the west side of the tracks, confirming that the girl had gotten on the train, just as he suspected. Now, all that was left was to continue on to Wilhelmstal, where he hoped to find Captain Fritz Schneider, along with the girl, and retrieve his diamond-studded locket.
It was dark when Tarzan reached the little hill town of Wilhelmstal. He loitered on the outskirts, getting his bearings and trying to determine how an almost naked white man might explore the village without arousing suspicion. There were many soldiers about and the town was under guard, for he could see a lone sentinel walking his post scarce a hundred yards from him. To elude this one would not be difficult; but to enter the village and search it would be practically impossible, garbed, or un-garbed, as he was.
It was dark when Tarzan arrived at the small hill town of Wilhelmstal. He hung around the edge, figuring things out and trying to think of how a nearly naked white guy could check out the village without drawing attention. There were a lot of soldiers around, and the town was being guarded, as he could see a single guard patrolling less than a hundred yards away from him. Sneaking past this one wouldn’t be hard; but getting into the village and searching it would be nearly impossible, dressed or not.
Creeping forward, taking advantage of every cover, lying flat and motionless when the sentry's face was toward him, the ape-man at last reached the sheltering shadows of an outhouse just inside the lines. From there he moved stealthily from building to building until at last he was discovered by a large dog in the rear of one of the bungalows. The brute came slowly toward him, growling. Tarzan stood motionless beside a tree. He could see a light in the bungalow and uniformed men moving about and he hoped that the dog would not bark. He did not; but he growled more savagely and, just at the moment that the rear door of the bungalow opened and a man stepped out, the animal charged.
Creeping forward, using every bit of cover, lying flat and still when the guard looked his way, the ape-man finally made it to the protective shadows of an outhouse just inside the perimeter. From there, he moved quietly from building to building until he was spotted by a large dog at the back of one of the bungalows. The dog approached him slowly, growling. Tarzan stood frozen beside a tree. He could see a light in the bungalow and uniformed men moving around, hoping the dog wouldn’t bark. It didn’t; instead, it growled more fiercely, and just as the back door of the bungalow swung open and a man stepped out, the dog lunged.
He was a large dog, as large as Dango, the hyena, and he charged with all the vicious impetuosity of Numa, the lion. As he came Tarzan knelt and the dog shot through the air for his throat; but he was dealing with no man now and he found his quickness more than matched by the quickness of the Tarmangani. His teeth never reached the soft flesh—strong fingers, fingers of steel, seized his neck. He voiced a single startled yelp and clawed at the naked breast before him with his talons; but he was powerless. The mighty fingers closed upon his throat; the man rose, snapped the clawing body once, and cast it aside. At the same time a voice from the open bungalow door called: "Simba!"
He was a huge dog, as big as Dango, the hyena, and he charged with all the ferocity of Numa, the lion. As he approached, Tarzan knelt and the dog leaped through the air for his throat; but he was up against no ordinary man and quickly realized that he was no match for the speed of the Tarmangani. His teeth never connected with the soft flesh—powerful fingers, fingers of steel, grabbed his neck. He let out a single startled yelp and scratched at the bare chest in front of him with his claws; but he was helpless. The strong fingers tightened around his throat; the man stood up, tossed the struggling dog aside, and at the same moment, a voice from the open bungalow door called out: "Simba!"
There was no response. Repeating the call the man descended the steps and advanced toward the tree. In the light from the doorway Tarzan could see that he was a tall, broad-shouldered man in the uniform of a German officer. The ape-man withdrew into the shadow of the tree's stem. The man came closer, still calling the dog—he did not see the savage beast, crouching now in the shadow, awaiting him. When he had approached within ten feet of the Tarmangani, Tarzan leaped upon him—as Sabor springs to the kill, so sprang the ape-man. The momentum and weight of his body hurled the German to the ground, powerful fingers prevented an outcry and, though the officer struggled, he had no chance and a moment later lay dead beside the body of the dog.
There was no reply. Calling out again, the man went down the steps and walked toward the tree. In the light from the doorway, Tarzan could see that he was a tall, broad-shouldered man in a German officer's uniform. The ape-man slipped into the shadow of the tree trunk. The man moved closer, still calling for the dog—he didn’t notice the fierce beast crouching in the shadows, waiting for him. When he got within ten feet of the Tarmangani, Tarzan pounced on him—just like Sabor springs for the kill, the ape-man sprang. The force and weight of his body knocked the German to the ground, powerful fingers silenced him, and although the officer struggled, he didn’t stand a chance. Moments later, he lay dead next to the dog’s body.
As Tarzan stood for a moment looking down upon his kill and regretting that he could not risk voicing his beloved victory cry, the sight of the uniform suggested a means whereby he might pass to and fro through Wilhelmstal with the minimum chance of detection. Ten minutes later a tall, broad-shouldered officer stepped from the yard of the bungalow leaving behind him the corpses of a dog and a naked man.
As Tarzan stood for a moment, looking down at his kill and regretting that he couldn't take the risk of shouting his victory cry, the sight of the uniform gave him an idea for how he could move back and forth through Wilhelmstal with the least chance of being noticed. Ten minutes later, a tall, broad-shouldered officer stepped out of the yard of the bungalow, leaving behind the bodies of a dog and a naked man.
He walked boldly along the little street and those who passed him could not guess that beneath Imperial Germany's uniform beat a savage heart that pulsed with implacable hatred for the Hun. Tarzan's first concern was to locate the hotel, for here he guessed he would find the girl, and where the girl was doubtless would be Hauptmann Fritz Schneider, who was either her confederate, her sweetheart, or both, and there, too, would be Tarzan's precious locket.
He strode confidently down the small street, and those who walked by him couldn't fathom that beneath the uniform of Imperial Germany lay a fierce heart filled with relentless hatred for the enemy. Tarzan's top priority was to find the hotel, as he suspected the girl would be there, and where the girl was, Hauptmann Fritz Schneider would likely be too, either as her accomplice, her boyfriend, or possibly both. And surely, Tarzan's precious locket would be there as well.
He found the hotel at last, a low, two-storied building with a veranda. There were lights on both floors and people, mostly officers, could be seen within. The ape-man considered entering and inquiring for those he sought; but his better judgment finally prompted him to reconnoiter first. Passing around the building he looked into all the lighted rooms on the first floor and, seeing neither of those for whom he had come, he swung lightly to the roof of the veranda and continued his investigations through windows of the second story.
He finally found the hotel, a low, two-story building with a porch. There were lights on both floors, and he could see people inside, mostly officers. The ape-man thought about going in to ask for the people he was looking for, but his better judgment told him to check things out first. Going around the building, he looked into all the lit rooms on the first floor and, not seeing anyone he had come for, he nimbly climbed onto the roof of the porch and continued his search through the second-story windows.
At one corner of the hotel in a rear room the blinds were drawn; but he heard voices within and once he saw a figure silhouetted momentarily against the blind. It appeared to be the figure of a woman; but it was gone so quickly that he could not be sure. Tarzan crept close to the window and listened. Yes, there was a woman there and a man—he heard distinctly the tones of their voices although he could overhear no words, as they seemed to be whispering.
At one corner of the hotel, in a back room, the blinds were closed; but he heard voices inside, and once he saw a shadow briefly against the blind. It looked like a woman’s silhouette, but it disappeared so quickly that he couldn't be sure. Tarzan moved closer to the window and listened. Yes, there was a woman and a man there—he could clearly hear the sound of their voices, although he couldn't make out any words since they seemed to be whispering.
The adjoining room was dark. Tarzan tried the window and found it unlatched. All was quiet within. He raised the sash and listened again—still silence. Placing a leg over the sill he slipped within and hurriedly glanced about. The room was vacant. Crossing to the door he opened it and looked out into the hall. There was no one there, either, and he stepped out and approached the door of the adjoining room where the man and woman were.
The next room was dark. Tarzan tried the window and found it unlocked. Everything was quiet inside. He raised the window and listened again—still silence. He swung a leg over the sill and slipped inside, quickly scanning the room. It was empty. He went over to the door, opened it, and looked into the hall. There was no one there, either, so he stepped out and walked towards the door of the room where the man and woman were.
Pressing close to the door he listened. Now he distinguished words, for the two had raised their voices as though in argument. The woman was speaking.
Pressing close to the door, he listened. Now he could make out words, as the two had raised their voices as if they were arguing. The woman was speaking.
"I have brought the locket," she said, "as was agreed upon between you and General Kraut, as my identification. I carry no other credentials. This was to be enough. You have nothing to do but give me the papers and let me go."
"I brought the locket," she said, "as you and General Kraut agreed, to serve as my identification. I don’t have any other credentials. This was supposed to be sufficient. All you need to do is give me the papers and let me go."
The man replied in so low a tone that Tarzan could not catch the words and then the woman spoke again—a note of scorn and perhaps a little of fear in her voice.
The man replied in such a quiet voice that Tarzan couldn't hear the words, and then the woman spoke again—her tone laced with scorn and maybe a hint of fear.
"You would not dare, Hauptmann Schneider," she said, and then: "Do not touch me! Take your hands from me!"
"You wouldn't dare, Hauptmann Schneider," she said, and then: "Don't touch me! Remove your hands from me!"
It was then that Tarzan of the Apes opened the door and stepped into the room. What he saw was a huge, bull-necked German officer with one arm about the waist of Fräulein Bertha Kircher and a hand upon her forehead pushing her head back as he tried to kiss her on the mouth. The girl was struggling against the great brute; but her efforts were futile. Slowly the man's lips were coming closer to hers and slowly, step by step, she was being carried backward.
It was then that Tarzan of the Apes opened the door and stepped into the room. What he saw was a large, muscular German officer with one arm wrapped around the waist of Fräulein Bertha Kircher, his hand pressing against her forehead as he tried to kiss her on the lips. The girl was fighting against the strong bully, but her attempts were in vain. Slowly, the man's lips were getting closer to hers, and little by little, she was being pushed backward.
Schneider heard the noise of the opening and closing door behind him and turned. At sight of this strange officer he dropped the girl and straightened up.
Schneider heard the sound of the door opening and closing behind him and turned around. When he saw this unfamiliar officer, he let go of the girl and stood up straight.
"What is the meaning of this intrusion, Lieutenant?" he demanded, noting the other's epaulettes. "Leave the room at once."
"What’s the meaning of this interruption, Lieutenant?" he demanded, noticing the other man's epaulettes. "Leave the room immediately."
Tarzan made no articulate reply; but the two there with him heard a low growl break from those firm lips—a growl that sent a shudder through the frame of the girl and brought a pallor to the red face of the Hun and his hand to his pistol but even as he drew his weapon it was wrested from him and hurled through the blind and window to the yard beyond. Then Tarzan backed against the door and slowly removed the uniform coat.
Tarzan didn't respond in words, but the two people with him heard a low growl come from his lips—a growl that sent a chill through the girl and turned the Hun's face pale, making him reach for his pistol. But just as he pulled out his weapon, it was snatched from him and thrown out the window into the yard. Then Tarzan leaned against the door and slowly took off the uniform coat.
"You are Hauptmann Schneider," he said to the German.
"You are Captain Schneider," he said to the German.
"What of it?" growled the latter.
"What about it?" growled the latter.
"I am Tarzan of the Apes," replied the ape-man. "Now you know why I intrude."
"I am Tarzan of the Apes," the ape-man responded. "Now you understand why I'm here."
The two before him saw that he was naked beneath the coat which he threw upon the floor and then he slipped quickly from the trousers and stood there clothed only in his loin cloth. The girl had recognized him by this time, too.
The two in front of him noticed that he was naked under the coat he dropped on the floor, and then he quickly took off his trousers, standing there dressed only in his loincloth. The girl had also recognized him by that point.
"Take your hand off that pistol," Tarzan admonished her. Her hand dropped at her side. "Now come here!"
"Take your hand off that gun," Tarzan warned her. Her hand fell to her side. "Now come here!"
She approached and Tarzan removed the weapon and hurled it after the other. At the mention of his name Tarzan had noted the sickly pallor that overspread the features of the Hun. At last he had found the right man. At last his mate would be partially avenged—never could she be entirely avenged. Life was too short and there were too many Germans.
She walked over, and Tarzan took the weapon and threw it after the other one. When he heard his name, Tarzan noticed the sickly look on the Hun's face. Finally, he had found the right guy. Finally, his partner would be somewhat avenged—she could never be fully avenged. Life was too short, and there were too many Germans.
"What do you want of me?" demanded Schneider.
"What do you want from me?" Schneider asked.
"You are going to pay the price for the thing you did at the little bungalow in the Waziri country," replied the ape-man.
"You’re going to pay for what you did at the little bungalow in Waziri country," the ape-man replied.
Schneider commenced to bluster and threaten. Tarzan turned the key in the lock of the door and hurled the former through the window after the pistols. Then he turned to the girl. "Keep out of the way," he said in a low voice. "Tarzan of the Apes is going to kill."
Schneider started to rant and make threats. Tarzan locked the door and threw Schneider through the window after the pistols. Then he faced the girl. "Stay back," he said quietly. "Tarzan of the Apes is going to kill."
The Hun ceased blustering and began to plead. "I have a wife and children at home," he cried. "I have done nothing, I—"
The Hun stopped boasting and started to beg. "I have a wife and kids at home," he exclaimed. "I haven't done anything, I—"
"You are going to die as befits your kind," said Tarzan, "with blood on your hands and a lie on your lips." He started across the room toward the burly Hauptmann. Schneider was a large and powerful man—about the height of the ape-man but much heavier. He saw that neither threats nor pleas would avail him and so he prepared to fight as a cornered rat fights for its life with all the maniacal rage, cunning, and ferocity that the first law of nature imparts to many beasts.
"You’re going to die like your kind deserves," said Tarzan, "with blood on your hands and a lie on your lips." He walked across the room toward the burly Hauptmann. Schneider was a big and strong man—about as tall as the ape-man but much heavier. He realized that neither threats nor pleas would work, so he got ready to fight like a cornered rat fighting for its life, filled with the wild rage, cunning, and ferocity that the basic instincts of nature give many animals.
Lowering his bull head he charged for the ape-man and in the center of the floor the two clinched. There they stood locked and swaying for a moment until Tarzan succeeded in forcing his antagonist backward over a table which crashed to the floor, splintered by the weight of the two heavy bodies.
Lowering his bull-like head, he charged at the ape-man, and in the center of the floor, the two grappled. They stood locked together, swaying for a moment, until Tarzan managed to push his opponent backward over a table, which crashed to the floor, splintered under the weight of their two heavy bodies.
The girl stood watching the battle with wide eyes. She saw the two men rolling hither and thither across the floor and she heard with horror the low growls that came from the lips of the naked giant. Schneider was trying to reach his foe's throat with his fingers while, horror of horrors, Bertha Kircher could see that the other was searching for the German's jugular with his teeth!
The girl stood watching the fight with wide eyes. She saw the two men rolling back and forth across the floor and heard with horror the low growls that came from the lips of the naked giant. Schneider was trying to grab his opponent's throat with his fingers while, horrified, Bertha Kircher could see that the other was searching for the German's jugular with his teeth!
Schneider seemed to realize this too, for he redoubled his efforts to escape and finally succeeded in rolling over on top of the ape-man and breaking away. Leaping to his feet he ran for the window; but the ape-man was too quick for him and before he could leap through the sash a heavy hand fell upon his shoulder and he was jerked back and hurled across the room to the opposite wall. There Tarzan followed him, and once again they locked, dealing each other terrific blows, until Schneider in a piercing voice screamed, "Kamerad! Kamerad!"
Schneider seemed to realize this too, so he intensified his efforts to escape and finally managed to roll over on top of the ape-man and break free. Jumping to his feet, he ran for the window; but the ape-man was too fast for him, and before he could jump through the opening, a heavy hand landed on his shoulder, pulling him back and throwing him across the room to the opposite wall. There, Tarzan followed him, and once again they grappled, exchanging powerful blows, until Schneider screamed in a piercing voice, "Kamerad! Kamerad!"
Tarzan grasped the man by the throat and drew his hunting knife. Schneider's back was against the wall so that though his knees wobbled he was held erect by the ape-man. Tarzan brought the sharp point to the lower part of the German's abdomen.
Tarzan grabbed the man by the throat and pulled out his hunting knife. Schneider's back was against the wall, so even though his knees shook, the ape-man kept him standing. Tarzan pressed the sharp tip against the lower part of the German's stomach.
"Thus you slew my mate," he hissed in a terrible voice. "Thus shall you die!"
"That's how you killed my friend," he spat in a terrible voice. "That's how you'll die!"
The girl staggered forward. "Oh, God, no!" she cried. "Not that. You are too brave—you cannot be such a beast as that!"
The girl stumbled ahead. "Oh, God, no!" she yelled. "Not that. You’re too brave—you can’t be that much of a monster!"
Tarzan turned at her. "No," he said, "you are right, I cannot do it—I am no German," and he raised the point of his blade and sunk it deep into the putrid heart of Hauptmann Fritz Schneider, putting a bloody period to the Hun's last gasping cry: "I did not do it! She is not—"
Tarzan turned to her. "No," he said, "you’re right, I can’t do it—I’m not German," and he raised the tip of his blade and drove it deep into the rotten heart of Hauptmann Fritz Schneider, silencing the Hun's final, labored cry: "I didn't do it! She is not—"
Then Tarzan turned toward the girl and held out his hand. "Give me my locket," he said.
Then Tarzan turned to the girl and extended his hand. "Give me my locket," he said.
She pointed toward the dead officer. "He has it." Tarzan searched him and found the trinket. "Now you may give me the papers," he said to the girl, and without a word she handed him a folded document.
She pointed at the dead officer. "He has it." Tarzan searched him and found the trinket. "Now you can give me the papers," he said to the girl, and without a word, she handed him a folded document.
For a long time he stood looking at her before ho spoke again.
For a long time, he stood there looking at her before he spoke again.
"I came for you, too," he said. "It would be difficult to take you back from here and so I was going to kill you, as I have sworn to kill all your kind; but you were right when you said that I was not such a beast as that slayer of women. I could not slay him as he slew mine, nor can I slay you, who are a woman."
"I came for you, too," he said. "It would be tough to take you back from here, so I was planning to kill you, like I've promised to kill all your kind; but you were right when you said I’m not as much of a monster as that killer of women. I couldn't kill him the way he killed mine, and I can't kill you, who are a woman."
He crossed to the window, raised the sash and an instant later he had stepped out and disappeared into the night. And then Fräulein Bertha Kircher stepped quickly to the corpse upon the floor, slipped her hand inside the blouse and drew forth a little sheaf of papers which she tucked into her waist before she went to the window and called for help.
He walked over to the window, lifted the sash, and moments later he had stepped outside and vanished into the night. Then Fräulein Bertha Kircher quickly approached the body on the floor, reached inside the blouse, and pulled out a small bundle of papers that she slipped into her waist before going to the window and calling for help.
Chapter VII
When Blood Told
Tarzan of the Apes was disgusted. He had had the German spy, Bertha Kircher, in his power and had left her unscathed. It is true that he had slain Hauptmann Fritz Schneider, that Underlieutenant von Goss had died at his hands, and that he had otherwise wreaked vengeance upon the men of the German company who had murdered, pillaged, and raped at Tarzan's bungalow in the Waziri country. There was still another officer to be accounted for, but him he could not find. It was Lieutenant Obergatz he still sought, though vainly, for at last he learned that the man had been sent upon some special mission, whether in Africa or back to Europe Tarzan's informant either did not know or would not divulge.
Tarzan of the Apes was disgusted. He had captured the German spy, Bertha Kircher, and chose to let her go unharmed. It’s true that he had killed Hauptmann Fritz Schneider and Underlieutenant von Goss, and he had taken revenge on the German soldiers who had murdered, pillaged, and raped at his bungalow in Waziri country. There was still one more officer he needed to deal with, but he couldn’t find him. He was still searching for Lieutenant Obergatz, but eventually learned that the man had been sent on a special mission, though it was unclear whether that was in Africa or back in Europe; Tarzan's source didn’t know or chose not to share.
But the fact that he had permitted sentiment to stay his hand when he might so easily have put Bertha Kircher out of the way in the hotel at Wilhelmstal that night rankled in the ape-man's bosom. He was shamed by his weakness, and when he had handed the paper she had given him to the British chief of staff, even though the information it contained permitted the British to frustrate a German flank attack, he was still much dissatisfied with himself. And possibly the root of this dissatisfaction lay in the fact that he realized that were he again to have the same opportunity he would still find it as impossible to slay a woman as it had been in Wilhelmstal that night.
But the fact that he had allowed his feelings to hold him back when he could have easily gotten rid of Bertha Kircher at the hotel in Wilhelmstal that night bothered the ape-man deeply. He felt ashamed of his weakness, and even after he handed the paper she had given him to the British chief of staff—an action that helped the British thwart a German flank attack—he was still very unhappy with himself. Maybe the root of this dissatisfaction was that he knew if he had the same opportunity again, he would still find it just as impossible to kill a woman as he had that night in Wilhelmstal.
Tarzan blamed this weakness, as he considered it, upon his association with the effeminizing influences of civilization, for in the bottom of his savage heart he held in contempt both civilization and its representatives—the men and women of the civilized countries of the world. Always was he comparing their weaknesses, their vices, their hypocrisies, and their little vanities with the open, primitive ways of his ferocious jungle mates, and all the while there battled in that same big heart with these forces another mighty force—Tarzan's love and loyalty for his friends of the civilized world.
Tarzan thought this weakness, as he saw it, came from his connection to the softening effects of civilization. Deep down in his wild heart, he looked down on both civilization and its people—the men and women from the civilized parts of the world. He constantly compared their flaws, their vices, their hypocrisies, and their petty vanities to the honest, straightforward ways of his fierce jungle friends. Yet, at the same time, his big heart was torn by another powerful feeling—Tarzan's love and loyalty for his friends in the civilized world.
The ape-man, reared as he had been by savage beasts amid savage beasts, was slow to make friends. Acquaintances he numbered by the hundreds; but of friends he had few. These few he would have died for as, doubtless, they would have died for him; but there were none of these fighting with the British forces in East Africa, and so, sickened and disgusted by the sight of man waging his cruel and inhuman warfare, Tarzan determined to heed the insistent call of the remote jungle of his youth, for the Germans were now on the run and the war in East Africa was so nearly over that he realized that his further services would be of negligible value.
The ape-man, raised among wild animals, was slow to make friends. He had hundreds of acquaintances, but only a few true friends. He would have gladly died for those few, just as they would have done for him; however, none of them were fighting with the British forces in East Africa. Sickened and disgusted by the sight of humans engaging in cruel and brutal war, Tarzan decided to answer the strong pull of the remote jungle from his childhood, as the Germans were now retreating and the war in East Africa was almost over, making his continued efforts seem pointless.
Never regularly sworn into the service of the King, he was under no obligation to remain now that the moral obligation had been removed, and so it was that he disappeared from the British camp as mysteriously as he had appeared a few months before.
Never formally sworn into the service of the King, he was not obligated to stay now that the moral duty had been lifted, and so he vanished from the British camp as mysteriously as he had shown up a few months earlier.
More than once had Tarzan reverted to the primitive only to return again to civilization through love for his mate; but now that she was gone he felt that this time he had definitely departed forever from the haunts of man, and that he should live and die a beast among beasts even as he had been from infancy to maturity.
More than once, Tarzan had gone back to his primitive ways, only to come back to civilization because of his love for his mate; but now that she was gone, he felt that this time he had truly left the human world for good. He believed he would live and die as a beast among beasts, just as he had from childhood to adulthood.
Between him and his destination lay a trackless wilderness of untouched primeval savagery where, doubtless in many spots, his would be the first human foot to touch the virgin turf. Nor did this prospect dismay the Tarmangani—rather was it an urge and an inducement, for rich in his veins flowed that noble strain of blood that has made most of the earth's surface habitable for man.
Between him and his destination stretched an uncharted wilderness of untouched wildness where, in many places, his would be the first human foot to step on the pristine ground. Yet this prospect did not scare the Tarmangani—rather, it inspired and motivated him, for running through his veins was that noble bloodline that has enabled most of the earth’s surface to be livable for humanity.
The question of food and water that would have risen paramount in the mind of an ordinary man contemplating such an excursion gave Tarzan little concern. The wilderness was his natural habitat and woodcraft as inherent to him as breathing. Like other jungle animals he could scent water from a great distance and, where you or I might die of thirst, the ape-man would unerringly select the exact spot at which to dig and find water.
The issue of food and water that would have been a major concern for an ordinary person thinking about such a trip hardly bothered Tarzan. The wilderness was his home, and his survival skills were as natural to him as breathing. Like other jungle animals, he could smell water from far away, and while you or I might die of thirst, the ape-man would easily choose the perfect spot to dig and find water.
For several days Tarzan traversed a country rich in game and watercourses. He moved slowly, hunting and fishing, or again fraternizing or quarreling with the other savage denizens of the jungle. Now it was little Manu, the monkey, who chattered and scolded at the mighty Tarmangani and in the next breath warned him that Histah, the snake, lay coiled in the long grass just ahead. Of Manu Tarzan inquired concerning the great apes—the Mangani—and was told that few inhabited this part of the jungle, and that even these were hunting farther to the north this season of the year.
For several days, Tarzan wandered through a land teeming with wildlife and rivers. He moved slowly, hunting and fishing, or sometimes making friends or getting into arguments with the other wild creatures of the jungle. Sometimes it was little Manu, the monkey, who chattered and scolded the powerful Tarmangani, only to warn him moments later about Histah, the snake, lying coiled in the tall grass ahead. Tarzan asked Manu about the great apes—the Mangani—and learned that few lived in this part of the jungle, and those that did were hunting further north during this time of year.
"But there is Bolgani," said Manu. "Would you like to see Bolgani?"
"But there is Bolgani," Manu said. "Do you want to see Bolgani?"
Manu's tone was sneering, and Tarzan knew that it was because little Manu thought all creatures feared mighty Bolgani, the gorilla. Tarzan arched his great chest and struck it with a clinched fist. "I am Tarzan," he cried. "While Tarzan was yet a balu he slew a Bolgani. Tarzan seeks the Mangani, who are his brothers, but Bolgani he does not seek, so let Bolgani keep from the path of Tarzan."
Manu's tone was mocking, and Tarzan realized it was because little Manu believed that all creatures were afraid of the mighty Bolgani, the gorilla. Tarzan puffed out his chest and hit it with a clenched fist. "I am Tarzan," he shouted. "When Tarzan was still a cub, he killed a Bolgani. Tarzan is looking for the Mangani, who are his brothers, but he does not seek Bolgani, so let Bolgani stay out of Tarzan's way."
Little Manu, the monkey, was much impressed, for the way of the jungle is to boast and to believe. It was then that he condescended to tell Tarzan more of the Mangani.
Little Manu, the monkey, was really impressed, because in the jungle, everyone boasts and believes. That was when he decided to tell Tarzan more about the Mangani.
"They go there and there and there," he said, making a wide sweep with a brown hand first toward the north, then west, and then south again. "For there," and he pointed due west, "is much hunting; but between lies a great place where there is no food and no water, so they must go that way," and again he swung his hand through the half-circle that explained to Tarzan the great detour the apes made to come to their hunting ground to the west.
"They travel all over the place," he said, gesturing broadly with a brown hand first to the north, then to the west, and then south again. "Because over there," and he pointed directly west, "there's a lot of hunting; but in between is a huge area with no food and no water, so they have to take that route," and again he moved his hand in a half-circle that showed Tarzan the big detour the apes took to reach their hunting ground to the west.
That was all right for the Mangani, who are lazy and do not care to move rapidly; but for Tarzan the straight road would be the best. He would cross the dry country and come to the good hunting in a third of the time that it would take to go far to the north and circle back again. And so it was that he continued on toward the west, and crossing a range of low mountains came in sight of a broad plateau, rock strewn and desolate. Far in the distance he saw another range of mountains beyond which he felt must lie the hunting ground of the Mangani. There he would join them and remain for a while before continuing on toward the coast and the little cabin that his father had built beside the land-locked harbor at the jungle's edge.
That was fine for the Mangani, who were lazy and didn't want to move quickly; but for Tarzan, the straight path was the best option. He could cross the dry land and reach the good hunting grounds in a third of the time it would take to go far north and circle back. So, he continued westward, crossing a low mountain range and spotting a wide, rocky, desolate plateau. In the distance, he saw another mountain range beyond which he believed lay the Mangani's hunting grounds. There, he would join them and stay for a while before heading toward the coast and the small cabin his father had built by the sheltered harbor at the edge of the jungle.
Tarzan was full of plans. He would rebuild and enlarge the cabin of his birth, constructing storage houses where he would make the apes lay away food when it was plenty against the times that were lean—a thing no ape ever had dreamed of doing. And the tribe would remain always in the locality and he would be king again as he had in the past. He would try to teach them some of the better things that he had learned from man, yet knowing the ape-mind as only Tarzan could, he feared that his labors would be for naught.
Tarzan had a lot of plans. He wanted to rebuild and expand the cabin where he was born, creating storage places for the apes to store food when it was abundant for the times when it was scarce—something no ape had ever thought of doing. The tribe would stay in the same area, and he would be king again like he was in the past. He would try to teach them some of the better things he had learned from humans, although he understood the ape mind like no one else, and he worried that his efforts would be in vain.
The ape-man found the country he was crossing rough in the extreme, the roughest he ever had encountered. The plateau was cut by frequent canyons the passage of which often entailed hours of wearing effort. The vegetation was sparse and of a faded brown color that lent to the whole landscape a most depressing aspect. Great rocks were strewn in every direction as far as the eye could see, lying partially embedded in an impalpable dust that rose in clouds about him at every step. The sun beat down mercilessly out of a cloudless sky.
The ape-man found the land he was crossing extremely rough, the roughest he had ever faced. The plateau was crisscrossed by frequent canyons, which often required hours of exhausting effort to navigate. The vegetation was sparse and faded brown, giving the entire landscape a depressing feel. Huge rocks were scattered in all directions as far as he could see, partially covered by a fine dust that puffed up in clouds around him with every step he took. The sun blazed down mercilessly from a clear sky.
For a day Tarzan toiled across this now hateful land and at the going down of the sun the distant mountains to the west seemed no nearer than at morn. Never a sign of living thing had the ape-man seen, other than Ska, that bird of ill omen, that had followed him tirelessly since he had entered this parched waste.
For a day, Tarzan worked his way across this now despised land, and as the sun set, the distant mountains to the west looked just as far away as they did in the morning. He hadn’t seen any signs of life, except for Ska, the bird of bad luck, which had been following him relentlessly since he had entered this dry wasteland.
No littlest beetle that he might eat had given evidence that life of any sort existed here, and it was a hungry and thirsty Tarzan who lay down to rest in the evening. He decided now to push on during the cool of the night, for he realized that even mighty Tarzan had his limitations and that where there was no food one could not eat and where there was no water the greatest woodcraft in the world could find none. It was a totally new experience to Tarzan to find so barren and terrible a country in his beloved Africa. Even the Sahara had its oases; but this frightful world gave no indication of containing a square foot of hospitable ground.
No tiny beetle that he could eat had shown any sign that life existed here, and it was a hungry and thirsty Tarzan who lay down to rest in the evening. He decided to keep going during the cool of the night, realizing that even mighty Tarzan had his limits, and where there was no food one couldn't eat, and where there was no water, even the greatest survival skills in the world wouldn’t help. It was a completely new experience for Tarzan to encounter such a barren and harsh land in his beloved Africa. Even the Sahara had its oases, but this terrifying place showed no signs of having a single square foot of welcoming ground.
However, he had no misgivings but that he would fare forth into the wonder country of which little Manu had told him, though it was certain that he would do it with a dry skin and an empty belly. And so he fought on until daylight, when he again felt the need of rest. He was at the edge of another of those terrible canyons, the eighth he had crossed, whose precipitous sides would have taxed to the uttermost the strength of an untired man well fortified by food and water, and for the first time, as he looked down into the abyss and then at the opposite side that he must scale, misgivings began to assail his mind.
However, he had no doubts that he would head into the wonderland little Manu had told him about, even though it was clear he would do so with dry skin and an empty stomach. So, he continued to fight until morning, when he felt the need for rest again. He found himself at the edge of another one of those terrible canyons, the eighth he had crossed, whose steep sides would have challenged even a well-rested man who was well-fed and hydrated. For the first time, as he looked down into the chasm and then at the opposite side he had to climb, doubts started to creep into his mind.
He did not fear death—with the memory of his murdered mate still fresh in his mind he almost courted it, yet strong within him was that primal instinct of self-preservation—the battling force of life that would keep him an active contender against the Great Reaper until, fighting to the very last, he should be overcome by a superior power.
He didn't fear death—with the memory of his murdered partner still vivid in his mind, he almost embraced it. Yet deep inside him was that basic instinct for survival—the strong will to live that kept him in the fight against the Grim Reaper until he was finally defeated by a greater force.
A shadow swung slowly across the ground beside him, and looking up, the ape-man saw Ska, the vulture, wheeling a wide circle above him. The grim and persistent harbinger of evil aroused the man to renewed determination. He arose and approached the edge of the canyon, and then, wheeling, with his face turned upward toward the circling bird of prey, he bellowed forth the challenge of the bull ape.
A shadow glided slowly over the ground next to him, and looking up, the ape-man saw Ska, the vulture, circling wide above. The grim and relentless omen of misfortune ignited a fresh determination in the man. He stood up and walked to the edge of the canyon, then turned, lifting his face toward the circling bird of prey, and let out the challenge of the bull ape.
"I am Tarzan," he shouted, "Lord of the Jungle. Tarzan of the Apes is not for Ska, eater of carrion. Go back to the lair of Dango and feed off the leavings of the hyenas, for Tarzan will leave no bones for Ska to pick in this empty wilderness of death."
"I am Tarzan," he shouted, "Lord of the Jungle. Tarzan of the Apes is not for Ska, the scavenger. Go back to Dango's den and feed off the scraps of the hyenas, because Tarzan will leave no bones for Ska to pick in this desolate wasteland."
But before he reached the bottom of the canyon he again was forced to the realization that his great strength was waning, and when he dropped exhausted at the foot of the cliff and saw before him the opposite wall that must be scaled, he bared his fighting fangs and growled. For an hour he lay resting in the cool shade at the foot of the cliff. All about him reigned utter silence—the silence of the tomb. No fluttering birds, no humming insects, no scurrying reptiles relieved the deathlike stillness. This indeed was the valley of death. He felt the depressing influence of the horrible place settling down upon him; but he staggered to his feet, shaking himself like a great lion, for was he not still Tarzan, mighty Tarzan of the Apes? Yes, and Tarzan the mighty he would be until the last throb of that savage heart!
But before he reached the bottom of the canyon, he was once again forced to realize that his great strength was fading. When he dropped exhausted at the base of the cliff and saw the opposite wall he had to climb, he bared his teeth and growled. He lay resting in the cool shade at the foot of the cliff for an hour. All around him was complete silence—the silence of the grave. No fluttering birds, no buzzing insects, no scurrying reptiles broke the deathly stillness. This was truly the valley of death. He felt the oppressive atmosphere of this horrible place weighing down on him, but he staggered to his feet, shaking himself like a great lion, for wasn’t he still Tarzan, mighty Tarzan of the Apes? Yes, and he would remain Tarzan the mighty until the last beat of that wild heart!
As he crossed the floor of the canyon he saw something lying close to the base of the side wall he was approaching—something that stood out in startling contrast to all the surroundings and yet seemed so much a part and parcel of the somber scene as to suggest an actor amid the settings of a well-appointed stage, and, as though to carry out the allegory, the pitiless rays of flaming Kudu topped the eastern cliff, picking out the thing lying at the foot of the western wall like a giant spotlight.
As he walked across the canyon floor, he noticed something lying near the base of the wall he was heading toward—something that stood out sharply against the backdrop but also felt like a natural part of the dark scene, like an actor on a well-curated stage. To emphasize this imagery, the harsh rays of the blazing Kudu illuminated the eastern cliff, highlighting the object at the base of the western wall like a huge spotlight.
And as Tarzan came nearer he saw the bleached skull and bones of a human being about which were remnants of clothing and articles of equipment that, as he examined them, filled the ape-man with curiosity to such an extent that for a time he forgot his own predicament in contemplation of the remarkable story suggested by these mute evidences of a tragedy of a time long past.
And as Tarzan got closer, he saw a white skull and bones of a human, surrounded by bits of clothing and gear. As he looked them over, the ape-man became so curious that he momentarily forgot his own situation, lost in thought about the incredible story hinted at by these silent reminders of a long-ago tragedy.
The bones were in a fair state of preservation and indicated by their intactness that the flesh had probably been picked from them by vultures as none was broken; but the pieces of equipment bore out the suggestion of their great age. In this protected spot where there were no frosts and evidently but little rainfall, the bones might have lain for ages without disintegrating, for there were here no other forces to scatter or disturb them.
The bones were fairly well preserved and their intact condition suggested that vultures had likely picked the flesh off them, as none were broken; however, the equipment showed signs of great age. In this sheltered area, where there were no frosts and seemingly little rainfall, the bones could have been lying for ages without breaking down, since there were no other forces to scatter or disturb them.
Near the skeleton lay a helmet of hammered brass and a corroded breastplate of steel while at one side was a long, straight sword in its scabbard and an ancient harquebus. The bones were those of a large man—a man of wondrous strength and vitality Tarzan knew he must have been to have penetrated thus far through the dangers of Africa with such a ponderous yet at the same time futile armament.
Near the skeleton was a helmet made of hammered brass and a rusted steel breastplate, while on one side lay a long, straight sword in its scabbard and an old gun. The bones belonged to a large man—Tarzan realized he must have been incredibly strong and full of life to have ventured this deep into the dangers of Africa with such a heavy but ultimately useless set of weapons.
The ape-man felt a sense of deep admiration for this nameless adventurer of a bygone day. What a brute of a man he must have been and what a glorious tale of battle and kaleidoscopic vicissitudes of fortune must once have been locked within that whitened skull! Tarzan stooped to examine the shreds of clothing that still lay about the bones. Every particle of leather had disappeared, doubtless eaten by Ska. No boots remained, if the man had worn boots, but there were several buckles scattered about suggesting that a great part of his trappings had been of leather, while just beneath the bones of one hand lay a metal cylinder about eight inches long and two inches in diameter. As Tarzan picked it up he saw that it had been heavily lacquered and had withstood the slight ravages of time so well as to be in as perfect a state of preservation today as it had been when its owner dropped into his last, long sleep perhaps centuries ago.
The ape-man felt a deep admiration for this unnamed adventurer from a past era. He must have been quite the formidable man, and what an incredible story of battles and countless twists of fate must have once been hidden within that bleached skull! Tarzan bent down to look at the scraps of clothing still scattered around the bones. Every piece of leather was gone, likely consumed by Ska. No boots were left, if the man had ever worn any, but there were several buckles lying around, suggesting that much of his gear had been leather. Just beneath one of the hands, he found a metal cylinder about eight inches long and two inches in diameter. As Tarzan picked it up, he noticed it was heavily lacquered and had survived the passage of time so well that it was in perfect condition today, just as it had been when its owner settled into his final, long sleep perhaps centuries ago.
As he examined it he discovered that one end was closed with a friction cover which a little twisting force soon loosened and removed, revealing within a roll of parchment which the ape-man removed and opened, disclosing a number of age-yellowed sheets closely written upon in a fine hand in a language which he guessed to be Spanish but which he could not decipher. Upon the last sheet was a roughly drawn map with numerous reference points marked upon it, all unintelligible to Tarzan, who, after a brief examination of the papers, returned them to their metal case, replaced the top and was about to toss the little cylinder to the ground beside the mute remains of its former possessor when some whim of curiosity unsatisfied prompted him to slip it into the quiver with his arrows, though as he did so it was with the grim thought that possibly centuries hence it might again come to the sight of man beside his own bleached bones.
As he looked at it, he noticed one end was sealed with a friction cover, which he was able to loosen and remove with a little twisting. Inside, he found a roll of parchment that he pulled out and opened, revealing several age-yellowed sheets filled with fine handwriting in a language he thought was Spanish but couldn't understand. The last sheet included a rough map with lots of reference points marked on it, all meaningless to Tarzan. After quickly checking the papers, he put them back in the metal case, replaced the top, and was about to throw the small cylinder to the ground next to the lifeless remains of its previous owner when a sudden curiosity made him slip it into the quiver with his arrows. He did so with the grim thought that perhaps centuries later, it might be found again beside his own bleached bones.
And then, with a parting glance at the ancient skeleton, he turned to the task of ascending the western wall of the canyon. Slowly and with many rests he dragged his weakening body upwards. Again and again he slipped back from sheer exhaustion and would have fallen to the floor of the canyon but for merest chance. How long it took him to scale that frightful wall he could not have told, and when at last he dragged himself over the top it was to lie weak and gasping, too spent to rise or even to move a few inches farther from the perilous edge of the chasm.
And then, with one last look at the ancient skeleton, he turned to the job of climbing the western wall of the canyon. Slowly, taking many breaks, he pulled his tired body upward. Time and again, he slipped back from sheer exhaustion and almost fell to the canyon floor if it weren't for sheer luck. He couldn’t say how long it took him to climb that terrifying wall, and when he finally pulled himself over the top, he collapsed, weak and gasping, too exhausted to get up or even to move a few inches further from the dangerous edge of the chasm.
At last he arose, very slowly and with evident effort gaining his knees first and then staggering to his feet, yet his indomitable will was evidenced by a sudden straightening of his shoulders and a determined shake of his head as he lurched forward on unsteady legs to take up his valiant fight for survival. Ahead he scanned the rough landscape for sign of another canyon which he knew would spell inevitable doom. The western hills rose closer now though weirdly unreal as they seemed to dance in the sunlight as though mocking him with their nearness at the moment that exhaustion was about to render them forever unattainable.
At last, he got up, slowly and clearly struggling, first getting onto his knees and then staggering to his feet. Yet his strong will showed as he straightened his shoulders and shook his head determinedly, lurching forward on unsteady legs to continue his brave fight for survival. He scanned the rugged landscape ahead for signs of another canyon, which he knew would mean certain death. The western hills loomed closer now, oddly unreal as they seemed to sway in the sunlight, almost mocking him with their proximity just when exhaustion was about to make them forever out of reach.
Beyond them he knew must be the fertile hunting grounds of which Manu had told. Even if no canyon intervened, his chances of surmounting even low hills seemed remote should he have the fortune to reach their base; but with another canyon hope was dead. Above them Ska still circled, and it seemed to the ape-man that the ill-omened bird hovered ever lower and lower as though reading in that failing gait the nearing of the end, and through cracked lips Tarzan growled out his defiance.
Beyond them he knew must be the rich hunting grounds Manu had mentioned. Even if there was no canyon in the way, his chances of getting over even low hills felt small if he somehow made it to their base; but with another canyon, hope was gone. Above them, Ska still circled, and it seemed to the ape-man that the ominous bird hovered lower and lower, as if sensing the end was near, and through his cracked lips, Tarzan growled out his defiance.
Mile after mile Tarzan of the Apes put slowly behind him, borne up by sheer force of will where a lesser man would have lain down to die and rest forever tired muscles whose every move was an agony of effort; but at last his progress became practically mechanical—he staggered on with a dazed mind that reacted numbly to a single urge—on, on, on! The hills were now but a dim, ill-defined blur ahead. Sometimes he forgot that they were hills, and again he wondered vaguely why he must go on forever through all this torture endeavoring to overtake them—the fleeing, elusive hills. Presently he began to hate them and there formed within his half-delirious brain the hallucination that the hills were German hills, that they had slain someone dear to him, whom he could never quite recall, and that he was pursuing to slay them.
Mile after mile, Tarzan of the Apes pushed on, driven by sheer willpower when a weaker person would have just collapsed and rested tired muscles that ached with every movement. But eventually, his progress became almost automatic—he moved forward with a foggy mind, responding numbly to a single instinct—keep going, keep going, keep going! The hills ahead were just a faint, blurry outline. Sometimes he forgot they were hills, and other times he vaguely questioned why he had to keep pushing through all this pain, trying to catch up to them—the elusive, fleeing hills. Soon, he began to resent them, and in his half-dazed mind, he started to imagine that the hills were German hills, that they had taken someone precious from him, someone he could never fully remember, and that he was chasing them to exact revenge.
This idea, growing, appeared to give him strength—a new and revivifying purpose—so that for a time he no longer staggered; but went forward steadily with head erect. Once he stumbled and fell, and when he tried to rise he found that he could not—that his strength was so far gone that he could only crawl forward on his hands and knees for a few yards and then sink down again to rest.
This idea, growing, seemed to give him strength—a fresh and energizing purpose—so that for a while he no longer wavered; instead, he moved forward steadily with his head held high. Once he tripped and fell, and when he tried to get up, he realized he couldn’t—that he was so exhausted that he could only crawl forward on his hands and knees for a short distance before collapsing again to rest.
It was during one of these frequent periods of utter exhaustion that he heard the flap of dismal wings close above him. With his remaining strength he turned himself over on his back to see Ska wheel quickly upward. With the sight Tarzan's mind cleared for a while.
It was during one of these frequent moments of complete exhaustion that he heard the flutter of bleak wings right above him. Using his remaining strength, he turned onto his back to see Ska soar quickly upward. With that sight, Tarzan's mind cleared for a moment.
"Is the end so near as that?" he thought. "Does Ska know that I am so near gone that he dares come down and perch upon my carcass?" And even then a grim smile touched those swollen lips as into the savage mind came a sudden thought—the cunning of the wild beast at bay. Closing his eyes he threw a forearm across them to protect them from Ska's powerful beak and then he lay very still and waited.
"Is the end really this close?" he thought. "Does Ska know I'm so close to death that he has the nerve to come down and land on my body?" Even then, a grim smile flickered across his swollen lips as a sudden thought hit him—the cleverness of a cornered wild animal. He closed his eyes, put his forearm over them to shield them from Ska's strong beak, and then lay very still and waited.
It was restful lying there, for the sun was now obscured by clouds and Tarzan was very tired. He feared that he might sleep and something told him that if he did he would never awaken, and so he concentrated all his remaining powers upon the one thought of remaining awake. Not a muscle moved—to Ska, circling above, it became evident that the end had come—that at last he should be rewarded for his long vigil.
It felt peaceful lying there, as the sun was now hidden by clouds and Tarzan was extremely tired. He worried that if he fell asleep, he might never wake up, so he focused all his remaining energy on the single thought of staying awake. Not a muscle stirred—To Ska, flying above, it became clear that the end had arrived—that he would finally be rewarded for his long watch.
Circling slowly he dropped closer and closer to the dying man. Why did not Tarzan move? Had he indeed been overcome by the sleep of exhaustion, or was Ska right—had death at last claimed that mighty body? Was that great, savage heart stilled forever? It is unthinkable.
Circling slowly, he descended closer and closer to the dying man. Why wasn’t Tarzan moving? Had he truly been overcome by exhaustion, or was Ska right—had death finally claimed that powerful body? Was that great, wild heart silenced forever? It’s hard to believe.
Ska, filled with suspicions, circled warily. Twice he almost alighted upon the great, naked breast only to wheel suddenly away; but the third time his talons touched the brown skin. It was as though the contact closed an electric circuit that instantaneously vitalized the quiet clod that had lain motionless so long. A brown hand swept downward from the brown forehead and before Ska could raise a wing in flight he was in the clutches of his intended victim.
Ska, full of doubts, circled cautiously. Twice he nearly landed on the large, bare chest but quickly flew away; but the third time, his claws grazed the brown skin. It felt like that touch completed an electric circuit that instantly brought the still body, which had been lying motionless for so long, to life. A brown hand swooped down from the brown forehead, and before Ska could lift a wing to escape, he was caught by his intended target.
Ska fought, but he was no match for even a dying Tarzan, and a moment later the ape-man's teeth closed upon the carrion-eater. The flesh was coarse and tough and gave off an unpleasant odor and a worse taste; but it was food and the blood was drink and Tarzan only an ape at heart and a dying ape into the bargain—dying of starvation and thirst.
Ska fought, but he was no match for even a weakened Tarzan, and a moment later, the ape-man's teeth sank into the carrion-eater. The meat was rough and tough, giving off a bad smell and an even worse taste; but it was food, and the blood was something to drink. Tarzan was just an ape at heart, and a dying one at that—dying from hunger and thirst.
Even mentally weakened as he was the ape-man was still master of his appetite and so he ate but sparingly, saving the rest, and then, feeling that he now could do so safely, he turned upon his side and slept.
Even though he was mentally weakened, the ape-man still controlled his appetite, so he ate just enough, saving the rest for later. Then, feeling that he could safely do so, he turned onto his side and went to sleep.
Rain, beating heavily upon his body, awakened him and sitting up he cupped his hands and caught the precious drops which he transferred to his parched throat. Only a little he got at a time; but that was best. The few mouthfuls of Ska that he had eaten, together with the blood and rain water and the sleep had refreshed him greatly and put new strength into his tired muscles.
Rain, pounding down on him, woke him up and, sitting up, he cupped his hands to catch the precious drops and brought them to his dry throat. He only managed to get a little at a time, but that was enough. The small bites of Ska he had eaten, along with the blood, rainwater, and some sleep, had refreshed him a lot and gave new strength to his weary muscles.
Now he could see the hills again and they were close and, though there was no sun, the world looked bright and cheerful, for Tarzan knew that he was saved. The bird that would have devoured him, and the providential rain, had saved him at the very moment that death seemed inevitable.
Now he could see the hills again, and they were nearby. Even though there was no sun, the world appeared bright and cheerful because Tarzan knew he was safe. The bird that would have eaten him, along with the timely rain, had rescued him just when death seemed unavoidable.
Again partaking of a few mouthfuls of the unsavory flesh of Ska, the vulture, the ape-man arose with something of his old force and set out with steady gait toward the hills of promise rising alluringly ahead. Darkness fell before he reached them; but he kept on until he felt the steeply rising ground that proclaimed his arrival at the base of the hills proper, and then he lay down and waited until morning should reveal the easiest passage to the land beyond. The rain had ceased, but the sky still was overcast so that even his keen eyes could not penetrate the darkness farther than a few feet. And there he slept, after eating again of what remained of Ska, until the morning sun awakened him with a new sense of strength and well-being.
Again eating a few bites of the tough meat of Ska, the vulture, the ape-man stood up with a bit of his old strength and walked steadily toward the inviting hills ahead. Darkness fell before he reached them, but he continued on until he felt the steep ground that marked the base of the hills, and then he lay down to wait until morning would show him the easiest way to the land beyond. The rain had stopped, but the sky was still cloudy, so even his sharp eyes couldn't see farther than a few feet in the dark. And there he slept, after eating more of what was left of Ska, until the morning sun woke him up, bringing a fresh sense of strength and well-being.
And so at last he came through the hills out of the valley of death into a land of park-like beauty, rich in game. Below him lay a deep valley through the center of which dense jungle vegetation marked the course of a river beyond which a primeval forest extended for miles to terminate at last at the foot of lofty, snow-capped mountains. It was a land that Tarzan never had looked upon before, nor was it likely that the foot of another white man ever had touched it unless, possibly, in some long-gone day the adventurer whose skeleton he had found bleaching in the canyon had traversed it.
And so at last he came through the hills out of the valley of death into a beautifully park-like land, rich with wildlife. Below him stretched a deep valley, where dense jungle plants traced the path of a river, beyond which a primeval forest extended for miles, ending at the foot of tall, snow-capped mountains. It was a place Tarzan had never seen before, and it was unlikely that any other white man had ever stepped foot there, except maybe long ago when the adventurer whose skeleton he had found bleaching in the canyon had crossed it.
Chapter VIII
Tarzan and the Great Apes
Three days the ape-man spent in resting and recuperating, eating fruits and nuts and the smaller animals that were most easily bagged, and upon the fourth he set out to explore the valley and search for the great apes. Time was a negligible factor in the equation of life—it was all the same to Tarzan if he reached the west coast in a month or a year or three years. All time was his and all Africa. His was absolute freedom—the last tie that had bound him to civilization and custom had been severed. He was alone but he was not exactly lonely. The greater part of his life had been spent thus, and though there was no other of his kind, he was at all times surrounded by the jungle peoples for whom familiarity had bred no contempt within his breast. The least of them interested him, and, too, there were those with whom he always made friends easily, and there were his hereditary enemies whose presence gave a spice to life that might otherwise have become humdrum and monotonous.
For three days, the ape-man rested and recovered, eating fruits, nuts, and small animals he could easily catch. On the fourth day, he decided to explore the valley and search for the great apes. Time didn’t matter much to him—it was the same whether he reached the west coast in a month, a year, or three years. All the time belonged to him, and so did all of Africa. He experienced absolute freedom—he had completely severed the last ties that connected him to civilization and its customs. He was alone, but he didn’t feel lonely. Most of his life had been spent this way, and even though he was the only one of his kind, he was constantly surrounded by the jungle people, who he held no contempt for. He found even the least of them interesting, and there were always some he made friends with easily, as well as his hereditary enemies, whose presence added excitement to his life that might have otherwise become dull and monotonous.
And so it was that on the fourth day he set out to explore the valley and search for his fellow-apes. He had proceeded southward for a short distance when his nostrils were assailed by the scent of man, of Gomangani, the black man. There were many of them, and mixed with their scent was another-that of a she Tarmangani.
And so it was that on the fourth day he set out to explore the valley and look for his fellow apes. He had traveled south for a little while when he was hit by the smell of humans, of Gomangani, the black man. There were a lot of them, and mixed with their scent was another—that of a female Tarmangani.
Swinging through the trees Tarzan approached the authors of these disturbing scents. He came warily from the flank, but paying no attention to the wind, for he knew that man with his dull senses could apprehend him only through his eyes or ears and then only when comparatively close. Had he been stalking Numa or Sheeta he would have circled about until his quarry was upwind from him, thus taking practically all the advantage up to the very moment that he came within sight or hearing; but in the stalking of the dull clod, man, he approached with almost contemptuous indifference, so that all the jungle about him knew that he was passing—all but the men he stalked.
Swinging through the trees, Tarzan approached the sources of these unsettling scents. He moved carefully from the side, ignoring the wind because he knew that a human, with their dull senses, could only notice him through their eyes or ears, and only when he was relatively close. If he had been tracking Numa or Sheeta, he would have circled around until his target was upwind from him, maximizing his advantage right up until he was within sight or hearing. But while stalking the dull creature that is man, he approached with almost a scornful indifference, so that the entire jungle around him was aware of his presence—all except the men he was tracking.
From the dense foliage of a great tree he watched them pass—a disreputable mob of blacks, some garbed in the uniform of German East African native troops, others wearing a single garment of the same uniform, while many had reverted to the simple dress of their forbears—approximating nudity. There were many black women with them, laughing and talking as they kept pace with the men, all of whom were armed with German rifles and equipped with German belts and ammunition.
From the thick leaves of a large tree, he watched them go by—a sketchy group of Black individuals, some dressed in the uniform of German East African native troops, others wearing just a piece of the same uniform, while many had returned to the basic clothing of their ancestors—almost naked. There were numerous Black women with them, laughing and chatting as they walked alongside the men, all of whom were carrying German rifles and had German belts and ammunition.
There were no white officers there, but it was none the less apparent to Tarzan that these men were from some German native command, and he guessed that they had slain their officers and taken to the jungle with their women, or had stolen some from native villages through which they must have passed. It was evident that they were putting as much ground between themselves and the coast as possible and doubtless were seeking some impenetrable fastness of the vast interior where they might inaugurate a reign of terror among the primitively armed inhabitants and by raiding, looting, and rape grow rich in goods and women at the expense of the district upon which they settled themselves.
There were no white officers around, but it was still clear to Tarzan that these men were part of some German native unit. He figured they had killed their officers and escaped into the jungle with their women, or had kidnapped some from the local villages they must have passed through. It was obvious they were trying to put as much distance between themselves and the coast as possible, likely looking for some hidden area deep in the interior where they could start a reign of terror among the poorly armed locals. By raiding, looting, and committing violence, they aimed to become wealthy in both goods and women at the expense of the area they settled in.
Between two of the black women marched a slender white girl. She was hatless and with torn and disheveled clothing that had evidently once been a trim riding habit. Her coat was gone and her waist half torn from her body. Occasionally and without apparent provocation one or the other of the Negresses struck or pushed her roughly. Tarzan watched through half-closed eyes. His first impulse was to leap among them and bear the girl from their cruel clutches. He had recognized her immediately and it was because of this fact that he hesitated.
Between two of the Black women walked a slim white girl. She wasn't wearing a hat and her clothes were torn and messy, obviously once a neat riding outfit. Her coat was missing and her waist was half ripped from her body. Occasionally, without any clear reason, one of the women would hit or shove her roughly. Tarzan watched with half-closed eyes. His first instinct was to jump in and rescue the girl from their cruel grip. He recognized her immediately, and it was because of this that he hesitated.
What was it to Tarzan of the Apes what fate befell this enemy spy? He had been unable to kill her himself because of an inherent weakness that would not permit him to lay hands upon a woman, all of which of course had no bearing upon what others might do to her. That her fate would now be infinitely more horrible than the quick and painless death that the ape-man would have meted to her only interested Tarzan to the extent that the more frightful the end of a German the more in keeping it would be with what they all deserved.
What did it matter to Tarzan of the Apes what happened to this enemy spy? He couldn't kill her himself because he had a natural weakness that wouldn't let him hurt a woman, but that didn’t mean others wouldn’t do anything to her. The fact that her fate would be far worse than the quick and painless death he would have given her only interested Tarzan because the more horrific the end for a German, the more it matched what they all deserved.
And so he let the blacks pass with Fräulein Bertha Kircher in their midst, or at least until the last straggling warrior suggested to his mind the pleasures of black-baiting—an amusement and a sport in which he had grown ever more proficient since that long-gone day when Kulonga, the son of Mbonga, the chief, had cast his unfortunate spear at Kala, the ape-man's foster mother.
And so he allowed the Black people to pass by with Fräulein Bertha Kircher among them, or at least until the last wandering warrior reminded him of the thrill of black-baiting—a pastime he had become increasingly skilled at since that long-ago day when Kulonga, the son of Mbonga, the chief, had thrown his ill-fated spear at Kala, the ape-man's foster mother.
The last man, who must have stopped for some purpose, was fully a quarter of a mile in rear of the party. He was hurrying to catch up when Tarzan saw him, and as he passed beneath the tree in which the ape-man perched above the trail, a silent noose dropped deftly about his neck. The main body still was in plain sight, and as the frightened man voiced a piercing shriek of terror, they looked back to see his body rise as though by magic straight into the air and disappear amidst the leafy foliage above.
The last guy, who probably stopped for some reason, was about a quarter of a mile behind the group. He was rushing to catch up when Tarzan noticed him, and as he went under the tree where the ape-man was hiding, a silent noose dropped skillfully around his neck. The main group was still clearly visible, and when the scared man let out a blood-curdling scream, they turned to see his body shoot up into the air as if by magic and vanish among the leaves above.
For a moment the blacks stood paralyzed by astonishment and fear; but presently the burly sergeant, Usanga, who led them, started back along the trail at a run, calling to the others to follow him. Loading their guns as they came the blacks ran to succor their fellow, and at Usanga's command they spread into a thin line that presently entirely surrounded the tree into which their comrade had vanished.
For a moment, the Black men stood frozen in shock and fear; but soon, the burly Sergeant Usanga, who was leading them, turned and ran back along the trail, telling the others to follow him. As they loaded their guns, the men rushed to help their comrade, and at Usanga's command, they formed a thin line that completely surrounded the tree where their friend had disappeared.
Usanga called but received no reply; then he advanced slowly with rifle at the ready, peering up into the tree. He could see no one—nothing. The circle closed in until fifty blacks were searching among the branches with their keen eyes. What had become of their fellow? They had seen him rise into the tree and since then many eyes had been fastened upon the spot, yet there was no sign of him. One, more venturesome than his fellows, volunteered to climb into the tree and investigate. He was gone but a minute or two and when he dropped to earth again he swore that there was no sign of a creature there.
Usanga called out but got no response; then he moved slowly forward with his rifle ready, looking up into the tree. He couldn't see anyone—nothing. The group closed in until fifty people were searching among the branches with sharp eyes. What happened to their friend? They had watched him climb into the tree, and since then many eyes had stayed fixed on that spot, yet there was no sign of him. One, bolder than the others, volunteered to climb the tree and check it out. He was gone only a minute or two, and when he dropped back to the ground, he insisted that there was no sign of any creature there.
Perplexed, and by this time a bit awed, the blacks drew slowly away from the spot and with many backward glances and less laughing continued upon their journey until, when about a mile beyond the spot at which their fellow had disappeared, those in the lead saw him peering from behind a tree at one side of the trail just in front of them. With shouts to their companions that he had been found they ran forwards; but those who were first to reach the tree stopped suddenly and shrank back, their eyes rolling fearfully first in one direction and then in another as though they expected some nameless horror to leap out upon them.
Confused and a bit impressed, the group slowly moved away from the spot, glancing back and laughing less as they continued on their journey. After traveling about a mile past where their companion had disappeared, those in the lead noticed him peeking out from behind a tree off to the side of the trail ahead of them. Shouting to their friends that they had found him, they rushed forward; but the first ones to reach the tree suddenly stopped and recoiled, their eyes darting nervously from side to side as if they were anticipating some unknown fright to spring out at them.
Nor was their terror without foundation. Impaled upon the end of a broken branch the head of their companion was propped behind the tree so that it appeared to be looking out at them from the opposite side of the bole.
Nor was their fear unfounded. Impaled on the end of a broken branch, the head of their companion was propped up behind the tree so that it seemed to be watching them from the other side of the trunk.
It was then that many wished to turn back, arguing that they had offended some demon of the wood upon whose preserve they had trespassed; but Usanga refused to listen to them, assuring them that inevitable torture and death awaited them should they return and fall again into the hands of their cruel German masters. At last his reasoning prevailed to the end that a much-subdued and terrified band moved in a compact mass, like a drove of sheep, forward through the valley and there were no stragglers.
It was then that many wanted to turn back, claiming they had angered some demon of the forest whose territory they had invaded; but Usanga wouldn’t listen to them, assuring them that certain torture and death awaited them if they returned and fell back into the hands of their cruel German masters. In the end, his argument won out, and a much-diminished and terrified group moved together as a compact mass, like a flock of sheep, forward through the valley, and there were no stragglers.
It is a happy characteristic of the Negro race, which they hold in common with little children, that their spirits seldom remain depressed for a considerable length of time after the immediate cause of depression is removed, and so it was that in half an hour Usanga's band was again beginning to take on to some extent its former appearance of carefree lightheartedness. Thus were the heavy clouds of fear slowly dissipating when a turn in the trail brought them suddenly upon the headless body of their erstwhile companion lying directly in their path, and they were again plunged into the depth of fear and gloomy forebodings.
It’s a joyful trait of the Black community, which they share with young children, that their spirits rarely stay down for long after the immediate reason for their sadness is gone. Within half an hour, Usanga's group was starting to regain some of its previous carefree attitude. Just as the heavy clouds of fear were beginning to lift, a turn in the trail unexpectedly revealed the headless body of their former companion lying right in their way, plunging them back into deep fear and dark thoughts.
So utterly inexplicable and uncanny had the entire occurrence been that there was not a one of them who could find a ray of comfort penetrating the dead blackness of its ominous portent. What had happened to one of their number each conceived as being a wholly possible fate for himself—in fact quite his probable fate. If such a thing could happen in broad daylight what frightful thing might not fall to their lot when night had enshrouded them in her mantle of darkness. They trembled in anticipation.
So completely baffling and eerie had the whole event been that not a single one of them could find any comfort breaking through the overwhelming darkness of its threatening significance. What had happened to one of their group each imagined could easily be their own fate—in fact, quite likely their fate. If such a thing could occur in broad daylight, what terrifying thing could happen to them when night wrapped them in its cover of darkness? They shivered in fear.
The white girl in their midst was no less mystified than they; but far less moved, since sudden death was the most merciful fate to which she might now look forward. So far she had been subjected to nothing worse than the petty cruelties of the women, while, on the other hand, it had alone been the presence of the women that had saved her from worse treatment at the hands of some of the men—notably the brutal, black sergeant, Usanga. His own woman was of the party—a veritable giantess, a virago of the first magnitude—and she was evidently the only thing in the world of which Usanga stood in awe. Even though she was particularly cruel to the young woman, the latter believed that she was her sole protection from the degraded black tyrant.
The white girl in their midst was just as confused as they were, but far less affected since sudden death was the kindest outcome she could hope for. So far, she had only faced the petty cruelty of the women, while ironically, it was their presence that had kept her from worse treatment by some of the men—especially the brutal black sergeant, Usanga. His partner was with the group—a true giantess, a fierce woman of impressive strength—and she seemed to be the only thing that Usanga feared. Even though she was especially harsh towards the young woman, the latter believed that she was her only shield from the despotic black tyrant.
Late in the afternoon the band came upon a small palisaded village of thatched huts set in a clearing in the jungle close beside a placid river. At their approach the villagers came pouring out, and Usanga advanced with two of his warriors to palaver with the chief. The experiences of the day had so shaken the nerves of the black sergeant that he was ready to treat with these people rather than take their village by force of arms, as would ordinarily have been his preference; but now a vague conviction influenced him that there watched over this part of the jungle a powerful demon who wielded miraculous power for evil against those who offended him. First Usanga would learn how these villagers stood with this savage god and if they had his good will Usanga would be most careful to treat them with kindness and respect.
Late in the afternoon, the band came across a small fenced village with thatched huts in a clearing in the jungle, right next to a calm river. As they approached, the villagers rushed out, and Usanga stepped forward with two of his warriors to talk with the chief. The events of the day had rattled the nerves of the black sergeant so much that he preferred to negotiate with these people rather than seize their village by force, which he normally would have chosen. However, he now felt a vague belief that a powerful demon watched over this part of the jungle, using miraculous evil power against those who crossed him. First, Usanga wanted to find out what the villagers' relationship was with this savage god, and if they had his favor, Usanga would be very careful to treat them with kindness and respect.
At the palaver it developed that the village chief had food, goats, and fowl which he would be glad to dispose of for a proper consideration; but as the consideration would have meant parting with precious rifles and ammunition, or the very clothing from their backs, Usanga began to see that after all it might be forced upon him to wage war to obtain food.
At the meeting, it came out that the village chief had food, goats, and chickens that he would be happy to sell for a fair price; however, since that price would involve giving up valuable rifles and ammunition, or even the clothes on their backs, Usanga realized that he might have no choice but to go to war to get food.
A happy solution was arrived at by a suggestion of one of his men—that the soldiers go forth the following day and hunt for the villagers, bringing them in so much fresh meat in return for their hospitality. This the chief agreed to, stipulating the kind and quantity of game to be paid in return for flour, goats, and fowl, and a certain number of huts that were to be turned over to the visitors. The details having been settled after an hour or more of that bickering argument of which the native African is so fond, the newcomers entered the village where they were assigned to huts.
A happy solution was reached through a suggestion from one of his men—that the soldiers should go out the next day to hunt for the villagers, bringing back fresh meat as a thank you for their hospitality. The chief agreed to this, specifying the type and amount of game that would be exchanged for flour, goats, and chickens, as well as a certain number of huts that would be given to the visitors. After about an hour of the typical bickering that native Africans often enjoy, the newcomers entered the village and were assigned to huts.
Bertha Kircher found herself alone in a small hut close to the palisade at the far end of the village street, and though she was neither bound nor guarded, she was assured by Usanga that she could not escape the village without running into almost certain death in the jungle, which the villagers assured them was infested by lions of great size and ferocity. "Be good to Usanga," he concluded, "and no harm will befall you. I will come again to see you after the others are asleep. Let us be friends."
Bertha Kircher was by herself in a small hut near the palisade at the end of the village street. Although she wasn’t tied up or being watched, Usanga told her that she wouldn’t be able to escape the village without facing almost certain death in the jungle, which the villagers claimed was filled with large and fierce lions. "Treat Usanga kindly," he finished, "and nothing bad will happen to you. I'll come back to check on you after the others go to sleep. Let’s be friends."
As the brute left her the girl's frame was racked by a convulsive shudder as she sank to the floor of the hut and covered her face with her hands. She realized now why the women had not been left to guard her. It was the work of the cunning Usanga, but would not his woman suspect something of his intentions? She was no fool and, further, being imbued with insane jealousy she was ever looking for some overt act upon the part of her ebon lord. Bertha Kircher felt that only she might save her and that she would save her if word could be but gotten to her. But how?
As the brute walked away, the girl trembled violently and dropped to the floor of the hut, covering her face with her hands. She now understood why the women hadn’t been left to watch over her. This was the work of the clever Usanga, but wouldn’t his woman suspect his true intentions? She wasn't naive, and on top of that, driven by intense jealousy, she was always on the lookout for any signs from her dark-skinned lover. Bertha Kircher felt that only she could save her, and she would if only she could get a message to her. But how?
Left alone and away from the eyes of her captors for the first time since the previous night, the girl immediately took advantage of the opportunity to assure herself that the papers she had taken from the body of Hauptmann Fritz Schneider were still safely sewn inside one of her undergarments.
Left alone and out of sight of her captors for the first time since the night before, the girl quickly seized the chance to check that the papers she had taken from Hauptmann Fritz Schneider's body were still securely sewn into one of her undergarments.
Alas! Of what value could they now ever be to her beloved country? But habit and loyalty were so strong within her that she still clung to the determined hope of eventually delivering the little packet to her chief.
Alas! What value could they possibly hold for her beloved country now? But her habits and loyalty were so strong that she still held onto the firm hope of eventually delivering the small package to her leader.
The natives seemed to have forgotten her existence—no one came near the hut, not even to bring her food. She could hear them at the other end of the village laughing and yelling and knew that they were celebrating with food and native beer—knowledge which only increased her apprehension. To be prisoner in a native village in the very heart of an unexplored region of Central Africa—the only white woman among a band of drunken Negroes! The very thought appalled her. Yet there was a slight promise in the fact that she had so far been unmolested—the promise that they might, indeed, have forgotten her and that soon they might become so hopelessly drunk as to be harmless.
The locals seemed to have forgotten she was there—no one approached the hut, not even to bring her food. She could hear them laughing and shouting at the other end of the village, and she knew they were celebrating with food and local beer—understanding that only heightened her anxiety. Being trapped in a native village in the middle of an uncharted part of Central Africa—the only white woman among a group of drunken people! Just the thought horrified her. Yet, there was a small glimmer of hope in the fact that she had not been disturbed so far—the hope that they might actually have forgotten her and that soon they might get so intoxicated that they would become harmless.
Darkness had fallen and still no one came. The girl wondered if she dared venture forth in search of Naratu, Usanga's woman, for Usanga might not forget that he had promised to return. No one was near as she stepped out of the hut and made her way toward the part of the village where the revelers were making merry about a fire. As she approached she saw the villagers and their guests squatting in a large circle about the blaze before which a half-dozen naked warriors leaped and bent and stamped in some grotesque dance. Pots of food and gourds of drink were being passed about among the audience. Dirty hands were plunged into the food pots and the captured portions devoured so greedily that one might have thought the entire community had been upon the point of starvation. The gourds they held to their lips until the beer ran down their chins and the vessels were wrested from them by greedy neighbors. The drink had now begun to take noticeable effect upon most of them, with the result that they were beginning to give themselves up to utter and licentious abandon.
Darkness had fallen, and still no one had arrived. The girl wondered if she should take the risk of searching for Naratu, Usanga's woman, since Usanga might still remember his promise to return. No one was around as she stepped out of the hut and walked toward the part of the village where the revelers were enjoying themselves around a fire. As she got closer, she saw the villagers and their guests sitting in a large circle around the blaze, where half a dozen naked warriors danced and stomped in a bizarre performance. Pots of food and jugs of drink were being passed around among the crowd. Dirty hands plunged into the food pots, and the portions were devoured so eagerly that it seemed as though the entire community had been on the verge of starvation. They held the gourds to their lips until the beer dripped down their chins, with the vessels snatched from them by hungry neighbors. The drink had started to have a noticeable effect on most of them, leading them to indulge in complete and reckless abandon.
As the girl came nearer, keeping in the shadow of the huts, looking for Naratu she was suddenly discovered by one upon the edge of the crowd—a huge woman, who rose, shrieking, and came toward her. From her aspect the white girl thought that the woman meant literally to tear her to pieces. So utterly wanton and uncalled-for was the attack that it found the girl entirely unprepared, and what would have happened had not a warrior interfered may only be guessed. And then Usanga, noting the interruption, came lurching forward to question her.
As the girl approached, staying in the shadows of the huts and searching for Naratu, she was suddenly spotted by someone at the edge of the crowd—a large woman, who stood up screaming and came toward her. From the woman's appearance, the white girl thought she intended to literally rip her apart. The attack was so completely unnecessary and shocking that the girl was entirely caught off guard, and what might have happened if a warrior hadn’t stepped in can only be imagined. Then Usanga, noticing the disruption, stumbled forward to question her.
"What do you want," he cried, "food and drink? Come with me!" and he threw an arm about her and dragged her toward the circle.
"What do you want?" he shouted. "Food and drinks? Come with me!" He wrapped an arm around her and pulled her toward the group.
"No!" she cried, "I want Naratu. Where is Naratu?"
"No!" she shouted, "I want Naratu. Where is Naratu?"
This seemed to sober the black for a moment as though he had temporarily forgotten his better half. He cast quick, fearful glances about, and then, evidently assured that Naratu had noticed nothing, he ordered the warrior who was still holding the infuriated black woman from the white girl to take the latter back to her hut and to remain there on guard over her.
This appeared to calm the black man for a moment, as if he had momentarily forgotten about his other half. He glanced around quickly and nervously, and then, clearly satisfied that Naratu hadn’t seen anything, he instructed the warrior who was still restraining the angry black woman from the white girl to take her back to her hut and stay there to keep watch over her.
First appropriating a gourd of beer for himself the warrior motioned the girl to precede him, and thus guarded she returned to her hut, the fellow squatting down just outside the doorway, where he confined his attentions for some time to the gourd.
First, the warrior grabbed a gourd of beer for himself and signaled for the girl to go in front of him. Protected by him, she went back to her hut, while he squatted just outside the doorway, focusing his attention on the gourd for a while.
Bertha Kircher sat down at the far side of the hut awaiting she knew not what impending fate. She could not sleep so filled was her mind with wild schemes of escape though each new one must always be discarded as impractical. Half an hour after the warrior had returned her to her prison he rose and entered the hut, where he tried to engage in conversation with her. Groping across the interior he leaned his short spear against the wall and sat down beside her, and as he talked he edged closer and closer until at last he could reach out and touch her. Shrinking, she drew away.
Bertha Kircher sat down at the far side of the hut, unsure of what fate awaited her. She couldn’t sleep, as her mind was racing with wild escape plans, but each one quickly proved too unrealistic. Half an hour after the warrior had brought her back to her prison, he entered the hut and tried to talk to her. Feeling around the dark interior, he leaned his short spear against the wall and sat down next to her. As he spoke, he inched closer and closer until he could finally reach out and touch her. She recoiled, pulling away.
"Do not touch me!" she cried. "I will tell Usanga if you do not leave me alone, and you know what he will do to you."
"Don't touch me!" she yelled. "I'll tell Usanga if you don't leave me alone, and you know what he's capable of."
The man only laughed drunkenly, and, reaching out his hand, grabbed her arm and dragged her toward him. She fought and cried aloud for Usanga and at the same instant the entrance to the hut was darkened by the form of a man.
The man just laughed drunkenly and, reaching out, grabbed her arm and pulled her toward him. She struggled and screamed for Usanga, and at that moment, the entrance to the hut was blocked by the figure of a man.
"What is the matter?" shouted the newcomer in the deep tones that the girl recognized as belonging to the black sergeant. He had come, but would she be any better off? She knew that she would not unless she could play upon Usanga's fear of his woman.
"What’s going on?" shouted the newcomer in the deep voice the girl recognized as belonging to the black sergeant. He had arrived, but would she be any better off? She knew she wouldn’t unless she could exploit Usanga's fear of his woman.
When Usanga found what had happened he kicked the warrior out of the hut and bade him begone, and when the fellow had disappeared, muttering and grumbling, the sergeant approached the white girl. He was very drunk, so drunk that several times she succeeded in eluding him and twice she pushed him so violently away that he stumbled and fell.
When Usanga found out what had happened, he kicked the warrior out of the hut and told him to leave. After the guy had disappeared, mumbling and complaining, the sergeant came over to the white girl. He was really drunk, so drunk that she managed to get away from him several times, and twice she pushed him away so hard that he stumbled and fell.
Finally he became enraged and rushing upon her, seized her in his long, apelike arms. Striking at his face with clenched fists she tried to protect herself and drive him away. She threatened him with the wrath of Naratu, and at that he changed his tactics and began to plead, and as he argued with her, promising her safety and eventual freedom, the warrior he had kicked out of the hut made his staggering way to the hut occupied by Naratu.
Finally, he got angry and dashed towards her, wrapping his long, apelike arms around her. She tried to defend herself and push him away by hitting his face with her fists. She warned him about the anger of Naratu, and at that, he switched his approach and started to beg. As he argued with her, promising her safety and eventual freedom, the warrior he had kicked out of the hut made his unsteady way to the hut where Naratu was.
Usanga finding that pleas and promises were as unavailing as threats, at last lost both his patience and his head, seizing the girl roughly, and simultaneously there burst into the hut a raging demon of jealousy. Naratu had come. Kicking, scratching, striking, biting, she routed the terrified Usanga in short order, and so obsessed was she by her desire to inflict punishment upon her unfaithful lord and master that she quite forgot the object of his infatuation.
Usanga realized that pleas and promises were just as pointless as threats. Frustrated, he lost his patience and his temper, grabbing the girl roughly. At that moment, a furious wave of jealousy crashed into the hut. Naratu had arrived. Kicking, scratching, hitting, and biting, she quickly overpowered the frightened Usanga. So consumed by her desire to punish her unfaithful lord that she completely overlooked the object of his affection.
Bertha Kircher heard her screaming down the village street at Usanga's heels and trembled at the thought of what lay in store for her at the hands of these two, for she knew that tomorrow at the latest Naratu would take out upon her the full measure of her jealous hatred after she had spent her first wrath upon Usanga.
Bertha Kircher heard her shouting down the village street at Usanga's heels and felt a shiver at the thought of what awaited her from these two, knowing that by tomorrow at the latest, Naratu would unleash the full force of her jealous anger on her after venting her initial rage on Usanga.
The two had departed but a few minutes when the warrior guard returned. He looked into the hut and then entered. "No one will stop me now, white woman," he growled as he stepped quickly across the hut toward her.
The two had left only a few minutes ago when the warrior guard came back. He looked into the hut and then walked in. “No one can stop me now, white woman,” he snarled as he quickly crossed the hut towards her.
Tarzan of the Apes, feasting well upon a juicy haunch from Bara, the deer, was vaguely conscious of a troubled mind. He should have been at peace with himself and all the world, for was he not in his native element surrounded by game in plenty and rapidly filling his belly with the flesh he loved best? But Tarzan of the Apes was haunted by the picture of a slight, young girl being shoved and struck by brutal Negresses, and in imagination could see her now camped in this savage country a prisoner among degraded blacks.
Tarzan of the Apes, enjoying a juicy piece of deer meat from Bara, felt an uneasy mind. He should have felt at peace with himself and the world around him, since he was in his natural habitat surrounded by plenty of game, quickly filling his stomach with his favorite food. But Tarzan of the Apes couldn’t shake the image of a frail young girl being pushed and hit by cruel Black women, and he could picture her now, trapped in this wild land as a captive among degraded people.
Why was it so difficult to remember that she was only a hated German and a spy? Why would the fact that she was a woman and white always obtrude itself upon his consciousness? He hated her as he hated all her kind, and the fate that was sure to be hers was no more terrible than she in common with all her people deserved. The matter was settled and Tarzan composed himself to think of other things, yet the picture would not die—it rose in all its details and annoyed him. He began to wonder what they were doing to her and where they were taking her. He was very much ashamed of himself as he had been after the episode in Wilhelmstal when his weakness had permitted him to spare this spy's life. Was he to be thus weak again? No!
Why was it so hard to remember that she was just a despised German and a spy? Why did her being a woman and white always get in his head? He hated her like he hated everyone like her, and the fate that awaited her was no worse than what she and her people deserved. The issue was settled, and Tarzan tried to shift his thoughts, but the image wouldn't fade—it lingered with all its details and irritated him. He started to wonder what they were doing to her and where they were taking her. He felt really ashamed of himself, just like he did after the incident in Wilhelmstal when his weakness had led him to spare this spy's life. Was he going to be that weak again? No!
Night came and he settled himself in an ample tree to rest until morning; but sleep would not come. Instead came the vision of a white girl being beaten by black women, and again of the same girl at the mercy of the warriors somewhere in that dark and forbidding jungle.
Night fell, and he found a large tree to rest in until morning, but he couldn't sleep. Instead, he saw a vision of a white girl being assaulted by black women, and again he saw the same girl at the mercy of warriors somewhere in that dark, intimidating jungle.
With a growl of anger and self-contempt Tarzan arose, shook himself, and swung from his tree to that adjoining, and thus, through the lower terraces, he followed the trail that Usanga's party had taken earlier in the afternoon. He had little difficulty as the band had followed a well-beaten path and when toward midnight the stench of a native village assailed his delicate nostrils he guessed that his goal was near and that presently he should find her whom he sought.
With a growl of anger and self-hatred, Tarzan got up, shook himself off, and swung from his tree to the one next to it. He followed the trail that Usanga's group had taken earlier in the afternoon through the lower levels. It wasn’t hard to track them since they had used a well-worn path, and when the strong smell of a native village hit his sensitive nose around midnight, he figured he was close and would soon find the person he was looking for.
Prowling stealthily as prowls Numa, the lion, stalking a wary prey, Tarzan moved noiselessly about the palisade, listening and sniffing. At the rear of the village he discovered a tree whose branches extended over the top of the palisade and a moment later he had dropped quietly into the village.
Prowling silently like Numa the lion, hunting a cautious prey, Tarzan moved quietly around the palisade, listening and sniffing. At the back of the village, he found a tree with branches reaching over the top of the palisade, and a moment later, he had dropped down quietly into the village.
From hut to hut he went searching with keen ears and nostrils some confirming evidence of the presence of the girl, and at last, faint and almost obliterated by the odor of the Gomangani, he found it hanging like a delicate vapor about a small hut. The village was quiet now, for the last of the beer and the food had been disposed of and the blacks lay in their huts overcome by stupor, yet Tarzan made no noise that even a sober man keenly alert might have heard.
From hut to hut he moved, listening intently and sniffing for any sign of the girl, and finally, faint and nearly masked by the scent of the Gomangani, he discovered it lingering like a light mist around a small hut. The village was quiet now, as the last of the beer and food had been consumed and the villagers were sprawled in their huts, in a daze. Yet Tarzan made no sound that even a sober, alert person could have detected.
He passed around to the entrance of the hut and listened. From within came no sound, not even the low breathing of one awake; yet he was sure that the girl had been here and perhaps was even now, and so he entered, slipping in as silently as a disembodied spirit. For a moment he stood motionless just within the entranceway, listening. No, there was no one here, of that he was sure, but he would investigate. As his eyes became accustomed to the greater darkness within the hut an object began to take form that presently outlined itself in a human form supine upon the floor.
He went around to the entrance of the hut and listened. Inside, there was no sound, not even the faint breathing of someone who was awake; yet he was convinced that the girl had been there and maybe still was. So, he entered, slipping in as quietly as a ghost. For a moment, he stood still just inside the doorway, listening. No, there was no one there, he was sure of that, but he would check it out. As his eyes adjusted to the deeper darkness inside the hut, something began to take shape that soon outlined itself as a person lying on the floor.
Tarzan stepped closer and leaned over to examine it—it was the dead body of a naked warrior from whose chest protruded a short spear. Then he searched carefully every square foot of the remaining floor space and at last returned to the body again where he stooped and smelled of the haft of the weapon that had slain the black. A slow smile touched his lips—that and a slight movement of his head betokened that he understood.
Tarzan moved in closer and leaned down to take a look—it was the dead body of a naked warrior with a short spear sticking out of his chest. Then he carefully searched every square foot of the rest of the floor and eventually returned to the body, where he bent down and sniffed the handle of the weapon that had killed the man. A slow smile appeared on his lips, and a slight nod of his head showed that he understood.
A rapid search of the balance of the village assured him that the girl had escaped and a feeling of relief came over him that no harm had befallen her. That her life was equally in jeopardy in the savage jungle to which she must have flown did not impress him as it would have you or me, since to Tarzan the jungle was not a dangerous place—he considered one safer there than in Paris or London by night.
A quick look around the village confirmed that the girl had gotten away, and he felt a wave of relief knowing she was unharmed. The fact that her life was just as much at risk in the wild jungle she had likely fled to didn’t concern him as it would you or me, because to Tarzan, the jungle wasn’t a dangerous place—he thought it was actually safer there than in Paris or London at night.
He had entered the trees again and was outside the palisade when there came faintly to his ears from far beyond the village an old, familiar sound. Balancing lightly upon a swaying branch he stood, a graceful statue of a forest god, listening intently. For a minute he stood thus and then there broke from his lips the long, weird cry of ape calling to ape and he was away through the jungle toward the sound of the booming drum of the anthropoids leaving behind him an awakened and terrified village of cringing blacks, who would forever after connect that eerie cry with the disappearance of their white prisoner and the death of their fellow-warrior.
He was back among the trees, outside the palisade, when he faintly heard an old, familiar sound coming from far beyond the village. Balancing lightly on a swaying branch, he stood like a graceful statue of a forest god, listening closely. He stood there for a minute, and then he let out the long, eerie call of an ape calling to another, and he took off through the jungle toward the booming drum of the apes, leaving behind a frightened and terrified village of cowering Black villagers, who would always associate that haunting cry with the disappearance of their white prisoner and the death of their fellow warrior.
Bertha Kircher, hurrying through the jungle along a well-beaten game trail, thought only of putting as much distance as possible between herself and the village before daylight could permit pursuit of her. Whither she was going she did not know, nor was it a matter of great moment since death must be her lot sooner or later.
Bertha Kircher rushed through the jungle on a well-worn game trail, focused only on putting as much distance as she could between herself and the village before daylight allowed anyone to chase her. She didn’t know where she was headed, nor did it really matter since death would come for her eventually.
Fortune favored her that night, for she passed unscathed through as savage and lion-ridden an area as there is in all Africa—a natural hunting ground which the white man has not yet discovered, where deer and antelope and zebra, giraffe and elephant, buffalo, rhinoceros, and the other herbivorous animals of central Africa abound unmolested by none but their natural enemies, the great cats which, lured here by easy prey and immunity from the rifles of big-game hunters, swarm the district.
Fortune smiled on her that night, as she moved through a wild and lion-inhabited region of Africa—an untouched hunting ground that white people haven't found yet, where deer, antelope, zebras, giraffes, elephants, buffalo, rhinoceroses, and other herbivores of central Africa roam freely, unbothered except by their natural predators, the big cats, which are drawn here by easy prey and safety from big-game hunters' rifles.
She had fled for an hour or two, perhaps, when her attention was arrested by the sound of animals moving about, muttering and growling close ahead. Assured that she had covered a sufficient distance to insure her a good start in the morning before the blacks could take to her trail, and fearful of what the creatures might be, she climbed into a large tree with the intention of spending the balance of the night there.
She had been running for an hour or two when she was suddenly stopped by the sound of animals moving around, grumbling and growling nearby. Confident that she had put enough distance between herself and the blacks to have a good head start in the morning, and worried about what these creatures might be, she climbed up into a large tree with the plan to spend the rest of the night there.
She had no sooner reached a safe and comfortable branch when she discovered that the tree stood upon the edge of a small clearing that had been hidden from her by the heavy undergrowth upon the ground below, and simultaneously she discovered the identity of the beasts she had heard.
She had barely settled onto a safe, comfy branch when she realized the tree was at the edge of a small clearing that the thick undergrowth below had shielded from her view, and at the same time, she figured out what the creatures she had heard were.
In the center of the clearing below her, clearly visible in the bright moonlight, she saw fully twenty huge, manlike apes—great, shaggy fellows who went upon their hind feet with only slight assistance from the knuckles of their hands. The moonlight glanced from their glossy coats, the numerous gray-tipped hairs imparting a sheen that made the hideous creatures almost magnificent in their appearance.
In the middle of the clearing below her, clearly visible in the bright moonlight, she saw twenty huge, manlike apes—big, shaggy guys who walked on their back legs with just a little support from their knuckles. The moonlight glinted off their shiny coats, the many gray-tipped hairs giving them a sheen that made the ugly creatures almost look magnificent.
The girl had watched them but a minute or two when the little band was joined by others, coming singly and in groups until there were fully fifty of the great brutes gathered there in the moonlight. Among them were young apes and several little ones clinging tightly to their mothers' shaggy shoulders. Presently the group parted to form a circle about what appeared to be a small, flat-topped mound of earth in the center of the clearing. Squatting close about this mound were three old females armed with short, heavy clubs with which they presently began to pound upon the flat top of the earth mound which gave forth a dull, booming sound, and almost immediately the other apes commenced to move about restlessly, weaving in and out aimlessly until they carried the impression of a moving mass of great, black maggots.
The girl had been watching them for a minute or two when more joined the small group, coming in individually and in clusters until there were about fifty of the large creatures gathered there in the moonlight. Among them were young apes and several little ones clinging tightly to their mothers' shaggy shoulders. Soon the group split to form a circle around what looked like a small, flat-topped mound of dirt in the center of the clearing. Squatting close to this mound were three older females armed with short, heavy clubs, which they began to pound on the flat top of the dirt mound, producing a dull, booming sound. Almost immediately, the other apes started to move around restlessly, weaving in and out aimlessly until they resembled a moving mass of large, black maggots.
The beating of the drum was in a slow, ponderous cadence, at first without time but presently settling into a heavy rhythm to which the apes kept time with measured tread and swaying bodies. Slowly the mass separated into two rings, the outer of which was composed of shes and the very young, the inner of mature bulls. The former ceased to move and squatted upon their haunches, while the bulls now moved slowly about in a circle the center of which was the drum and all now in the same direction.
The drum was beating slowly and heavily at first, randomly, but then it settled into a strong rhythm that the apes followed with careful steps and swaying bodies. Gradually, the group split into two circles: the outer ring consisted of the females and very young ones, while the inner ring was made up of the adult males. The females stopped moving and sat back on their haunches, while the males began to slowly move around in a circle, with the drum at the center, all moving in the same direction.
It was then that there came faintly to the ears of the girl from the direction of the village she had recently quitted a weird and high-pitched cry. The effect upon the apes was electrical—they stopped their movements and stood in attitudes of intent listening for a moment, and then one fellow, huger than his companions, raised his face to the heavens and in a voice that sent the cold shudders through the girl's slight frame answered the far-off cry.
It was then that the girl heard a strange, high-pitched cry coming faintly from the direction of the village she had just left. The impact on the apes was immediate—they halted and stood still, listening intently for a moment. Then, one ape, larger than the others, raised his face to the sky and, in a voice that sent chills through the girl’s small frame, responded to the distant cry.
Once again the beaters took up their drumming and the slow dance went on. There was a certain fascination in the savage ceremony that held the girl spellbound, and as there seemed little likelihood of her being discovered, she felt that she might as well remain the balance of the night in her tree and resume her flight by the comparatively greater safety of daylight.
Once again, the drummers started playing, and the slow dance continued. The savage ceremony had a certain fascination that captivated the girl, and since it seemed unlikely she'd be discovered, she figured she might as well stay in her tree for the rest of the night and continue her journey when it would be safer in the daylight.
Assuring herself that her packet of papers was safe she sought as comfortable a position as possible among the branches, and settled herself to watch the weird proceedings in the clearing below her.
Assuring herself that her stack of papers was secure, she found the most comfortable position she could among the branches and got settled to watch the strange events happening in the clearing below her.
A half-hour passed, during which the cadence of the drum increased gradually. Now the great bull that had replied to the distant call leaped from the inner circle to dance alone between the drummers and the other bulls. He leaped and crouched and leaped again, now growling and barking, again stopping to raise his hideous face to Goro, the moon, and, beating upon his shaggy breast, uttered a piercing scream-the challenge of the bull ape, had the girl but known it.
A half-hour went by, during which the rhythm of the drum gradually picked up. Then the massive bull that had answered the distant call jumped from the inner circle to dance by itself between the drummers and the other bulls. It leaped and crouched and leaped again, growling and barking, then pausing to lift its ugly face to Goro, the moon, and, beating on its shaggy chest, let out a piercing scream—the challenge of the bull ape, if only the girl had known.
He stood thus in the full glare of the great moon, motionless after screaming forth his weird challenge, in the setting of the primeval jungle and the circling apes a picture of primitive savagery and power—a mightily muscled Hercules out of the dawn of life—when from close behind her the girl heard an answering scream, and an instant later saw an almost naked white man drop from a near-by tree into the clearing.
He stood there in the bright light of the huge moon, frozen after shouting his strange challenge, surrounded by the ancient jungle and the circling apes—a striking image of raw savagery and strength—a heavily muscled Hercules from the beginning of time—when just behind her, the girl heard a responding scream, and a moment later saw an almost naked white man drop from a nearby tree into the clearing.
Instantly the apes became a roaring, snarling pack of angry beasts. Bertha Kircher held her breath. What maniac was this who dared approach these frightful creatures in their own haunts, alone against fifty? She saw the brown-skinned figure bathed in moonlight walk straight toward the snarling pack. She saw the symmetry and the beauty of that perfect body—its grace, its strength, its wondrous proportioning, and then she recognized him. It was the same creature whom she had seen carry Major Schneider from General Kraut's headquarters, the same who had rescued her from Numa, the lion; the same whom she had struck down with the butt of her pistol and escaped when he would have returned her to her enemies, the same who had slain Hauptmann Fritz Schneider and spared her life that night in Wilhelmstal.
Instantly, the apes became a roaring, snarling pack of furious beasts. Bertha Kircher held her breath. Who was this maniac that dared to approach these terrifying creatures in their territory, alone against fifty? She watched as the brown-skinned figure, illuminated by moonlight, walked straight toward the snarling pack. She admired the symmetry and beauty of that perfect body—its grace, strength, and amazing proportions—and then she recognized him. It was the same person she had seen carry Major Schneider from General Kraut's headquarters, the same one who had rescued her from Numa, the lion; the same one she had struck down with the butt of her pistol to escape when he could have returned her to her enemies, the same one who had killed Hauptmann Fritz Schneider and spared her life that night in Wilhelmstal.
Fear-filled and fascinated she watched him as he neared the apes. She heard sounds issue from his throat—sounds identical with those uttered by the apes—and though she could scarce believe the testimony of her own ears, she knew that this godlike creature was conversing with the brutes in their own tongue.
Fearful yet intrigued, she watched him approach the apes. She heard sounds coming from his throat—sounds just like those made by the apes—and although she could hardly believe her own ears, she realized that this godlike being was communicating with the animals in their own language.
Tarzan halted just before he reached the shes of the outer circle. "I am Tarzan of the Apes!" he cried. "You do not know me because I am of another tribe, but Tarzan comes in peace or he comes to fight—which shall it be? Tarzan will talk with your king," and so saying he pushed straight forward through the shes and the young who now gave way before him, making a narrow lane through which he passed toward the inner circle.
Tarzan stopped just before he reached the edges of the outer circle. "I am Tarzan of the Apes!" he shouted. "You don't know me because I'm from a different tribe, but Tarzan comes in peace or he comes to fight—which will it be? Tarzan wants to talk to your king," and saying this, he pushed straight through the bushes, and the young ones moved aside for him, creating a narrow path for him to pass toward the inner circle.
Shes and balus growled and bristled as he passed closer, but none hindered him and thus he came to the inner circle of bulls. Here bared fangs menaced him and growling faces hideously contorted. "I am Tarzan," he repeated. "Tarzan comes to dance the Dum-Dum with his brothers. Where is your king?" Again he pressed forward and the girl in the tree clapped her palms to her cheeks as she watched, wide-eyed, this madman going to a frightful death. In another instant they would be upon him, rending and tearing until that perfect form had been ripped to shreds; but again the ring parted, and though the apes roared and menaced him they did not attack, and at last he stood in the inner circle close to the drum and faced the great king ape.
Shes and balus growled and bristled as he got closer, but none of them stopped him, and he made his way to the inner circle of bulls. Here, bared fangs threatened him, and growling faces were hideously twisted. "I am Tarzan," he repeated. "Tarzan comes to dance the Dum-Dum with his brothers. Where is your king?" He pushed forward again, and the girl in the tree covered her cheeks with her palms as she watched, wide-eyed, this madman heading toward a terrifying death. In another moment, they would be upon him, ripping and tearing until that perfect body was shredded; but once more the ring parted, and though the apes roared and threatened him, they didn't attack. Finally, he stood in the inner circle close to the drum and faced the great king ape.
Again he spoke. "I am Tarzan of the Apes," he cried. "Tarzan comes to live with his brothers. He will come in peace and live in peace or he will kill; but he has come and he will stay. Which—shall Tarzan dance the Dum-Dum in peace with his brothers, or shall Tarzan kill first?"
Again he spoke. "I am Tarzan of the Apes," he shouted. "Tarzan comes to live with his brothers. He will come in peace and live in peace, or he will fight; but he has come, and he will stay. So, what will it be—shall Tarzan dance the Dum-Dum in peace with his brothers, or shall Tarzan fight first?"
"I am Go-lat, King of the Apes," screamed the great bull. "I kill! I kill! I kill!" and with a sullen roar he charged the Tarmangani.
"I am Go-lat, King of the Apes," shouted the great bull. "I kill! I kill! I kill!" and with a fierce roar, he charged at the Tarmangani.
The ape-man, as the girl watched him, seemed entirely unprepared for the charge and she looked to see him borne down and slain at the first rush. The great bull was almost upon him with huge hands outstretched to seize him before Tarzan made a move, but when he did move his quickness would have put Ara, the lightning, to shame. As darts forward the head of Histah, the snake, so darted forward the left hand of the man-beast as he seized the left wrist of his antagonist. A quick turn and the bull's right arm was locked beneath the right arm of his foe in a jujutsu hold that Tarzan had learned among civilized men—a hold with which he might easily break the great bones, a hold that left the ape helpless.
The ape-man, as the girl watched him, seemed completely unprepared for the attack, and she braced herself to see him knocked down and killed in the first rush. The massive bull was almost on him, its huge hands outstretched to grab him, but before Tarzan moved, when he did, his speed would have embarrassed Ara, the lightning. Just as the head of Histah, the snake, lunges forward, so did the left hand of the man-beast as he grabbed the left wrist of his opponent. With a quick twist, the bull's right arm was trapped beneath Tarzan's right arm in a jujutsu hold he had learned from civilized people—a hold that could easily break the bull's massive bones, leaving the ape powerless.
"I am Tarzan of the Apes!" screamed the ape-man. "Shall Tarzan dance in peace or shall Tarzan kill?''
"I am Tarzan of the Apes!" yelled the ape-man. "Will Tarzan dance in peace or will Tarzan kill?"
"I kill! I kill! I kill!" shrieked Go-lat.
"I kill! I kill! I kill!" screamed Go-lat.
With the quickness of a cat Tarzan swung the king ape over one hip and sent him sprawling to the ground. "I am Tarzan, King of all the Apes!" he shouted. "Shall it be peace?"
With the speed of a cat, Tarzan swung the king ape over his hip and sent him crashing to the ground. "I am Tarzan, King of all the Apes!" he yelled. "Will it be peace?"
Go-lat, infuriated, leaped to his feet and charged again, shouting his war cry: "I kill! I kill! I kill!" and again Tarzan met him with a sudden hold that the stupid bull, being ignorant of, could not possibly avert—a hold and a throw that brought a scream of delight from the interested audience and suddenly filled the girl with doubts as to the man's madness—evidently he was quite safe among the apes, for she saw him swing Go-lat to his back and then catapult him over his shoulder. The king ape fell upon his head and lay very still.
Go-lat, furious, jumped to his feet and charged again, shouting his battle cry: "I'm gonna kill! I'm gonna kill! I'm gonna kill!" Once more, Tarzan faced him with a sudden grip that the clueless brute couldn’t possibly avoid—an hold and a throw that elicited a scream of excitement from the captivated crowd and suddenly made the girl question the man's sanity—he was clearly safe among the apes, as she watched him swing Go-lat onto his back and then flip him over his shoulder. The king ape landed on his head and lay there motionless.
"I am Tarzan of the Apes!" cried the ape-man. "I come to dance the Dum-Dum with my brothers," and he made a motion to the drummers, who immediately took up the cadence of the dance where they had dropped it to watch their king slay the foolish Tarmangani.
"I am Tarzan of the Apes!" shouted the ape-man. "I’ve come to dance the Dum-Dum with my brothers," and he gestured to the drummers, who quickly picked up the rhythm of the dance where they had paused to watch their king take down the foolish Tarmangani.
It was then that Go-lat raised his head and slowly crawled to his feet. Tarzan approached him. "I am Tarzan of the Apes," he cried. "Shall Tarzan dance the Dum-Dum with his brothers now, or shall he kill first?"
It was then that Go-lat lifted his head and slowly got to his feet. Tarzan walked over to him. "I’m Tarzan of the Apes," he announced. "Should Tarzan dance the Dum-Dum with his brothers now, or should he kill first?"
Go-lat raised his bloodshot eyes to the face of the Tarmangani. "Kagoda!" he cried. "Tarzan of the Apes will dance the Dum-Dum with his brothers and Go-lat will dance with him!"
Go-lat lifted his bloodshot eyes to the Tarmangani's face. "Kagoda!" he shouted. "Tarzan of the Apes will join his brothers in the Dum-Dum dance, and Go-lat will dance with him!"
And then the girl in the tree saw the savage man leaping, bending, and stamping with the savage apes in the ancient rite of the Dum-Dum. His roars and growls were more beastly than the beasts. His handsome face was distorted with savage ferocity. He beat upon his great breast and screamed forth his challenge as his smooth, brown hide brushed the shaggy coats of his fellows. It was weird; it was wonderful; and in its primitive savagery it was not without beauty—the strange scene she looked upon, such a scene as no other human being, probably, ever had witnessed—and yet, withal, it was horrible.
And then the girl in the tree saw the wild man jumping, bending, and stomping with the wild apes in the ancient ceremony of the Dum-Dum. His roars and growls were more animalistic than the animals. His handsome face was twisted with raw ferocity. He pounded on his big chest and shouted his challenge as his smooth, brown skin brushed against the shaggy fur of his companions. It was strange; it was amazing; and in its primal savagery, it held a certain beauty—the bizarre scene she was watching, something no other human had likely ever seen—and yet, at the same time, it was terrifying.
As she gazed, spell-bound, a stealthy movement in the tree behind her caused her to turn her head, and there, back of her, blazing in the reflected moonlight, shone two great, yellow-green eyes. Sheeta, the panther, had found her out.
As she looked on, captivated, a quiet movement in the tree behind her made her turn her head, and there, behind her, glowing in the reflected moonlight, were two large, yellow-green eyes. Sheeta, the panther, had discovered her.
The beast was so close that it might have reached out and touched her with a great, taloned paw. There was no time to think, no time to weigh chances or to choose alternatives. Terror-inspired impulse was her guide as, with a loud scream, she leaped from the tree into the clearing.
The beast was so close that it could have reached out and touched her with its huge, clawed paw. There was no time to think, no time to consider options or choose alternatives. Driven by pure terror, she screamed loudly and jumped from the tree into the clearing.
Instantly the apes, now maddened by the effects of the dancing and the moonlight, turned to note the cause of the interruption. They saw this she Tarmangani, helpless and alone and they started for her. Sheeta, the panther, knowing that not even Numa, the lion, unless maddened by starvation, dares meddle with the great apes at their Dum-Dum, had silently vanished into the night, seeking his supper elsewhere.
Instantly, the apes, now driven wild by the dancing and the moonlight, turned to see what had interrupted them. They noticed the woman, helpless and alone, and began to approach her. Sheeta, the panther, knowing that not even Numa, the lion, would dare to mess with the great apes during their Dum-Dum unless he was starving, silently slipped away into the night, looking for dinner elsewhere.
Tarzan, turning with the other apes toward the cause of the interruption, saw the girl, recognized her and also her peril. Here again might she die at the hands of others; but why consider it! He knew that he could not permit it, and though the acknowledgment shamed him, it had to be admitted.
Tarzan, turning with the other apes toward the source of the disturbance, saw the girl, recognized her, and also understood her danger. Once again, she could die at the hands of others; but why think about that! He knew he couldn't allow it, and even though admitting it embarrassed him, it had to be faced.
The leading shes were almost upon the girl when Tarzan leaped among them, and with heavy blows scattered them to right and left; and then as the bulls came to share in the kill they thought this new ape-thing was about to make that he might steal all the flesh for himself, they found him facing them with an arm thrown about the creature as though to protect her.
The leading lions were almost on the girl when Tarzan jumped in among them, delivering powerful blows that sent them scattering to the right and left. When the bulls came to join in the kill, they thought this new ape-like creature was trying to take all the meat for himself, but they saw him standing there with an arm around the girl, as if to protect her.
"This is Tarzan's she," he said. "Do not harm her." It was the only way he could make them understand that they must not slay her. He was glad that she could not interpret the words. It was humiliating enough to make such a statement to wild apes about this hated enemy.
"This is Tarzan's woman," he said. "Don't hurt her." It was the only way he could make them understand that they must not kill her. He was relieved that she couldn't understand the words. It was embarrassing enough to say something like that to wild apes about this despised enemy.
So once again Tarzan of the Apes was forced to protect a Hun. Growling, he muttered to himself in extenuation:
So once again, Tarzan of the Apes had to defend a Hun. Growling, he murmured to himself in justification:
"She is a woman and I am not a German, so it could not be otherwise!"
"She's a woman and I'm not German, so it couldn't be any different!"
Chapter IX
Dropped from the Sky
Lieutenant Harold Percy Smith-Oldwick, Royal Air Service, was on reconnaissance. A report, or it would be better to say a rumor, had come to the British headquarters in German East Africa that the enemy had landed in force on the west coast and was marching across the dark continent to reinforce their colonial troops. In fact the new army was supposed to be no more than ten or twelve days' march to the west. Of course the thing was ridiculous—preposterous—but preposterous things often happen in war; and anyway no good general permits the least rumor of enemy activity to go uninvestigated.
Lieutenant Harold Percy Smith-Oldwick, Royal Air Service, was on reconnaissance. A report—or rather, a rumor—had reached the British headquarters in German East Africa that the enemy had landed in force on the west coast and was marching across the dark continent to strengthen their colonial troops. In reality, the new army was said to be no more than ten or twelve days' march to the west. Naturally, the situation seemed ridiculous—absurd—but absurd things often happen in war; and anyway, no good general allows even the slightest rumor of enemy activity to go uninvestigated.
Therefore Lieutenant Harold Percy Smith-Oldwick flew low toward the west, searching with keen eyes for signs of a Hun army. Vast forests unrolled beneath him in which a German army corps might have lain concealed, so dense was the overhanging foliage of the great trees. Mountain, meadowland, and desert passed in lovely panorama; but never a sight of man had the young lieutenant.
Therefore, Lieutenant Harold Percy Smith-Oldwick flew low towards the west, searching with sharp eyes for signs of a German army. Vast forests stretched out beneath him where a German corps could be hiding, so thick was the foliage of the massive trees. Mountains, meadows, and deserts flowed by in a beautiful panorama; but the young lieutenant saw no sign of human life.
Always hoping that he might discover some sign of their passage—a discarded lorry, a broken limber, or an old camp site—he continued farther and farther into the west until well into the afternoon. Above a tree-dotted plain through the center of which flowed a winding river he determined to turn about and start for camp. It would take straight flying at top speed to cover the distance before dark; but as he had ample gasoline and a trustworthy machine there was no doubt in his mind but that he could accomplish his aim. It was then that his engine stalled.
Always hoping to find some evidence of their journey—like a discarded truck, a broken wagon, or an old campsite—he pushed further and further west until well into the afternoon. Over a tree-filled plain with a winding river flowing through it, he decided to turn around and head back to camp. He knew it would take flying at top speed to cover the distance before dark, but since he had plenty of gas and a reliable plane, he was confident he could make it back. It was then that his engine stalled.
He was too low to do anything but land, and that immediately, while he had the more open country accessible, for directly east of him was a vast forest into which a stalled engine could only have plunged him to certain injury and probable death; and so he came down in the meadowland near the winding river and there started to tinker with his motor.
He was too low to do anything but land, and he needed to do it quickly, while he still had more open land available, because directly east of him was a huge forest where a stalled engine would have thrown him into certain injury and likely death; so he landed in the meadow near the winding river and began to work on his motor.
As he worked he hummed a tune, some music-hall air that had been popular in London the year before, so that one might have thought him working in the security of an English flying field surrounded by innumerable comrades rather than alone in the heart of an unexplored African wilderness. It was typical of the man that he should be wholly indifferent to his surroundings, although his looks entirely belied any assumption that he was of particularly heroic strain.
As he worked, he hummed a tune, a catchy song from the music halls that had been popular in London the year before, making it seem like he was working in the safety of an English airfield surrounded by many friends instead of being alone in the middle of an uncharted African wilderness. It was typical of him to be completely oblivious to his surroundings, even though his appearance completely contradicted any notion that he was particularly heroic.
Lieutenant Harold Percy Smith-Oldwick was fair-haired, blue-eyed, and slender, with a rosy, boyish face that might have been molded more by an environment of luxury, indolence, and ease than the more strenuous exigencies of life's sterner requirements.
Lieutenant Harold Percy Smith-Oldwick had light hair, blue eyes, and a slim build, with a youthful, rosy complexion that seemed shaped more by a life of luxury, laziness, and comfort than by the tougher demands of a harsher reality.
And not only was the young lieutenant outwardly careless of the immediate future and of his surroundings, but actually so. That the district might be infested by countless enemies seemed not to have occurred to him in the remotest degree. He bent assiduously to the work of correcting the adjustment that had caused his motor to stall without so much as an upward glance at the surrounding country. The forest to the east of him, and the more distant jungle that bordered the winding river, might have harbored an army of bloodthirsty savages, but neither could elicit even a passing show of interest on the part of Lieutenant Smith-Oldwick.
And not only was the young lieutenant seemingly indifferent to the immediate future and his surroundings, but he genuinely was. The idea that the area could be filled with countless enemies didn't even cross his mind. He focused intently on fixing the adjustment that had caused his engine to stall, without looking up at the landscape around him. The forest to his east and the distant jungle bordering the winding river could have concealed an army of ruthless attackers, but neither sparked even a momentary interest from Lieutenant Smith-Oldwick.
And even had he looked, it is doubtful if he would have seen the score of figures crouching in the concealment of the undergrowth at the forest's edge. There are those who are reputed to be endowed with that which is sometimes, for want of a better appellation, known as the sixth sense—a species of intuition which apprises them of the presence of an unseen danger. The concentrated gaze of a hidden observer provokes a warning sensation of nervous unrest in such as these, but though twenty pairs of savage eyes were gazing fixedly at Lieutenant Harold Percy Smith-Oldwick, the fact aroused no responsive sensation of impending danger in his placid breast. He hummed peacefully and, his adjustment completed, tried out his motor for a minute or two, then shut it off and descended to the ground with the intention of stretching his legs and taking a smoke before continuing his return flight to camp. Now for the first time he took note of his surroundings, to be immediately impressed by both the wildness and the beauty of the scene. In some respects the tree-dotted meadowland reminded him of a park-like English forest, and that wild beasts and savage men could ever be a part of so quiet a scene seemed the remotest of contingencies.
And even if he had looked, it’s unclear whether he would have noticed the crowd of figures hiding in the underbrush at the edge of the forest. Some people are said to possess what is sometimes, for lack of a better term, called the sixth sense—an intuition that alerts them to the presence of unseen danger. The intense gaze of a hidden watcher triggers a warning feeling of nervous unease in individuals like these, but even though twenty pairs of fierce eyes were fixed on Lieutenant Harold Percy Smith-Oldwick, he felt no sense of imminent danger in his calm heart. He hummed contentedly and, after finishing his adjustments, tested his motor for a minute or two, then switched it off and got out to stretch his legs and have a smoke before continuing his flight back to camp. It was only then that he took in his surroundings, immediately struck by both the wildness and the beauty of the scene. In some ways, the meadow sprinkled with trees reminded him of a picturesque English forest, and the idea that wild animals and savage men could ever be part of such a serene landscape seemed like the most unlikely of possibilities.
Some gorgeous blooms upon a flowering shrub at a little distance from his machine caught the attention of his aesthetic eye, and as he puffed upon his cigarette, he walked over to examine the flowers more closely. As he bent above them he was probably some hundred yards from his plane and it was at this instant that Numabo, chief of the Wamabo, chose to leap from his ambush and lead his warriors in a sudden rush upon the white man.
Some beautiful flowers on a flowering shrub a short distance from his plane caught his eye, and as he smoked his cigarette, he walked over to take a closer look at the blooms. As he leaned down to inspect them, he was probably about a hundred yards away from his plane, and it was at that moment that Numabo, the chief of the Wamabo, decided to jump from his hiding spot and charge toward the white man with his warriors.
The young Englishman's first intimation of danger was a chorus of savage yells from the forest behind him. Turning, he saw a score of naked, black warriors advancing rapidly toward him. They moved in a compact mass and as they approached more closely their rate of speed noticeably diminished. Lieutenant Smith-Oldwick realized in a quick glance that the direction of their approach and their proximity had cut off all chances of retreating to his plane, and he also understood that their attitude was entirely warlike and menacing. He saw that they were armed with spears and with bows and arrows, and he felt quite confident that notwithstanding the fact that he was armed with a pistol they could overcome him with the first rush. What he did not know about their tactics was that at any show of resistance they would fall back, which is the nature of the native Negroes, but that after numerous advances and retreats, during which they would work themselves into a frenzy of rage by much shrieking, leaping, and dancing, they would eventually come to the point of a determined and final assault.
The young Englishman’s first warning of danger was a loud chorus of wild yells coming from the forest behind him. Turning around, he saw a group of twenty naked, black warriors rapidly approaching him. They moved in a tight formation, and as they got closer, their speed noticeably slowed. Lieutenant Smith-Oldwick quickly realized that their approach and how close they were had blocked any chance of retreating to his plane, and he also recognized that they were completely aggressive and threatening. He saw that they were armed with spears, bows, and arrows, and he felt quite sure that, despite having a pistol, they could easily overpower him with a sudden attack. What he didn’t know about their tactics was that they would fall back at any sign of resistance, which is typical of the native Africans. However, after several advances and retreats, during which they would work themselves into a frenzied rage with much shouting, jumping, and dancing, they would eventually prepare for a determined final assault.
Numabo was in the forefront, a fact which taken in connection with his considerably greater size and more warlike appearance, indicated him as the natural target and it was at Numabo that the Englishman aimed his first shot. Unfortunately for him it missed its target, as the killing of the chief might have permanently dispersed the others. The bullet passed Numabo to lodge in the breast of a warrior behind him and as the fellow lunged forward with a scream the others turned and retreated, but to the lieutenant's chagrin they ran in the direction of the plane instead of back toward the forest so that he was still cut off from reaching his machine.
Numabo was at the front, and because he was much bigger and more intimidating, he stood out as the obvious target. The Englishman took aim and fired his first shot at Numabo. Unfortunately for him, he missed. If he had hit the chief, it might have sent the others running for good. Instead, the bullet found a warrior behind Numabo, striking him in the chest. As the warrior lunged forward with a scream, the others turned and ran. To the lieutenant's frustration, they headed toward the plane instead of back into the forest, leaving him still unable to reach his aircraft.
Presently they stopped and faced him again. They were talking loudly and gesticulating, and after a moment one of them leaped into the air, brandishing his spear and uttering savage war cries, which soon had their effect upon his fellows so that it was not long ere all of them were taking part in the wild show of savagery, which would bolster their waning courage and presently spur them on to another attack.
Currently, they paused and turned to face him again. They were speaking loudly and waving their arms around, and after a moment, one of them jumped into the air, waving his spear and shouting fierce war cries. This quickly inspired his companions, and it wasn't long before all of them joined in the chaotic display of aggression, which would boost their fading courage and soon drive them to launch another attack.
The second charge brought them closer to the Englishman, and though he dropped another with his pistol, it was not before two or three spears had been launched at him. He now had five shots remaining and there were still eighteen warriors to be accounted for, so that unless he could frighten them off, it was evident that his fate was sealed.
The second attack brought them nearer to the Englishman, and although he took down another one with his pistol, it wasn't before two or three spears had been thrown at him. He now had five shots left and still needed to deal with eighteen warriors, so unless he could scare them away, it was clear that his fate was sealed.
That they must pay the price of one life for every attempt to take his had its effect upon them and they were longer now in initiating a new rush and when they did so it was more skillfully ordered than those that had preceded it, for they scattered into three bands which, partially surrounding him, came simultaneously toward him from different directions, and though he emptied his pistol with good effect, they reached him at last. They seemed to know that his ammunition was exhausted, for they circled close about him now with the evident intention of taking him alive, since they might easily have riddled him with their sharp spears with perfect safety to themselves.
That they had to pay the price of one life for every attempt to take his had an impact on them, and they were no longer quick to start a new rush. When they finally did, it was organized more skillfully than before. They split into three groups, partially surrounding him, and approached from different directions at the same time. Even though he fired his pistol effectively, they reached him in the end. It seemed like they knew his ammo was gone, since they now circled him closely with the clear intent of capturing him alive, as they could have easily pierced him with their sharp spears without any risk to themselves.
For two or three minutes they circled about him until, at a word from Numabo, they closed in simultaneously, and though the slender young lieutenant struck out to right and left, he was soon overwhelmed by superior numbers and beaten down by the hafts of spears in brawny hands.
For two or three minutes, they circled around him until, at a signal from Numabo, they closed in at the same time. Although the slim young lieutenant fought back with punches to the right and left, he was quickly overpowered by their greater numbers and knocked down by the ends of spears in strong hands.
He was all but unconscious when they finally dragged him to his feet, and after securing his hands behind his back, pushed him roughly along ahead of them toward the jungle.
He was barely conscious when they finally got him on his feet, and after tying his hands behind his back, they shoved him roughly ahead toward the jungle.
As the guard prodded him along the narrow trail, Lieutenant Smith-Oldwick could not but wonder why they had wished to take him alive. He knew that he was too far inland for his uniform to have any significance to this native tribe to whom no inkling of the World War probably ever had come, and he could only assume that he had fallen into the hands of the warriors of some savage potentate upon whose royal caprice his fate would hinge.
As the guard pushed him along the narrow path, Lieutenant Smith-Oldwick couldn't help but wonder why they wanted him alive. He realized he was too far inland for his uniform to mean anything to this native tribe, who probably had no idea about the World War. He could only guess that he had fallen into the hands of warriors from some brutal leader, and his fate would depend on their unpredictable whims.
They had marched for perhaps half an hour when the Englishman saw ahead of them, in a little clearing upon the bank of the river, the thatched roofs of native huts showing above a crude but strong palisade; and presently he was ushered into a village street where he was immediately surrounded by a throng of women and children and warriors. Here he was soon the center of an excited mob whose intent seemed to be to dispatch him as quickly as possible. The women were more venomous than the men, striking and scratching him whenever they could reach him, until at last Numabo, the chief, was obliged to interfere to save his prisoner for whatever purpose he was destined.
They had been walking for about half an hour when the Englishman saw a little clearing by the river, where the thatched roofs of local huts peeked above a rough but sturdy fence. Soon, he was led into a village street and immediately surrounded by a crowd of women, children, and warriors. In no time, he became the center of an excited mob whose goal seemed to be to get rid of him as quickly as possible. The women were more aggressive than the men, hitting and scratching him whenever they could, until finally Numabo, the chief, had to step in to protect his prisoner for whatever purpose he was intended.
As the warriors pushed the crowd back, opening a space through which the white man was led toward a hut, Lieutenant Smith-Oldwick saw coming from the opposite end of the village a number of Negroes wearing odds and ends of German uniforms. He was not a little surprised at this, and his first thought was that he had at last come in contact with some portion of the army which was rumored to be crossing from the west coast and for signs of which he had been searching.
As the warriors moved the crowd aside, clearing a path for the white man to be taken to a hut, Lieutenant Smith-Oldwick noticed several Black men approaching from the other side of the village, wearing mismatched pieces of German uniforms. He was quite surprised by this, and his first thought was that he had finally encountered part of the army rumored to be crossing from the west coast, which he had been actively looking for.
A rueful smile touched his lips as he contemplated the unhappy circumstances which surrounded the accession of this knowledge for though he was far from being without hope, he realized that only by the merest chance could he escape these people and regain his machine.
A sad smile crossed his lips as he thought about the unfortunate situation that came with this knowledge. Even though he was far from hopeless, he understood that only by sheer luck could he get away from these people and get his machine back.
Among the partially uniformed blacks was a huge fellow in the tunic of a sergeant and as this man's eyes fell upon the British officer, a loud cry of exultation broke from his lips, and immediately his followers took up the cry and pressed forward to bait the prisoner.
Among the partially uniformed Black men was a huge guy in a sergeant's tunic, and when this man saw the British officer, he let out a loud cheer, which his followers quickly echoed as they moved forward to taunt the prisoner.
"Where did you get the Englishman?" asked Usanga, the black sergeant, of the chief Numabo. "Are there many more with him?"
"Where did you get the Englishman?" asked Usanga, the Black sergeant, to Chief Numabo. "Are there many more like him?"
"He came down from the sky," replied the native chief, "in a strange thing which flies like a bird and which frightened us very much at first; but we watched for a long time and saw that it did not seem to be alive, and when this white man left it we attacked him and though he killed some of my warriors, we took him, for we Wamabos are brave men and great warriors."
"He came down from the sky," said the native chief, "in a strange object that flies like a bird and scared us a lot at first; but we watched for a long time and realized it didn’t seem to be alive. When this white man got out of it, we attacked him, and although he killed some of my warriors, we captured him, because we Wamabos are brave and great warriors."
Usanga's eyes went wide. "He flew here through the sky?" he asked.
Usanga's eyes widened. "He flew here through the sky?" he asked.
"Yes," said Numabo. "In a great thing which resembled a bird he flew down out of the sky. The thing is still there where it came down close to the four trees near the second bend in the river. We left it there because, not knowing what it was, we were afraid to touch it and it is still there if it has not flown away again."
"Yes," Numabo said. "A huge creature that looked like a bird flew down from the sky. It's still there where it landed, close to the four trees near the second bend in the river. We left it there because we weren't sure what it was and were afraid to touch it, and it's still there unless it flew away again."
"It cannot fly," said Usanga, "without this man in it. It is a terrible thing which filled the hearts of our soldiers with terror, for it flew over our camps at night and dropped bombs upon us. It is well that you captured this white man, Numabo, for with his great bird he would have flown over your village tonight and killed all your people. These Englishmen are very wicked white men."
"It can't fly," Usanga said, "without this man on board. It's a terrifying thing that filled our soldiers' hearts with fear because it flew over our camps at night and dropped bombs on us. It's good that you captured this white man, Numabo, because with his big bird, he would have flown over your village tonight and killed all your people. These Englishmen are incredibly evil white men."
"He will fly no more," said Numabo. "It is not intended that a man should fly through the air; only wicked demons do such things as that and Numabo, the chief, will see that this white man does not do it again," and with the words he pushed the young officer roughly toward a hut in the center of the village, where he was left under guard of two stalwart warriors.
"He won't be flying anymore," said Numabo. "It's not meant for a man to soar through the air; only evil spirits do that kind of thing, and Numabo, the chief, will make sure this white man doesn't try it again." With that, he shoved the young officer roughly toward a hut in the middle of the village, where he was left under the watch of two strong warriors.
For an hour or more the prisoner was left to his own devices, which consisted in vain and unremitting attempts to loosen the strands which fettered his wrists, and then he was interrupted by the appearance of the black sergeant Usanga, who entered his hut and approached him.
For an hour or more, the prisoner was left alone, trying unsuccessfully to loosen the bonds around his wrists. Then, he was interrupted by the arrival of the black sergeant Usanga, who entered his hut and came closer to him.
"What are they going to do with me?" asked the Englishman. "My country is not at war with these people. You speak their language. Tell them that I am not an enemy, that my people are the friends of the black people and that they must let me go in peace."
"What are they going to do with me?" asked the Englishman. "My country is not at war with these people. You speak their language. Tell them that I am not an enemy, that my people are friends with the Black people and that they need to let me go in peace."
Usanga laughed. "They do not know an Englishman from a German," he replied. "It is nothing to them what you are, except that you are a white man and an enemy."
Usanga laughed. "They can’t tell an Englishman from a German," he replied. "To them, it doesn't matter who you are, only that you're a white man and an enemy."
"Then why did they take me alive?" asked the lieutenant.
"Then why did they capture me alive?" asked the lieutenant.
"Come," said Usanga and he led the Englishman to the doorway of the hut. "Look," he said, and pointed a black forefinger toward the end of the village street where a wider space between the huts left a sort of plaza.
"Come," said Usanga, leading the Englishman to the doorway of the hut. "Look," he said, pointing a black finger toward the end of the village street where a wider space between the huts created a sort of plaza.
Here Lieutenant Harold Percy Smith-Oldwick saw a number of Negresses engaged in laying fagots around a stake and in preparing fires beneath a number of large cooking vessels. The sinister suggestion was only too obvious.
Here Lieutenant Harold Percy Smith-Oldwick saw several Black women gathering sticks around a stake and preparing fires under several large cooking pots. The ominous implication was all too clear.
Usanga was eyeing the white man closely, but if he expected to be rewarded by any signs of fear, he was doomed to disappointment and the young lieutenant merely turned toward him with a shrug: "Really now, do you beggars intend eating me?"
Usanga was watching the white man closely, but if he expected to see any signs of fear, he was in for a letdown. The young lieutenant just turned to him and shrugged, saying, "Seriously, do you guys plan on eating me?"
"Not my people," replied Usanga. "We do not eat human flesh, but the Wamabos do. It is they who will eat you, but we will kill you for the feast, Englishman."
"Not my people," Usanga replied. "We don’t eat human flesh, but the Wamabos do. They are the ones who will eat you, but we will kill you for the feast, Englishman."
The Englishman remained standing in the doorway of the hut, an interested spectator of the preparations for the coming orgy that was so horribly to terminate his earthly existence. It can hardly be assumed that he felt no fear; yet, if he did, he hid it perfectly beneath an imperturbable mask of coolness. Even the brutal Usanga must have been impressed by the bravery of his victim since, though he had come to abuse and possibly to torture the helpless prisoner, he now did neither, contenting himself merely with berating whites as a race and Englishmen especially, because of the terror the British aviators had caused Germany's native troops in East Africa.
The Englishman stood in the doorway of the hut, watching the preparations for the upcoming orgy that would tragically end his life. It's hard to believe he felt no fear; however, if he did, he masked it perfectly behind a calm facade. Even the brutal Usanga must have been struck by the courage of his victim, as, although he came intending to mistreat and possibly torture the helpless prisoner, he did neither, instead choosing to criticize white people as a whole and Englishmen in particular for the fear the British pilots had instilled in Germany's native troops in East Africa.
"No more," he concluded, "will your great bird fly over our people dropping death among them from the skies—Usanga will see to that," and he walked abruptly away toward a group of his own fighting men who were congregated near the stake where they were laughing and joking with the women.
"No more," he said, "will your big bird fly over our people, dropping death on them from the sky—Usanga will make sure of that," and he turned sharply and walked over to a group of his own fighters who were gathered near the stake, laughing and joking with the women.
A few minutes later the Englishman saw them pass out of the village gate, and once again his thoughts reverted to various futile plans for escape.
A few minutes later, the Englishman saw them walk out of the village gate, and once again, he found himself thinking about different pointless plans for escape.
Several miles north of the village on a little rise of ground close to the river where the jungle, halting at the base of a knoll, had left a few acres of grassy land sparsely wooded, a man and a girl were busily engaged in constructing a small boma, in the center of which a thatched hut already had been erected.
Several miles north of the village on a small rise of land near the river, where the jungle stopped at the base of a hill and left a few acres of grassy land with some trees, a man and a girl were actively building a small enclosure, in the center of which a thatched hut had already been set up.
They worked almost in silence with only an occasional word of direction or interrogation between them.
They worked mostly in silence, exchanging only an occasional word of instruction or question.
Except for a loin cloth, the man was naked, his smooth skin tanned to a deep brown by the action of sun and wind. He moved with the graceful ease of a jungle cat and when he lifted heavy weights, the action seemed as effortless as the raising of empty hands.
Except for a loin cloth, the man was naked, his smooth skin tanned to a deep brown by the sun and wind. He moved with the graceful ease of a jungle cat, and when he lifted heavy weights, it looked as effortless as raising empty hands.
When he was not looking at her, and it was seldom that he did, the girl found her eyes wandering toward him, and at such times there was always a puzzled expression upon her face as though she found in him an enigma which she could not solve. As a matter of fact, her feelings toward him were not un-tinged with awe, since in the brief period of their association she had discovered in this handsome, godlike giant the attributes of the superman and the savage beast closely intermingled. At first she had felt only that unreasoning feminine terror which her unhappy position naturally induced.
When he wasn't looking at her, which was rarely, she found herself staring at him, and during those moments, a puzzled expression often crossed her face, as if he was a mystery she couldn't figure out. Honestly, her feelings for him were mixed with a bit of awe, because during their short time together, she had seen in this striking, godlike man a blend of superhuman qualities and primal instincts. Initially, she had only experienced the irrational fear that her difficult situation naturally brought on.
To be alone in the heart of an unexplored wilderness of Central Africa with a savage wild man was in itself sufficiently appalling, but to feel also that this man was a blood enemy, that he hated her and her kind and that in addition thereto he owed her a personal grudge for an attack she had made upon him in the past, left no loophole for any hope that he might accord her even the minutest measure of consideration.
To be alone in the middle of an unexplored wilderness in Central Africa with a savage wild man was already terrifying, but knowing that this man was her sworn enemy, that he hated her and her people, and that he also held a personal grudge against her for a past attack, left no room for hope that he would show her even the slightest bit of consideration.
She had seen him first months since when he had entered the headquarters of the German high command in East Africa and carried off the luckless Major Schneider, of whose fate no hint had ever reached the German officers; and she had seen him again upon that occasion when he had rescued her from the clutches of the lion and, after explaining to her that he had recognized her in the British camp, had made her prisoner. It was then that she had struck him down with the butt of her pistol and escaped. That he might seek no personal revenge for her act had been evidenced in Wilhelmstal the night that he had killed Hauptmann Fritz Schneider and left without molesting her.
She had first seen him months ago when he entered the headquarters of the German high command in East Africa and took away the unfortunate Major Schneider, whose fate had never been revealed to the German officers. She had seen him again when he saved her from a lion and, after telling her that he recognized her in the British camp, took her prisoner. That was when she had hit him with the butt of her pistol and managed to escape. The fact that he didn’t seek personal revenge for her action was clear in Wilhelmstal the night he killed Hauptmann Fritz Schneider and left without bothering her.
No, she could not fathom him. He hated her and at the same time he had protected her as had been evidenced again when he had kept the great apes from tearing her to pieces after she had escaped from the Wamabo village to which Usanga, the black sergeant, had brought her a captive; but why was he saving her? For what sinister purpose could this savage enemy be protecting her from the other denizens of his cruel jungle? She tried to put from her mind the probable fate which awaited her, yet it persisted in obtruding itself upon her thoughts, though always she was forced to admit that there was nothing in the demeanor of the man to indicate that her fears were well grounded. She judged him perhaps by the standards other men had taught her and because she looked upon him as a savage creature, she felt that she could not expect more of chivalry from him than was to be found in the breasts of the civilized men of her acquaintance.
No, she couldn’t understand him. He hated her, but at the same time, he had protected her, as shown again when he kept the great apes from tearing her apart after she escaped from the Wamabo village, where Usanga, the black sergeant, had taken her as a captive. But why was he saving her? What hidden reason could this savage enemy have for protecting her from the other creatures of his brutal jungle? She tried to shake off the likely fate that awaited her, but it kept intruding on her thoughts. Still, she had to admit there was nothing in his behavior that suggested her fears were justified. She judged him by the standards other men had taught her, and because she saw him as a savage, she felt she couldn’t expect more chivalry from him than she found in the civilized men she knew.
Fräulein Bertha Kircher was by nature a companionable and cheerful character. She was not given to morbid forebodings, and above all things she craved the society of her kind and that interchange of thought which is one of the marked distinctions between man and the lower animals. Tarzan, on the other hand, was sufficient unto himself. Long years of semi-solitude among creatures whose powers of oral expression are extremely limited had thrown him almost entirely upon his own resources for entertainment.
Fräulein Bertha Kircher was naturally a friendly and upbeat person. She wasn't prone to gloomy thoughts, and above all, she wanted the company of others and the exchange of ideas, which is a key difference between humans and lower animals. Tarzan, on the other hand, was completely self-sufficient. Many years of near-solitude among creatures with very limited communication skills had made him rely almost entirely on himself for entertainment.
His active mind was never idle, but because his jungle mates could neither follow nor grasp the vivid train of imaginings that his man-mind wrought, he had long since learned to keep them to himself; and so now he found no need for confiding them in others. This fact, linked with that of his dislike for the girl, was sufficient to seal his lips for other than necessary conversation, and so they worked on together in comparative silence. Bertha Kircher, however, was nothing if not feminine and she soon found that having someone to talk to who would not talk was extremely irksome. Her fear of the man was gradually departing, and she was full of a thousand unsatisfied curiosities as to his plans for the future in so far as they related to her, as well as more personal questions regarding himself, since she could not but wonder as to his antecedents and his strange and solitary life in the jungle, as well as his friendly intercourse with the savage apes among which she had found him.
His mind was always active, but since his jungle companions couldn't keep up with or understand the vibrant thoughts he had, he had learned to keep them to himself. Now, he saw no reason to share them with anyone else. This, along with his dislike for the girl, made him keep his conversations to a minimum, and they worked together in relative silence. Bertha Kircher, however, was definitely feminine and quickly realized that having someone to talk to who wouldn’t respond was very frustrating. Her fear of him was fading, and she was filled with countless unanswered questions about his plans for the future, especially as they related to her, as well as more personal inquiries about him. She couldn’t help but wonder about his past and his strange, solitary life in the jungle, as well as his friendly interactions with the wild apes among whom she had found him.
With the waning of her fears she became sufficiently emboldened to question him, and so she asked him what he intended doing after the hut and boma were completed.
With her fears fading away, she grew bold enough to ask him what he planned to do after the hut and boma were finished.
"I am going to the west coast where I was born," replied Tarzan. "I do not know when. I have all my life before me and in the jungle there is no reason for haste. We are not forever running as fast as we can from one place to another as are you of the outer world. When I have been here long enough I will go on toward the west, but first I must see that you have a safe place in which to sleep, and that you have learned how to provide yourself with necessaries. That will take time."
"I’m heading to the west coast where I was born," replied Tarzan. "I don’t know when. I have my whole life ahead of me, and in the jungle, there’s no reason to rush. We’re not always sprinting from one place to another like you folks in the outside world. Once I’ve been here long enough, I’ll move west, but first, I need to make sure you have a safe place to sleep and that you know how to take care of yourself. That will take some time."
"You are going to leave me here alone?" cried the girl; her tones marked the fear which the prospect induced. "You are going to leave me here alone in this terrible jungle, a prey to wild beasts and savage men, hundreds of miles from a white settlement and in a country which gives every evidence of never having been touched by the foot of civilized men?"
"You’re really going to leave me here all by myself?" the girl cried, her voice full of fear at the thought. "You’re going to abandon me in this awful jungle, at the mercy of wild animals and brutal men, hundreds of miles from any civilized settlement, in a place that clearly has never seen a civilized person?"
"Why not?" asked Tarzan. "I did not bring you here. Would one of your men accord any better treatment to an enemy woman?"
"Why not?" asked Tarzan. "I didn't bring you here. Would one of your guys treat an enemy woman any better?"
"Yes," she exclaimed. "They certainly would. No man of my race would leave a defenseless white woman alone in this horrible place."
"Yes," she said. "They definitely would. No man from my background would abandon a defenseless white woman in this terrible place."
Tarzan shrugged his broad shoulders. The conversation seemed profitless and it was further distasteful to him for the reason that it was carried on in German, a tongue which he detested as much as he did the people who spoke it. He wished that the girl spoke English and then it occurred to him that as he had seen her in disguise in the British camp carrying on her nefarious work as a German spy, she probably did speak English and so he asked her.
Tarzan shrugged his broad shoulders. The conversation felt pointless, and he found it even more distasteful because it was in German, a language he hated as much as the people who spoke it. He wished the girl spoke English, and then it hit him that since he had seen her disguised in the British camp doing her shady work as a German spy, she probably did speak English, so he asked her.
"Of course I speak English," she exclaimed, "but I did not know that you did."
"Of course I speak English," she said, "but I didn't know you did."
Tarzan looked his wonderment but made no comment. He only wondered why the girl should have any doubts as to the ability of an Englishman to speak English, and then suddenly it occurred to him that she probably looked upon him merely as a beast of the jungle who by accident had learned to speak German through frequenting the district which Germany had colonized. It was there only that she had seen him and so she might not know that he was an Englishman by birth, and that he had had a home in British East Africa. It was as well, he thought, that she knew little of him, as the less she knew the more he might learn from her as to her activities in behalf of the Germans and of the German spy system of which she was a representative; and so it occurred to him to let her continue to think that he was only what he appeared to be—a savage denizen of his savage jungle, a man of no race and no country, hating all white men impartially; and this in truth, was what she did think of him. It explained perfectly his attacks upon Major Schneider and the Major's brother, Hauptmann Fritz.
Tarzan looked surprised but didn't say anything. He just wondered why the girl doubted an Englishman could speak English, and then it hit him that she probably saw him as just a jungle beast who had randomly picked up German from hanging around the area colonized by Germany. That was the only place she had seen him, so she might not know he was English by birth and had a home in British East Africa. He thought it was probably better for her to know little about him because the less she knew, the more he could learn about her actions on behalf of the Germans and the German spy network she represented. So, he decided to let her keep thinking he was just what he seemed to be—a wild inhabitant of the jungle, a man without a race or country, who hated all white men equally; and that's exactly what she thought of him. It perfectly explained his attacks on Major Schneider and the Major's brother, Hauptmann Fritz.
Again they worked on in silence upon the boma which was now nearly completed, the girl helping the man to the best of her small ability. Tarzan could not but note with grudging approval the spirit of helpfulness she manifested in the oft-times painful labor of gathering and arranging the thorn bushes which constituted the temporary protection against roaming carnivores. Her hands and arms gave bloody token of the sharpness of the numerous points that had lacerated her soft flesh, and even though she were an enemy Tarzan could not but feel compunction that he had permitted her to do this work, and at last he bade her stop.
Again they worked in silence on the boma, which was now almost finished, the girl helping the man as best as she could. Tarzan couldn't help but notice with reluctant approval the willingness she showed during the often painful task of gathering and arranging the thorn bushes that provided temporary protection against wandering carnivores. Her hands and arms were bloodied from the sharp points that had cut into her tender skin, and even though she was considered an enemy, Tarzan felt a pang of guilt for allowing her to do this work, and finally, he told her to stop.
"Why?" she asked. "It is no more painful to me than it must be to you, and, as it is solely for my protection that you are building this boma, there is no reason why I should not do my share."
"Why?" she asked. "It's not any more painful for me than it is for you, and since you're building this boma just for my protection, there's no reason I shouldn't pull my weight."
"You are a woman," replied Tarzan. "This is not a woman's work. If you wish to do something, take those gourds I brought this morning and fill them with water at the river. You may need it while I am away."
"You’re a woman," Tarzan replied. "This isn’t a job for women. If you want to help, take those gourds I brought this morning and fill them with water at the river. You might need it while I’m gone."
"While you are away—" she said. "You are going away?"
"While you’re away—" she said. "You’re leaving?"
"When the boma is built I am going out after meat," he replied. "Tomorrow I will go again and take you and show you how you may make your own kills after I am gone."
"When the enclosure is built, I'm going out to hunt," he said. "Tomorrow, I'll go again and take you with me to show you how you can make your own kills once I'm gone."
Without a word she took the gourds and walked toward the river. As she filled them, her mind was occupied with painful forebodings of the future. She knew that Tarzan had passed a death sentence upon her, and that the moment that he left her, her doom was sealed, for it could be but a question of time—a very short time—before the grim jungle would claim her, for how could a lone woman hope successfully to combat the savage forces of destruction which constituted so large a part of existence in the jungle?
Without saying anything, she grabbed the gourds and headed toward the river. As she filled them, her mind was filled with painful fears about the future. She realized that Tarzan had sentenced her to death, and that the moment he walked away, her fate was sealed. It was only a matter of time—a very short time—before the harsh jungle would take her, because how could a single woman expect to survive against the savage forces of destruction that were such a big part of life in the jungle?
So occupied was she with the gloomy prophecies that she had neither ears nor eyes for what went on about her. Mechanically she filled the gourds and, taking them up, turned slowly to retrace her steps to the boma only to voice immediately a half-stifled scream and shrink back from the menacing figure looming before her and blocking her way to the hut.
So consumed was she with the dark predictions that she had no awareness of what was happening around her. Automatically, she filled the gourds, and as she picked them up, she turned slowly to head back to the boma, only to let out a muffled scream and step back from the threatening figure standing in front of her, blocking her path to the hut.
Go-lat, the king ape, hunting a little apart from his tribe, had seen the woman go to the river for water, and it was he who confronted her when she turned back with her filled gourds. Go-lat was not a pretty creature when judged by standards of civilized humanity, though the shes of his tribe and even Go-lat himself, considered his glossy black coat shot with silver, his huge arms dangling to his knees, his bullet head sunk between his mighty shoulders, marks of great personal beauty. His wicked, bloodshot eyes and broad nose, his ample mouth and great fighting fangs only enhanced the claim of this Adonis of the forest upon the affections of his shes.
Go-lat, the king ape, was hunting a little away from his tribe when he spotted the woman going to the river for water. It was he who confronted her as she turned back with her filled containers. By the standards of civilized humans, Go-lat was not an attractive creature, but the female apes of his tribe, and even Go-lat himself, considered his shiny black fur speckled with silver, his huge arms reaching down to his knees, and his large head sunk between his powerful shoulders as signs of great beauty. His wicked, bloodshot eyes, broad nose, ample mouth, and formidable fighting teeth only added to the allure of this Adonis of the forest in the eyes of his females.
Doubtless in the little, savage brain there was a well-formed conviction that this strange she belonging to the Tarmangani must look with admiration upon so handsome a creature as Go-lat, for there could be no doubt in the mind of any that his beauty entirely eclipsed such as the hairless white ape might lay claim to.
Doubtless in the small, wild brain, there was a strong belief that this strange woman from the Tarmangani would admire such a handsome creature as Go-lat, because it was clear to anyone that his beauty completely overshadowed whatever the hairless white ape could claim.
But Bertha Kircher saw only a hideous beast, a fierce and terrible caricature of man. Could Go-lat have known what passed through her mind, he must have been terribly chagrined, though the chances are that he would have attributed it to a lack of discernment on her part. Tarzan heard the girl's cry and looking up saw at a glance the cause of her terror. Leaping lightly over the boma, he ran swiftly toward her as Go-lat lumbered closer to the girl the while he voiced his emotions in low gutturals which, while in reality the most amicable of advances, sounded to the girl like the growling of an enraged beast. As Tarzan drew nearer he called aloud to the ape and the girl heard from the human lips the same sounds that had fallen from those of the anthropoid.
But Bertha Kircher only saw a hideous beast, a fierce and terrible caricature of a human. If Go-lat could have known what was going through her mind, he would have been extremely disheartened, though it’s likely he would have thought it was her lack of understanding. Tarzan heard the girl’s scream and, looking up, instantly saw what was terrifying her. Jumping easily over the boma, he quickly ran toward her while Go-lat lumbered closer, making low guttural sounds that, although meant as friendly gestures, sounded to the girl like the growl of an angry beast. As Tarzan got closer, he shouted out to the ape, and the girl heard from his human voice the same sounds that had come from the ape.
"I will not harm your she," Go-lat called to Tarzan.
"I won't hurt your woman," Go-lat shouted to Tarzan.
"I know it," replied the ape-man, "but she does not. She is like Numa and Sheeta, who do not understand our talk. She thinks you come to harm her."
"I know it," replied the ape-man, "but she doesn’t. She’s like Numa and Sheeta, who don’t understand our language. She thinks you’re here to hurt her."
By this time Tarzan was beside the girl. "He will not harm you," he said to her. "You need not be afraid. This ape has learned his lesson. He has learned that Tarzan is lord of the jungle. He will not harm that which is Tarzan's."
By this time, Tarzan was next to the girl. "He won't hurt you," he told her. "You don't have to be scared. This ape has learned his lesson. He knows that Tarzan is the king of the jungle. He won't harm what belongs to Tarzan."
The girl cast a quick glance at the man's face. It was evident to her that the words he had spoken meant nothing to him and that the assumed proprietorship over her was, like the boma, only another means for her protection.
The girl shot a quick look at the man's face. It was clear to her that his words didn’t mean anything to him and that his supposed ownership of her was, like the boma, just another way to protect her.
"But I am afraid of him," she said.
"But I'm scared of him," she said.
"You must not show your fear. You will be often surrounded by these apes. At such times you will be safest. Before I leave you I will give you the means of protecting yourself against them should one of them chance to turn upon you. If I were you I would seek their society. Few are the animals of the jungle that dare attack the great apes when there are several of them together. If you let them know that you are afraid of them, they will take advantage of it and your life will be constantly menaced. The shes especially would attack you. I will let them know that you have the means of protecting yourself and of killing them. If necessary, I will show you how and then they will respect and fear you."
"You can't show your fear. You'll often be surrounded by these apes. That's when you'll be the safest. Before I go, I'll give you the tools to protect yourself in case one of them decides to attack you. If I were in your position, I would try to befriend them. Very few animals in the jungle dare to challenge the great apes when they're in a group. If you show them you're scared, they'll take advantage of that, and your life will always be in danger. The females especially would come after you. I'll make sure they know you have the means to defend yourself and even kill them if needed. If necessary, I’ll teach you how, and then they’ll respect and fear you."
"I will try," said the girl, "but I am afraid that it will be difficult. He is the most frightful creature I ever have seen." Tarzan smiled. "Doubtless he thinks the same of you," he said.
"I'll give it a shot," said the girl, "but I'm worried it will be tough. He's the scariest thing I've ever seen." Tarzan smiled. "I'm sure he feels the same way about you," he said.
By this time other apes had entered the clearing and they were now the center of a considerable group, among which were several bulls, some young shes, and some older ones with their little balus clinging to their backs or frolicking around at their feet. Though they had seen the girl the night of the Dum-Dum when Sheeta had forced her to leap from her concealment into the arena where the apes were dancing, they still evinced a great curiosity regarding her. Some of the shes came very close and plucked at her garments, commenting upon them to one another in their strange tongue. The girl, by the exercise of all the will power she could command, succeeded in passing through the ordeal without evincing any of the terror and revulsion that she felt. Tarzan watched her closely, a half-smile upon his face. He was not so far removed from recent contact with civilized people that he could not realize the torture that she was undergoing, but he felt no pity for this woman of a cruel enemy who doubtless deserved the worst suffering that could be meted to her. Yet, notwithstanding his sentiments toward her, he was forced to admire her fine display of courage. Suddenly he turned to the apes.
By this time, other apes had come into the clearing and were now at the center of a large group, which included several males, some young females, and a few older ones with their little infants clinging to their backs or playing around their feet. Even though they had seen the girl the night of the Dum-Dum when Sheeta had forced her to jump from her hiding spot into the arena where the apes were dancing, they still showed a lot of curiosity about her. Some of the females came very close and tugged at her clothes, chatting about them to one another in their unusual language. The girl, using all the willpower she could muster, managed to get through the situation without showing any of the fear and disgust she felt. Tarzan watched her closely, a half-smile on his face. He wasn’t so far removed from recent contact with civilized people that he couldn’t understand the torment she was going through, but he felt no pity for this woman of a cruel enemy who surely deserved the worst suffering possible. Yet, despite his feelings toward her, he couldn’t help but admire her impressive display of courage. Suddenly, he turned to the apes.
"Tarzan goes to hunt for himself and his she," he said. "The she will remain there," and he pointed toward the hut. "See that no member of the tribe harms her. Do you understand?"
"Tarzan is going to hunt for himself and his woman," he said. "The woman will stay there," and he pointed toward the hut. "Make sure no member of the tribe hurts her. Do you understand?"
The apes nodded. "We will not harm her," said Go-lat.
The apes nodded. "We won't hurt her," said Go-lat.
"No," said Tarzan. "You will not. For if you do, Tarzan will kill you," and then turning to the girl, "Come," he said, "I am going to hunt now. You had better remain at the hut. The apes have promised not to harm you. I will leave my spear with you. It will be the best weapon you could have in case you should need to protect yourself, but I doubt if you will be in any danger for the short time that I am away."
"No," said Tarzan. "You won't. Because if you do, Tarzan will kill you." Then he turned to the girl, "Come," he said, "I'm going to hunt now. You should stay at the hut. The apes have promised not to hurt you. I'll leave my spear with you. It'll be the best weapon you have in case you need to protect yourself, but I don't think you'll be in any danger while I'm gone for a short time."
He walked with her as far as the boma and when she had entered he closed the gap with thorn bushes and turned away toward the forest. She watched him moving across the clearing, noting the easy, catlike tread and the grace of every movement that harmonized so well with the symmetry and perfection of his figure. At the forest's edge she saw him swing lightly into a tree and disappear from view, and then, being a woman, she entered the hut and, throwing herself upon the ground, burst into tears.
He walked with her to the enclosure, and when she stepped inside, he filled the gap with thorn bushes and turned toward the forest. She watched him cross the clearing, noticing his smooth, catlike walk and the elegance of his every move that matched the symmetry and perfection of his figure. At the edge of the forest, she saw him leap lightly into a tree and vanish from sight, and then, being a woman, she entered the hut, threw herself on the ground, and burst into tears.
Chapter X
In the Hands of Savages
Tarzan sought Bara, the deer, or Horta, the boar, for of all the jungle animals he doubted if any would prove more palatable to the white woman, but though his keen nostrils were ever on the alert, he traveled far without being rewarded with even the faintest scent spoor of the game he sought. Keeping close to the river where he hoped to find Bara or Horta approaching or leaving a drinking place he came at last upon the strong odor of the Wamabo village and being ever ready to pay his hereditary enemies, the Gomangani, an undesired visit, he swung into a detour and came up in the rear of the village. From a tree which overhung the palisade he looked down into the street where he saw the preparations going on which his experience told him indicated the approach of one of those frightful feasts the piece de resistance of which is human flesh.
Tarzan searched for Bara, the deer, or Horta, the boar, since he thought these jungle animals might be more appealing to the white woman. Although his sharp senses were always alert, he traveled far without catching even the slightest scent of the game he was after. Sticking close to the river, hoping to find Bara or Horta coming to drink, he eventually picked up the strong smell of the Wamabo village. Always ready to confront his hereditary enemies, the Gomangani, he took a detour and approached the back of the village. From a tree that hung over the palisade, he looked down into the street, where he saw preparations that his experience told him were for one of those horrific feasts, the highlight of which was human flesh.
One of Tarzan's chief divertissements was the baiting of the blacks. He realized more keen enjoyment through annoying and terrifying them than from any other source of amusement the grim jungle offered. To rob them of their feast in some way that would strike terror to their hearts would give him the keenest of pleasure, and so he searched the village with his eyes for some indication of the whereabouts of the prisoner. His view was circumscribed by the dense foliage of the tree in which he sat, and, so that he might obtain a better view, he climbed further aloft and moved cautiously out upon a slender branch.
One of Tarzan's main sources of entertainment was teasing the locals. He found more enjoyment in scaring and annoying them than in any other thrill the harsh jungle could provide. Stealing their food in a way that would frighten them gave him the greatest pleasure, so he scanned the village for any sign of where the prisoner was. His view was limited by the thick leaves of the tree he was in, so to get a better look, he climbed higher and carefully made his way out onto a thin branch.
Tarzan of the Apes possessed a woodcraft scarcely short of the marvelous but even Tarzan's wondrous senses were not infallible. The branch upon which he made his way outward from the bole was no smaller than many that had borne his weight upon countless other occasions. Outwardly it appeared strong and healthy and was in full foliage, nor could Tarzan know that close to the stem a burrowing insect had eaten away half the heart of the solid wood beneath the bark.
Tarzan of the Apes had incredible skills in woodcraft, but even his amazing senses weren't perfect. The branch he climbed out from the trunk was as sturdy as many others that had supported him countless times before. On the outside, it looked strong and healthy, full of leaves, and Tarzan had no way of knowing that a burrowing insect had eaten away half the solid wood right beneath the bark close to the trunk.
And so when he reached a point far out upon the limb, it snapped close to the bole of the tree without warning. Below him were no larger branches that he might clutch and as he lunged downward his foot caught in a looped creeper so that he turned completely over and alighted on the flat of his back in the center of the village street.
And so when he got to a point far out on the branch, it suddenly snapped near the trunk of the tree. Below him were no bigger branches to grab onto, and as he lunged down, his foot got caught in a twisted vine, flipping him over so that he landed flat on his back in the middle of the village street.
At the sound of the breaking limb and the crashing body falling through the branches the startled blacks scurried to their huts for weapons, and when the braver of them emerged, they saw the still form of an almost naked white man lying where he had fallen. Emboldened by the fact that he did not move they approached more closely, and when their eyes discovered no signs of others of his kind in the tree, they rushed forward until a dozen warriors stood about him with ready spears. At first they thought that the falling had killed him, but upon closer examination they discovered that the man was only stunned. One of the warriors was for thrusting a spear through his heart, but Numabo, the chief, would not permit it.
At the sound of the breaking branch and the body crashing through the trees, the startled locals hurried to their huts for weapons. When the braver ones emerged, they saw the still form of an almost naked white man lying where he had fallen. Encouraged by the fact that he wasn’t moving, they approached more closely. When they realized there were no other white people in the tree, they rushed forward until a dozen warriors stood around him, spears at the ready. At first, they thought the fall had killed him, but upon closer inspection, they found that the man was just stunned. One of the warriors wanted to stab him with a spear, but Numabo, the chief, wouldn’t allow it.
"Bind him," he said. "We will feed well tonight."
"Bind him," he said. "We'll have a good meal tonight."
And so they bound his hands and feet with thongs of gut and carried him into the hut where Lieutenant Harold Percy Smith-Oldwick awaited his fate. The Englishman had also been bound hand and foot by this time for fear that at the last moment he might escape and rob them of their feast. A great crowd of natives were gathered about the hut attempting to get a glimpse of the new prisoner, but Numabo doubled the guard before the entrance for fear that some of his people, in the exuberance of their savage joy, might rob the others of the pleasures of the death dance which would precede the killing of the victims.
And so they tied his hands and feet with strips of gut and carried him into the hut where Lieutenant Harold Percy Smith-Oldwick awaited his fate. By this time, the Englishman had also been tied up for fear that he might escape at the last moment and ruin their celebration. A large crowd of natives gathered around the hut trying to catch a glimpse of the new prisoner, but Numabo increased the guard at the entrance just in case some of his people, in their wild excitement, might take away the enjoyment of the death dance that would precede the killing of the victims.
The young Englishman had heard the sound of Tarzan's body crashing through the tree to the ground and the commotion in the village which immediately followed, and now, as he stood with his back against the wall of the hut, he looked upon the fellow-prisoner that the blacks carried in and laid upon the floor with mixed feelings of surprise and compassion. He realized that he never had seen a more perfect specimen of manhood than that of the unconscious figure before him, and he wondered to what sad circumstances the man owed his capture. It was evident that the new prisoner was himself as much a savage as his captors if apparel and weapons were any criterion by which to judge; yet it was also equally evident that he was a white man and from his well-shaped head and clean-cut features that he was not one of those unhappy halfwits who so often revert to savagery even in the heart of civilized communities.
The young Englishman heard the sound of Tarzan's body hitting the ground after crashing through the tree, along with the chaos in the village that followed. Now, as he stood with his back against the hut's wall, he observed the fellow prisoner that the Black villagers brought in and laid on the floor, feeling a mix of surprise and compassion. He realized he had never seen a more perfect example of manhood than the unconscious figure before him, and he wondered what unfortunate circumstances led to the man's capture. It was clear that the new prisoner was as much a savage as his captors, judging by his clothing and weapons; yet, it was also obvious that he was a white man, and from his well-shaped head and sharp features, he could tell he wasn't one of those unfortunate individuals who often regress to savagery even in civilized societies.
As he watched the man, he presently noticed that his eyelids were moving. Slowly they opened and a pair of gray eyes looked blankly about. With returning consciousness the eyes assumed their natural expression of keen intelligence, and a moment later, with an effort, the prisoner rolled over upon his side and drew himself to a sitting position. He was facing the Englishman, and as his eyes took in the bound ankles and the arms drawn tightly behind the other's back, a slow smile lighted his features.
As he observed the man, he soon realized that his eyelids were fluttering. They gradually opened, revealing a pair of gray eyes that scanned the surroundings blankly. As clarity returned, the eyes displayed their usual sharpness, and moments later, with some effort, the prisoner turned onto his side and pushed himself into a sitting position. He was facing the Englishman, and as he noticed the bound ankles and the arms pulled tightly behind the other's back, a slow smile broke across his face.
"They will fill their bellies tonight," he said.
"They will fill their stomachs tonight," he said.
The Englishman grinned. "From the fuss they made," he said, "the beggars must be awfully hungry. They like to have eaten me alive when they brought me in. How did they get you?"
The Englishman grinned. "From all the fuss they made," he said, "the beggars must be super hungry. They could have eaten me alive when they brought me in. How did they get you?"
Tarzan shrugged his head ruefully. "It was my own fault," he replied. "I deserve to be eaten. I crawled out upon a branch that would not bear my weight and when it broke, instead of alighting on my feet, I caught my foot in a trailer and came down on my head. Otherwise they would not have taken me—alive."
Tarzan shook his head sadly. "It was my own fault," he said. "I deserve to be eaten. I climbed out onto a branch that couldn’t hold my weight, and when it broke, instead of landing on my feet, I got my foot caught in a vine and fell on my head. Otherwise, they wouldn't have taken me—alive."
"Is there no escape?" asked the Englishman.
"Is there no way out?" asked the Englishman.
"I have escaped them before," replied Tarzan, "and I have seen others escape them. I have seen a man taken away from the stake after a dozen spear thrusts had pierced his body and the fire had been lighted about his feet."
"I've managed to get away from them before," Tarzan said, "and I've seen others do the same. I watched a man being pulled from the stake after a dozen spear thrusts had punctured his body and the flames had been ignited around his feet."
Lieutenant Smith-Oldwick shuddered. "God!" he exclaimed, "I hope I don't have to face that. I believe I could stand anything but the thought of the fire. I should hate like the devil to go into a funk before the devils at the last moment."
Lieutenant Smith-Oldwick shuddered. "God!" he exclaimed, "I hope I don't have to face that. I think I could handle anything except the idea of catching fire. I would absolutely hate to freak out in front of the monsters at the last moment."
"Don't worry," said Tarzan. "It doesn't last long and you won't funk. It is really not half as bad as it sounds. There is only a brief period of pain before you lose consciousness. I have seen it many times before. It is as good a way to go as another. We must die sometime. What difference whether it be tonight, tomorrow night, or a year hence, just so that we have lived—and I have lived!"
"Don't worry," Tarzan said. "It doesn't last long, and you won't freak out. It's really not as bad as it sounds. There's just a short moment of pain before you pass out. I've seen it happen many times before. It's as good a way to go as any. We all have to die eventually. What does it matter if it's tonight, tomorrow night, or a year from now, as long as we've lived—and I have lived!"
"Your philosophy may be all right, old top," said the young lieutenant, "but I can't say that it is exactly satisfying."
"Your philosophy might be fine, my friend," said the young lieutenant, "but I can't say it's really satisfying."
Tarzan laughed. "Roll over here," he said, "where I can get at your bonds with my teeth." The Englishman did as he was bid and presently Tarzan was working at the thongs with his strong white teeth. He felt them giving slowly beneath his efforts. In another moment they would part, and then it would be a comparatively simple thing for the Englishman to remove the remaining bonds from Tarzan and himself.
Tarzan laughed. "Come over here," he said, "so I can use my teeth to get at your ties." The Englishman did as he was told, and soon Tarzan was gnawing at the ropes with his strong white teeth. He could feel them slowly giving way under his efforts. In just a moment, they would break, and then it would be fairly easy for the Englishman to get rid of the rest of the bonds from both Tarzan and himself.
It was then that one of the guards entered the hut. In an instant he saw what the new prisoner was doing and raising his spear, struck the ape-man a vicious blow across the head with its shaft. Then he called in the other guards and together they fell upon the luckless men, kicking and beating them unmercifully, after which they bound the Englishman more securely than before and tied both men fast on opposite sides of the hut. When they had gone Tarzan looked across at his companion in misery.
It was then that one of the guards walked into the hut. In a flash, he noticed what the new prisoner was doing and, raising his spear, delivered a brutal strike to the ape-man's head with the shaft. Then, he summoned the other guards, and together they attacked the unfortunate men, kicking and beating them mercilessly. Afterward, they bound the Englishman even more tightly than before and secured both men on opposite sides of the hut. Once they had left, Tarzan glanced over at his companion in suffering.
"While there is life," he said, "there is hope," but he grinned as he voiced the ancient truism.
"While there's life," he said, "there's hope," but he smiled as he stated the age-old saying.
Lieutenant Harold Percy Smith-Oldwick returned the other's smile. "I fancy," he said, "that we are getting short on both. It must be close to supper time now."
Lieutenant Harold Percy Smith-Oldwick smiled back at the other person. "I think we're running low on both," he said. "It must be getting close to dinner time now."
Zu-tag hunted alone far from the balance of the tribe of Go-lat, the great ape. Zu-tag (Big-neck) was a young bull but recently arrived at maturity. He was large, powerful, and ferocious and at the same time far above the average of his kind in intelligence as was denoted by a fuller and less receding forehead. Already Go-lat saw in this young ape a possible contender for the laurels of his kingship and consequently the old bull looked upon Zu-tag with jealousy and disfavor. It was for this reason, possibly, as much as another that Zu-tag hunted so often alone; but it was his utter fearlessness that permitted him to wander far afield away from the protection which numbers gave the great apes. One of the results of this habit was a greatly increased resourcefulness which found him constantly growing in intelligence and powers of observation.
Zu-tag hunted alone, far from the safety of the Go-lat tribe, the great apes. Zu-tag (Big-neck) was a young bull who had just reached maturity. He was large, powerful, and fierce, and at the same time, he was smarter than the average of his kind, which was evident from his fuller and less receding forehead. Go-lat already saw this young ape as a potential rival for his kingship, and because of this, the old bull regarded Zu-tag with jealousy and disfavor. This might be one reason why Zu-tag often hunted alone; however, it was his complete fearlessness that allowed him to roam far from the protection that numbers provided great apes. As a result of this habit, he became much more resourceful, constantly growing in intelligence and observational skills.
Today he had been hunting toward the south and was returning along the river upon a path he often followed because it led by the village of the Gomangani whose strange and almost apelike actions and peculiar manners of living had aroused his interest and curiosity. As he had done upon other occasions he took up his position in a tree from which he could overlook the interior of the village and watch the blacks at their vocations in the street below.
Today he had been hunting to the south and was heading back along the river on a path he often used because it passed by the village of the Gomangani. Their strange and almost ape-like behaviors and unusual ways of life had caught his interest and curiosity. As he had done on other occasions, he climbed into a tree where he could see the interior of the village and watch the people as they went about their activities in the street below.
Zu-tag had scarcely more than established himself in his tree when, with the blacks, he was startled by the crashing of Tarzan's body from the branches of another jungle giant to the ground within the palisade. He saw the Negroes gather about the prostrate form and later carry it into the hut; and once he rose to his full height upon the limb where he had been squatting and raised his face to the heavens to scream out a savage protest and a challenge, for he had recognized in the brown-skinned Tarmangani the strange white ape who had come among them a night or two before in the midst of their Dum-Dum, and who by so easily mastering the greatest among them, had won the savage respect and admiration of this fierce young bull.
Zu-tag had barely settled into his tree when, along with the Black tribesmen, he was taken aback by the sound of Tarzan crashing to the ground from the branches of another jungle giant, landing inside the palisade. He watched as the tribesmen gathered around the fallen figure and later carried it into the hut. At one point, he stood tall on the branch where he had been squatting and lifted his face to the sky to let out a fierce protest and a challenge, for he recognized the brown-skinned Tarmangani as the strange white ape who had appeared among them a night or two earlier during their Dum-Dum, and who had earned the savage respect and admiration of this fierce young bull by easily overpowering the strongest among them.
But Zu-tag's ferocity was tempered by a certain native cunning and caution. Before he had voiced his protest there formed in his mind the thought that he would like to save this wonderful white ape from the common enemy, the Gomangani, and so he screamed forth no challenge, wisely determining that more could be accomplished by secrecy and stealth than by force of muscle and fang.
But Zu-tag's fierceness was balanced by a natural cleverness and caution. Before he voiced his protest, he thought about wanting to save this amazing white ape from the common enemy, the Gomangani, so he didn’t scream any challenges, wisely deciding that stealth and secrecy would achieve more than raw strength and teeth.
At first he thought to enter the village alone and carry off the Tarmangani; but when he saw how numerous were the warriors and that several sat directly before the entrance to the lair into which the prisoner had been carried, it occurred to him that this was work for many rather than one, and so, as silently as he had come, he slipped away through the foliage toward the north.
At first, he considered sneaking into the village by himself to take the Tarmangani, but when he saw how many warriors there were and noticed that several were sitting right in front of the entrance to the cave where the prisoner had been taken, he realized this was a job for more than just him. So, as quietly as he had arrived, he slipped away through the trees toward the north.
The tribe was still loitering about the clearing where stood the hut that Tarzan and Bertha Kircher had built. Some were idly searching for food just within the forest's edge, while others squatted beneath the shade of trees within the clearing.
The tribe was still hanging around the clearing where the hut that Tarzan and Bertha Kircher had built stood. Some were lazily looking for food just at the edge of the forest, while others sat in the shade of the trees within the clearing.
The girl had emerged from the hut, her tears dried and was gazing anxiously toward the south into the jungle where Tarzan had disappeared. Occasionally she cast suspicious glances in the direction of the huge shaggy anthropoids about her. How easy it would be for one of those great beasts to enter the boma and slay her. How helpless she was, even with the spear that the white man had left her, she realized as she noted for the thousandth time the massive shoulders, the bull necks, and the great muscles gliding so easily beneath the glossy coats. Never, she thought, had she seen such personifications of brute power as were represented by these mighty bulls. Those huge hands would snap her futile spear as she might snap a match in two, while their lightest blow could crush her into insensibility and death.
The girl stepped out of the hut, her tears dried up, and looked anxiously toward the south into the jungle where Tarzan had disappeared. Occasionally, she threw wary glances at the huge, shaggy creatures around her. It would be so easy for one of those massive beasts to enter the boma and kill her. She felt so helpless, even with the spear that the white man had left her, as she noticed for the thousandth time the broad shoulders, thick necks, and powerful muscles moving effortlessly beneath their shiny coats. Never, she thought, had she seen such embodiments of raw power as these mighty bulls. Those enormous hands could snap her useless spear like it was a matchstick, and even their lightest strike could knock her out cold or kill her.
It was while she was occupied with these depressing thoughts that there dropped suddenly into the clearing from the trees upon the south the figure of a mighty young bull. At that time all of the apes looked much alike to Bertha Kircher, nor was it until some time later that she realized that each differed from the others in individual characteristics of face and figure as do individuals of the human races. Yet even then she could not help but note the wondrous strength and agility of this great beast, and as he approached she even found herself admiring the sheen of his heavy, black, silvershot coat.
It was while she was lost in these gloomy thoughts that a powerful young bull suddenly appeared in the clearing, dropping down from the trees to the south. At that moment, all the apes looked quite similar to Bertha Kircher, and it wasn't until later that she recognized the unique traits in their faces and bodies, much like people of different human races. Still, she couldn’t help but notice the incredible strength and agility of this magnificent creature, and as he got closer, she found herself admiring the shine of his thick, black, silver-speckled coat.
It was evident that the newcomer was filled with suppressed excitement. His demeanor and bearing proclaimed this even from afar, nor was the girl the only one to note it. For as they saw him coming many of the apes arose and advanced to meet him, bristling and growling as is their way. Go-lat was among these latter, and he advanced stiffly with the hairs upon his neck and down his spine erect, uttering low growls and baring his fighting fangs, for who might say whether Zu-tag came in peace or otherwise? The old king had seen other young apes come thus in his day filled with a sudden resolution to wrest the kingship from their chief. He had seen bulls about to run amuck burst thus suddenly from the jungle upon the members of the tribe, and so Go-lat took no chances.
It was clear that the newcomer was bursting with repressed excitement. His attitude and stance made this obvious even from a distance, and the girl wasn't the only one to notice. As they saw him approaching, many of the apes stood up and moved to greet him, bristling and growling as they typically do. Go-lat was among them, advancing stiffly with the hair on his neck and spine standing on end, letting out low growls and showing his teeth, unsure if Zu-tag was coming in peace or not. The old king had seen other young apes come like this in his time, driven by a sudden determination to take the kingship from their leader. He had witnessed aggressive bulls suddenly charge out of the jungle at the tribe members, so Go-lat was taking no chances.
Had Zu-tag come indolently, feeding as he came, he might have entered the tribe without arousing notice or suspicion, but when one comes thus precipitately, evidently bursting with some emotion out of the ordinary, let all apes beware. There was a certain amount of preliminary circling, growling, and sniffing, stiff-legged and stiff-haired, before each side discovered that the other had no intention of initiating an attack and then Zu-tag told Go-lat what he had seen among the lairs of the Gomangani.
Had Zu-tag arrived lazily, munching as he approached, he could have joined the tribe without attracting attention or suspicion. But when someone comes rushing in, clearly overwhelmed by some unusual emotion, all the apes should be cautious. There was a bit of circling, growling, and sniffing, with stiff legs and bristled fur, before both sides realized the other had no plans to start a fight. Then Zu-tag told Go-lat about what he had seen among the Gomangani's lairs.
Go-lat grunted in disgust and turned away. "Let the white ape take care of himself," he said.
Go-lat grunted in disgust and turned away. "Let the white ape handle it himself," he said.
"He is a great ape," said Zu-tag. "He came to live in peace with the tribe of Go-lat. Let us save him from the Gomangani."
"He is a great ape," said Zu-tag. "He came to live peacefully with the Go-lat tribe. Let's save him from the Gomangani."
Go-lat grunted again and continued to move away.
Go-lat grunted again and kept walking away.
"Zu-tag will go alone and get him," cried the young ape, "if Go-lat is afraid of the Gomangani."
"Zu-tag will go by himself and get him," shouted the young ape, "if Go-lat is scared of the Gomangani."
The king ape wheeled in anger, growling loudly and beating upon his breast. "Go-lat is not afraid," he screamed, "but he will not go, for the white ape is not of his tribe. Go yourself and take the Tarmangani's she with you if you wish so much to save the white ape."
The king ape turned around in anger, roaring loudly and beating his chest. "Go-lat isn't afraid," he shouted, "but he won't go because the white ape isn’t from his tribe. You go and take the Tarmangani's female with you if you’re so eager to save the white ape."
"Zu-tag will go," replied the younger bull, "and he will take the Tarmangani's she and all the bulls of Go-lat who are not cowards," and so saying he cast his eyes inquiringly about at the other apes. "Who will go with Zu-tag to fight the Gomangani and bring away our brother," he demanded.
"Zu-tag will go," replied the younger bull, "and he will take the Tarmangani's female and all the bulls of Go-lat who aren't cowards," and as he said this, he looked around questioningly at the other apes. "Who will go with Zu-tag to fight the Gomangani and bring back our brother?" he asked.
Eight young bulls in the full prime of their vigor pressed forward to Zu-tag's side, but the old bulls with the conservatism and caution of many years upon their gray shoulders, shook their heads and waddled away after Go-lat.
Eight strong young bulls in their prime moved up to Zu-tag, but the older bulls, with the wisdom and caution of their years, shook their heads and slowly followed Go-lat.
"Good," cried Zu-tag. "We want no old shes to go with us to fight the Gomangani for that is work for the fighters of the tribe."
"Good," shouted Zu-tag. "We don't want any old women coming with us to fight the Gomangani because that’s work for the tribe's warriors."
The old bulls paid no attention to his boastful words, but the eight who had volunteered to accompany him were filled with self-pride so that they stood around vaingloriously beating upon their breasts, baring their fangs and screaming their hideous challenge until the jungle reverberated to the horrid sound.
The older bulls ignored his bragging, but the eight who had volunteered to go with him were full of pride, standing around boastfully pounding their chests, showing their teeth, and letting out their awful roars until the jungle echoed with the dreadful noise.
All this time Bertha Kircher was a wide-eyed and terrified spectator to what, as she thought, could end only in a terrific battle between these frightful beasts, and when Zu-tag and his followers began screaming forth their fearsome challenge, the girl found herself trembling in terror, for of all the sounds of the jungle there is none more awe inspiring than that of the great bull ape when he issues his challenge or shrieks forth his victory cry.
All this time, Bertha Kircher was a wide-eyed and terrified onlooker to what she thought could only end in a huge battle between these terrifying beasts. When Zu-tag and his followers began to scream their intimidating challenge, the girl found herself shaking in fear, because out of all the sounds in the jungle, none is more awe-inspiring than that of the great bull ape when he delivers his challenge or lets out his victory cry.
If she had been terrified before she was almost paralyzed with fear now as she saw Zu-tag and his apes turn toward the boma and approach her. With the agility of a cat Zu-tag leaped completely over the protecting wall and stood before her. Valiantly she held her spear before her, pointing it at his breast. He commenced to jabber and gesticulate, and even with her scant acquaintance with the ways of the anthropoids, she realized that he was not menacing her, for there was little or no baring of fighting fangs and his whole expression and attitude was of one attempting to explain a knotty problem or plead a worthy cause. At last he became evidently impatient, for with a sweep of one great paw he struck the spear from her hand and coming close, seized her by the arm, but not roughly. She shrank away in terror and yet some sense within her seemed to be trying to assure her that she was in no danger from this great beast. Zu-tag jabbered loudly, ever and again pointing into the jungle toward the south and moving toward the boma, pulling the girl with him. He seemed almost frantic in his efforts to explain something to her. He pointed toward the boma, herself, and then to the forest, and then, at last, as though by a sudden inspiration, he reached down and, seizing the spear, repeatedly touched it with his forefinger and again pointed toward the south. Suddenly it dawned upon the girl that what the ape was trying to explain to her was related in some way to the white man whose property they thought she was. Possibly her grim protector was in trouble and with this thought firmly established, she no longer held back, but started forward as though to accompany the young bull. At the point in the boma where Tarzan had blocked the entrance, she started to pull away the thorn bushes, and, when Zu-tag saw what she was doing, he fell to and assisted her so that presently they had an opening through the boma through which she passed with the great ape.
If she had been scared before, she was almost frozen with fear now as she saw Zu-tag and his apes turn toward the enclosure and come closer. With the agility of a cat, Zu-tag jumped completely over the protective wall and stood in front of her. Bravely, she held her spear in front of her, pointing it at his chest. He started to babble and gesture, and even with her limited understanding of the ways of these creatures, she realized he wasn’t threatening her, as there was little to no showing of fangs, and his whole demeanor seemed like someone trying to explain a complicated issue or advocate for a good cause. Finally, he became noticeably impatient; with a sweep of one large hand, he knocked the spear from her grasp and stepped closer, grabbing her arm, but not roughly. She recoiled in fear, yet some part of her felt reassured that she was in no danger from this massive creature. Zu-tag jabbered loudly, occasionally pointing toward the jungle to the south and moving toward the enclosure, pulling her along with him. He seemed almost desperate to explain something to her. He pointed toward the enclosure, then to her, then to the forest, and finally, as if struck by a sudden idea, he bent down, grabbed the spear, touched it repeatedly with his finger, and pointed toward the south again. Suddenly, it hit her that what the ape was trying to communicate was somehow related to the white man whom they thought she belonged to. Maybe her grim protector was in trouble, and with this realization, she no longer hesitated but started forward as if to follow the young ape. At the point in the enclosure where Tarzan had blocked the entrance, she began to pull away the thorn bushes, and when Zu-tag saw what she was doing, he joined in to help her until they had created an opening through the enclosure, which she passed through alongside the great ape.
Immediately Zu-tag and his eight apes started off rapidly toward the jungle, so rapidly that Bertha Kircher would have had to run at top speed to keep up with them. This she realized she could not do, and so she was forced to lag behind, much to the chagrin of Zu-tag, who constantly kept running back and urging her to greater speed. Once he took her by the arm and tried to draw her along. Her protests were of no avail since the beast could not know that they were protests, nor did he desist until she caught her foot in some tangled grass and fell to the ground. Then indeed was Zu-tag furious and growled hideously. His apes were waiting at the edge of the forest for him to lead them. He suddenly realized that this poor weak she could not keep up with them and that if they traveled at her slow rate they might be too late to render assistance to the Tarmangani, and so without more ado, the giant anthropoid picked Bertha Kircher bodily from the ground and swung her to his back. Her arms were about his neck and in this position he seized her wrists in one great paw so that she could not fall off and started at a rapid rate to join his companions.
Immediately, Zu-tag and his eight apes took off quickly toward the jungle, so quickly that Bertha Kircher would have to run at full speed to keep up. She realized she couldn't do that and had to fall behind, much to Zu-tag's frustration, as he kept running back and urging her to hurry. At one point, he grabbed her arm and tried to pull her along. Her protests didn’t matter since he couldn’t understand that they were protests, and he didn’t stop until she tripped on some tangled grass and fell to the ground. Then Zu-tag was furious and growled fiercely. His apes were waiting at the edge of the forest for him to lead them. He suddenly realized that this poor, weak woman couldn’t keep up with them and that if they traveled at her slow pace, they might be too late to help the Tarmangani. Without hesitation, the giant ape lifted Bertha Kircher from the ground and tossed her onto his back. Her arms wrapped around his neck, and in that position, he grabbed her wrists in one huge paw so she wouldn’t fall off and took off at a fast pace to rejoin his companions.
Dressed as she was in riding breeches with no entangling skirts to hinder or catch upon passing shrubbery, she soon found that she could cling tightly to the back of the mighty bull and when a moment later he took to the lower branches of the trees, she closed her eyes and clung to him in terror lest she be precipitated to the ground below.
Dressed in riding pants without any long skirts to get caught on the bushes, she quickly realized she could hold on tight to the back of the powerful bull. When he suddenly jumped into the lower branches of the trees, she closed her eyes and clung to him in fear of falling to the ground below.
That journey through the primeval forest with the nine great apes will live in the memory of Bertha Kircher for the balance of her life, as clearly delineated as at the moment of its enactment.
That journey through the ancient forest with the nine great apes will stay in Bertha Kircher's memory for the rest of her life, as vividly clear as when it first happened.
The first overwhelming wave of fear having passed, she was at last able to open her eyes and view her surroundings with increased interest and presently the sensation of terror slowly left her to be replaced by one of comparative security when she saw the ease and surety with which these great beasts traveled through the trees; and later her admiration for the young bull increased as it became evident that even burdened with her additional weight, he moved more rapidly and with no greater signs of fatigue than his unburdened fellows.
The initial wave of fear had finally subsided, allowing her to open her eyes and take in her surroundings with greater interest. Gradually, the sense of terror faded, replaced by a feeling of relative safety as she watched these magnificent creatures navigate through the trees with such confidence. Her admiration for the young bull grew when she realized that even while carrying her extra weight, he moved just as quickly and showed no more signs of exhaustion than the others that weren’t burdened.
Not once did Zu-tag pause until he came to a stop among the branches of a tree no great distance from the native village. They could hear the noises of the life within the palisade, the laughing and shouting of the Negroes, and the barking of dogs, and through the foliage the girl caught glimpses of the village from which she had so recently escaped. She shuddered to think of the possibility of having to return to it and of possible recapture, and she wondered why Zu-tag had brought her here.
Not once did Zu-tag slow down until he stopped among the branches of a tree not far from the village. They could hear the sounds of life within the palisade—the laughter and shouting of the people, and the barking of dogs. Through the leaves, the girl caught glimpses of the village she had just escaped from. She shuddered at the thought of having to go back and the chance of being captured again, and she wondered why Zu-tag had brought her here.
Now the apes advanced slowly once more and with great caution, moving as noiselessly through the trees as the squirrels themselves until they had reached a point where they could easily overlook the palisade and the village street below.
Now the apes moved forward slowly again and with great care, moving as silently through the trees as the squirrels until they reached a spot where they could easily see over the palisade and the village street below.
Zu-tag squatted upon a great branch close to the bole of the tree and by loosening the girl's arms from about his neck, indicated that she was to find a footing for herself and when she had done so, he turned toward her and pointed repeatedly at the open doorway of a hut upon the opposite side of the street below them. By various gestures he seemed to be trying to explain something to her and at last she caught at the germ of his idea—that her white man was a prisoner there.
Zu-tag squatted on a large branch near the trunk of the tree and, by loosening the girl's arms from around his neck, signaled for her to find her own footing. Once she did, he turned to her and pointed repeatedly at the open doorway of a hut across the street below them. Through various gestures, he seemed to be trying to explain something to her, and eventually, she grasped the gist of his idea—that her white man was a prisoner there.
Beneath them was the roof of a hut onto which she saw that she could easily drop, but what she could do after she had entered the village was beyond her.
Beneath them was the roof of a hut that she realized she could easily drop onto, but what she could do after entering the village was unclear to her.
Darkness was already falling and the fires beneath the cooking pots had been lighted. The girl saw the stake in the village street and the piles of fagots about it and in terror she suddenly realized the portent of these grisly preparations. Oh, if she but only had some sort of a weapon that might give her even a faint hope, some slight advantage against the blacks. Then she would not hesitate to venture into the village in an attempt to save the man who had upon three different occasions saved her. She knew that he hated her and yet strong within her breast burned the sense of her obligation to him. She could not fathom him. Never in her life had she seen a man at once so paradoxical and dependable. In many of his ways he was more savage than the beasts with which he associated and yet, on the other hand, he was as chivalrous as a knight of old. For several days she had been lost with him in the jungle absolutely at his mercy, yet she had come to trust so implicitly in his honor that any fear she had had of him was rapidly disappearing.
Darkness was already setting in, and the fires under the cooking pots had been lit. The girl noticed the stake in the village street and the piles of firewood around it, and in terror, she suddenly understood the significance of these grim preparations. Oh, if she only had some kind of weapon that could give her even a slight hope, some small advantage against the men. Then she wouldn't hesitate to go into the village to try to save the man who had rescued her three times. She knew he hated her, but deep down, she felt a strong sense of obligation to him. She couldn’t fully understand him. Never in her life had she encountered a man who was both so contradictory and so reliable. In many ways, he was more savage than the beasts he was with, yet at the same time, he was as noble as a knight of old. For several days, she had been lost in the jungle with him, completely at his mercy, but she had come to trust his honor so completely that her fear of him was quickly fading.
On the other hand, that he might be hideously cruel was evidenced to her by the fact that he was planning to leave her alone in the midst of the frightful dangers which menaced her by night and by day.
On the other hand, the possibility that he could be extremely cruel was clear to her because he was planning to leave her all alone in the middle of the terrifying dangers that threatened her day and night.
Zu-tag was evidently waiting for darkness to fall before carrying out whatever plans had matured in his savage little brain, for he and his fellows sat quietly in the tree about her, watching the preparations of the blacks. Presently it became apparent that some altercation had arisen among the Negroes, for a score or more of them were gathered around one who appeared to be their chief, and all were talking and gesticulating heatedly. The argument lasted for some five or ten minutes when suddenly the little knot broke and two warriors ran to the opposite side of the village from whence they presently returned with a large stake which they soon set up beside the one already in place. The girl wondered what the purpose of the second stake might be, nor did she have long to wait for an explanation.
Zu-tag was clearly waiting for darkness to fall before executing whatever plans were brewing in his brutal little mind, because he and his crew were sitting quietly in the tree nearby, watching the preparations of the Black people. Soon, it became obvious that some kind of disagreement had erupted among the group, as about twenty of them were gathered around someone who seemed to be their leader, all talking and gesturing animatedly. The argument lasted for about five to ten minutes when, suddenly, the group broke apart, and two warriors ran to the opposite side of the village, returning shortly with a large stake, which they quickly set up next to the one that was already there. The girl wondered what the second stake was for, and she didn't have to wait long for an explanation.
It was quite dark by this time, the village being lighted by the fitful glare of many fires, and now she saw a number of warriors approach and enter the hut Zu-tag had been watching. A moment later they reappeared, dragging between them two captives, one of whom the girl immediately recognized as her protector and the other as an Englishman in the uniform of an aviator. This, then, was the reason for the two stakes.
It was pretty dark by now, with the village lit up by the flickering light of several fires. She noticed a group of warriors coming up and going into the hut that Zu-tag had been watching. A moment later, they came back out, dragging two captives between them—one of whom the girl instantly recognized as her protector and the other as an Englishman in aviator uniform. This was the reason for the two stakes.
Arising quickly she placed a hand upon Zu-tag's shoulder and pointed down into the village. "Come," she said, as if she had been talking to one of her own kind, and with the word she swung lightly to the roof of the hut below. From there to the ground was but a short drop and a moment later she was circling the hut upon the side farthest from the fires, keeping in the dense shadows where there was little likelihood of being discovered. She turned once to see that Zu-tag was directly behind her and could see his huge bulk looming up in the dark, while beyond was another one of his eight. Doubtless they had all followed her and this fact gave her a greater sense of security and hope than she had before experienced.
Jumping up quickly, she placed a hand on Zu-tag's shoulder and pointed down into the village. "Come," she said, as if she were speaking to someone like herself, and with that, she effortlessly leaped onto the roof of the hut below. The drop to the ground was short, and a moment later, she was circling the hut on the side farthest from the fires, staying in the thick shadows where it was unlikely she'd be seen. She glanced back to make sure Zu-tag was right behind her and could see his massive figure emerging from the darkness, with another one of his eight behind him. They had clearly all followed her, and this made her feel safer and more hopeful than she ever had before.
Pausing beside the hut next to the street, she peered cautiously about the corner. A few inches from her was the open doorway of the structure, and beyond, farther down the village street, the blacks were congregating about the prisoners, who were already being bound to the stakes. All eyes were centered upon the victims, and there was only the remotest chance that she and her companions would be discovered until they were close upon the blacks. She wished, however, that she might have some sort of a weapon with which to lead the attack, for she could not know, of course, for a certainty whether the great apes would follow her or not. Hoping that she might find something within the hut, she slipped quickly around the corner and into the doorway and after her, one by one, came the nine bulls. Searching quickly about the interior, she presently discovered a spear, and, armed with this, she again approached the entrance.
Pausing next to the hut by the street, she cautiously looked around the corner. A few inches away was the open doorway of the building, and further down the village street, a group of people were gathering around the prisoners, who were already being tied to the stakes. Everyone's attention was on the victims, and there was only a slight chance that she and her friends would be noticed until they got closer to the crowd. She wished she had some kind of weapon to lead the attack because she couldn't be sure if the large apes would follow her or not. Hoping to find something in the hut, she quickly slipped around the corner and into the doorway, with the nine bulls following her one by one. After a quick search of the interior, she soon found a spear and, now armed, approached the entrance again.
Tarzan of the Apes and Lieutenant Harold Percy Smith-Oldwick were bound securely to their respective stakes. Neither had spoken for some time. The Englishman turned his head so that he could see his companion in misery. Tarzan stood straight against his stake. His face was entirely expressionless in so far as either fear or anger were concerned. His countenance portrayed bored indifference though both men knew that they were about to be tortured.
Tarzan of the Apes and Lieutenant Harold Percy Smith-Oldwick were tightly bound to their respective stakes. Neither had spoken for a while. The Englishman turned his head to see his companion in distress. Tarzan stood upright against his stake. His face was completely blank when it came to fear or anger. His expression showed a bored indifference, even though both men were aware that they were on the verge of being tortured.
"Good-bye, old top," whispered the young lieutenant.
"Goodbye, old friend," whispered the young lieutenant.
Tarzan turned his eyes in the direction of the other and smiled. "Good-bye," he said. "If you want to get it over in a hurry, inhale the smoke and flames as rapidly as you can."
Tarzan looked at the other person and smiled. "Goodbye," he said. "If you want to finish this quickly, breathe in the smoke and flames as fast as you can."
"Thanks," replied the aviator and though he made a wry face, he drew himself up very straight and squared his shoulders.
"Thanks," replied the pilot, and even though he grimaced, he straightened up and squared his shoulders.
The women and children had seated themselves in a wide circle about the victims while the warriors, hideously painted, were forming slowly to commence the dance of death. Again Tarzan turned to his companion. "If you'd like to spoil their fun," he said, "don't make any fuss no matter how much you suffer. If you can carry on to the end without changing the expression upon your face or uttering a single word, you will deprive them of all the pleasures of this part of the entertainment. Good-bye again and good luck."
The women and children had gathered in a wide circle around the victims while the warriors, painted grotesquely, were slowly forming up to start the dance of death. Tarzan turned to his companion again. "If you want to ruin their fun," he said, "just don’t make a fuss no matter how much it hurts. If you can keep it together until the end without changing your expression or saying a word, you’ll take away all the enjoyment from this part of the show. Goodbye again and good luck."
The young Englishman made no reply but it was evident from the set of his jaws that the Negroes would get little enjoyment out of him.
The young Englishman didn't respond, but it was clear from the way he clenched his jaw that the Black men wouldn't have much fun with him.
The warriors were circling now. Presently Numabo would draw first blood with his sharp spear which would be the signal for the beginning of the torture after a little of which the fagots would be lighted around the feet of the victims.
The warriors were circling now. Soon, Numabo would draw first blood with his sharp spear, which would signal the start of the torture. After a little while, the bundles of sticks would be set on fire around the victims’ feet.
Closer and closer danced the hideous chief, his yellow, sharp-filed teeth showing in the firelight between his thick, red lips. Now bending double, now stamping furiously upon the ground, now leaping into the air, he danced step by step in the narrowing circle that would presently bring him within spear reach of the intended feast.
Closer and closer danced the terrifying chief, his yellow, sharp teeth visible in the firelight between his thick, red lips. Now bending down, now stamping furiously on the ground, now leaping into the air, he danced step by step in the tightening circle that would soon bring him within spear's reach of the intended feast.
At last the spear reached out and touched the ape-man on the breast and when it came away, a little trickle of blood ran down the smooth, brown hide and almost simultaneously there broke from the outer periphery of the expectant audience a woman's shriek which seemed a signal for a series of hideous screamings, growlings and barkings, and a great commotion upon that side of the circle. The victims could not see the cause of the disturbance, but Tarzan did not have to see, for he knew by the voices of the apes the identity of the disturbers. He only wondered what had brought them and what the purpose of the attack, for he could not believe that they had come to rescue him.
At last, the spear reached out and touched the ape-man on the chest, and when it pulled away, a small trickle of blood ran down the smooth, brown skin. Almost immediately, a woman's scream erupted from the edge of the expectant crowd, which seemed to trigger a series of horrifying screams, growls, and barks, creating a huge commotion on that side of the circle. The victims couldn’t see what was causing the chaos, but Tarzan didn’t need to see; he recognized the voices of the apes and knew who the troublemakers were. He just wondered what had brought them and what their intention was, as he couldn’t believe they had come to rescue him.
Numabo and his warriors broke quickly from the circle of their dance to see pushing toward them through the ranks of their screaming and terrified people the very white girl who had escaped them a few nights before, and at her back what appeared to their surprised eyes a veritable horde of the huge and hairy forest men upon whom they looked with considerable fear and awe.
Numabo and his warriors quickly broke away from their dance to see the very white girl who had escaped from them a few nights ago pushing through the ranks of their screaming and terrified people. Behind her, to their astonishment, was what seemed like a massive group of the huge, hairy forest men, whom they regarded with a mix of fear and awe.
Striking to right and left with his heavy fists, tearing with his great fangs, came Zu-tag, the young bull, while at his heels, emulating his example, surged his hideous apes. Quickly they came through the old men and the women and children, for straight toward Numabo and his warriors the girl led them. It was then that they came within range of Tarzan's vision and he saw with unmixed surprise who it was that led the apes to his rescue.
Striking left and right with his big fists and tearing with his sharp teeth, Zu-tag, the young bull, charged forward, followed closely by his ugly apes, who mimicked his actions. They quickly pushed through the old men, women, and children, heading straight toward Numabo and his warriors, as the girl guided them. It was at that moment they came into Tarzan's view, and he looked on in complete surprise at who was leading the apes to his rescue.
To Zu-tag he shouted: "Go for the big bulls while the she unbinds me," and to Bertha Kircher: "Quick! Cut these bonds. The apes will take care of the blacks."
To Zu-tag, he shouted: "Get the big bulls while she frees me," and to Bertha Kircher: "Hurry! Cut these ropes. The apes will deal with the blacks."
Turning from her advance the girl ran to his side. She had no knife and the bonds were tied tightly but she worked quickly and coolly and as Zu-tag and his apes closed with the warriors, she succeeded in loosening Tarzan's bonds sufficiently to permit him to extricate his own hands so that in another minute he had freed himself.
Turning from her advance, the girl ran to his side. She had no knife and the ropes were tied tightly, but she worked quickly and calmly. As Zu-tag and his apes approached the warriors, she managed to loosen Tarzan's bonds enough for him to pull his hands free, and within a minute, he had freed himself completely.
"Now unbind the Englishman," he cried, and, leaping forward, ran to join Zu-tag and his fellows in their battle against the blacks. Numabo and his warriors, realizing now the relatively small numbers of the apes against them, had made a determined stand and with spears and other weapons were endeavoring to overcome the invaders. Three of the apes were already down, killed or mortally wounded, when Tarzan, realizing that the battle must eventually go against the apes unless some means could be found to break the morale of the Negroes, cast about him for some means of bringing about the desired end. And suddenly his eye lighted upon a number of weapons which he knew would accomplish the result. A grim smile touched his lips as he snatched a vessel of boiling water from one of the fires and hurled it full in the faces of the warriors. Screaming with terror and pain they fell back though Numabo urged them to rush forward.
"Now free the Englishman," he shouted, and, leaping forward, ran to join Zu-tag and his group in their fight against the blacks. Numabo and his warriors, realizing the relatively small numbers of the apes against them, made a determined stand and, with spears and other weapons, tried to fend off the invaders. Three of the apes were already down, killed or seriously injured, when Tarzan, understanding that the battle would eventually turn against the apes unless they found a way to break the morale of the Negroes, looked around for a way to achieve this. Suddenly, he spotted several weapons that he knew would do the trick. A grim smile crossed his lips as he grabbed a pot of boiling water from one of the fires and threw it right in the faces of the warriors. Screaming in fear and pain, they fell back, even as Numabo urged them to charge forward.
Scarcely had the first cauldron of boiling water spilled its contents upon them ere Tarzan deluged them with a second, nor was there any third needed to send them shrieking in every direction to the security of their huts.
Scarcely had the first pot of boiling water spilled its contents on them before Tarzan drenched them with a second, nor was there any need for a third to send them screaming in every direction to the safety of their huts.
By the time Tarzan had recovered his own weapons the girl had released the young Englishman, and, with the six remaining apes, the three Europeans moved slowly toward the village gate, the aviator arming himself with a spear discarded by one of the scalded warriors, as they eagerly advanced toward the outer darkness.
By the time Tarzan got his weapons back, the girl had freed the young Englishman, and with the six remaining apes, the three Europeans slowly walked toward the village gate. The aviator picked up a spear that one of the burned warriors had discarded as they moved eagerly into the darkness outside.
Numabo was unable to rally the now thoroughly terrified and painfully burned warriors so that rescued and rescuers passed out of the village into the blackness of the jungle without further interference.
Numabo couldn't bring the now completely scared and badly burned warriors together, so the rescued and the rescuers went out of the village into the darkness of the jungle without any more trouble.
Tarzan strode through the jungle in silence. Beside him walked Zu-tag, the great ape, and behind them strung the surviving anthropoids followed by Fräulein Bertha Kircher and Lieutenant Harold Percy Smith-Oldwick, the latter a thoroughly astonished and mystified Englishman.
Tarzan walked quietly through the jungle. Next to him was Zu-tag, the big ape, and behind them trailed the remaining anthropoids, followed by Fräulein Bertha Kircher and Lieutenant Harold Percy Smith-Oldwick, the latter being a completely surprised and confused Englishman.
In all his life Tarzan of the Apes had been obliged to acknowledge but few obligations. He won his way through his savage world by the might of his own muscle, the superior keenness of his five senses and his God-given power to reason. Tonight the greatest of all obligations had been placed upon him—his life had been saved by another and Tarzan shook his head and growled, for it had been saved by one whom he hated above all others.
In all his life, Tarzan of the Apes had only had to acknowledge a few obligations. He navigated his wild world through the strength of his own muscles, the sharpness of his five senses, and his natural ability to think. Tonight, however, he faced the biggest obligation of all—his life had been saved by someone else, and Tarzan shook his head and growled, because it had been saved by someone he hated more than anyone else.
Chapter XI
Finding the Airplane
Tarzan of the Apes, returning from a successful hunt, with the body of Bara, the deer, across one sleek, brown shoulder, paused in the branches of a great tree at the edge of a clearing and gazed ruefully at two figures walking from the river to the boma-encircled hut a short distance away.
Tarzan of the Apes, coming back from a successful hunt with the body of Bara, the deer, slung over one smooth, brown shoulder, stopped in the branches of a large tree at the edge of a clearing and looked sadly at two figures walking from the river to the hut surrounded by a boma, not far away.
The ape-man shook his tousled head and sighed. His eyes wandered toward the west and his thoughts to the far-away cabin by the land-locked harbor of the great water that washed the beach of his boyhood home—to the cabin of his long-dead father to which the memories and treasures of a happy childhood lured him. Since the loss of his mate, a great longing had possessed him to return to the haunts of his youth—to the untracked jungle wilderness where he had lived the life he loved best long before man had invaded the precincts of his wild stamping grounds. There he hoped in a renewal of the old life under the old conditions to win surcease from sorrow and perhaps some measure of forgetfulness.
The ape-man shook his messy hair and sighed. His eyes drifted toward the west, and his thoughts turned to the distant cabin by the secluded harbor of the vast water that washed the beach of his childhood home—to the cabin of his long-gone father, where the memories and treasures of a happy childhood called to him. Since losing his mate, he had been overcome with a deep longing to return to the places of his youth—to the untouched jungle wilderness where he had lived the life he loved most, long before humans had entered his wild territory. There, he hoped to find a renewal of the old life under familiar conditions, allowing him to escape his sorrow and perhaps find some degree of forgetfulness.
But the little cabin and the land-locked harbor were many long, weary marches away, and he was handicapped by the duty which he felt he owed to the two figures walking in the clearing before him. One was a young man in a worn and ragged uniform of the British Royal Air Forces, the other, a young woman in the even more disreputable remnants of what once had been trim riding togs.
But the small cabin and the secluded harbor were many long, exhausting marches away, and he felt obligated to the two figures walking in the clearing ahead of him. One was a young man in a tattered and shabby uniform of the British Royal Air Forces, while the other was a young woman in the even more ragged remains of what used to be fashionable riding clothes.
A freak of fate had thrown these three radically different types together. One was a savage, almost naked beast-man, one an English army officer, and the woman, she whom the ape-man knew and hated as a German spy.
A twist of fate had brought these three very different individuals together. One was a wild, nearly naked beast-man, another an English army officer, and the woman, the one the ape-man recognized and despised as a German spy.
How he was to get rid of them Tarzan could not imagine unless he accompanied them upon the weary march back to the east coast, a march that would necessitate his once more retracing the long, weary way he already had covered towards his goal, yet what else could be done? These two had neither the strength, endurance, nor jungle-craft to accompany him through the unknown country to the west, nor did he wish them with him. The man he might have tolerated, but he could not even consider the presence of the girl in the far-off cabin, which had in a way become sacred to him through its memories, without a growl or anger rising to his lips. There remained, then, but the one way, since he could not desert them. He must move by slow and irksome marches back to the east coast, or at least to the first white settlement in that direction.
How Tarzan was supposed to get rid of them, he couldn’t figure out, unless he went with them on the exhausting journey back to the east coast, a trek that would require him to retrace the long, tiring route he had already covered toward his goal. But what other choice did he have? These two didn’t have the strength, stamina, or jungle skills to travel with him through the uncharted territory to the west, and he didn’t want them with him. He might have been able to put up with the man, but the thought of the girl being in that distant cabin, which had become sacred to him because of its memories, made anger rise in him. So, he was left with only one option; since he couldn’t abandon them, he would have to make a slow and frustrating journey back to the east coast or at least to the nearest white settlement in that direction.
He had, it is true, contemplated leaving the girl to her fate but that was before she had been instrumental in saving him from torture and death at the hands of the black Wamabos. He chafed under the obligation she had put upon him, but no less did he acknowledge it and as he watched the two, the rueful expression upon his face was lightened by a smile as he thought of the helplessness of them. What a puny thing, indeed, was man! How ill equipped to combat the savage forces of nature and of nature's jungle. Why, even the tiny balu of the tribe of Go-lat, the great ape, was better fitted to survive than these, for a balu could at least escape the numerous creatures that menaced its existence, while with the possible exception of Kota, the tortoise, none moved so slowly as did helpless and feeble man.
He had, it's true, thought about leaving the girl to her fate, but that was before she had helped him escape torture and death at the hands of the black Wamabos. He resented the debt she had placed on him, but he couldn’t deny it. As he watched the two of them, the rueful expression on his face was brightened by a smile as he reflected on their helplessness. What a weak thing, indeed, was man! How poorly equipped to fight against the savage forces of nature and the jungle. Even the tiny balu from the Go-lat tribe, the great ape, was better suited for survival than these two, for at least a balu could escape the many creatures that threatened its existence, while, with the possible exception of Kota, the tortoise, no one moved as slowly as helpless and feeble man.
Without him these two doubtless would starve in the midst of plenty, should they by some miracle escape the other forces of destruction which constantly threatened them. That morning Tarzan had brought them fruit, nuts, and plantain, and now he was bringing them the flesh of his kill, while the best that they might do was to fetch water from the river. Even now, as they walked across the clearing toward the boma, they were in utter ignorance of the presence of Tarzan near them. They did not know that his sharp eyes were watching them, nor that other eyes less friendly were glaring at them from a clump of bushes close beside the boma entrance. They did not know these things, but Tarzan did. No more than they could he see the creature crouching in the concealment of the foliage, yet he knew that it was there and what it was and what its intentions, precisely as well as though it had been lying in the open.
Without him, these two would likely starve in the midst of plenty, if by some miracle they managed to escape the constant threats of destruction around them. That morning, Tarzan had brought them fruit, nuts, and plantains, and now he was delivering the meat from his hunt, while all they could do was fetch water from the river. Even now, as they walked across the clearing toward the boma, they were completely unaware of Tarzan's presence nearby. They didn't realize that his sharp eyes were watching them, nor that other, less friendly eyes were glaring at them from a bush close to the boma entrance. They didn’t know these things, but Tarzan did. Like them, he couldn't see the creature hidden in the foliage, yet he knew it was there, what it was, and what its intentions were, just as well as if it had been lying out in the open.
A slight movement of the leaves at the top of a single stem had apprised him of the presence of a creature there, for the movement was not that imparted by the wind. It came from pressure at the bottom of the stem which communicates a different movement to the leaves than does the wind passing among them, as anyone who has lived his lifetime in the jungle well knows, and the same wind that passed through the foliage of the bush brought to the ape-man's sensitive nostrils indisputable evidence of the fact that Sheeta, the panther, waited there for the two returning from the river.
A slight movement of the leaves at the top of a single stem alerted him to the presence of a creature there, since the movement wasn’t caused by the wind. It came from pressure at the base of the stem, which creates a different kind of movement in the leaves than the wind rustling through them, as anyone who has spent their whole life in the jungle knows. The same wind that flowed through the foliage of the bush also carried to the ape-man’s keen nostrils undeniable evidence that Sheeta, the panther, was waiting there for the two who were returning from the river.
They had covered half the distance to the boma entrance when Tarzan called to them to stop. They looked in surprise in the direction from which his voice had come to see him drop lightly to the ground and advance toward them.
They had covered half the distance to the boma entrance when Tarzan told them to stop. They looked in surprise toward the direction of his voice to see him land softly on the ground and walk toward them.
"Come slowly toward me," he called to them. "Do not run for if you run Sheeta will charge."
"Come over here slowly," he called to them. "Don't run, because if you run, Sheeta will come after you."
They did as he bid, their faces filled with questioning wonderment.
They did as he asked, their faces filled with curious amazement.
"What do you mean?" asked the young Englishman. "Who is Sheeta?" but for answer the ape-man suddenly hurled the carcass of Bara, the deer, to the ground and leaped quickly toward them, his eyes upon something in their rear; and then it was that the two turned and learned the identity of Sheeta, for behind them was a devil-faced cat charging rapidly toward them.
"What do you mean?" asked the young Englishman. "Who is Sheeta?" But instead of answering, the ape-man suddenly threw the carcass of Bara, the deer, to the ground and quickly jumped toward them, his eyes fixed on something behind them; and that's when the two turned around and discovered who Sheeta was, for a devil-faced cat was charging rapidly toward them.
Sheeta with rising anger and suspicion had seen the ape-man leap from the tree and approach the quarry. His life's experiences backed by instinct told him that the Tarmangani was about to rob him of his prey and as Sheeta was hungry, he had no intention of being thus easily deprived of the flesh he already considered his own.
Sheeta, filled with growing anger and suspicion, had watched the ape-man jump down from the tree and move toward the prey. His life experiences, combined with instinct, told him that the Tarmangani was about to steal his meal, and since Sheeta was hungry, he had no plans to let go of the flesh he already claimed as his own.
The girl stifled an involuntary scream as she saw the proximity of the fanged fury bearing down upon them. She shrank close to the man and clung to him and all unarmed and defenseless as he was, the Englishman pushed her behind him and shielding her with his body, stood squarely in the face of the panther's charge. Tarzan noted the act, and though accustomed as he was to acts of courage, he experienced a thrill from the hopeless and futile bravery of the man.
The girl suppressed an instinctive scream as she noticed the ferocious, fanged creature rushing toward them. She pressed close to the man and held onto him. Even though he was unarmed and defenseless, the Englishman pushed her behind him and, using his body as a shield, stood firm against the panther's charge. Tarzan observed the act and, despite being used to displays of bravery, felt a rush from the man's hopeless and futile courage.
The charging panther moved rapidly, and the distance which separated the bush in which he had concealed himself from the objects of his desire was not great. In the time that one might understandingly read a dozen words the strong-limbed cat could have covered the entire distance and made his kill, yet if Sheeta was quick, quick too was Tarzan. The English lieutenant saw the ape-man flash by him like the wind. He saw the great cat veer in his charge as though to elude the naked savage rushing to meet him, as it was evidently Sheeta's intention to make good his kill before attempting to protect it from Tarzan.
The charging panther moved quickly, and the distance between the bush where he had hidden and his targets was not far. In the time it would take someone to read a dozen words, the powerful cat could have crossed that distance and made his kill, but just as fast as Sheeta was Tarzan. The English lieutenant saw the ape-man rush past him like the wind. He watched as the large cat shifted in its path to dodge the bare savage rushing toward it, as it was clear that Sheeta intended to secure his kill before trying to protect it from Tarzan.
Lieutenant Smith-Oldwick saw these things and then with increasing wonder he saw the ape-man swerve, too, and leap for the spotted cat as a football player leaps for a runner. He saw the strong, brown arms encircling the body of the carnivore, the left arm in front of the beast's left shoulder and the right arm behind his right foreleg, and with the impact the two together rolling over and over upon the turf. He heard the snarls and growls of bestial combat, and it was with a feeling of no little horror that he realized that the sounds coming from the human throat of the battling man could scarce be distinguished from those of the panther.
Lieutenant Smith-Oldwick watched in growing amazement as the ape-man dodged and then jumped for the spotted cat like a football player going for a runner. He saw the powerful brown arms wrap around the creature, with the left arm in front of the beast's left shoulder and the right arm behind its right foreleg, and with the force of the impact, they both tumbled over on the grass. He heard the snarls and growls of their brutal struggle, and with a sense of deep horror, he realized that the sounds coming from the human throat of the fighting man were barely distinguishable from those of the panther.
The first momentary shock of terror over, the girl released her grasp upon the Englishman's arm. "Cannot we do something?" she asked. "Cannot we help him before the beast kills him?"
The initial shock of fear faded, and the girl let go of the Englishman's arm. "Can't we do something?" she asked. "Can't we help him before the beast kills him?"
The Englishman looked upon the ground for some missile with which to attack the panther and then the girl uttered an exclamation and started at a run toward the hut. "Wait there," she called over her shoulder. "I will fetch the spear that he left me."
The Englishman scanned the ground for something he could use to fight the panther, and then the girl shouted and took off running toward the hut. "Wait there," she called back. "I’ll get the spear he left me."
Smith-Oldwick saw the raking talons of the panther searching for the flesh of the man and the man on his part straining every muscle and using every artifice to keep his body out of range of them. The muscles of his arms knotted under the brown hide. The veins stood out upon his neck and forehead as with ever-increasing power he strove to crush the life from the great cat. The ape-man's teeth were fastened in the back of Sheeta's neck and now he succeeded in encircling the beast's torso with his legs which he crossed and locked beneath the cat's belly. Leaping and snarling, Sheeta sought to dislodge the ape-man's hold upon him. He hurled himself upon the ground and rolled over and over. He reared upon his hind legs and threw himself backwards but always the savage creature upon his back clung tenaciously to him, and always the mighty brown arms crushed tighter and tighter about his chest.
Smith-Oldwick saw the sharp claws of the panther searching for the man's flesh, while the man strained every muscle and used every trick to keep his body out of reach. The muscles in his arms bulged under his brown skin. The veins stood out on his neck and forehead as he increasingly fought to squeeze the life out of the big cat. The ape-man's teeth were sunk into the back of Sheeta's neck, and now he managed to wrap his legs around the beast's torso, crossing and locking them beneath its belly. Leaping and snarling, Sheeta tried to shake off the ape-man's grip. He threw himself onto the ground and rolled over and over. He stood up on his hind legs and flung himself backward, but the wild creature on his back kept holding on tightly, while the powerful brown arms squeezed tighter and tighter around his chest.
And then the girl, panting from her quick run, returned with the short spear Tarzan had left her as her sole weapon of protection. She did not wait to hand it to the Englishman who ran forward to receive it, but brushed past him and leaped into close quarters beside the growling, tumbling mass of yellow fur and smooth brown hide. Several times she attempted to press the point home into the cat's body, but on both occasions the fear of endangering the ape-man caused her to desist, but at last the two lay motionless for a moment as the carnivore sought a moment's rest from the strenuous exertions of battle, and then it was that Bertha Kircher pressed the point of the spear to the tawny side and drove it deep into the savage heart.
And then the girl, out of breath from her quick run, came back with the short spear Tarzan had left her as her only means of protection. She didn’t wait to hand it to the Englishman who rushed forward to take it, but pushed past him and jumped into close quarters next to the growling, writhing mass of yellow fur and smooth brown hide. She tried several times to stab the point into the cat's body, but each time she hesitated for fear of putting the ape-man in danger. Finally, the two lay still for a moment as the carnivore paused to catch its breath from the intense struggle, and that’s when Bertha Kircher pressed the spear's point against the tawny side and drove it deep into the savage heart.
Tarzan rose from the dead body of Sheeta and shook himself after the manner of beasts that are entirely clothed with hair. Like many other of his traits and mannerisms this was the result of environment rather than heredity or reversion, and even though he was outwardly a man, the Englishman and the girl were both impressed with the naturalness of the act. It was as though Numa, emerging from a fight, had shaken himself to straighten his rumpled mane and coat, and yet, too, there was something uncanny about it as there had been when the savage growls and hideous snarls issued from those clean-cut lips.
Tarzan stood up from Sheeta's lifeless body and shook himself like a furry animal. Like many of his traits and habits, this behavior came from his environment rather than genetics or regression, and even though he appeared to be a man, the Englishman and the girl both found the act completely natural. It was similar to how Numa would shake off after a fight to smooth out his messy mane and fur, yet there was also something eerie about it, just as there had been when those primal growls and terrifying snarls came from his sharp-featured mouth.
Tarzan looked at the girl, a quizzical expression upon his face. Again had she placed him under obligations to her, and Tarzan of the Apes did not wish to be obligated to a German spy; yet in his honest heart he could not but admit a certain admiration for her courage, a trait which always greatly impressed the ape-man, he himself the personification of courage.
Tarzan looked at the girl, a puzzled expression on his face. Once again, she had put him in a position where he felt obliged to her, and Tarzan of the Apes didn't want to feel indebted to a German spy; yet, in his honest heart, he couldn’t help but admire her bravery, a quality that always deeply impressed the ape-man, who was himself the embodiment of courage.
"Here is the kill," he said, picking the carcass of Bara from the ground. "You will want to cook your portion, I presume, but Tarzan does not spoil his meat with fire."
"Here’s the kill," he said, picking up Bara’s carcass from the ground. "You’ll probably want to cook your share, but Tarzan doesn't ruin his meat with fire."
They followed him to the boma where he cut several pieces of meat from the carcass for them, retaining a joint for himself. The young lieutenant prepared a fire, and the girl presided over the primitive culinary rights of their simple meal. As she worked some little way apart from them, the lieutenant and the ape-man watched her.
They followed him to the enclosure where he cut several pieces of meat from the carcass for them, keeping a joint for himself. The young lieutenant started a fire, and the girl took charge of the basic cooking for their simple meal. As she worked a little distance away from them, the lieutenant and the ape-man watched her.
"She is wonderful. Is she not?" murmured Smith-Oldwick.
"She’s amazing, isn’t she?" Smith-Oldwick whispered.
"She is a German and a spy," replied Tarzan.
"She's German and a spy," Tarzan replied.
The Englishman turned quickly upon him. "What do you mean?" he cried.
The Englishman turned to him quickly. "What do you mean?" he shouted.
"I mean what I say," replied the ape-man. "She is a German and a spy."
"I mean what I say," replied the ape-man. "She's German and a spy."
"I do not believe it!" exclaimed the aviator.
"I can't believe it!" the pilot exclaimed.
"You do not have to," Tarzan assured him. "It is nothing to me what you believe. I saw her in conference with the Boche general and his staff at the camp near Taveta. They all knew her and called her by name and she handed him a paper. The next time I saw her she was inside the British lines in disguise, and again I saw her bearing word to a German officer at Wilhelmstal. She is a German and a spy, but she is a woman and therefore I cannot destroy her."
"You don’t have to," Tarzan assured him. "I don’t care what you believe. I saw her meeting with the German general and his staff at the camp near Taveta. They all recognized her and called her by name, and she handed him a document. The next time I saw her, she was inside the British lines in disguise, and I saw her delivering a message to a German officer at Wilhelmstal. She is German and a spy, but she is a woman, so I can't bring myself to kill her."
"You really believe that what you say is true?" asked the young lieutenant. "My God! I cannot believe it. She is so sweet and brave and good."
"You really think what you're saying is true?" asked the young lieutenant. "Oh my God! I can't believe it. She's so sweet, brave, and good."
The ape-man shrugged his shoulders. "She is brave," he said, "but even Pamba, the rat, must have some good quality, but she is what I have told you and therefore I hate her and you should hate her."
The ape-man shrugged. "She's brave," he said, "but even Pamba, the rat, has some good quality, yet she is what I've told you, and that's why I hate her, and you should hate her too."
Lieutenant Harold Percy Smith-Oldwick buried his face in his hands. "God forgive me," he said at last. "I cannot hate her."
Lieutenant Harold Percy Smith-Oldwick buried his face in his hands. "God forgive me," he finally said. "I can't hate her."
The ape-man cast a contemptuous look at his companion and arose. "Tarzan goes again to hunt," he said. "You have enough food for two days. By that time he will return."
The ape-man looked disdainfully at his companion and stood up. “Tarzan is going hunting again,” he said. “You have enough food for two days. By then, he will be back.”
The two watched him until he had disappeared in the foliage of the trees at the further side of the clearing.
The two watched him until he vanished into the leaves of the trees on the other side of the clearing.
When he had gone the girl felt a vague sense of apprehension that she never experienced when Tarzan was present. The invisible menaces lurking in the grim jungle seemed more real and much more imminent now that the ape-man was no longer near. While he had been there talking with them, the little thatched hut and its surrounding thorn boma had seemed as safe a place as the world might afford. She wished that he had remained—two days seemed an eternity in contemplation—two days of constant fear, two days, every moment of which would be fraught with danger. She turned toward her companion.
When he left, the girl felt a vague sense of unease that she never felt when Tarzan was around. The unseen threats lurking in the dark jungle felt more real and much more imminent now that the ape-man was gone. While he had been there talking with them, the small thatched hut and its surrounding thorn fence felt as safe as any place in the world could be. She wished he had stayed—two days felt like an eternity filled with contemplation—two days of constant fear, where every moment was filled with danger. She turned to her companion.
"I wish that he had remained," she said. "I always feel so much safer when he is near. He is very grim and very terrible, and yet I feel safer with him than with any man I ever have known. He seems to dislike me and yet I know that he would let no harm befall me. I cannot understand him."
"I wish he had stayed," she said. "I always feel a lot safer when he's around. He’s really serious and can be quite scary, but I feel more protected with him than anyone else I’ve ever known. He seems to dislike me, but I know he wouldn’t let anything happen to me. I just don’t get him."
"Neither do I understand him," replied the Englishman; "but I know this much—our presence here is interfering with his plans. He would like to be rid of us, and I half imagine that he rather hopes to find when he returns that we have succumbed to one of the dangers which must always confront us in this savage land.
"Neither do I get him," replied the Englishman; "but I know this much—us being here is messing with his plans. He would like to get rid of us, and I half think he secretly hopes that when he comes back, we'll have fallen victim to one of the dangers that always threaten us in this wild land."
"I think that we should try to return to the white settlements. This man does not want us here, nor is it reasonable to assume that we could long survive in such a savage wilderness. I have traveled and hunted in several parts of Africa, but never have I seen or heard of any single locality so overrun with savage beasts and dangerous natives. If we set out for the east coast at once we would be in but little more danger than we are here, and if we could survive a day's march, I believe that we will find the means of reaching the coast in a few hours, for my plane must still be in the same place that I landed just before the blacks captured me. Of course there is no one here who could operate it nor is there any reason why they should have destroyed it. As a matter of fact, the natives would be so fearful and suspicious of so strange and incomprehensible a thing that the chances are they would not dare approach it. Yes, it must be where I left it and all ready to carry us safely to the settlements."
"I think we should try to head back to the white settlements. This guy doesn't want us here, and it's not realistic to think we can survive for long in such a wild wilderness. I've traveled and hunted in various parts of Africa, but I've never seen or heard of any place being so overwhelmed with wild animals and dangerous locals. If we leave for the east coast right away, we would be in only slightly more danger than we are here. If we can make it through a day's march, I believe we’ll find a way to reach the coast in a few hours, because my plane should still be where I landed just before the locals captured me. Of course, there’s no one here who could operate it, and there's no real reason they would have destroyed it. In fact, the locals would probably be too scared and suspicious of something that strange and incomprehensible, so the odds are they wouldn't dare go near it. Yes, it must be where I left it, all set to take us safely to the settlements."
"But we cannot leave," said the girl, "until he returns. We could not go away like that without thanking him or bidding him farewell. We are under too great obligations to him."
"But we can't leave," said the girl, "until he comes back. We can't just walk away without thanking him or saying goodbye. We owe him too much."
The man looked at her in silence for a moment. He wondered if she knew how Tarzan felt toward her and then he himself began to speculate upon the truth of the ape-man's charges. The longer he looked at the girl, the less easy was it to entertain the thought that she was an enemy spy. He was upon the point of asking her point-blank but he could not bring himself to do so, finally determining to wait until time and longer acquaintance should reveal the truth or falsity of the accusation.
The man stared at her quietly for a moment. He wondered if she realized how Tarzan felt about her, and then he started to think about the truth behind the ape-man's claims. The more he looked at the girl, the harder it became to believe she was an enemy spy. He was about to ask her directly, but he couldn't make himself do it, deciding instead to wait until time and getting to know her better would reveal whether the accusation was true or not.
"I believe," he said as though there had been no pause in their conversation, "that the man would be more than glad to find us gone when he returns. It is not necessary to jeopardize our lives for two more days in order that we may thank him, however much we may appreciate his services to us. You have more than balanced your obligations to him and from what he told me I feel that you especially should not remain here longer."
"I believe," he said as if there hadn't been a break in their conversation, "that the man would be more than happy to find us gone when he gets back. It's not worth putting our lives at risk for two more days just to thank him, no matter how much we appreciate what he's done for us. You've more than fulfilled your obligations to him, and from what he told me, I feel you particularly shouldn't stay here any longer."
The girl looked up at him in astonishment. "What do you mean?" she asked.
The girl looked up at him in shock. "What do you mean?" she asked.
"I do not like to tell," said the Englishman, digging nervously at the turf with the point of a stick, "but you have my word that he would rather you were not here."
"I don't like to say," the Englishman said, nervously digging into the ground with the tip of a stick, "but I promise you, he would prefer it if you weren't here."
"Tell me what he said," she insisted, "I have a right to know."
"Tell me what he said," she pushed, "I deserve to know."
Lieutenant Smith-Oldwick squared his shoulders and raised his eyes to those of the girl. "He said that he hated you," he blurted. "He has only aided you at all from a sense of duty because you are a woman."
Lieutenant Smith-Oldwick straightened his shoulders and looked into the girl's eyes. "He said he hated you," he blurted out. "The only reason he helped you at all was out of duty because you’re a woman."
The girl paled and then flushed. "I will be ready to go," she said, "in just a moment. We had better take some of this meat with us. There is no telling when we will be able to get more."
The girl turned pale and then blushed. "I'll be ready to leave," she said, "in just a moment. We should take some of this meat with us. Who knows when we'll be able to get more?"
And so the two set out down the river toward the south. The man carried the short spear that Tarzan had left with the girl, while she was entirely unarmed except for a stick she had picked up from among those left after the building of the hut. Before departing she had insisted that the man leave a note for Tarzan thanking him for his care of them and bidding him goodbye. This they left pinned to the inside wall of the hut with a little sliver of wood.
And so the two started down the river heading south. The man carried the short spear that Tarzan had given to the girl, while she was completely unarmed except for a stick she had picked up from those left after the hut was built. Before leaving, she insisted that the man write a note for Tarzan to thank him for taking care of them and to say goodbye. They left this pinned to the inside wall of the hut with a small piece of wood.
It was necessary that they be constantly on the alert since they never knew what might confront them at the next turn of the winding jungle trail or what might lie concealed in the tangled bushes at either side. There was also the ever-present danger of meeting some of Numabo's black warriors and as the village lay directly in their line of march, there was the necessity for making a wide detour before they reached it in order to pass around it without being discovered.
They had to stay on high alert because they never knew what they might face at the next bend in the winding jungle path or what could be hiding in the dense bushes on either side. There was also the constant risk of encountering some of Numabo's black warriors, and since the village was right in their path, they needed to take a wide detour to get around it without being seen.
"I am not so much afraid of the native blacks," said the girl, "as I am of Usanga and his people. He and his men were all attached to a German native regiment. They brought me along with them when they deserted, either with the intention of holding me ransom or selling me into the harem of one of the black sultans of the north. Usanga is much more to be feared than Numabo for he has had the advantage of European military training and is armed with more or less modern weapons and ammunition."
"I’m not so much afraid of the local Black people," the girl said, "as I am of Usanga and his crew. He and his men were part of a German native regiment. They took me with them when they deserted, probably planning to hold me for ransom or sell me into the harem of one of the northern Black sultans. Usanga is way more dangerous than Numabo because he’s had European military training and has more or less modern weapons and ammo."
"It is lucky for me," remarked the Englishman, "that it was the ignorant Numabo who discovered and captured me rather than the worldly wise Usanga. He would have felt less fear of the giant flying machine and would have known only too well how to wreck it."
"It’s a good thing for me," said the Englishman, "that it was the clueless Numabo who found and captured me instead of the savvy Usanga. He wouldn’t have been as scared of the giant flying machine and would have known exactly how to destroy it."
"Let us pray that the black sergeant has not discovered it," said the girl.
"Let's hope the black sergeant hasn't found out," said the girl.
They made their way to a point which they guessed was about a mile above the village, then they turned into the trackless tangle of undergrowth to the east. So dense was the verdure at many points that it was with the utmost difficulty they wormed their way through, sometimes on hands and knees and again by clambering over numerous fallen tree trunks. Interwoven with dead limbs and living branches were the tough and ropelike creepers which formed a tangled network across their path.
They walked to a spot they estimated was about a mile above the village, then they veered into the dense underbrush to the east. The greenery was so thick in many places that they struggled to make their way through, sometimes getting on their hands and knees, and at other times climbing over countless fallen tree trunks. Entangled with dead limbs and living branches were the strong, rope-like vines that created a complex web across their path.
South of them in an open meadowland a number of black warriors were gathered about an object which elicited much wondering comment. The blacks were clothed in fragments of what had once been uniforms of a native German command. They were a most unlovely band and chief among them in authority and repulsiveness was the black sergeant Usanga. The object of their interest was a British aeroplane.
South of them in an open meadow, a group of black warriors gathered around something that sparked a lot of curious chatter. They were dressed in tattered pieces of what had once been uniforms from a German command. They made for a rather unattractive group, and leading them in both authority and unpleasantness was the black sergeant Usanga. The object of their attention was a British airplane.
Immediately after the Englishman had been brought to Numabo's village Usanga had gone out in search of the plane, prompted partially by curiosity and partially by an intention to destroy it, but when he had found it, some new thought had deterred him from carrying out his design. The thing represented considerable value as he well knew and it had occurred to him that in some way he might turn his prize to profit. Every day he had returned to it, and while at first it had filled him with considerable awe, he eventually came to look upon it with the accustomed eye of a proprietor, so that he now clambered into the fuselage and even advanced so far as to wish that he might learn to operate it.
Immediately after the Englishman had been brought to Numabo's village, Usanga set out to find the plane, driven partly by curiosity and partly by a desire to destroy it. But when he found it, some new thought stopped him from acting on his plan. He knew the plane was quite valuable, and it occurred to him that he might be able to turn his find into a profit. Every day he returned to it, and while it initially filled him with great awe, he eventually began to see it with the familiar perspective of an owner, so much so that he climbed inside the fuselage and even wished to learn how to operate it.
What a feat it would be indeed to fly like a bird far above the highest tree top! How it would fill his less favored companions with awe and admiration! If Usanga could but fly, so great would be the respect of all the tribesmen throughout the scattered villages of the great interior, they would look upon him as little less than a god.
What an achievement it would be to fly like a bird high above the tallest treetops! It would fill his less fortunate friends with wonder and admiration! If Usanga could just fly, the respect he would earn from all the tribespeople in the distant villages of the vast interior would have them seeing him as almost a god.
Usanga rubbed his palms together and smacked his thick lips. Then indeed, would he be very rich, for all the villages would pay tribute to him and he could even have as many as a dozen wives. With that thought, however, came a mental picture of Naratu, the black termagant, who ruled him with an iron hand. Usanga made a wry face and tried to forget the extra dozen wives, but the lure of the idea remained and appealed so strongly to him that he presently found himself reasoning most logically that a god would not be much of a god with less than twenty-four wives.
Usanga rubbed his palms together and smacked his thick lips. Surely, he would be very rich, as all the villages would pay him tribute, and he could even have a dozen wives. However, with that thought came a mental image of Naratu, the fierce woman who controlled him with an iron fist. Usanga grimaced and tried to push the thought of the extra wives out of his mind, but the idea was so tempting that he soon started to convince himself that a god wouldn't be much of a god with fewer than twenty-four wives.
He fingered the instruments and the control, half hoping and half fearing that he would alight upon the combination that would put the machine in flight. Often had he watched the British air-men soaring above the German lines and it looked so simple he was quite sure that he could do it himself if there was somebody who could but once show him how. There was, of course, always the hope that the white man who came in the machine and who had escaped from Numabo's village might fall into Usanga's hands and then indeed would he be able to learn how to fly. It was in this hope that Usanga spent so much time in the vicinity of the plane, reasoning as he did that eventually the white man would return in search of it.
He fiddled with the instruments and controls, feeling a mix of hope and fear that he might stumble upon the right combination to get the machine airborne. He had often watched the British pilots soaring above the German lines, and it looked so easy that he was sure he could do it himself if someone would just show him how. Of course, there was always the chance that the white man who had come in the machine and escaped from Numabo's village would fall into Usanga's hands, and then he would really be able to learn how to fly. It was with this hope that Usanga spent so much time near the plane, thinking that eventually the white man would come back looking for it.
And at last he was rewarded, for upon this very day after he had quit the machine and entered the jungle with his warriors, he heard voices to the north and when he and his men had hidden in the dense foliage upon either side of the trail, Usanga was presently filled with elation by the appearance of the British officer and the white girl whom the black sergeant had coveted and who had escaped him.
And finally, he got his reward. On this very day, after he left the machine and went into the jungle with his warriors, he heard voices to the north. When he and his men hid in the thick bushes on either side of the trail, Usanga was soon filled with joy at the sight of the British officer and the white girl whom the black sergeant had desired and who had slipped away from him.
The Negro could scarce restrain a shout of elation, for he had not hoped that fate would be so kind as to throw these two whom he most desired into his power at the same time.
The Black man could barely hold back a shout of joy, for he had not expected that fate would be so generous as to place these two people he most wanted in his grasp at the same time.
As the two came down the trail all unconscious of impending danger, the man was explaining that they must be very close to the point at which the plane had landed. Their entire attention was centered on the trail directly ahead of them, as they momentarily expected it to break into the meadowland where they were sure they would see the plane that would spell life and liberty for them.
As the two walked down the trail, completely unaware of the danger ahead, the man was talking about how they should be getting close to where the plane had landed. They were fully focused on the path in front of them, briefly anticipating that it would open up into the meadow where they believed they would find the plane that represented freedom and safety for them.
The trail was broad, and they were walking side by side so that at a sharp turn the park-like clearing was revealed to them simultaneously with the outlines of the machine they sought.
The path was wide, and they were walking next to each other, so that as they rounded a sharp turn, the open area that resembled a park appeared to them at the same time as the outline of the machine they were looking for.
Exclamations of relief and delight broke from their lips, and at the same instant Usanga and his black warriors rose from the bushes all about them.
Exclamations of relief and joy escaped their lips, and at the same moment, Usanga and his Black warriors emerged from the bushes all around them.
Chapter XII
The Black Flier
The girl was almost crushed by terror and disappointment. To have been thus close to safety and then to have all hope snatched away by a cruel stroke of fate seemed unendurable. The man was disappointed, too, but more was he angry. He noted the remnants of the uniforms upon the blacks and immediately he demanded to know where were their officers.
The girl was nearly overwhelmed by fear and disappointment. To have been so close to safety and then have all hope taken away by a ruthless twist of fate felt unbearable. The man was disappointed as well, but he was more angry. He noticed the scraps of the uniforms on the Black people and immediately asked where their officers were.
"They cannot understand you," said the girl and so in the bastard tongue that is the medium of communication between the Germans and the blacks of their colony, she repeated the white man's question.
"They can't understand you," said the girl, and in the mixed language that's used for communication between the Germans and the Black people in their colony, she repeated the white man's question.
Usanga grinned. "You know where they are, white woman," he replied. "They are dead, and if this white man does not do as I tell him, he, too, will be dead."
Usanga grinned. "You know where they are, white woman," he replied. "They're dead, and if this white man doesn't do what I say, he’ll be dead too."
"What do you want of him?" asked the girl.
"What do you want from him?" the girl asked.
"I want him to teach me how to fly like a bird," replied Usanga.
"I want him to teach me how to fly like a bird," Usanga replied.
Bertha Kircher looked her astonishment, but repeated the demand to the lieutenant.
Bertha Kircher looked astonished but repeated her request to the lieutenant.
The Englishman meditated for a moment. "He wants to learn to fly, does he?" he repeated. "Ask him if he will give us our freedom if I teach him to fly."
The Englishman thought for a moment. "He wants to learn to fly, huh?" he repeated. "Ask him if he will grant us our freedom if I teach him to fly."
The girl put the question to Usanga, who, degraded, cunning, and entirely unprincipled, was always perfectly willing to promise anything whether he had any intentions of fulfilling his promises or not, and so immediately assented to the proposition.
The girl asked Usanga, who was degraded, cunning, and completely unprincipled, always ready to promise anything regardless of whether he planned to keep his promises or not, and he immediately agreed to the suggestion.
"Let the white man teach me to fly," he said, "and I will take you back close to the settlements of your people, but in return for this I shall keep the great bird," and he waved a black hand in the direction of the aeroplane.
"Let the white man teach me to fly," he said, "and I'll take you back near your people's settlements, but in exchange for that, I’ll keep the great bird," and he waved a black hand towards the airplane.
When Bertha Kircher had repeated Usanga's proposition to the aviator, the latter shrugged his shoulders and with a wry face finally agreed. "I fancy there is no other way out of it," he said. "In any event the plane is lost to the British government. If I refuse the black scoundrel's request, there is no doubt but what he will make short work of me with the result that the machine will lie here until it rots. If I accept his offer it will at least be the means of assuring your safe return to civilization and that" he added, "is worth more to me than all the planes in the British Air Service."
When Bertha Kircher repeated Usanga's proposal to the aviator, he shrugged and made a face before finally agreeing. "I guess there's no other option," he said. "In any case, the plane is lost to the British government. If I turn down the scoundrel's request, he’ll definitely take care of me quickly, and the plane will just sit here until it decays. If I take his offer, at least it ensures your safe return to civilization, and that," he added, "means more to me than all the planes in the British Air Service."
The girl cast a quick glance at him. These were the first words he had addressed to her that might indicate that his sentiments toward her were more than those of a companion in distress. She regretted that he had spoken as he had and he, too, regretted it almost instantly as he saw the shadow cross her face and realized that he had unwittingly added to the difficulties of her already almost unbearable situation.
The girl looked at him briefly. These were the first words he had said to her that suggested his feelings for her were more than just those of a friend in trouble. She wished he hadn't said what he did, and he almost immediately regretted it too when he noticed the change in her expression and understood that he had unintentionally made her already difficult situation even harder.
"Forgive me," he said quickly. "Please forget what that remark implied. I promise you that I will not offend again, if it does offend you, until after we are both safely out of this mess."
"Forgive me," he said quickly. "Please forget what that comment suggested. I promise I won’t upset you again, if it bothers you, until after we’re both safely out of this situation."
She smiled and thanked him, but the thing had been said and could never be unsaid, and Bertha Kircher knew even more surely than as though he had fallen upon his knees and protested undying devotion that the young English officer loved her.
She smiled and thanked him, but what was said couldn't be taken back, and Bertha Kircher knew with even more certainty than if he had dropped to his knees and declared his everlasting love that the young English officer was in love with her.
Usanga was for taking his first lesson in aviation immediately. The Englishman attempted to dissuade him, but immediately the black became threatening and abusive, since, like all those who are ignorant, he was suspicious that the intentions of others were always ulterior unless they perfectly coincided with his wishes.
Usanga was eager to take his first lesson in aviation right away. The Englishman tried to talk him out of it, but the black man quickly became aggressive and hostile because, like many who lack knowledge, he was suspicious that others always had hidden motives unless their intentions aligned perfectly with his own desires.
"All right, old top," muttered the Englishman, "I will give you the lesson of your life," and then turning to the girl: "Persuade him to let you accompany us. I shall be afraid to leave you here with these devilish scoundrels." But when she put the suggestion to Usanga the black immediately suspected some plan to thwart him—possibly to carry him against his will back to the German masters he had traitorously deserted, and glowering at her savagely, he obstinately refused to entertain the suggestion.
"Okay, buddy," the Englishman muttered, "I’m going to give you the lesson of your life," and then turning to the girl, he said, "Convince him to let you come with us. I’d be worried to leave you here with these ruthless scoundrels." But when she brought it up to Usanga, he immediately suspected some scheme to betray him—maybe to send him back to the German masters he had treacherously abandoned. Scowling at her fiercely, he stubbornly refused to consider the suggestion.
"The white woman will remain here with my people," he said. "They will not harm her unless you fail to bring me back safely."
"The white woman will stay here with my people," he said. "They won't hurt her unless you don't bring me back safely."
"Tell him," said the Englishman, "that if you are not standing in plain sight in this meadow when I return, I will not land, but will carry Usanga back to the British camp and have him hanged."
"Tell him," said the Englishman, "that if you are not clearly visible in this meadow when I get back, I won’t land. Instead, I’ll take Usanga back to the British camp and have him hanged."
Usanga promised that the girl would be in evidence upon their return, and took immediate steps to impress upon his warriors that under penalty of death they must not harm her. Then, followed by the other members of his party, he crossed the clearing toward the plane with the Englishman. Once seated within what he already considered his new possession, the black's courage began to wane and when the motor was started and the great propeller commenced to whir, he screamed to the Englishman to stop the thing and permit him to alight, but the aviator could neither hear nor understand the black above the noise of the propeller and exhaust. By this time the plane was moving along the ground and even then Usanga was upon the verge of leaping out, and would have done so had he been able to unfasten the strap from about his waist. Then the plane rose from the ground and in a moment soared gracefully in a wide circle until it topped the trees. The black sergeant was in a veritable collapse of terror. He saw the earth dropping rapidly from beneath him. He saw the trees and river and at a distance the little clearing with the thatched huts of Numabo's village. He tried hard not to think of the results of a sudden fall to the rapidly receding ground below. He attempted to concentrate his mind upon the twenty-four wives which this great bird most assuredly would permit him to command. Higher and higher rose the plane, swinging in a wide circle above the forest, river, and meadowland and presently, much to his surprise, Usanga discovered that his terror was rapidly waning, so that it was not long before there was forced upon him a consciousness of utter security, and then it was that he began to take notice of the manner in which the white man guided and manipulated the plane.
Usanga promised that the girl would be safe when they returned and immediately told his warriors that they must not harm her under any circumstances, or face the death penalty. Then, followed by the rest of his team, he walked across the clearing toward the plane with the Englishman. Once he was seated in what he already considered his new possession, Usanga's courage started to fade. When the engine turned on and the large propeller began to spin, he yelled at the Englishman to stop the machine and let him get out, but the pilot couldn't hear or understand him over the noise of the propeller and exhaust. By this point, the plane was moving along the ground, and Usanga was almost ready to jump out, but he couldn't unfasten the strap around his waist. Then the plane lifted off the ground and quickly climbed in a broad circle until it cleared the treetops. The black sergeant was in a complete state of terror. He watched as the ground fell away beneath him, seeing the trees, the river, and in the distance, the small clearing with Numabo's village and its thatched huts. He tried hard not to think about what might happen if they suddenly dropped to the rapidly receding ground below. Instead, he focused on the twenty-four wives that this incredible machine would surely allow him to command. Higher and higher the plane climbed, circling above the forest, river, and meadows, and before long, much to his surprise, Usanga found that his fear was diminishing. It didn't take long before he felt a sense of complete safety, and then he began to pay attention to how the white man skillfully controlled and maneuvered the plane.
After half an hour of skillful maneuvering, the Englishman rose rapidly to a considerable altitude, and then, suddenly, without warning, he looped and flew with the plane inverted for a few seconds.
After thirty minutes of expert maneuvering, the Englishman quickly ascended to a significant altitude, and then, out of nowhere, he performed a loop and flew with the plane upside down for a few seconds.
"I said I'd give this beggar the lesson of his life," he murmured as he heard, even above the whir of the propeller, the shriek of the terrified Negro. A moment later Smith-Oldwick had righted the machine and was dropping rapidly toward the earth. He circled slowly a few times above the meadow until he had assured himself that Bertha Kircher was there and apparently unharmed, then he dropped gently to the ground so that the machine came to a stop a short distance from where the girl and the warriors awaited them.
"I said I'd teach this beggar a lesson," he muttered as he heard, even over the noise of the propeller, the scream of the terrified man. A moment later, Smith-Oldwick had stabilized the aircraft and was quickly descending toward the ground. He made a few slow circles above the meadow until he confirmed that Bertha Kircher was there and seemed uninjured, then he landed smoothly so that the plane came to a stop just a short distance from where the girl and the warriors were waiting.
It was a trembling and ashen-hued Usanga who tumbled out of the fuselage, for his nerves were still on edge as a result of the harrowing experience of the loop, yet with terra firma once more under foot, he quickly regained his composure. Strutting about with great show and braggadocio, he strove to impress his followers with the mere nothingness of so trivial a feat as flying birdlike thousands of yards above the jungle, though it was long until he had thoroughly convinced himself by the force of autosuggestion that he had enjoyed every instant of the flight and was already far advanced in the art of aviation.
It was a shaky and pale Usanga who stumbled out of the fuselage, still on edge after the terrifying experience of the loop. But with solid ground beneath him, he quickly collected himself. Strutting around with a lot of show and swagger, he tried to impress his followers with the idea that flying thousands of yards above the jungle was just a minor achievement. It took him a while, but he eventually convinced himself, through the power of positive thinking, that he had enjoyed every moment of the flight and was already well on his way to mastering aviation.
So jealous was the black of his new-found toy that he would not return to the village of Numabo, but insisted on making camp close beside the plane, lest in some inconceivable fashion it should be stolen from him. For two days they camped there, and constantly during daylight hours Usanga compelled the Englishman to instruct him in the art of flying.
So jealous was the black of his new toy that he wouldn’t go back to the village of Numabo, insisting instead on camping right next to the plane, just in case it might somehow be stolen from him. They camped there for two days, and throughout the day, Usanga made the Englishman teach him how to fly.
Smith-Oldwick, in recalling the long months of arduous training he had undergone himself before he had been considered sufficiently adept to be considered a finished flier, smiled at the conceit of the ignorant African who was already demanding that he be permitted to make a flight alone.
Smith-Oldwick, remembering the long months of tough training he had gone through before he was deemed skilled enough to be called a finished pilot, smiled at the arrogance of the clueless African who was already asking to be allowed to fly solo.
"If it was not for losing the machine," the Englishman explained to the girl, "I'd let the bounder take it up and break his fool neck as he would do inside of two minutes."
"If it weren't for losing the machine," the Englishman explained to the girl, "I'd let that jerk take it up and break his stupid neck in less than two minutes."
However, he finally persuaded Usanga to bide his time for a few more days of instruction, but in the suspicious mind of the Negro there was a growing conviction that the white man's advice was prompted by some ulterior motive; that it was in the hope of escaping with the machine himself by night that he refused to admit that Usanga was entirely capable of handling it alone and therefore in no further need of help or instruction, and so in the mind of the black there formed a determination to outwit the white man. The lure of the twenty-four seductive wives proved in itself a sufficient incentive and there, too, was added his desire for the white girl whom he had long since determined to possess.
However, he finally convinced Usanga to wait a few more days for instructions, but in the suspicious mind of the Black man, there was a growing belief that the white man's advice was driven by some hidden agenda; that he was hoping to escape with the machine himself at night by insisting that Usanga wasn’t completely capable of handling it alone and therefore didn’t need any help or instruction. So, in the Black man's mind, a resolve formed to outsmart the white man. The temptation of the twenty-four alluring wives was enough motivation, and on top of that was his desire for the white girl he had long decided he wanted to possess.
It was with these thoughts in mind that Usanga lay down to sleep in the evening of the second day. Constantly, however, the thought of Naratu and her temper arose to take the keen edge from his pleasant imaginings. If he could but rid himself of her! The thought having taken form persisted, but always it was more than outweighed by the fact that the black sergeant was actually afraid of his woman, so much afraid of her in fact that he would not have dared to attempt to put her out of the way unless he could do so secretly while she slept. However, as one plan after another was conjured by the strength of his desires, he at last hit upon one which came to him almost with the force of a blow and brought him sitting upright among his sleeping companions.
It was with these thoughts that Usanga lay down to sleep on the evening of the second day. However, the thought of Naratu and her temper constantly intruded on his pleasant daydreams. If only he could get rid of her! This idea lingered in his mind, but it was always overshadowed by the fact that the black sergeant was genuinely afraid of his woman—so much so that he wouldn’t have dared to try to get rid of her unless he could do it secretly while she slept. Yet, as one plan after another took shape driven by his desires, he finally came up with one that struck him like a sudden realization, bringing him to sit upright among his sleeping companions.
When morning dawned Usanga could scarce wait for an opportunity to put his scheme into execution, and the moment that he had eaten, he called several of his warriors aside and talked with them for some moments.
When morning broke, Usanga could hardly wait for a chance to put his plan into action, and as soon as he finished eating, he pulled several of his warriors aside and spoke with them for a few moments.
The Englishman, who usually kept an eye upon his black captor, saw now that the latter was explaining something in detail to his warriors, and from his gestures and his manner it was apparent that he was persuading them to some new plan as well as giving them instructions as to what they were to do. Several times, too, he saw the eyes of the Negroes turned upon him and once they flashed simultaneously toward the white girl.
The Englishman, who usually watched his black captor closely, noticed that the captor was now explaining something in detail to his warriors. From his gestures and demeanor, it was clear that he was convincing them of a new plan, as well as giving them instructions on what to do. Several times, he also saw the eyes of the Black men shift towards him, and once they all looked at the white girl at the same time.
Everything about the occurrence, which in itself seemed trivial enough, aroused in the mind of the Englishman a well-defined apprehension that something was afoot that boded ill for him and for the girl. He could not free himself of the idea and so he kept a still closer watch over the black although, as he was forced to admit to himself, he was quite powerless to avert any fate that lay in store for them. Even the spear that he had had when captured had been taken away from him, so that now he was unarmed and absolutely at the mercy of the black sergeant and his followers.
Everything about the situation, which seemed pretty trivial on its own, triggered a strong sense of unease in the Englishman that something was brewing that could spell trouble for him and the girl. He couldn't shake the thought, so he kept an even closer eye on the black man, although he had to admit to himself that he was completely unable to prevent whatever fate awaited them. Even the spear he had when he was captured had been taken away, so now he was unarmed and entirely at the mercy of the black sergeant and his men.
Lieutenant Harold Percy Smith-Oldwick did not have long to wait before discovering something of Usanga's plan, for almost immediately after the sergeant finished giving his instructions, a number of warriors approached the Englishman, while three went directly to the girl.
Lieutenant Harold Percy Smith-Oldwick didn't have to wait long to learn about Usanga's plan, because as soon as the sergeant finished giving his instructions, several warriors approached the Englishman, while three went straight to the girl.
Without a word of explanation the warriors seized the young officer and threw him to the ground upon his face. For a moment he struggled to free himself and succeeded in landing a few heavy blows among his assailants, but he was too greatly outnumbered to hope to more than delay them in the accomplishment of their object which he soon discovered was to bind him securely hand and foot. When they had finally secured him to their satisfaction, they rolled him over on his side and then it was he saw Bertha Kircher had been similarly trussed.
Without saying a word, the warriors grabbed the young officer and threw him to the ground face down. For a moment, he fought to break free and managed to land a few solid punches on his attackers, but he was too outnumbered to do anything more than momentarily hold them off from achieving their goal, which he soon realized was to tie him up securely hand and foot. Once they had him restrained to their satisfaction, they rolled him onto his side, and that was when he saw that Bertha Kircher had been tied up in the same way.
Smith-Oldwick lay in such a position that he could see nearly the entire expanse of meadow and the aeroplane a short distance away. Usanga was talking to the girl who was shaking her head in vehement negatives.
Smith-Oldwick was positioned in such a way that he could see almost the whole meadow and the airplane not far off. Usanga was chatting with the girl, who was shaking her head vigorously in refusal.
"What is he saying?" called the Englishman.
"What is he saying?" shouted the Englishman.
"He is going to take me away in the plane," the girl called back. "He is going to take me farther inland to another country where he says that he will be king and I am to be one of his wives," and then to the Englishman's surprise she turned a smiling face toward him, "but there is no danger," she continued, "for we shall both be dead within a few minutes—just give him time enough to get the machine under way, and if he can rise a hundred feet from the ground I shall never need fear him more."
"He’s going to take me away on the plane," the girl called back. "He’s going to take me further inland to another country where he says he will be king, and I’m to be one of his wives." Then, to the Englishman’s surprise, she turned a smiling face toward him. "But there’s no danger," she continued, "because we’ll both be dead in a few minutes—just give him enough time to get the plane going, and if he can go a hundred feet off the ground, I’ll never have to worry about him again."
"God!" cried the man. "Is there no way that you can dissuade him? Promise him anything. Anything that you want. I have money, more money than that poor fool could imagine there was in the whole world. With it he can buy anything that money will purchase, fine clothes and food and women, all the women he wants. Tell him this and tell him that if he will spare you I give him my word that I will fetch it all to him."
"God!" the man shouted. "Is there any way you can talk him out of this? Promise him anything. Anything you want. I have money, more than that poor fool could ever dream of in his life. With it, he can buy anything money can get him—nice clothes, food, and all the women he desires. Tell him this, and let him know that if he spares you, I promise I'll bring it all to him."
The girl shook her head. "It is useless," she said. "He would not understand and if he did understand, he would not trust you. The blacks are so unprincipled themselves that they can imagine no such thing as principle or honor in others, and especially do these blacks distrust an Englishman whom the Germans have taught them to believe are the most treacherous and degraded of people. No, it is better thus. I am sorry that you cannot go with us, for if he goes high enough my death will be much easier than that which probably awaits you."
The girl shook her head. "It's pointless," she said. "He wouldn't get it, and even if he did, he wouldn't trust you. The black people are so unprincipled themselves that they can't imagine anyone else having principles or honor, and especially do they distrust an Englishman whom the Germans have taught them to see as the most deceitful and lowly of people. No, it's better this way. I'm sorry you can't come with us because if he rises high enough, my death will be much easier than what you're likely to face."
Usanga had been continually interrupting their brief conversation in an attempt to compel the girl to translate it to him, for he feared that they were concocting some plan to thwart him, and to quiet and appease him, she told him that the Englishman was merely bidding her farewell and wishing her good luck. Suddenly she turned to the black. "Will you do something for me?" she asked. "If I go willingly with you?"
Usanga kept interrupting their short conversation, trying to get the girl to translate for him because he was worried they were coming up with some scheme against him. To calm him down, she told him that the Englishman was just saying goodbye and wishing her good luck. Then she turned to the black man. "Will you do something for me?" she asked. "If I go willingly with you?"
"What is it you want?" he inquired.
"What do you want?" he asked.
"Tell your men to free the white man after we are gone. He can never catch us. That is all I ask of you. If you will grant him his freedom and his life, I will go willingly with you.
"Tell your men to let the white man go after we leave. He'll never catch up with us. That’s all I ask of you. If you can give him his freedom and his life, I’ll go with you without hesitation."
"You will go with me anyway," growled Usanga. "It is nothing to me whether you go willingly or not. I am going to be a great king and you will do whatever I tell you to do."
"You’re coming with me, whether you like it or not," Usanga snarled. "I don’t care if you go willingly. I’m going to be a great king, and you’ll do whatever I say."
He had in mind that he would start properly with this woman. There should be no repetition of his harrowing experience with Naratu. This wife and the twenty-four others should be carefully selected and well trained. Hereafter Usanga would be master in his own house.
He planned to do things right with this woman. He didn’t want to go through the painful experience he had with Naratu again. This wife and the twenty-four others needed to be carefully chosen and properly trained. From now on, Usanga would be in charge of his own home.
Bertha Kircher saw that it was useless to appeal to the brute and so she held her peace though she was filled with sorrow in contemplating the fate that awaited the young officer, scarce more than a boy, who had impulsively revealed his love for her.
Bertha Kircher realized it was pointless to appeal to the savage instinct, so she stayed silent even though she was overwhelmed with sadness thinking about the fate that awaited the young officer, barely more than a boy, who had impulsively confessed his love for her.
At Usanga's order one of the blacks lifted her from the ground and carried her to the machine, and after Usanga had clambered aboard, they lifted her up and he reached down and drew her into the fuselage where he removed the thongs from her wrists and strapped her into her seat and then took his own directly ahead of her.
At Usanga's command, one of the men picked her up from the ground and carried her to the machine. After Usanga climbed on board, they lifted her up, and he reached down to pull her into the cabin, where he took off the bindings from her wrists and strapped her into her seat before taking his own directly in front of her.
The girl turned her eyes toward the Englishman. She was very pale but her lips smiled bravely.
The girl looked at the Englishman. She was very pale, but her lips smiled confidently.
"Good-bye!" she cried.
"Goodbye!" she cried.
"Good-bye, and God bless you!" he called back—his voice the least bit husky—and then: "The thing I wanted to say—may I say it now, we are so very near the end?"
"Goodbye, and God bless you!" he called back—his voice slightly hoarse—and then: "The thing I wanted to say—can I say it now, since we're so close to the end?"
Her lips moved but whether they voiced consent or refusal he did not know, for the words were drowned in the whir of the propeller.
Her lips moved, but he couldn't tell if she was agreeing or rejecting him because her words were drowned out by the sound of the propeller.
The black had learned his lesson sufficiently well so that the motor was started without bungling and the machine was soon under way across the meadowland. A groan escaped the lips of the distracted Englishman as he watched the woman he loved being carried to almost certain death. He saw the plane tilt and the machine rise from the ground. It was a good take-off—as good as Lieutenant Harold Percy Smith-Oldwick could make himself but he realized that it was only so by chance. At any instant the machine might plunge to earth and even if, by some miracle of chance, the black could succeed in rising above the tree tops and make a successful flight, there was not one chance in one hundred thousand that he could ever land again without killing his fair captive and himself.
The pilot had learned his lesson well enough that he started the engine smoothly, and soon the plane was moving across the meadow. A groan escaped the lips of the worried Englishman as he watched the woman he loved being taken to almost certain death. He saw the plane tilt and lift off the ground. It was a decent takeoff— as good as Lieutenant Harold Percy Smith-Oldwick could manage, but he knew it was only by luck. At any moment, the plane could nosedive to the ground, and even if, by some miracle, the pilot managed to rise above the treetops and get the plane in the air, the odds were a million to one that he could land it again without killing his beautiful captive and himself.
But what was that? His heart stood still.
But what was that? His heart froze.
Chapter XIII
Usanga's Reward
For two days Tarzan of the Apes had been hunting leisurely to the north, and swinging in a wide circle, he had returned to within a short distance of the clearing where he had left Bertha Kircher and the young lieutenant. He had spent the night in a large tree that overhung the river only a short distance from the clearing, and now in the early morning hours he was crouching at the water's edge waiting for an opportunity to capture Pisah, the fish, thinking that he would take it back with him to the hut where the girl could cook it for herself and her companion.
For two days, Tarzan of the Apes had been casually hunting to the north, and swinging in a wide circle, he had returned to just a short distance from the clearing where he had left Bertha Kircher and the young lieutenant. He had spent the night in a large tree that hung over the river not far from the clearing, and now, in the early morning hours, he was crouching at the water’s edge, waiting for a chance to catch Pisah, the fish, thinking he would take it back to the hut so the girl could cook it for herself and her companion.
Motionless as a bronze statue was the wily ape-man, for well he knew how wary is Pisah, the fish. The slightest movement would frighten him away and only by infinite patience might he be captured at all. Tarzan depended upon his own quickness and the suddenness of his attack, for he had no bait or hook. His knowledge of the ways of the denizens of the water told him where to wait for Pisah. It might be a minute or it might be an hour before the fish would swim into the little pool above which he crouched, but sooner or later one would come. That the ape-man knew, so with the patience of the beast of prey he waited for his quarry.
Motionless like a bronze statue, the clever ape-man stayed still because he understood how cautious Pisah, the fish, could be. Even the slightest movement could scare him away, and capturing him would require endless patience. Tarzan relied on his speed and the element of surprise since he had no bait or hook. He knew the habits of the creatures in the water and where to position himself to catch Pisah. It could take a minute or even an hour for the fish to swim into the small pool where he crouched, but sooner or later, one would appear. The ape-man was confident of this, so with the patience of a predator, he waited for his target.
At last there was a glint of shiny scales. Pisah was coming. In a moment he would be within reach and then with the swiftness of light two strong, brown hands would plunge into the pool and seize him, but, just at the moment that the fish was about to come within reach, there was a great crashing in the underbrush behind the ape-man. Instantly Pisah was gone and Tarzan, growling, had wheeled about to face whatever creature might be menacing him. The moment that he turned he saw that the author of the disturbance was Zu-tag.
At last, there was a flash of shiny scales. Pisah was coming. In a moment, he would be within reach, and then, as fast as lightning, two strong, brown hands would dive into the pool and grab him. But just as the fish was about to come within reach, there was a loud crashing in the bushes behind the ape-man. Instantly, Pisah was gone, and Tarzan, growling, spun around to face whatever creature might be threatening him. As soon as he turned, he saw that the cause of the disturbance was Zu-tag.
"What does Zu-tag want?" asked the ape-man.
"What does Zu-tag want?" asked the ape-man.
"Zu-tag comes to the water to drink," replied the ape.
"Zu-tag comes to the water to drink," the ape replied.
"Where is the tribe?" asked Tarzan.
"Where's the tribe?" Tarzan asked.
"They are hunting for pisangs and scimatines farther back in the forest," replied Zu-tag.
"They're looking for pisangs and scimatines deeper in the forest," replied Zu-tag.
"And the Tarmangani she and bull—" asked Tarzan, "are they safe?"
"And the Tarmangani she and the bull—" Tarzan asked, "are they safe?"
"They have gone away," replied Zu-tag. "Kudu has come out of his lair twice since they left."
"They've gone away," replied Zu-tag. "Kudu has come out of his den twice since they left."
"Did the tribe chase them away?" asked Tarzan.
"Did the tribe kick them out?" asked Tarzan.
"No," replied the ape. "We did not see them go. We do not know why they left."
"No," replied the ape. "We didn't see them leave. We don't know why they left."
Tarzan swung quickly through the trees toward the clearing. The hut and boma were as he had left them, but there was no sign of either the man or the woman. Crossing the clearing, he entered the boma and then the hut. Both were empty, and his trained nostrils told him that they had been gone for at least two days. As he was about to leave the hut he saw a paper pinned upon the wall with a sliver of wood and taking it down, he read:
Tarzan swung swiftly through the trees towards the clearing. The hut and boma were just as he had left them, but there was no sign of either the man or the woman. Crossing the clearing, he stepped into the boma and then into the hut. Both were empty, and his trained sense of smell told him they had been gone for at least two days. Just as he was about to leave the hut, he noticed a piece of paper pinned to the wall with a sliver of wood and took it down to read:
After what you told me about Miss Kircher, and knowing that you dislike her, I feel that it is not fair to her and to you that we should impose longer upon you. I know that our presence is keeping you from continuing your journey to the west coast, and so I have decided that it is better for us to try and reach the white settlements immediately without imposing further upon you. We both thank you for your kindness and protection. If there was any way that I might repay the obligation I feel, I should be only too glad to do so.
After what you told me about Miss Kircher and knowing that you don't like her, I feel it's unfair to both her and you to keep imposing on you. I realize that our presence is preventing you from continuing your journey to the west coast, so I've decided it's best for us to try to reach the white settlements immediately without putting any further burden on you. We both appreciate your kindness and protection. If there’s any way I can repay the debt I feel, I would be more than happy to do so.
It was signed by Lieutenant Harold Percy Smith-Oldwick.
It was signed by Lieutenant Harold Percy Smith-Oldwick.
Tarzan shrugged his shoulders, crumpled the note in his hand and tossed it aside. He felt a certain sense of relief from responsibility and was glad that they had taken the matter out of his hands. They were gone and would forget, but somehow he could not forget. He walked out across the boma and into the clearing. He felt uneasy and restless. Once he started toward the north in response to a sudden determination to continue his way to the west coast. He would follow the winding river toward the north a few miles where its course turned to the west and then on toward its source across a wooded plateau and up into the foothills and the mountains. Upon the other side of the range he would search for a stream running downward toward the west coast, and thus following the rivers he would be sure of game and water in plenty.
Tarzan shrugged, crumpled the note in his hand, and tossed it aside. He felt a sense of relief from responsibility and was glad they had taken the matter out of his hands. They were gone and would forget, but somehow he couldn’t let it go. He walked across the boma and into the clearing. He felt uneasy and restless. At one point, he headed north, driven by a sudden urge to continue toward the west coast. He would follow the winding river north for a few miles until it turned west, then head to its source across a wooded plateau and up into the foothills and mountains. On the other side of the range, he would look for a stream flowing down toward the west coast, and by following the rivers, he would be sure to find plenty of game and water.
But he did not go far. A dozen steps, perhaps, and he came to a sudden stop. "He is an Englishman," he muttered, "and the other is a woman. They can never reach the settlements without my help. I could not kill her with my own hands when I tried, and if I let them go on alone, I will have killed her just as surely as though I had run my knife into her heart. No," and again he shook his head. "Tarzan of the Apes is a fool and a weak, old woman," and he turned back toward the south.
But he didn’t go far. Just a dozen steps, maybe, and he suddenly stopped. “He’s an Englishman,” he muttered, “and she’s a woman. They’ll never make it to the settlements without my help. I couldn’t kill her with my own hands when I tried, and if I let them go on their own, I’ll have killed her just as surely as if I’d plunged my knife into her heart. No,” and again he shook his head. “Tarzan of the Apes is a fool and a weak, old woman,” and he turned back toward the south.
Manu, the monkey, had seen the two Tarmangani pass two days before. Chattering and scolding, he told Tarzan all about it. They had gone in the direction of the village of the Gomangani, that much had Manu seen with his own eyes, so the ape-man swung on through the jungle in a southerly direction and though with no concentrated effort to follow the spoor of those he trailed, he passed numerous evidences that they had gone this way—faint suggestions of their scent spoor clung lightly to leaf or branch or bole that one or the other had touched, or in the earth of the trail their feet had trod, and where the way wound through the gloomy depth of dank forest, the impress of their shoes still showed occasionally in the damp mass of decaying vegetation that floored the way.
Manu, the monkey, had seen the two Tarmangani two days earlier. Chattering and scolding, he told Tarzan all about it. They had headed toward the village of the Gomangani; that much Manu had seen with his own eyes. So, the ape-man swung through the jungle in a southerly direction, not making a concentrated effort to follow their trail. He passed numerous signs they had taken this route—faint hints of their scent lingered lightly on leaves, branches, or tree trunks that one of them had touched, or in the ground where their feet had walked. In the dark depths of the damp forest, the impressions of their shoes could still be seen occasionally in the soft mass of decaying vegetation along the path.
An inexplicable urge spurred Tarzan to increasing, speed. The same still, small voice that chided him for having neglected them seemed constantly whispering that they were in dire need of him now. Tarzan's conscience was troubling him, which accounted for the fact that he compared himself to a weak, old woman, for the ape-man, reared in savagery and inured to hardships and cruelty, disliked to admit any of the gentler traits that in reality were his birthright.
An unexplainable urge drove Tarzan to go faster. The same quiet voice that scolded him for neglecting them kept whispering that they desperately needed him now. Tarzan's conscience was bothering him, which is why he compared himself to a frail, old woman. The ape-man, raised in savagery and toughened by hardships and cruelty, hated to acknowledge any of the softer traits that were actually his by nature.
The trail made a detour to the east of the village of the Wamabos, and then returned to the wide elephant path nearer to the river, where it continued in a southerly direction for several miles. At last there came to the ears of the ape-man a peculiar whirring, throbbing sound. For an instant he paused, listening intently, "An aeroplane!" he muttered, and hastened forward at greatly increased speed.
The trail took a detour east of the Wamabo village and then came back to the broad elephant path closer to the river, where it carried on southward for several miles. Finally, the ape-man heard a strange whirring, throbbing noise. For a moment, he stopped, listening carefully. "An airplane!" he muttered, and rushed forward, picking up speed.
When Tarzan of the Apes finally reached the edge of the meadowland where Smith-Oldwick's plane had landed, he took in the entire scene in one quick glance and grasped the situation, although he could scarce give credence to the things he saw. Bound and helpless, the English officer lay upon the ground at one side of the meadow, while around him stood a number of the black deserters from the German command. Tarzan had seen these men before and knew who they were. Coming toward him down the meadow was an aeroplane piloted by the black Usanga and in the seat behind the pilot was the white girl, Bertha Kircher. How it befell that the ignorant savage could operate the plane, Tarzan could not guess nor had he time in which to speculate upon the subject. His knowledge of Usanga, together with the position of the white man, told him that the black sergeant was attempting to carry off the white girl. Why he should be doing this when he had her in his power and had also captured and secured the only creature in the jungle who might wish to defend her in so far as the black could know, Tarzan could not guess, for he knew nothing of Usanga's twenty-four dream wives nor of the black's fear of the horrid temper of Naratu, his present mate. He did not know, then, that Usanga had determined to fly away with the white girl never to return, and to put so great a distance between himself and Naratu that the latter never could find him again; but it was this very thing that was in the black's mind although not even his own warriors guessed it. He had told them that he would take the captive to a sultan of the north and there obtain a great price for her and that when he returned they should have some of the spoils.
When Tarzan of the Apes finally reached the edge of the meadow where Smith-Oldwick's plane had landed, he took in the whole scene in one quick glance and understood the situation, although he could hardly believe what he was seeing. Bound and helpless, the English officer lay on the ground at one side of the meadow, while around him stood several black deserters from the German command. Tarzan had seen these men before and recognized them. Coming toward him down the meadow was an airplane piloted by the black Usanga, with the white girl, Bertha Kircher, sitting behind the pilot. How this ignorant savage could operate the plane, Tarzan couldn’t guess, nor did he have time to think about it. His knowledge of Usanga, along with the position of the white man, indicated that the black sergeant was trying to kidnap the white girl. Why he would do this when he had her in his power and had also captured and secured the only creature in the jungle who might want to defend her, as far as the black knew, Tarzan couldn’t figure out, since he knew nothing of Usanga’s twenty-four dream wives or the black’s fear of the terrible temper of Naratu, his current mate. At that moment, he did not realize that Usanga had decided to fly away with the white girl and never return, hoping to put so much distance between himself and Naratu that she would never find him again; but this was exactly what was on the black’s mind, although not even his own warriors suspected it. He had told them that he would take the captive to a sultan in the north and get a great price for her, and that when he returned they would share in some of the spoils.
These things Tarzan did not know. All he knew was what he saw—a Negro attempting to fly away with a white girl. Already the machine was slowly leaving the ground. In a moment more it would rise swiftly out of reach. At first Tarzan thought of fitting an arrow to his bow and slaying Usanga, but as quickly he abandoned the idea because he knew that the moment the pilot was slain the machine, running wild, would dash the girl to death among the trees.
These were things Tarzan didn’t understand. All he knew was what he saw—a Black man trying to take off with a white girl. The aircraft was already slowly lifting off the ground. In just a moment, it would soar quickly out of reach. At first, Tarzan considered shooting an arrow at Usanga, but he quickly dismissed the thought because he realized that if the pilot was killed, the machine, now out of control, would send the girl crashing to her death among the trees.
There was but one way in which he might hope to succor her—a way which if it failed must send him to instant death and yet he did not hesitate in an attempt to put it into execution.
There was only one way he could hope to help her—a way that would mean instant death if it failed, yet he didn't hesitate to try to carry it out.
Usanga did not see him, being too intent upon the unaccustomed duties of a pilot, but the blacks across the meadow saw him and they ran forward with loud and savage cries and menacing rifles to intercept him. They saw a giant white man leap from the branches of a tree to the turf and race rapidly toward the plane. They saw him take a long grass rope from about his shoulders as he ran. They saw the noose swinging in an undulating circle above his head. They saw the white girl in the machine glance down and discover him.
Usanga didn’t notice him, focused as he was on the unfamiliar responsibilities of being a pilot, but the black men across the meadow saw him and charged forward with loud, fierce shouts and threatening rifles to stop him. They watched a huge white man jump from a tree branch to the ground and sprint quickly toward the plane. They saw him pull a long grass rope from over his shoulders as he ran. They saw the noose swinging in a smooth circle above his head. They saw the white girl in the plane look down and spot him.
Twenty feet above the running ape-man soared the huge plane. The open noose shot up to meet it, and the girl, half guessing the ape-man's intentions, reached out and caught the noose and, bracing herself, clung tightly to it with both hands. Simultaneously Tarzan was dragged from his feet and the plane lurched sideways in response to the new strain. Usanga clutched wildly at the control and the machine shot upward at a steep angle. Dangling at the end of the rope the ape-man swung pendulum-like in space. The Englishman, lying bound upon the ground, had been a witness of all these happenings. His heart stood still as he saw Tarzan's body hurtling through the air toward the tree tops among which it seemed he must inevitably crash; but the plane was rising rapidly, so that the beast-man cleared the top-most branches. Then slowly, hand over hand, he climbed toward the fuselage. The girl, clinging desperately to the noose, strained every muscle to hold the great weight dangling at the lower end of the rope.
Twenty feet above the running ape-man, the huge plane flew overhead. The open noose shot up to meet it, and the girl, partly guessing the ape-man's intentions, reached out and grabbed the noose, bracing herself as she clung tightly to it with both hands. At the same time, Tarzan was yanked off his feet, and the plane tilted sideways in response to the new strain. Usanga grabbed frantically at the controls, and the machine shot upward at a steep angle. Dangling at the end of the rope, the ape-man swung like a pendulum in the air. The Englishman, tied up on the ground, witnessed all of this unfold. His heart stopped as he saw Tarzan's body flying through the air toward the treetops, where it seemed he would inevitably crash; but the plane was climbing quickly, allowing the beast-man to clear the highest branches. Then, slowly, he climbed hand over hand toward the fuselage. The girl, desperately holding on to the noose, strained every muscle to support the great weight hanging at the end of the rope.
Usanga, all unconscious of what was going on behind him, drove the plane higher and higher into the air.
Usanga, completely unaware of what was happening behind him, flew the plane higher and higher into the sky.
Tarzan glanced downward. Below him the tree tops and the river passed rapidly to the rear and only a slender grass rope and the muscles of a frail girl stood between him and the death yawning there thousands of feet below.
Tarzan looked down. Below him, the treetops and the river rushed by, and only a thin grass rope and the strength of a delicate girl were keeping him from the deadly drop thousands of feet below.
It seemed to Bertha Kircher that the fingers of her hands were dead. The numbness was running up her arms to her elbows. How much longer she could cling to the straining strands she could not guess. It seemed to her that those lifeless fingers must relax at any instant and then, when she had about given up hope, she saw a strong brown hand reach up and grasp the side of the fuselage. Instantly the weight upon the rope was removed and a moment later Tarzan of the Apes raised his body above the side and threw a leg over the edge. He glanced forward at Usanga and then, placing his mouth close to the girl's ear he cried: "Have you ever piloted a plane?" The girl nodded a quick affirmative.
It felt to Bertha Kircher like her fingers were completely numb. The tingling sensation was creeping up her arms to her elbows. She couldn’t tell how much longer she could hold onto the strained ropes. It seemed like those lifeless fingers could give way at any moment, and just when she had nearly lost all hope, she saw a strong brown hand reach up and grab the side of the plane. Instantly, the weight on the rope lifted, and a moment later, Tarzan of the Apes pulled himself up over the edge. He looked ahead at Usanga and then leaned in close to Bertha’s ear, exclaiming, "Have you ever flown a plane?" The girl quickly nodded in response.
"Have you the courage to climb up there beside the black and seize the control while I take care of him?"
"Do you have the courage to climb up there next to the black and take control while I handle him?"
The girl looked toward Usanga and shuddered. "Yes," she replied, "but my feet are bound."
The girl glanced at Usanga and shivered. "Yeah," she said, "but my feet are tied."
Tarzan drew his hunting knife from its sheath and reaching down, severed the thongs that bound her ankles. Then the girl unsnapped the strap that held her to her seat. With one hand Tarzan grasped the girl's arm and steadied her as the two crawled slowly across the few feet which intervened between the two seats. A single slight tip of the plane would have cast them both into eternity. Tarzan realized that only through a miracle of chance could they reach Usanga and effect the change in pilots and yet he knew that that chance must be taken, for in the brief moments since he had first seen the plane, he had realized that the black was almost without experience as a pilot and that death surely awaited them in any event should the black sergeant remain at the control.
Tarzan pulled his hunting knife from its sheath and, leaning down, cut the straps that tied her ankles. Then the girl unbuckled the strap that secured her to her seat. With one hand, Tarzan grabbed the girl’s arm and steadied her as they crawled slowly across the small distance between the two seats. Just a slight tilt of the plane could have sent them both to their doom. Tarzan understood that only by a stroke of luck could they reach Usanga and swap pilots, but he knew they had to take that risk. In the brief moments since he first saw the plane, he had realized that the black pilot had very little experience, and that death awaited them if the black sergeant stayed at the controls.
The first intimation Usanga had that all was not well with him was when the girl slipped suddenly to his side and grasped the control and at the same instant steel-like fingers seized his throat. A brown hand shot down with a keen blade and severed the strap about his waist and giant muscles lifted him bodily from his seat. Usanga clawed the air and shrieked but he was helpless as a babe. Far below the watchers in the meadow could see the aeroplane careening in the sky, for with the change of control it had taken a sudden dive. They saw it right itself and, turning in a short circle, return in their direction, but it was so far above them and the light of the sun so strong that they could see nothing of what was going on within the fuselage; but presently Lieutenant Smith-Oldwick gave a gasp of dismay as he saw a human body plunge downward from the plane. Turning and twisting in mid-air it fell with ever-increasing velocity and the Englishman held his breath as the thing hurtled toward them.
The first sign that something was wrong for Usanga came when the girl suddenly appeared at his side, grabbed the controls, and at the same moment, a strong hand wrapped around his throat. A brown hand shot down with a sharp blade, cutting the strap around his waist, and powerful muscles lifted him out of his seat. Usanga flailed helplessly, screaming like a child. Below, the onlookers in the meadow watched as the airplane tilted wildly in the sky; with the control suddenly changing, it took a sharp dive. They saw it right itself and make a quick loop back toward them, but it was too high up and the sunlight was too bright for them to see what was happening inside the cabin. Then, Lieutenant Smith-Oldwick gasped in shock as he saw a human body fall from the plane. Twisting and turning in mid-air, it descended faster and faster, and the Englishman held his breath as the figure plummeted toward them.
With a muffled thud it flattened upon the turf near the center of the meadow, and when at last the Englishman could gain the courage to again turn his eyes upon it, he breathed a fervent prayer of thanks, for the shapeless mass that lay upon the blood-stained turf was covered with an ebon hide. Usanga had reaped his reward.
With a soft thud, it landed on the grass in the middle of the meadow, and when the Englishman finally found the courage to look at it again, he breathed a heartfelt prayer of thanks, because the lifeless form lying on the blood-stained ground was covered with a dark hide. Usanga had received his reward.
Again and again the plane circled above the meadow. The blacks, at first dismayed at the death of their leader, were now worked to a frenzy of rage and a determination to be avenged. The girl and the ape-man saw them gather in a knot about the body of their fallen chief. They saw as they circled above the meadow the black fists shaken at them, and the rifles brandishing a menace toward them. Tarzan still clung to the fuselage directly behind the pilot's seat. His face was close beside Bertha Kircher's, and at the top of his voice, above the noise of propeller, engine and exhaust, he screamed a few words of instruction into her ear.
Again and again, the plane circled above the meadow. The blacks, initially shocked by the death of their leader, were now consumed with rage and a desire for revenge. The girl and the ape-man watched as they gathered in a group around the body of their fallen chief. As they circled above the meadow, they saw angry black fists shaking at them and rifles raised in a threatening manner. Tarzan still held onto the fuselage right behind the pilot's seat. His face was close to Bertha Kircher's, and shouting over the noise of the propeller, engine, and exhaust, he yelled a few words of instruction into her ear.
As the girl grasped the significance of his words she paled, but her lips set in a hard line and her eyes shone with a sudden fire of determination as she dropped the plane to within a few feet of the ground and at the opposite end of the meadow from the blacks and then at full speed bore down upon the savages. So quickly the plane came that Usanga's men had no time to escape it after they realized its menace. It touched the ground just as it struck among them and mowed through them, a veritable juggernaut of destruction. When it came to rest at the edge of the forest the ape-man leaped quickly to the ground and ran toward the young lieutenant, and as he went he glanced at the spot where the warriors had stood, ready to defend himself if necessary, but there was none there to oppose him. Dead and dying they lay strewn for fifty feet along the turf.
As the girl understood the meaning of his words, she went pale, but her lips tightened into a hard line, and her eyes sparkled with sudden determination as she dropped the plane a few feet above the ground, at the opposite end of the meadow from the men, and then sped towards the savages. The plane came in so fast that Usanga's men had no time to escape once they realized the danger. It hit the ground just as it struck among them, cutting through them like a massive force of destruction. When it finally stopped at the edge of the forest, the ape-man jumped quickly to the ground and ran towards the young lieutenant, glancing at the spot where the warriors had been, ready to defend himself if needed, but there was no one there to confront him. Dead and dying bodies were scattered across fifty feet of turf.
By the time Tarzan had freed the Englishman the girl joined them. She tried to voice her thanks to the ape-man but he silenced her with a gesture.
By the time Tarzan had rescued the Englishman, the girl joined them. She tried to express her gratitude to the ape-man, but he silenced her with a gesture.
"You saved yourself," he insisted, "for had you been unable to pilot the plane, I could not have helped you, and now," he said, "you two have the means of returning to the settlements. The day is still young. You can easily cover the distance in a few hours if you have sufficient petrol." He looked inquiringly toward the aviator.
"You saved yourself," he insisted. "If you hadn't been able to fly the plane, I wouldn't have been able to help you. And now," he said, "the two of you have the means to get back to the settlements. The day is still young. You can easily make the trip in a few hours if you have enough fuel." He looked inquiringly at the aviator.
Smith-Oldwick nodded his head affirmatively. "I have plenty," he replied.
Smith-Oldwick nodded his head in agreement. "I have plenty," he said.
"Then go at once," said the ape-man. "Neither of you belong in the jungle." A slight smile touched his lips as he spoke.
"Then go right now," said the ape-man. "Neither of you belong in the jungle." A slight smile crossed his lips as he spoke.
The girl and the Englishman smiled too. "This jungle is no place for us at least," said Smith-Oldwick, "and it is no place for any other white man. Why don't you come back to civilization with us?"
The girl and the Englishman smiled too. "This jungle isn’t a place for us, at least," said Smith-Oldwick, "and it’s not a place for any other white man. Why don’t you come back to civilization with us?"
Tarzan shook his head. "I prefer the jungle," he said.
Tarzan shook his head. "I like the jungle better," he said.
The aviator dug his toe into the ground and still looking down, blurted something which he evidently hated to say. "If it is a matter of living, old top," he said, "er—money, er—you know—"
The aviator dug his toe into the ground and, still looking down, blurted out something he clearly disliked saying. "If it's about survival, buddy," he said, "uh—money, uh—you know—"
Tarzan laughed. "No," he said. "I know what you are trying to say. It is not that. I was born in the jungle. I have lived all my life in the jungle, and I shall die in the jungle. I do not wish to live or die elsewhere."
Tarzan laughed. "No," he said. "I get what you're trying to say. It's not that. I was born in the jungle. I've spent my whole life in the jungle, and I will die in the jungle. I don’t want to live or die anywhere else."
The others shook their heads. They could not understand him.
The others shook their heads. They just didn’t get him.
"Go," said the ape-man. "The quicker you go, the quicker you will reach safety."
"Go," said the ape-man. "The faster you go, the sooner you'll reach safety."
They walked to the plane together. Smith-Oldwick pressed the ape-man's hand and clambered into the pilot's seat. "Good-bye," said the girl as she extended her hand to Tarzan. "Before I go won't you tell me you don't hate me any more?" Tarzan's face clouded. Without a word he picked her up and lifted her to her place behind the Englishman. An expression of pain crossed Bertha Kircher's face. The motor started and a moment later the two were being borne rapidly toward the east.
They walked to the plane together. Smith-Oldwick shook the ape-man's hand and climbed into the pilot's seat. "Goodbye," the girl said as she reached out her hand to Tarzan. "Before I leave, won't you tell me you don't hate me anymore?" Tarzan's expression darkened. Without saying anything, he picked her up and set her down in her spot behind the Englishman. A look of pain crossed Bertha Kircher's face. The engine started, and moments later, the two were quickly heading east.
In the center of the meadow stood the ape-man watching them. "It is too bad that she is a German and a spy," he said, "for she is very hard to hate."
In the middle of the meadow stood the ape-man watching them. "It's a shame she's German and a spy," he said, "because it's really hard to hate her."
Chapter XIV
The Black Lion
Numa, the lion, was hungry. He had come out of the desert country to the east into a land of plenty but though he was young and strong, the wary grass-eaters had managed to elude his mighty talons each time he had thought to make a kill.
Numa, the lion, was hungry. He had come out of the desert to the east into a land of abundance, but even though he was young and strong, the cautious grass-eaters had managed to escape his powerful claws every time he tried to catch one.
Numa, the lion, was hungry and very savage. For two days he had not eaten and now he hunted in the ugliest of humors. No more did Numa roar forth a rumbling challenge to the world but rather he moved silent and grim, stepping softly that no cracking twig might betray his presence to the keen-eared quarry he sought.
Numa, the lion, was hungry and very fierce. He hadn’t eaten for two days, and now he was hunting in a terrible mood. No longer did Numa roar a booming challenge to the world; instead, he moved silently and grimly, stepping softly so that no cracking twig would give away his presence to the sharp-eared prey he was after.
Fresh was the spoor of Bara, the deer, that Numa picked up in the well-beaten game trail he was following. No hour had passed since Bara had come this way; the time could be measured in minutes and so the great lion redoubled the cautiousness of his advance as he crept stealthily in pursuit of his quarry.
Fresh was the track of Bara, the deer, that Numa picked up on the well-worn game trail he was following. Not an hour had passed since Bara had been this way; the time could be measured in minutes, and so the great lion increased his caution as he quietly moved forward in pursuit of his prey.
A light wind was moving through the jungle aisles, and it wafted down now to the nostrils of the eager carnivore the strong scent spoor of the deer, exciting his already avid appetite to a point where it became a gnawing pain. Yet Numa did not permit himself to be carried away by his desires into any premature charge such as had recently lost him the juicy meat of Pacco, the zebra. Increasing his gait but slightly he followed the tortuous windings of the trail until suddenly just before him, where the trail wound about the bole of a huge tree, he saw a young buck moving slowly ahead of him.
A light wind was blowing through the jungle paths, and it carried to the nostrils of the eager carnivore the strong scent of the deer, heightening his already intense hunger to the point of causing a gnawing pain. Yet Numa didn’t let his desires push him into any rash attack, like the one that had recently cost him the juicy meat of Pacco, the zebra. Slightly quickening his pace, he followed the winding path until, suddenly, just ahead, where the trail curved around the base of a massive tree, he spotted a young buck moving slowly in front of him.
Numa judged the distance with his keen eyes, glowing now like two terrible spots of yellow fire in his wrinkled, snarling face. He could do it—this time he was sure. One terrific roar that would paralyze the poor creature ahead of him into momentary inaction, and a simultaneous charge of lightning-like rapidity and Numa, the lion, would feed. The sinuous tail, undulating slowly at its tufted extremity, whipped suddenly erect. It was the signal for the charge and the vocal organs were shaped for the thunderous roar when, as lightning out of a clear sky, Sheeta, the panther, leaped suddenly into the trail between Numa and the deer.
Numa assessed the distance with his sharp eyes, now glowing like two fierce spots of yellow fire on his wrinkled, snarling face. He could do it—this time he was confident. One mighty roar would freeze the poor creature in front of him in fear for a moment, and with lightning speed, Numa the lion would pounce. His sinuous tail, slowly swaying at its tufted tip, flicked abruptly upright. That was the signal to charge, and his vocal cords prepared for the thunderous roar when, like lightning from a clear sky, Sheeta the panther suddenly jumped into the path between Numa and the deer.
A blundering charge made Sheeta, for with the first crash of his spotted body through the foliage verging the trail, Bara gave a single startled backward glance and was gone.
A clumsy rush was made by Sheeta, because with the first impact of his spotted body breaking through the leaves along the path, Bara took a quick surprised look back and vanished.
The roar that was intended to paralyze the deer broke horribly from the deep throat of the great cat—an angry roar of rage against the meddling Sheeta who had robbed him of his kill, and the charge that was intended for Bara was launched against the panther; but here too Numa was doomed to disappointment, for with the first notes of his fearsome roar Sheeta, considering well the better part of valor, leaped into a near-by tree.
The roar meant to scare the deer erupted powerfully from the deep throat of the big cat—an angry roar of rage against the meddling Sheeta who had stolen his kill. The charge meant for Bara was instead aimed at the panther; but once again, Numa was destined for disappointment, for at the first sound of his fearsome roar, Sheeta, thinking wisely about self-preservation, jumped into a nearby tree.
A half-hour later it was a thoroughly furious Numa who came unexpectedly upon the scent of man. Heretofore the lord of the jungle had disdained the unpalatable flesh of the despised man-thing. Such meat was only for the old, the toothless, and the decrepit who no longer could make their kills among the fleet-footed grass-eaters. Bara, the deer, Horta, the boar, and, best and wariest, Pacco, the zebra, were for the young, the strong, and the agile, but Numa was hungry—hungrier than he ever had been in the five short years of his life.
A half-hour later, a thoroughly enraged Numa stumbled unexpectedly onto the scent of a human. Until now, the king of the jungle had looked down on the unappealing flesh of the hated man-creature. That kind of meat was only for the old, the toothless, and the frail who could no longer hunt the swift, grass-eating animals. Bara, the deer, Horta, the boar, and, best and most cautious, Pacco, the zebra, were for the young, the strong, and the agile, but Numa was hungry—hungrier than he had ever been in the five short years of his life.
What if he was a young, powerful, cunning, and ferocious beast? In the face of hunger, the great leveler, he was as the old, the toothless, and the decrepit. His belly cried aloud in anguish and his jowls slavered for flesh. Zebra or deer or man, what mattered it so that it was warm flesh, red with the hot juices of life? Even Dango, the hyena, eater of offal, would, at the moment, have seemed a tidbit to Numa.
What if he was a young, strong, clever, and fierce beast? In the face of hunger, the great equalizer, he was just like the old, the toothless, and the frail. His stomach cried out in pain, and his jaws dripped at the thought of meat. Zebra, deer, or human—it didn’t matter as long as it was warm flesh, red with the life’s hot juices. Even Dango, the hyena, scavenger of leftovers, would have seemed like a treat to Numa at that moment.
The great lion knew the habits and frailties of man, though he never before had hunted man for food. He knew the despised Gomangani as the slowest, the most stupid, and the most defenseless of creatures. No woodcraft, no cunning, no stealth was necessary in the hunting of man, nor had Numa any stomach for either delay or silence.
The great lion understood the behaviors and weaknesses of humans, even though he had never hunted them for food before. He recognized the disliked Gomangani as the slowest, most foolish, and most defenseless of beings. There was no need for tracking skills, cleverness, or stealth when hunting humans, nor did Numa have any patience for either waiting or being quiet.
His rage had become an almost equally consuming passion with his hunger, so that now, as his delicate nostrils apprised him of the recent passage of man, he lowered his head and rumbled forth a thunderous roar, and at a swift walk, careless of the noise he made, set forth upon the trail of his intended quarry.
His anger had become just as overwhelming as his hunger, so now, as his sensitive nostrils picked up the recent scent of a human, he lowered his head and let out a deafening roar. Without worrying about the noise he was making, he started walking quickly on the trail of his target.
Majestic and terrible, regally careless of his surroundings, the king of beasts strode down the beaten trail. The natural caution that is inherent to all creatures of the wild had deserted him. What had he, lord of the jungle, to fear and, with only man to hunt, what need of caution? And so he did not see or scent what a more wary Numa might readily have discovered until, with the cracking of twigs and a tumbling of earth, he was precipitated into a cunningly devised pit that the wily Wamabos had excavated for just this purpose in the center of the game trail.
Majestic and fearsome, casually oblivious to his surroundings, the king of beasts walked down the worn path. The natural caution that all wild creatures possess had left him. What did he, the lord of the jungle, have to fear, and with only humans to hunt, why should he be cautious? So he didn’t see or smell what a more careful lion might have easily noticed until, with the sound of cracking twigs and the falling of earth, he fell into a cleverly designed pit that the crafty Wamabos had dug for just this purpose in the middle of the game trail.
Tarzan of the Apes stood in the center of the clearing watching the plane shrinking to diminutive toy-like proportions in the eastern sky. He had breathed a sigh of relief as he saw it rise safely with the British flier and Fräulein Bertha Kircher. For weeks he had felt the hampering responsibility of their welfare in this savage wilderness where their utter helplessness would have rendered them easy prey for the savage carnivores or the cruel Wamabos. Tarzan of the Apes loved unfettered freedom, and now that these two were safely off his hands, he felt that he could continue upon his journey toward the west coast and the long-untenanted cabin of his dead father.
Tarzan of the Apes stood in the middle of the clearing, watching the plane shrink to tiny, toy-like proportions in the eastern sky. He let out a sigh of relief as he saw it safely take off with the British pilot and Fräulein Bertha Kircher. For weeks, he had felt the heavy responsibility of their safety in this wild wilderness, where their complete helplessness would have made them easy targets for the savage carnivores or the ruthless Wamabos. Tarzan of the Apes loved his freedom, and now that these two were safely gone, he felt he could continue his journey toward the west coast and the long-abandoned cabin of his deceased father.
And yet, as he stood there watching the tiny speck in the east, another sigh heaved his broad chest, nor was it a sigh of relief, but rather a sensation which Tarzan had never expected to feel again and which he now disliked to admit even to himself. It could not be possible that he, the jungle bred, who had renounced forever the society of man to return to his beloved beasts of the wilds, could be feeling anything akin to regret at the departure of these two, or any slightest loneliness now that they were gone. Lieutenant Harold Percy Smith-Oldwick Tarzan had liked, but the woman whom he had known as a German spy he had hated, though he never had found it in his heart to slay her as he had sworn to slay all Huns. He had attributed this weakness to the fact that she was a woman, although he had been rather troubled by the apparent inconsistency of his hatred for her and his repeated protection of her when danger threatened.
And yet, as he stood there watching the tiny speck in the east, another sigh escaped his broad chest, and it wasn't a sigh of relief, but rather a feeling that Tarzan never expected to experience again and which he now hated to admit even to himself. It couldn't be possible that he, the jungle-born, who had forever turned his back on human society to return to his beloved wild animals, could be feeling anything like regret at the departure of these two, or any hint of loneliness now that they were gone. Tarzan had liked Lieutenant Harold Percy Smith-Oldwick, but he had hated the woman he knew as a German spy, though he never found it in himself to kill her as he had vowed to eliminate all Huns. He had attributed this weakness to the fact that she was a woman, even though he had been quite troubled by the clear inconsistency between his hatred for her and his repeated efforts to protect her when danger loomed.
With an irritable toss of his head he wheeled suddenly toward the west as though by turning his back upon the fast disappearing plane he might expunge thoughts of its passengers from his memory. At the edge of the clearing he paused; a giant tree loomed directly ahead of him and, as though actuated by sudden and irresistible impulse, he leaped into the branches and swung himself with apelike agility to the topmost limbs that would sustain his weight. There, balancing lightly upon a swaying bough, he sought in the direction of the eastern horizon for the tiny speck that would be the British plane bearing away from him the last of his own race and kind that he expected ever again to see.
With an annoyed toss of his head, he suddenly turned west, as if by turning his back on the quickly disappearing plane he could erase thoughts of its passengers from his mind. At the edge of the clearing, he paused; a massive tree stood right in front of him, and, driven by a sudden and irresistible urge, he jumped into the branches and swung himself up with monkey-like agility to the highest limbs that could hold his weight. There, balancing lightly on a swaying branch, he looked toward the eastern horizon for the tiny speck that would be the British plane, carrying away the last of his own kind that he expected to see again.
At last his keen eyes picked up the ship flying at a considerable altitude far in the east. For a few seconds he watched it speeding evenly eastward, when, to his horror, he saw the speck dive suddenly downward. The fall seemed interminable to the watcher and he realized how great must have been the altitude of the plane before the drop commenced. Just before it disappeared from sight its downward momentum appeared to abate suddenly, but it was still moving rapidly at a steep angle when it finally disappeared from view behind the far hills.
At last, his sharp eyes spotted the plane flying at a high altitude far to the east. For a few seconds, he watched it speed steadily eastward when, to his shock, he saw the tiny dot suddenly dive downward. The fall felt endless to him, and he realized just how high the plane must have been before it started its descent. Just before it vanished from sight, its downward speed seemed to suddenly slow, but it was still moving quickly at a steep angle when it finally disappeared behind the distant hills.
For half a minute the ape-man stood noting distant landmarks that he judged might be in the vicinity of the fallen plane, for no sooner had he realized that these people were again in trouble than his inherent sense of duty to his own kind impelled him once more to forego his plans and seek to aid them.
For about thirty seconds, the ape-man stood observing distant landmarks that he thought might be near the crashed plane. As soon as he realized that these people were in trouble again, his natural sense of duty to his kind pushed him to set aside his plans and try to help them.
The ape-man feared from what he judged of the location of the machine that it had fallen among the almost impassable gorges of the arid country just beyond the fertile basin that was bounded by the hills to the east of him. He had crossed that parched and desolate country of the dead himself and he knew from his own experience and the narrow escape he had had from succumbing to its relentless cruelty no lesser man could hope to win his way to safety from any considerable distance within its borders. Vividly he recalled the bleached bones of the long-dead warrior in the bottom of the precipitous gorge that had all but proved a trap for him as well. He saw the helmet of hammered brass and the corroded breastplate of steel and the long straight sword in its scabbard and the ancient harquebus—mute testimonials to the mighty physique and the warlike spirit of him who had somehow won, thus illy caparisoned and pitifully armed, to the center of savage, ancient Africa; and he saw the slender English youth and the slight figure of the girl cast into the same fateful trap from which this giant of old had been unable to escape—cast there wounded and broken perhaps, if not killed.
The ape-man was worried that the machine had fallen into the nearly impassable gorges of the dry land just beyond the fertile basin surrounded by hills to the east. He had crossed that parched and desolate area himself and knew from his own experience—and the close call he had when nearly succumbing to its relentless harshness—that no lesser person could hope to find safety from any significant distance within its borders. He vividly remembered the bleached bones of a long-dead warrior at the bottom of the steep gorge that had almost trapped him too. He saw the helmet made of hammered brass, the corroded steel breastplate, and the long straight sword in its scabbard, along with the ancient harquebus—silent reminders of the powerful physique and fierce spirit of the man who had somehow ventured, poorly equipped and sadly armed, into the heart of savage, ancient Africa. He also thought of the slender English youth and the slight figure of the girl thrown into the same deadly trap from which this giant of the past failed to escape—cast there wounded and broken, if not dead.
His judgment told him that the latter possibility was probably the fact, and yet there was a chance that they might have landed without fatal injuries, and so upon this slim chance he started out upon what he knew would be an arduous journey, fraught with many hardships and unspeakable peril, that he might attempt to save them if they still lived.
His instincts told him that the latter possibility was likely true, but there was still a chance they might have landed without serious injuries. So, on that slim chance, he set out on what he knew would be a tough journey, full of hardships and unimaginable danger, in an attempt to save them if they were still alive.
He had covered a mile perhaps when his quick ears caught the sound of rapid movement along the game trail ahead of him. The sound, increasing in volume, proclaimed the fact that whatever caused it was moving in his direction and moving rapidly. Nor was it long before his trained senses convinced him that the footfalls were those of Bara, the deer, in rapid flight. Inextricably confused in Tarzan's character were the attributes of man and of beasts. Long experience had taught him that he fights best or travels fastest who is best nourished, and so, with few exceptions, Tarzan could delay his most urgent business to take advantage of an opportunity to kill and feed. This perhaps was the predominant beast trait in him. The transformation from an English gentleman, impelled by the most humanitarian motives, to that of a wild beast crouching in the concealment of a dense bush ready to spring upon its approaching prey, was instantaneous.
He had probably covered a mile when his sharp ears picked up the sound of something moving quickly along the game trail in front of him. The noise, growing louder, indicated that whatever was making it was heading his way and moving fast. It didn't take long for his trained instincts to tell him that the footsteps belonged to Bara, the deer, fleeing at top speed. Tarzan's nature was a blend of human and animal traits. His long experience had taught him that the best fighters or fastest travelers are those who are well-fed, so, with few exceptions, Tarzan could put his most pressing tasks on hold to seize the chance to hunt and eat. This was likely his most dominant animal instinct. The shift from an English gentleman, motivated by the most humane intentions, to that of a wild animal hiding in thick brush, ready to pounce on its approaching prey, was instant.
And so, when Bara came, escaping the clutches of Numa and Sheeta, his terror and his haste precluded the possibility of his sensing that other equally formidable foe lying in ambush for him. Abreast of the ape-man came the deer; a light-brown body shot from the concealing verdure of the bush, strong arms encircled the sleek neck of the young buck and powerful teeth fastened themselves in the soft flesh. Together the two rolled over in the trail and a moment later the ape-man rose, and, with one foot upon the carcass of his kill, raised his voice in the victory cry of the bull ape.
And so, when Bara arrived, escaping the grips of Numa and Sheeta, his fear and urgency prevented him from noticing another equally dangerous enemy lying in wait for him. Next to the ape-man came the deer; a light-brown body burst out from the cover of the bushes, strong arms wrapped around the sleek neck of the young buck, and powerful teeth sank into the soft flesh. Together, they tumbled down the path, and a moment later, the ape-man stood up, with one foot on the carcass of his kill, and let out a victory cry like that of a bull ape.
Like an answering challenge came suddenly to the ears of the ape-man the thunderous roar of a lion, a hideous angry roar in which Tarzan thought that he discerned a note of surprise and terror. In the breast of the wild things of the jungle, as in the breasts of their more enlightened brothers and sisters of the human race, the characteristic of curiosity is well developed. Nor was Tarzan far from innocent of it. The peculiar note in the roar of his hereditary enemy aroused a desire to investigate, and so, throwing the carcass of Bara, the deer, across his shoulder, the ape-man took to the lower terraces of the forest and moved quickly in the direction from which the sound had come, which was in line with the trail he had set out upon.
Like an answering challenge, the thunderous roar of a lion suddenly echoed in the ears of the ape-man—a terrifying, furious roar in which Tarzan thought he detected a hint of surprise and fear. In the hearts of the wild creatures of the jungle, just as in the hearts of their more advanced human counterparts, curiosity is a strong trait. Tarzan was no stranger to it either. The unusual tone in the roar of his ancestral foe sparked a desire to investigate, so he threw the carcass of Bara, the deer, over his shoulder and made his way down the lower levels of the forest, quickly moving toward the source of the sound, which lined up with the path he had been following.
As the distance lessened, the sounds increased in volume, which indicated that he was approaching a very angry lion and presently, where a jungle giant overspread the broad game trail that countless thousands of hoofed and padded feet had worn and trampled into a deep furrow during perhaps countless ages, he saw beneath him the lion pit of the Wamabos and in it, leaping futilely for freedom such a lion as even Tarzan of the Apes never before had beheld. A mighty beast it was that glared up at the ape-man—large, powerful and young, with a huge black mane and a coat so much darker than any Tarzan ever had seen that in the depths of the pit it looked almost black—a black lion!
As the distance decreased, the sounds grew louder, signaling that he was getting close to a very angry lion. Soon, where a massive jungle tree loomed over the wide game trail that countless hooves and paws had worn down into a deep groove over the ages, he spotted the lion pit of the Wamabos below him. Inside, a lion was leaping desperately for freedom—a lion that even Tarzan of the Apes had never seen before. It was an enormous creature glaring up at the ape-man—large, powerful, and young, with a huge black mane and a coat so dark that it appeared almost black in the depths of the pit—a black lion!
Tarzan who had been upon the point of taunting and reviling his captive foe was suddenly turned to open admiration for the beauty of the splendid beast. What a creature! How by comparison the ordinary forest lion was dwarfed into insignificance! Here indeed was one worthy to be called king of beasts. With his first sight of the great cat the ape-man knew that he had heard no note of terror in that initial roar; surprise doubtless, but the vocal chords of that mighty throat never had reacted to fear.
Tarzan, who was just about to mock and insult his captured enemy, suddenly found himself admiring the beauty of the magnificent creature. What an animal! Compared to this, even the typical forest lion seemed insignificant. Here was truly a creature worthy of being called the king of beasts. With that first glance at the great cat, the ape-man recognized that he had not sensed any fear in that initial roar; it was surprise, certainly, but the powerful vocal cords of that throat had never trembled with fear.
With growing admiration came a feeling of quick pity for the hapless situation of the great brute rendered futile and helpless by the wiles of the Gomangani. Enemy though the beast was, he was less an enemy to the ape-man than those blacks who had trapped him, for though Tarzan of the Apes claimed many fast and loyal friends among certain tribes of African natives, there were others of degraded character and bestial habits that he looked upon with utter loathing, and of such were the human flesh-eaters of Numabo the chief. For a moment Numa, the lion, glared ferociously at the naked man-thing upon the tree limb above him. Steadily those yellow-green eyes bored into the clear eyes of the ape-man, and then the sensitive nostrils caught the scent of the fresh blood of Bara and the eyes moved to the carcass lying across the brown shoulder, and there came from the cavernous depths of the savage throat a low whine.
With growing admiration came a quick sense of pity for the unfortunate situation of the great beast made futile and helpless by the tricks of the Gomangani. Even though the beast was an enemy, he felt less like an enemy to the ape-man than those blacks who had trapped him. Tarzan of the Apes had many fast and loyal friends among certain tribes of African natives, but there were others with degraded character and savage habits that he regarded with complete disgust, such as the human flesh-eaters of Numabo the chief. For a moment, Numa, the lion, glared fiercely at the naked man-thing on the tree limb above him. Those yellow-green eyes seemed to penetrate into the clear eyes of the ape-man, and then the sensitive nostrils caught the scent of the fresh blood of Bara. The lion's gaze shifted to the carcass lying across the brown shoulder, and from the depths of his savage throat came a low whine.
Tarzan of the Apes smiled. As unmistakably as though a human voice had spoken, the lion had said to him "I am hungry, even more than hungry. I am starving," and the ape-man looked down upon the lion beneath him and smiled, a slow quizzical smile, and then he shifted the carcass from his shoulder to the branch before him and, drawing the long blade that had been his father's, deftly cut off a hind quarter and, wiping the bloody blade upon Bara's smooth coat, he returned it to its scabbard. Numa, with watering jaws, looked up at the tempting meat and whined again and the ape-man smiled down upon him his slow smile and, raising the hind quarter in his strong brown hands buried his teeth in the tender, juicy flesh.
Tarzan of the Apes smiled. Just like a human voice speaking, the lion clearly communicated to him, "I’m hungry, even more than hungry. I’m starving," and the ape-man looked down at the lion beneath him and smiled, a slow, curious smile. He then shifted the carcass from his shoulder to the branch in front of him and, pulling out the long blade that had belonged to his father, skillfully cut off a hind quarter. After wiping the bloody blade on Bara's smooth coat, he returned it to its scabbard. Numa, with drooling jaws, looked up at the tempting meat and whined once more, and the ape-man smiled down at him with his slow smile. Raising the hind quarter in his strong brown hands, he sank his teeth into the tender, juicy flesh.
For the third time Numa, the lion, uttered that low pleading whine and then, with a rueful and disgusted shake of his head, Tarzan of the Apes raised the balance of the carcass of Bara, the deer, and hurled it to the famished beast below.
For the third time, Numa the lion let out that soft, desperate whine, and then, with a disappointed and disgusted shake of his head, Tarzan of the Apes lifted the remaining part of Bara the deer and threw it down to the hungry beast below.
"Old woman," muttered the ape-man. "Tarzan has become a weak old woman. Presently he would shed tears because he has killed Bara, the deer. He cannot see Numa, his enemy, go hungry, because Tarzan's heart is turning to water by contact with the soft, weak creatures of civilization." But yet he smiled, nor was he sorry that he had given way to the dictates of a kindly impulse.
"Old woman," muttered the ape-man. "Tarzan has become a weak old woman. Soon he'll be crying because he killed Bara, the deer. He can't stand to see Numa, his enemy, go hungry, because Tarzan's heart is softening after being around the gentle, weak creatures of civilization." But still, he smiled, and he wasn't sorry for following a kind impulse.
As Tarzan tore the flesh from that portion of the kill he had retained for himself his eyes were taking in each detail of the scene below. He saw the avidity with which Numa devoured the carcass; he noted with growing admiration the finer points of the beast, and also the cunning construction of the trap. The ordinary lion pit with which Tarzan was familiar had stakes imbedded in the bottom, upon whose sharpened points the hapless lion would be impaled, but this pit was not so made. Here the short stakes were set at intervals of about a foot around the walls near the top, their sharpened points inclining downward so that the lion had fallen unhurt into the trap but could not leap out because each time he essayed it his head came in contact with the sharp end of a stake above him.
As Tarzan tore the meat from the part of the kill he had kept for himself, he was taking in every detail of the scene below. He watched how eagerly Numa devoured the carcass; he grew more impressed by the lion's finer features and the clever design of the trap. The typical lion pit Tarzan knew had stakes driven into the bottom, which would impale the unfortunate lion, but this pit was different. Here, short stakes were placed about a foot apart along the walls near the top, with their sharp points angled downward, so the lion had fallen in unhurt but couldn't jump out, as each time he tried, his head hit the sharp end of a stake above him.
Evidently, then, the purpose of the Wamabos was to capture a lion alive. As this tribe had no contact whatsoever with white men in so far as Tarzan knew, their motive was doubtless due to a desire to torture the beast to death that they might enjoy to the utmost his dying agonies.
Evidently, the goal of the Wamabos was to capture a lion alive. Since this tribe had no contact with white people, as far as Tarzan knew, their motive likely stemmed from a desire to torture the animal to death so they could fully relish its dying agonies.
Having fed the lion, it presently occurred to Tarzan that his act would be futile were he to leave the beast to the mercies of the blacks, and then too it occurred to him that he could derive more pleasure through causing the blacks discomfiture than by leaving Numa to his fate. But how was he to release him? By removing two stakes there would be left plenty of room for the lion to leap from the pit, which was not of any great depth. However, what assurance had Tarzan that Numa would not leap out instantly the way to freedom was open, and before the ape-man could gain the safety of the trees? Regardless of the fact that Tarzan felt no such fear of the lion as you and I might experience under like circumstances, he yet was imbued with the sense of caution that is necessary to all creatures of the wild if they are to survive. Should necessity require, Tarzan could face Numa in battle, although he was not so egotistical as to think that he could best a full-grown lion in mortal combat other than through accident or the utilization of the cunning of his superior man-mind. To lay himself liable to death futilely, he would have considered as reprehensible as to have shunned danger in time of necessity; but when Tarzan elected to do a thing he usually found the means to accomplish it.
After feeding the lion, Tarzan realized that it would be pointless to leave the beast at the mercy of the natives. He also thought that he would get more enjoyment from causing trouble for the blacks than from letting Numa face his fate. But how could he set him free? By removing two stakes, there would be enough space for the lion to jump out of the pit, which wasn't very deep. Still, what guarantee did Tarzan have that Numa wouldn't leap to freedom the moment it was possible, before the ape-man could secure himself in the trees? Even though Tarzan didn’t feel the same fear of the lion that most would in that situation, he was still aware of the caution needed for survival in the wild. If necessary, Tarzan could confront Numa in a fight, but he wasn't arrogant enough to believe he could defeat a full-grown lion in combat unless by chance or by using his clever human intellect. He considered it just as wrong to risk his life needlessly as it was to avoid danger when it was necessary. However, when Tarzan decided to do something, he usually found a way to make it happen.
He had now fully determined to liberate Numa, and having so determined, he would accomplish it even though it entailed considerable personal risk. He knew that the lion would be occupied with his feeding for some time, but he also knew that while feeding he would be doubly resentful of any fancied interference. Therefore Tarzan must work with caution.
He had now completely decided to free Numa, and having made that decision, he would go through with it even if it involved significant personal risk. He knew that the lion would be busy eating for a while, but he also understood that while eating, the lion would be even more upset by any perceived interference. So, Tarzan had to proceed carefully.
Coming to the ground at the side of the pit, he examined the stakes and as he did so was rather surprised to note that Numa gave no evidence of anger at his approach. Once he turned a searching gaze upon the ape-man for a moment and then returned to the flesh of Bara. Tarzan felt of the stakes and tested them with his weight. He pulled upon them with the muscles of his strong arms, presently discovering that by working them back and forth he could loosen them: and then a new plan was suggested to him so that he fell to work excavating with his knife at a point above where one of the stakes was imbedded. The loam was soft and easily removed, and it was not long until Tarzan had exposed that part of one of the stakes which was imbedded in the wall of the pit to almost its entire length, leaving only enough imbedded to prevent the stake from falling into the excavation. Then he turned his attention to an adjoining stake and soon had it similarly exposed, after which he threw the noose of his grass rope over the two and swung quickly to the branch of the tree above. Here he gathered in the slack of the rope and, bracing himself against the bole of the tree, pulled steadily upward. Slowly the stakes rose from the trench in which they were imbedded and with them rose Numa's suspicion and growling.
Coming down to the side of the pit, he looked at the stakes and was somewhat surprised to see that Numa showed no sign of anger at his approach. For a moment, he glanced intently at the ape-man before going back to the flesh of Bara. Tarzan felt the stakes and tested them with his weight. He pulled on them with his strong arms and soon realized that by working them back and forth, he could loosen them. A new plan came to him, so he started digging with his knife at a spot above one of the stakes. The soil was soft and easily removed, and it didn't take long for Tarzan to uncover that part of one of the stakes that was embedded in the wall of the pit, leaving just enough to keep the stake from falling into the hole. Then he focused on a nearby stake and quickly uncovered it as well. After that, he tossed the loop of his grass rope over both stakes and swung up to the branch of the tree above. There, he pulled in the slack of the rope and, bracing himself against the trunk of the tree, pulled steadily upward. Gradually, the stakes rose from the trench where they were stuck, and with them came Numa's suspicion and growls.
Was this some new encroachment upon his rights and his liberties? He was puzzled and, like all lions, being short of temper, he was irritated. He had not minded it when the Tarmangani squatted upon the verge of the pit and looked down upon him, for had not this Tarmangani fed him? But now something else was afoot and the suspicion of the wild beast was aroused. As he watched, however, Numa saw the stakes rise slowly to an erect position, tumble against each other and then fall backwards out of his sight upon the surface of the ground above. Instantly the lion grasped the possibilities of the situation, and, too, perhaps he sensed the fact that the man-thing had deliberately opened a way for his escape. Seizing the remains of Bara in his great jaws, Numa, the lion, leaped agilely from the pit of the Wamabos and Tarzan of the Apes melted into the jungles to the east.
Was this some new violation of his rights and freedoms? He was confused and, like all lions, he was quick to anger, which made him annoyed. He didn’t mind when the Tarmangani sat on the edge of the pit and looked down at him, since that Tarmangani had fed him. But now something else was happening, and the suspicion of the wild animal was stirred. As he watched, however, Numa saw the stakes slowly rise to a standing position, tumble against each other, and then fall back out of sight onto the ground above. Instantly, the lion understood the possibilities of the situation, and maybe he sensed that the man-thing had purposely opened a way for him to escape. Grabbing the remains of Bara in his powerful jaws, Numa, the lion, leaped nimbly out of the pit of the Wamabos, while Tarzan of the Apes vanished into the jungles to the east.
On the surface of the ground or through the swaying branches of the trees the spoor of man or beast was an open book to the ape-man, but even his acute senses were baffled by the spoorless trail of the airship. Of what good were eyes, or ears, or the sense of smell in following a thing whose path had lain through the shifting air thousands of feet above the tree tops? Only upon his sense of direction could Tarzan depend in his search for the fallen plane. He could not even judge accurately as to the distance it might lie from him, and he knew that from the moment that it disappeared beyond the hills it might have traveled a considerable distance at right angles to its original course before it crashed to earth. If its occupants were killed or badly injured the ape-man might search futilely in their immediate vicinity for some time before finding them.
On the ground or through the swaying branches of the trees, the tracks of man or beast were clear to the ape-man, but even his sharp senses were puzzled by the invisible trail of the airship. What good were his eyes, ears, or sense of smell in trying to follow something that had moved through the shifting air thousands of feet above the treetops? Tarzan could only rely on his sense of direction in his search for the fallen plane. He couldn't even accurately judge how far it might be from him, and he knew that from the moment it disappeared beyond the hills, it could have traveled a significant distance sideways before crashing to earth. If its occupants were killed or seriously hurt, the ape-man might end up searching in the wrong area for quite a while before he found them.
There was but one thing to do and that was to travel to a point as close as possible to where he judged the plane had landed, and then to follow in ever-widening circles until he picked up their scent spoor. And this he did.
There was only one thing to do: travel to a spot as close as possible to where he thought the plane had landed, and then search in wider and wider circles until he picked up their scent. And that’s exactly what he did.
Before he left the valley of plenty he made several kills and carried the choicest cuts of meat with him, leaving all the dead weight of bones behind. The dense vegetation of the jungle terminated at the foot of the western slope, growing less and less abundant as he neared the summit beyond which was a sparse growth of sickly scrub and sunburned grasses, with here and there a gnarled and hardy tree that had withstood the vicissitudes of an almost waterless existence.
Before he left the valley of plenty, he took down several animals and packed the best cuts of meat, leaving all the leftover bones behind. The thick jungle ended at the bottom of the western slope, becoming less dense as he approached the top, beyond which was a sparse mix of unhealthy shrubs and sun-dried grasses, with a few twisted and resilient trees that had survived the challenges of a nearly waterless life.
From the summit of the hills Tarzan's keen eyes searched the arid landscape before him. In the distance he discerned the ragged tortuous lines that marked the winding course of the hideous gorges which scored the broad plain at intervals—the terrible gorges that had so nearly claimed his life in punishment for his temerity in attempting to invade the sanctity of their ancient solitude.
From the top of the hills, Tarzan's sharp eyes scanned the dry landscape in front of him. In the distance, he spotted the jagged, winding lines that traced the paths of the ugly gorges that cut through the wide plain at intervals—those dreadful gorges that had almost taken his life as punishment for his boldness in trying to disturb their ancient seclusion.
For two days Tarzan sought futilely for some clew to the whereabouts of the machine or its occupants. He cached portions of his kills at different points, building cairns of rock to mark their locations. He crossed the first deep gorge and circled far beyond it. Occasionally he stopped and called aloud, listening for some response but only silence rewarded him—a sinister silence that his cries only accentuated.
For two days, Tarzan searched in vain for any clue about where the machine or its passengers were. He hid parts of his kills at various spots, stacking rocks to mark their locations. He crossed the first deep gorge and went far beyond it. Occasionally, he stopped and called out, listening for a response, but only silence answered him—a chilling silence that his cries only highlighted.
Late in the evening of the second day he came to the well-remembered gorge in which lay the clean-picked bones of the ancient adventurer, and here, for the first time, Ska, the vulture, picked up his trail. "Not this time, Ska," cried the ape-man in a taunting voice, "for now indeed is Tarzan Tarzan. Before, you stalked the grim skeleton of a Tarmangani and even then you lost. Waste not your time upon Tarzan of the Apes in the full of his strength." But still Ska, the vulture, circled and soared above him, and the ape-man, notwithstanding his boasts, felt a shudder of apprehension. Through his brain ran a persistent and doleful chant to which he involuntarily set two words, repeated over and over again in horrible monotony: "Ska knows! Ska knows!" until, shaking himself in anger, he picked up a rock and hurled it at the grim scavenger.
Late in the evening of the second day, he arrived at the familiar gorge where the clean-picked bones of the ancient adventurer lay, and it was here that Ska, the vulture, picked up his trail for the first time. "Not this time, Ska," the ape-man taunted, "because now Tarzan is truly Tarzan. Before, you stalked the grim remains of a Tarmangani, and even then you failed. Don't waste your time on Tarzan of the Apes in the prime of his strength." But Ska, the vulture, continued to circle and soar above him, and despite his bravado, the ape-man felt a wave of apprehension. A persistent and gloomy chant echoed in his mind, to which he involuntarily attached two words, repeated endlessly in dreadful monotony: "Ska knows! Ska knows!" Finally, shaking himself in anger, he picked up a rock and threw it at the grim scavenger.
Lowering himself over the precipitous side of the gorge Tarzan half clambered and half slid to the sandy floor beneath. He had come upon the rift at almost the exact spot at which he had clambered from it weeks before, and there he saw, just as he had left it, just, doubtless, as it had lain for centuries, the mighty skeleton and its mighty armor.
Lowering himself over the steep edge of the gorge, Tarzan half climbed and half slid down to the sandy floor below. He had arrived at the rift at nearly the same spot where he had climbed out weeks earlier, and there he saw, just as he had left it, just as it had probably been for centuries, the massive skeleton and its imposing armor.
As he stood looking down upon this grim reminder that another man of might had succumbed to the cruel powers of the desert, he was brought to startled attention by the report of a firearm, the sound of which came from the depths of the gorge to the south of him, and reverberated along the steep walls of the narrow rift.
As he stood looking down at this grim reminder that another strong man had fallen victim to the harsh forces of the desert, he was suddenly jolted to attention by the sound of a gunshot, which echoed from the depths of the gorge to his south, bouncing off the steep walls of the narrow chasm.
Chapter XV
Mysterious Footprints
As the British plane piloted by Lieutenant Harold Percy Smith-Oldwick rose above the jungle wilderness where Bertha Kircher's life had so often been upon the point of extinction, and sped toward the east, the girl felt a sudden contraction of the muscles of her throat. She tried very hard to swallow something that was not there. It seemed strange to her that she should feel regret in leaving behind her such hideous perils, and yet it was plain to her that such was the fact, for she was also leaving behind something beside the dangers that had menaced her—a unique figure that had entered her life, and for which she felt an unaccountable attraction.
As the British plane flown by Lieutenant Harold Percy Smith-Oldwick climbed above the jungle where Bertha Kircher's life had often been in danger and flew eastward, the girl felt a sudden tightening in her throat. She tried really hard to swallow something that wasn’t there. It struck her as odd that she felt regret about leaving behind such terrible dangers, yet it was clear to her that this was the case, because she was also leaving behind more than just the threats she had faced—she was leaving behind a unique person who had entered her life, and for whom she felt an inexplicable pull.
Before her in the pilot's seat sat an English officer and gentleman whom, she knew, loved her, and yet she dared to feel regret in his company at leaving the stamping ground of a wild beast!
Before her in the pilot's seat sat an English officer and gentleman whom she knew loved her, and yet she couldn't help but feel regret for leaving behind the territory of a wild beast!
Lieutenant Smith-Oldwick, on his part, was in the seventh heaven of elation. He was in possession again of his beloved ship, he was flying swiftly in the direction of his comrades and his duty, and with him was the woman he loved. The fly in the ointment, however, was the accusation Tarzan had made against this woman. He had said that she was a German, and a spy, and from the heights of bliss the English officer was occasionally plunged to the depths of despair in contemplation of the inevitable, were the ape-man's charges to prove true. He found himself torn between sentiments of love and honor. On the one hand he could not surrender the woman he loved to the certain fate that must be meted out to her if she were in truth an enemy spy, while on the other it would be equally impossible for him as an Englishman and an officer to give her aid or protection.
Lieutenant Smith-Oldwick was over the moon with happiness. He had his beloved ship back, was speeding towards his friends and responsibilities, and had the woman he loved by his side. However, there was a catch: Tarzan had accused this woman of being a German spy. While riding high on joy, the English officer occasionally spiraled down into despair, wondering what would happen if the ape-man's claims turned out to be true. He was torn between love and duty. On one hand, he couldn’t abandon the woman he loved to face the certain punishment she would receive if she truly was an enemy spy. On the other hand, as an Englishman and an officer, he couldn’t possibly offer her any help or protection if she was indeed guilty.
The young man contented himself therefore with repeated mental denials of her guilt. He tried to convince himself that Tarzan was mistaken, and when he conjured upon the screen of recollection the face of the girl behind him, he was doubly reassured that those lines of sweet femininity and character, those clear and honest eyes, could not belong to one of the hated alien race.
The young man comforted himself with repeated mental denials of her guilt. He tried to convince himself that Tarzan was wrong, and when he brought to mind the image of the girl behind him, he felt even more assured that those features of sweet femininity and strength, those clear and honest eyes, couldn’t belong to someone from the despised alien race.
And so they sped toward the east, each wrapped in his own thoughts. Below them they saw the dense vegetation of the jungle give place to the scantier growth upon the hillside, and then before them there spread the wide expanse of arid wastelands marked by the deep scarring of the narrow gorges that long-gone rivers had cut there in some forgotten age.
And so they rushed eastward, each lost in their own thoughts. Below them, the thick jungle began to give way to the sparser growth on the hillside, and then before them stretched a vast area of dry wasteland marked by the deep scars of narrow gorges carved out by rivers long ago in some forgotten time.
Shortly after they passed the summit of the ridge which formed the boundary between the desert and the fertile country, Ska, the vulture, winging his way at a high altitude toward his aerie, caught sight of a strange new bird of gigantic proportions encroaching upon the preserves of his aerial domain. Whether with intent to give battle to the interloper or merely impelled by curiosity, Ska rose suddenly upward to meet the plane. Doubtless he misjudged the speed of the newcomer, but be that as it may, the tip of the propeller blade touched him and simultaneously many things happened. The lifeless body of Ska, torn and bleeding, dropped plummet-like toward the ground; a bit of splintered spruce drove backward to strike the pilot on the forehead; the plane shuddered and trembled and as Lieutenant Harold Percy Smith-Oldwick sank forward in momentary unconsciousness the ship dived headlong toward the earth.
Shortly after they crossed the top of the ridge that separated the desert from the fertile land, Ska, the vulture, flying at a high altitude toward his nest, spotted a strange new bird of enormous size intruding on his aerial territory. Whether he intended to confront the intruder or was simply curious, Ska suddenly soared upward to meet the plane. He probably misjudged the speed of the newcomer, but regardless, the tip of the propeller blade struck him, and at that moment, several things happened. Ska's lifeless body, torn and bleeding, plummeted toward the ground; a piece of broken spruce flew back and hit the pilot on the forehead; the plane shook and trembled, and as Lieutenant Harold Percy Smith-Oldwick slumped forward into momentary unconsciousness, the aircraft dove straight toward the earth.
Only for an instant was the pilot unconscious, but that instant almost proved their undoing. When he awoke to a realization of their peril it was also to discover that his motor had stalled. The plane had attained frightful momentum, and the ground seemed too close for him to hope to flatten out in time to make a safe landing. Directly beneath him was a deep rift in the plateau, a narrow gorge, the bottom of which appeared comparatively level and sand covered.
Only for a moment was the pilot out cold, but that moment nearly cost them everything. When he regained consciousness and realized the danger they were in, he also found out that his engine had stalled. The plane was moving at a terrifying speed, and the ground felt too close for him to think he could level off in time for a safe landing. Directly below him was a deep crack in the plateau, a narrow gorge with a bottom that seemed relatively flat and covered in sand.
In the brief instant in which he must reach a decision, the safest plan seemed to attempt a landing in the gorge, and this he did, but not without considerable damage to the plane and a severe shaking-up for himself and his passenger.
In the split second he had to make a choice, the safest option seemed to be trying to land in the gorge, and that's what he did, but not without causing significant damage to the plane and a rough experience for both him and his passenger.
Fortunately neither of them was injured but their condition seemed indeed a hopeless one. It was a grave question as to whether the man could repair his plane and continue the journey, and it seemed equally questionable as to their ability either to proceed on foot to the coast or retrace their way to the country they had just left. The man was confident that they could not hope to cross the desert country to the east in the face of thirst and hunger, while behind them in the valley of plenty lay almost equal danger in the form of carnivores and the warlike natives.
Fortunately, neither of them was hurt, but their situation looked pretty hopeless. It was a serious question whether the man could fix his plane and keep going, and it was just as uncertain if they could either walk to the coast or backtrack to the land they had just left. The man was sure that they had no chance of crossing the desert to the east, facing thirst and hunger, while behind them in the valley of plenty was almost as much danger from wild animals and the aggressive locals.
After the plane came to its sudden and disastrous stop, Smith-Oldwick turned quickly to see what the effect of the accident had been on the girl. He found her pale but smiling, and for several seconds the two sat looking at each other in silence.
After the plane came to its sudden and disastrous stop, Smith-Oldwick quickly turned to check on the girl. He found her pale but smiling, and for several seconds, they sat in silence, looking at each other.
"This is the end?" the girl asked.
"This is the end?" the girl asked.
The Englishman shook his head. "It is the end of the first leg, anyway," he replied.
The Englishman shook his head. "It's the end of the first leg, anyway," he replied.
"But you can't hope to make repairs here," she said dubiously.
"But you can't expect to fix anything here," she said, uncertainly.
"No," he said, "not if they amount to anything, but I may be able to patch it up. I will have to look her over a bit first. Let us hope there is nothing serious. It's a long, long way to the Tanga railway."
"No," he said, "not if they mean anything, but I might be able to fix it. I need to check her out a bit first. Let's hope there's nothing serious. It's a really long way to the Tanga railway."
"We would not get far," said the girl, a slight note of hopelessness in her tone. "Entirely unarmed as we are, it would be little less than a miracle if we covered even a small fraction of the distance."
"We wouldn't get very far," the girl said, a hint of hopelessness in her voice. "Completely unarmed like we are, it would be nothing short of a miracle if we managed to cover even a small part of the distance."
"But we are not unarmed," replied the man. "I have an extra pistol here, that the beggars didn't discover," and, removing the cover of a compartment, he drew forth an automatic.
"But we aren't defenseless," replied the man. "I have an extra gun here that the beggars didn’t find," and, taking off the cover of a compartment, he pulled out a handgun.
Bertha Kircher leaned back in her seat and laughed aloud, a mirthless, half-hysterical laugh. "That popgun!" she exclaimed. "What earthly good would it do other than to infuriate any beast of prey you might happen to hit with it?"
Bertha Kircher leaned back in her seat and laughed loudly, a joyless, half-hysterical laugh. "That popgun!" she exclaimed. "What good would it do other than to piss off any predator you might hit with it?"
Smith-Oldwick looked rather crestfallen. "But it is a weapon," he said. "You will have to admit that, and certainly I could kill a man with it."
Smith-Oldwick looked pretty down. "But it is a weapon," he said. "You have to admit that, and of course, I could kill someone with it."
"You could if you happened to hit him," said the girl, "or the thing didn't jam. Really, I haven't much faith in an automatic. I have used them myself."
"You might if you actually managed to hit him," said the girl, "or if the thing didn't jam. Honestly, I don't have much faith in automatics. I've used them myself."
"Oh, of course," he said ironically, "an express rifle would be better, for who knows but we might meet an elephant here in the desert."
"Oh, of course," he said sarcastically, "an express rifle would be better, since who knows, we might run into an elephant out here in the desert."
The girl saw that he was hurt, and she was sorry, for she realized that there was nothing he would not do in her service or protection, and that it was through no fault of his that he was so illy armed. Doubtless, too, he realized as well as she the futility of his weapon, and that he had only called attention to it in the hope of reassuring her and lessening her anxiety.
The girl noticed he was hurt, and she felt bad because she understood that he would do anything for her service or protection, and that it wasn't his fault he was so poorly equipped. Surely, he knew as well as she did how useless his weapon was, and he had only brought it up to try to ease her worries and calm her down.
"Forgive me," she said. "I did not mean to be nasty, but this accident is the proverbial last straw. It seems to me that I have borne all that I can. Though I was willing to give my life in the service of my country, I did not imagine that my death agonies would be so long drawn out, for I realize now that I have been dying for many weeks."
"Sorry," she said. "I didn’t mean to be rude, but this incident is the last straw. It feels like I’ve taken all I can handle. Even though I was ready to give my life for my country, I never thought my suffering would last this long, because I see now that I’ve been dying for weeks."
"What do you mean!" he exclaimed; "what do you mean by that! You are not dying. There is nothing the matter with you."
"What do you mean!" he exclaimed; "what are you talking about! You’re not dying. There’s nothing wrong with you."
"Oh, not that," she said, "I did not mean that. What I mean is that at the moment the black sergeant, Usanga, and his renegade German native troops captured me and brought me inland, my death warrant was signed. Sometimes I have imagined that a reprieve has been granted. Sometimes I have hoped that I might be upon the verge of winning a full pardon, but really in the depths of my heart I have known that I should never live to regain civilization. I have done my bit for my country, and though it was not much I can at least go with the realization that it was the best I was able to offer. All that I can hope for now, all that I ask for, is a speedy fulfillment of the death sentence. I do not wish to linger any more to face constant terror and apprehension. Even physical torture would be preferable to what I have passed through. I have no doubt that you consider me a brave woman, but really my terror has been boundless. The cries of the carnivores at night fill me with a dread so tangible that I am in actual pain. I feel the rending talons in my flesh and the cruel fangs munching upon my bones—it is as real to me as though I were actually enduring the horrors of such a death. I doubt if you can understand it—men are so different."
"Oh, not that," she said, "I didn't mean that. What I mean is that the moment the black sergeant, Usanga, and his rogue German native troops captured me and took me inland, my death sentence was signed. Sometimes I've imagined that a reprieve has been granted. Sometimes I've hoped that I might be about to win a full pardon, but really, deep down in my heart, I’ve known that I would never live to see civilization again. I've done my part for my country, and although it wasn't much, I can at least go knowing it was the best I could offer. All I can hope for now, all I ask for, is a quick execution of the death sentence. I don't want to linger anymore facing constant fear and anxiety. Even physical torture would be better than what I've gone through. I have no doubt you think of me as a brave woman, but the truth is, my fear has been limitless. The sounds of the carnivores at night fill me with such a tangible dread that it's actually painful. I can feel their claws tearing into my flesh and their cruel teeth crunching on my bones—it feels as real to me as if I were actually experiencing the horrors of that kind of death. I doubt you can understand it—men are so different."
"Yes," he said, "I think I can understand it, and because I understand I can appreciate more than you imagine the heroism you have shown in your endurance of all that you have passed through. There can be no bravery where there is no fear. A child might walk into a lion's den, but it would take a very brave man to go to its rescue."
"Yes," he said, "I think I get it, and because I understand, I can appreciate more than you realize the courage you've shown in enduring everything you've been through. There can't be bravery without fear. A child might wander into a lion's den, but it would take a truly brave man to go in and rescue them."
"Thank you," she said, "but I am not brave at all, and now I am very much ashamed of my thoughtlessness for your own feelings. I will try and take a new grip upon myself and we will both hope for the best. I will help you all I can if you will tell me what I may do."
"Thank you," she said, "but I'm not brave at all, and right now, I'm really ashamed of how thoughtless I was about your feelings. I'll work on being better, and we can both hope for the best. I’ll help you however I can if you let me know what I can do."
"The first thing," he replied, "is to find out just how serious our damage is, and then to see what we can do in the way of repairs."
"The first thing," he said, "is to figure out how serious our damage is, and then see what we can do to fix it."
For two days Smith-Oldwick worked upon the damaged plane—worked in the face of the fact that from the first he realized the case was hopeless. And at last he told her.
For two days, Smith-Oldwick worked on the damaged plane—struggling with the knowledge that he had realized from the beginning that the situation was hopeless. Finally, he told her.
"I knew it," she said, "but I believe that I felt much as you must have; that however futile our efforts here might be, it would be infinitely as fatal to attempt to retrace our way to the jungle we just left or to go on toward the coast. You know and I know that we could not reach the Tanga railway on foot. We should die of thirst and starvation before we had covered half the distance, and if we return to the jungle, even were we able to reach it, it would be but to court an equally certain, though different, fate."
"I knew it," she said, "but I think I felt much like you must have; that no matter how pointless our efforts here might be, it would be far worse to try to go back to the jungle we just left or to move forward toward the coast. You know it and I know it—there's no way we could walk to the Tanga railway. We'd die of thirst and starvation before we even covered half the distance, and if we head back to the jungle, even if we could make it, we'd just be inviting a different but equally certain end."
"So we might as well sit here and wait for death as to uselessly waste our energies in what we know would be a futile attempt at escape?" he asked.
"So we might as well sit here and wait for death instead of wasting our energy on what we know would just be a pointless attempt to escape?" he asked.
"No," she replied, "I shall never give up like that. What I meant was that it was useless to attempt to reach either of the places where we know that there is food and water in abundance, so we must strike out in a new direction. Somewhere there may be water in this wilderness and if there is, the best chance of our finding it would be to follow this gorge downward. We have enough food and water left, if we are careful of it, for a couple of days and in that time we might stumble upon a spring or possibly even reach the fertile country which I know lies to the south. When Usanga brought me to the Wamabo country from the coast he took a southerly route along which there was usually water and game in plenty. It was not until we neared our destination that the country became overrun with carnivores. So there is hope if we can reach the fertile country south of us that we can manage to pull through to the coast."
"No," she responded, "I’m not giving up like that. What I meant is that it’s pointless to try reaching either of the places we know have plenty of food and water, so we need to head in a new direction. There might be water somewhere in this wilderness, and if it exists, our best bet to find it is to follow this gorge downward. We have enough food and water left, if we’re careful, for a couple of days, and during that time we could stumble upon a spring or maybe even reach the fertile land I know is to the south. When Usanga brought me to the Wamabo country from the coast, he took a route that usually had plenty of water and game. It wasn’t until we were close to our destination that the area got infested with predators. So there’s hope that if we can get to the fertile land south of us, we can manage to make it to the coast."
The man shook his head dubiously. "We can try it," he said. "Personally, I do not fancy sitting here waiting for death."
The man shook his head skeptically. "We can give it a shot," he said. "Honestly, I really don't like the idea of just sitting here waiting to die."
Smith-Oldwick was leaning against the ship, his dejected gaze directed upon the ground at his feet. The girl was looking south down the gorge in the direction of their one slender chance of life. Suddenly she touched him on the arm.
Smith-Oldwick was leaning against the ship, his downcast eyes fixed on the ground at his feet. The girl was looking south down the gorge toward their only slim chance of survival. Suddenly, she touched him on the arm.
"Look," she whispered.
"Check this out," she whispered.
The man raised his eyes quickly in the direction of her gaze to see the massive head of a great lion who was regarding them from beyond a rocky projection at the first turning of the gorge.
The man quickly looked in the direction she was staring to see the massive head of a great lion watching them from behind a rocky outcrop at the first bend of the gorge.
"Phew!" he exclaimed, "the beggars are everywhere."
"Phew!" he said, "the beggars are everywhere."
"They do not go far from water do they," asked the girl hopefully.
“They don’t go far from water, do they?” the girl asked hopefully.
"I should imagine not," he replied; "a lion is not particularly strong on endurance."
"I doubt it," he answered; "a lion isn't exactly known for its stamina."
"Then he is a harbinger of hope," she exclaimed.
"Then he's a sign of hope," she exclaimed.
The man laughed. "Cute little harbinger of hope!" he said. "Reminds me of Cock Robin heralding spring."
The man laughed. "Adorable little sign of hope!" he said. "Makes me think of Cock Robin announcing spring."
The girl cast a quick glance at him. "Don't be silly, and I don't care if you do laugh. He fills me with hope."
The girl shot him a quick look. "Don't be ridiculous, and I really don't mind if you laugh. He gives me hope."
"It is probably mutual," replied Smith-Oldwick, "as we doubtless fill him with hope."
"It’s probably mutual," replied Smith-Oldwick, "since we likely fill him with hope."
The lion evidently having satisfied himself as to the nature of the creatures before him advanced slowly now in their direction.
The lion, clearly satisfied with his understanding of the creatures in front of him, moved slowly toward them now.
"Come," said the man, "let's climb aboard," and he helped the girl over the side of the ship.
"Come on," said the man, "let's get on board," and he helped the girl over the side of the ship.
"Can't he get in here?" she asked.
"Can’t he come in here?" she asked.
"I think he can," said the man.
"I think he can," said the man.
"You are reassuring," she returned.
"You're comforting," she replied.
"I don't feel so." He drew his pistol.
"I don't feel that way." He pulled out his gun.
"For heaven's sake," she cried, "don't shoot at him with that thing. You might hit him."
"For goodness' sake," she shouted, "don't shoot at him with that thing. You could hit him."
"I don't intend to shoot at him but I might succeed in frightening him away if he attempts to reach us here. Haven't you ever seen a trainer work with lions? He carries a silly little pop-gun loaded with blank cartridges. With that and a kitchen chair he subdues the most ferocious of beasts."
"I don't plan to shoot him, but I might be able to scare him off if he tries to come near us. Haven't you ever watched a trainer work with lions? He has this goofy little pop-gun loaded with blank cartridges. With that and a kitchen chair, he handles the most dangerous animals."
"But you haven't a kitchen chair," she reminded him.
"But you don't have a kitchen chair," she reminded him.
"No," he said, "Government is always muddling things. I have always maintained that airplanes should be equipped with kitchen chairs."
"No," he said, "the government always complicates things. I've always believed that airplanes should have kitchen chairs."
Bertha Kircher laughed as evenly and with as little hysteria as though she were moved by the small talk of an afternoon tea.
Bertha Kircher laughed calmly and without any hysteria, as if she were just responding to the casual chatter at an afternoon tea.
Numa, the lion, came steadily toward them; his attitude seemed more that of curiosity than of belligerency. Close to the side of the ship he stopped and stood gazing up at them.
Numa, the lion, walked confidently toward them; he seemed more curious than aggressive. When he reached the side of the ship, he stopped and looked up at them.
"Magnificent, isn't he?" exclaimed the man.
"Isn't he magnificent?" exclaimed the man.
"I never saw a more beautiful creature," she replied, "nor one with such a dark coat. Why, he is almost black."
"I've never seen a more beautiful animal," she said, "or one with such a dark coat. He's almost black."
The sound of their voices seemed not to please the lord of the jungle, for he suddenly wrinkled his great face into deep furrows as he bared his fangs beneath snarling lips and gave vent to an angry growl. Almost simultaneously he crouched for a spring and immediately Smith-Oldwick discharged his pistol into the ground in front of the lion. The effect of the noise upon Numa seemed but to enrage him further, and with a horrid roar he sprang for the author of the new and disquieting sound that had outraged his ears.
The sound of their voices clearly annoyed the lord of the jungle. He suddenly furrowed his face, bared his fangs beneath snarling lips, and let out an angry growl. Almost at the same moment, he crouched to pounce, and Smith-Oldwick fired his pistol into the ground in front of the lion. The noise seemed to only anger Numa more, and with a terrifying roar, he lunged at the source of the new and disturbing sound that had offended him.
Simultaneously Lieutenant Harold Percy Smith-Oldwick vaulted nimbly out of the cockpit on the opposite side of his plane, calling to the girl to follow his example. The girl, realizing the futility of leaping to the ground, chose the remaining alternative and clambered to the top of the upper plane.
Simultaneously, Lieutenant Harold Percy Smith-Oldwick quickly jumped out of the cockpit on the opposite side of his plane, telling the girl to follow his lead. The girl, realizing that jumping to the ground wouldn’t work, decided to take the other option and climbed up to the top of the upper plane.
Numa, unaccustomed to the idiosyncrasies of construction of an airship and having gained the forward cockpit, watched the girl clamber out of his reach without at first endeavoring to prevent her. Having taken possession of the plane his anger seemed suddenly to leave him and he made no immediate move toward following Smith-Oldwick. The girl, realizing the comparative safety of her position, had crawled to the outer edge of the wing and was calling to the man to try and reach the opposite end of the upper plane.
Numa, unfamiliar with the quirks of airship construction, had made his way to the front cockpit and watched as the girl scrambled out of his reach without initially trying to stop her. Once he took control of the plane, his anger seemed to fade away, and he didn't make any immediate move to follow Smith-Oldwick. The girl, aware of her relatively safe position, crawled to the edge of the wing and called out to the man to attempt to get to the other end of the upper plane.
It was this scene upon which Tarzan of the Apes looked as he rounded the bend of the gorge above the plane after the pistol shot had attracted his attention. The girl was so intent upon watching the efforts of the Englishman to reach a place of safety, and the latter was so busily occupied in attempting to do so that neither at once noticed the silent approach of the ape-man.
It was this scene that Tarzan of the Apes saw as he rounded the bend of the gorge above the plane after the gunshot had caught his attention. The girl was so focused on watching the Englishman try to find safety, and the Englishman was so caught up in his efforts to escape that neither of them noticed the silent approach of the ape-man.
It was Numa who first noticed the intruder. The lion immediately evinced his displeasure by directing toward him a snarling countenance and a series of warning growls. His action called the attention of the two upon the upper plane to the newcomer, eliciting a stifled "Thank God!" from the girl, even though she could scarce credit the evidence of her own eyes that it was indeed the savage man, whose presence always assured her safety, who had come so providentially in the nick of time.
It was Numa who first spotted the intruder. The lion quickly showed his displeasure by snarling and growling as a warning. This caught the attention of the two on the higher ground, prompting a quiet "Thank God!" from the girl, even though she could hardly believe her eyes that it was indeed the wild man, whose presence always made her feel safe, who had arrived just in time.
Almost immediately both were horrified to see Numa leap from the cockpit and advance upon Tarzan. The ape-man, carrying his stout spear in readiness, moved deliberately onward to meet the carnivore, which he had recognized as the lion of the Wamabos' pit. He knew from the manner of Numa's approach what neither Bertha Kircher nor Smith-Oldwick knew—that there was more of curiosity than belligerency in it, and he wondered if in that great head there might not be a semblance of gratitude for the kindness that Tarzan had done him.
Almost immediately, both were horrified to see Numa jump from the cockpit and move toward Tarzan. The ape-man, holding his sturdy spear at the ready, walked steadily to meet the carnivore, which he recognized as the lion from the Wamabos' pit. He understood from Numa's approach what neither Bertha Kircher nor Smith-Oldwick realized—that there was more curiosity than hostility in it, and he wondered if there might be a hint of gratitude in that great head for the kindness Tarzan had shown him.
There was no question in Tarzan's mind but that Numa recognized him, for he knew his fellows of the jungle well enough to know that while they oft-times forgot certain sensations more quickly than man there are others which remain in their memories for years. A well-defined scent spoor might never be forgotten by a beast if it had first been sensed under unusual circumstances, and so Tarzan was confident that Numa's nose had already reminded him of all the circumstances of their brief connection.
There was no doubt in Tarzan's mind that Numa recognized him, because he understood his fellow jungle creatures well enough to realize that while they might forget certain experiences faster than humans, there are other memories that stay with them for years. A distinct scent trail could be etched in a beast's memory forever if it was first detected under unusual circumstances, and so Tarzan was sure that Numa's nose had already brought back all the details of their brief encounter.
Love of the sporting chance is inherent in the Anglo-Saxon race and it was not now Tarzan of the Apes but rather John Clayton, Lord Greystoke, who smilingly welcomed the sporting chance which he must take to discover how far-reaching was Numa's gratitude.
Love of taking risks is a natural trait in the Anglo-Saxon culture, and it wasn't just Tarzan of the Apes now, but John Clayton, Lord Greystoke, who cheerfully embraced the chance to find out how deep Numa's gratitude ran.
Smith-Oldwick and the girl saw the two nearing each other. The former swore softly beneath his breath while he nervously fingered the pitiful weapon at his hip. The girl pressed her open palms to her cheeks as she leaned forward in stony-eyed, horror-stricken silence. While she had every confidence in the prowess of the godlike creature who thus dared brazenly to face the king of beasts, she had no false conception of what must certainly happen when they met. She had seen Tarzan battle with Sheeta, the panther, and she had realized then that powerful as the man was, it was only agility, cunning, and chance that placed him upon anywhere near an equal footing with his savage adversary, and that of the three factors upon his side chance was the greatest.
Smith-Oldwick and the girl watched as the two approached each other. The former muttered softly under his breath while nervously fiddling with the sad excuse for a weapon at his hip. The girl pressed her open palms to her cheeks, leaning forward in shock-filled silence. While she completely trusted the incredible abilities of the extraordinary being who boldly faced the king of beasts, she realized the harsh reality of what would surely happen when they clashed. She had witnessed Tarzan fight Sheeta, the panther, and she understood then that despite the man’s strength, it was only his agility, wits, and luck that put him somewhat on par with his savage opponent, and of those three factors, luck was the most significant.
She saw the man and the lion stop simultaneously, not more than a yard apart. She saw the beast's tail whipping from side to side and she could hear his deep-throated growls rumbling from his cavernous breast, but she could read correctly neither the movement of the lashing tail nor the notes of the growl.
She saw the man and the lion stop at the same time, no more than a yard apart. She noticed the beast's tail whipping back and forth, and she could hear its deep, rumbling growls coming from its huge chest, but she couldn't interpret the movement of the lashing tail or the sounds of the growl correctly.
To her they seemed to indicate nothing but bestial rage while to Tarzan of the Apes they were conciliatory and reassuring in the extreme. And then she saw Numa move forward again until his nose touched the man's naked leg and she closed her eyes and covered them with her palms. For what seemed an eternity she waited for the horrid sound of the conflict which she knew must come, but all she heard was an explosive sigh of relief from Smith-Oldwick and a half-hysterical "By Jove! Just fancy it!"
To her, they seemed to show nothing but wild anger, while to Tarzan of the Apes, they were completely friendly and comforting. Then she saw Numa move closer until his nose touched the man's bare leg, and she shut her eyes, covering them with her hands. For what felt like forever, she waited for the awful noise of the struggle that she knew had to happen, but all she heard was a loud sigh of relief from Smith-Oldwick and a half-hysterical, "Wow! Can you believe it!"
She looked up to see the great lion rubbing his shaggy head against the man's hip, and Tarzan's free hand entangled in the black mane as he scratched Numa, the lion, behind a back-laid ear.
She looked up to see the huge lion rubbing his fuzzy head against the man's hip, while Tarzan's free hand was tangled in the black mane as he scratched Numa, the lion, behind an ear that was laid back.
Strange friendships are often formed between the lower animals of different species, but less often between man and the savage felidae, because of the former's inherent fear of the great cats. And so after all, therefore, the friendship so suddenly developed between the savage lion and the savage man was not inexplicable.
Strange friendships often develop between different species of lower animals, but they happen less frequently between humans and wild cats due to people's natural fear of these big felines. So, ultimately, the friendship that unexpectedly grew between the fierce lion and the wild man isn’t so hard to understand.
As Tarzan approached the plane Numa walked at his side, and when Tarzan stopped and looked up at the girl and the man Numa stopped also.
As Tarzan walked towards the plane, Numa walked alongside him, and when Tarzan paused to look up at the girl and the man, Numa stopped too.
"I had about given up hope of finding you," said the ape-man, "and it is evident that I found you just in time."
"I was just about to give up on finding you," said the ape-man, "and it's clear that I found you right when I needed to."
"But how did you know we were in trouble?" asked the English officer.
"But how did you know we were in trouble?" asked the English officer.
"I saw your plane fall," replied Tarzan. "I was watching you from a tree beside the clearing where you took off. I didn't have much to locate you by other than the general direction, but it seems that you volplaned a considerable distance toward the south after you disappeared from my view behind the hills. I have been looking for you further toward the north. I was just about to turn back when I heard your pistol shot. Is your ship beyond repair?"
"I saw your plane go down," replied Tarzan. "I was watching you from a tree near the clearing where you took off. I didn’t have much to go on besides the general direction, but it looks like you glided quite a distance to the south after you disappeared from my sight behind the hills. I’ve been searching further to the north. I was just about to head back when I heard your gunshot. Is your plane beyond repair?"
"Yes," replied Smith-Oldwick, "it is hopeless."
"Yeah," replied Smith-Oldwick, "it's pointless."
"What are your plans, then? What do you wish to do?" Tarzan directed his question to the girl.
"What are your plans, then? What do you want to do?" Tarzan asked the girl.
"We want to reach the coast," she said, "but it seems impossible now."
"We want to get to the coast," she said, "but it feels impossible right now."
"I should have thought so a little while ago," replied the ape-man, "but if Numa is here there must be water within a reasonable distance. I ran across this lion two days ago in the Wamabo country. I liberated him from one of their pits. To have reached this spot he must have come by some trail unknown to me—at least I crossed no game trail and no spoor of any animal after I came over the hills out of the fertile country. From which direction did he come upon you?"
"I should've thought that a little while ago," replied the ape-man, "but if Numa is here, there has to be water close by. I encountered this lion two days ago in the Wamabo territory. I freed him from one of their traps. To have made it to this place, he must have taken some route I don't know of—at least I didn't see any game trails or tracks of any animals after I came over the hills from the fertile area. Which direction did he come from to find you?"
"It was from the south," replied the girl. "We thought, too, that there must be water in that direction."
"It came from the south," the girl answered. "We figured there had to be water in that direction."
"Let's find out then," said Tarzan.
"Let's find out then," Tarzan said.
"But how about the lion?" asked Smith-Oldwick.
"But what about the lion?" asked Smith-Oldwick.
"That we will have to discover," replied the ape-man, "and we can only do so if you will come down from your perch."
"That’s something we’ll need to figure out," the ape-man replied, "and we can only do that if you come down from your high spot."
The officer shrugged his shoulders. The girl turned her gaze upon him to note the effect of Tarzan's proposal. The Englishman grew suddenly very white, but there was a smile upon his lips as without a word he slipped over the edge of the plane and clambered to the ground behind Tarzan.
The officer shrugged. The girl looked at him to see how he reacted to Tarzan's suggestion. The Englishman went pale suddenly, but a smile appeared on his lips as he silently climbed over the edge of the plane and scrambled down to the ground behind Tarzan.
Bertha Kircher realized that the man was afraid nor did she blame him, and she also realized the remarkable courage that he had shown in thus facing a danger that was very real to him.
Bertha Kircher recognized that the man was scared, and she didn't hold it against him. She also acknowledged the incredible bravery he had displayed by confronting a danger that felt very real to him.
Numa standing close to Tarzan's side raised his head and glared at the young Englishman, growled once, and looked up at the ape-man. Tarzan retained a hold upon the beast's mane and spoke to him in the language of the great apes. To the girl and Smith-Oldwick the growling gutturals falling from human lips sounded uncanny in the extreme, but whether Numa understood them or not they appeared to have the desired effect upon him, as he ceased growling, and as Tarzan walked to Smith-Oldwick's side Numa accompanied him, nor did he offer to molest the officer.
Numa, standing close to Tarzan, raised his head and glared at the young Englishman, growled once, and then looked up at the ape-man. Tarzan kept a grip on the beast's mane and spoke to him in the language of the great apes. To the girl and Smith-Oldwick, the growling sounds coming from human lips were extremely unsettling, but whether Numa understood them or not, they seemed to have the desired effect, as he stopped growling. When Tarzan walked over to Smith-Oldwick, Numa followed him and didn’t try to bother the officer.
"What did you say to him?" asked the girl.
"What did you say to him?" the girl asked.
Tarzan smiled. "I told him," he replied, "that I am Tarzan of the Apes, mighty hunter, killer of beasts, lord of the jungle, and that you are my friends. I have never been sure that all of the other beasts understand the language of the Mangani. I know that Manu, the monkey, speaks nearly the same tongue and I am sure that Tantor, the elephant, understands all that I say to him. We of the jungle are great boasters. In our speech, in our carriage, in every detail of our demeanor we must impress others with our physical power and our ferocity. That is why we growl at our enemies. We are telling them to beware or we shall fall upon them and tear them to pieces. Perhaps Numa does not understand the words that I use but I believe that my tones and my manner carry the impression that I wish them to convey. Now you may come down and be introduced."
Tarzan smiled. "I told him," he replied, "that I am Tarzan of the Apes, a powerful hunter, killer of beasts, lord of the jungle, and that you are my friends. I've never been sure if all the other animals understand the language of the Mangani. I know that Manu, the monkey, speaks nearly the same language, and I'm pretty sure that Tantor, the elephant, understands everything I say to him. We in the jungle are great at boasting. In our words, our posture, and in every detail of our behavior, we need to impress others with our physical strength and our ferocity. That's why we growl at our enemies. We’re warning them to be careful, or we’ll attack and tear them apart. Maybe Numa doesn’t get the exact words I use, but I believe my tone and my attitude convey the message I want to share. Now you can come down and be introduced."
It required all the courage that Bertha Kircher possessed to lower herself to the ground within reach of the talons and fangs of this untamed forest beast, but she did it. Nor did Numa do more than bare his teeth and growl a little as she came close to the ape-man.
It took all the courage Bertha Kircher had to crouch down within the reach of the claws and teeth of this wild forest creature, but she did it. Numa only bared his teeth and growled a little as she approached the ape-man.
"I think you are safe from him as long as I am present," said the ape-man. "The best thing to do is simply to ignore him. Make no advances, but be sure to give no indication of fear and, if possible always keep me between you and him. He will go away presently I am sure and the chances are that we shall not see him again."
"I think you're safe from him as long as I'm here," said the ape-man. "The best thing to do is just to ignore him. Don't engage with him, but make sure you don't show any fear, and if you can, always keep me between you and him. I'm sure he'll leave soon, and the odds are we won't see him again."
At Tarzan's suggestion Smith-Oldwick removed the remaining water and provisions from the plane and, distributing the burden among them, they set off toward the south. Numa did not follow them, but stood by the plane watching until they finally disappeared from view around a bend in the gorge.
At Tarzan's suggestion, Smith-Oldwick took the remaining water and supplies from the plane and, sharing the load among them, they headed south. Numa didn’t follow; instead, he stood by the plane, watching until they completely disappeared around a bend in the gorge.
Tarzan had picked up Numa's trail with the intention of following it southward in the belief that it would lead to water. In the sand that floored the bottom of the gorge tracks were plain and easily followed. At first only the fresh tracks of Numa were visible, but later in the day the ape-man discovered the older tracks of other lions and just before dark he stopped suddenly in evident surprise. His two companions looked at him questioningly, and in answer to their implied interrogations he pointed at the ground directly in front of him.
Tarzan had picked up Numa's trail, planning to follow it south, thinking it would lead to water. The sand at the bottom of the gorge clearly showed the tracks, making them easy to trace. At first, only Numa's fresh tracks were visible, but later in the day, the ape-man noticed older tracks from other lions. Just before dark, he suddenly stopped in obvious surprise. His two companions looked at him, puzzled, and in response to their unspoken questions, he pointed at the ground right in front of him.
"Look at those," he exclaimed.
"Check those out," he exclaimed.
At first neither Smith-Oldwick nor the girl saw anything but a confusion of intermingled prints of padded feet in the sand, but presently the girl discovered what Tarzan had seen, and an exclamation of surprise broke from her lips.
At first, neither Smith-Oldwick nor the girl saw anything except a jumble of mixed footprints in the sand, but soon the girl spotted what Tarzan had noticed, and she let out an exclamation of surprise.
"The imprint of human feet!" she cried.
"The mark of human footprints!" she exclaimed.
Tarzan nodded.
Tarzan agreed.
"But there are no toes," the girl pointed out.
"But there are no toes," the girl said.
"The feet were shod with a soft sandal," explained Tarzan.
"The feet were wearing a soft sandal," explained Tarzan.
"Then there must be a native village somewhere in the vicinity," said Smith-Oldwick.
"Then there must be a local village nearby," said Smith-Oldwick.
"Yes," replied the ape-man, "but not the sort of natives which we would expect to find here in this part of Africa where others all go unshod with the exception of a few of Usanga's renegade German native troops who wear German army shoes. I don't know that you can notice it, but it is evident to me that the foot inside the sandal that made these imprints were not the foot of a Negro. If you will examine them carefully you will notice that the impression of the heel and ball of the foot are well marked even through the sole of the sandal. The weight comes more nearly in the center of a Negro's footprint."
"Yes," replied the ape-man, "but not the kind of natives we would expect to see in this part of Africa, where everyone else goes barefoot, except for a few of Usanga's renegade German native troops who wear German army boots. I don't know if you can tell, but it's clear to me that the foot that left these prints wasn't a Negro's. If you look closely, you'll see that the impression of the heel and ball of the foot are clearly defined, even through the sole of the sandal. The weight distribution is more centered in a Negro's footprint."
"Then you think these were made by a white person?"
"Then you think these were made by a white person?"
"It looks that way," replied Tarzan, and suddenly, to the surprise of both the girl and Smith-Oldwick, he dropped to his hands and knees and sniffed at the tracks—again a beast utilizing the senses and woodcraft of a beast. Over an area of several square yards his keen nostrils sought the identity of the makers of the tracks. At length he rose to his feet.
"It seems that way," Tarzan said, and suddenly, to the surprise of both the girl and Smith-Oldwick, he dropped to his hands and knees and sniffed at the tracks—once again acting like an animal, using the instincts and skills of the wild. Across several square yards, his sharp nose searched for the identity of the creatures that made the tracks. Finally, he stood up.
"It is not the spoor of the Gomangani," he said, "nor is it exactly like that of white men. There were three who came this way. They were men, but of what race I do not know."
"It’s not the tracks of the Gomangani," he said, "and it doesn’t exactly match those of white men. Three of them came this way. They were men, but I can’t tell what race they belong to."
There was no apparent change in the nature of the gorge except that it had steadily grown deeper as they followed it downward until now the rocky and precipitous sides rose far above them. At different points natural caves, which appeared to have been eroded by the action of water in some forgotten age, pitted the side walls at various heights. Near them was such a cavity at the ground's level—an arched cavern floored with white sand. Tarzan indicated it with a gesture of his hand.
There was no noticeable change in the gorge except that it had steadily become deeper as they moved downward, with the rocky, steep sides towering above them now. At various spots, natural caves, which seemed to have been shaped by water erosion ages ago, pocked the side walls at different heights. Close to them was one such opening at ground level—an arched cave with a floor covered in white sand. Tarzan gestured towards it.
"We will lair here tonight," he said, and then with one of his rare, slow smiles: "We will CAMP here tonight."
"We'll stay here tonight," he said, and then, with one of his rare, slow smiles: "We'll camp here tonight."
Having eaten their meager supper Tarzan bade the girl enter the cavern.
Having eaten their small dinner, Tarzan invited the girl to enter the cave.
"You will sleep inside," he said. "The lieutenant and I will lie outside at the entrance."
"You'll sleep inside," he said. "The lieutenant and I will stay outside at the entrance."
Chapter XVI
The Night Attack
As the girl turned to bid them good night, she thought that she saw a shadowy form moving in the darkness beyond them, and almost simultaneously she was sure that she heard the sounds of stealthy movement in the same direction.
As the girl turned to say good night, she thought she saw a shadowy figure moving in the darkness behind them, and at the same time, she was pretty sure she heard the sounds of someone moving quietly in the same direction.
"What is that?" she whispered. "There is something out there in the darkness."
"What is that?" she whispered. "There’s something out there in the dark."
"Yes," replied Tarzan, "it is a lion. It has been there for some time. Hadn't you noticed it before?"
"Yeah," Tarzan said, "it's a lion. It's been there for a while. Didn't you see it before?"
"Oh!" cried the girl, breathing a sigh of relief, "is it our lion?"
"Oh!" the girl exclaimed, letting out a sigh of relief, "is it our lion?"
"No," said Tarzan, "it is not our lion; it is another lion and he is hunting."
"No," Tarzan said, "that's not our lion; it's a different lion, and he's hunting."
"He is stalking us?" asked the girl.
"He's stalking us?" the girl asked.
"He is," replied the ape-man. Smith-Oldwick fingered the grip of his pistol.
"He is," replied the ape-man. Smith-Oldwick gripped his pistol.
Tarzan saw the involuntary movement and shook his head.
Tarzan noticed the sudden movement and shook his head.
"Leave that thing where it is, Lieutenant," he said.
"Leave that thing where it is, Lieutenant," he said.
The officer laughed nervously. "I couldn't help it, you know, old man," he said; "instinct of self-preservation and all that."
The officer chuckled awkwardly. "I couldn't help it, you know, old man," he said; "it's just instinct for survival and all that."
"It would prove an instinct of self-destruction," said Tarzan. "There are at least three hunting lions out there watching us. If we had a fire or the moon were up you would see their eyes plainly. Presently they may come after us but the chances are that they will not. If you are very anxious that they should, fire your pistol and hit one of them."
"It would show an instinct for self-destruction," said Tarzan. "There are at least three hunting lions out there watching us. If we had a fire or the moon was up, you would see their eyes clearly. Right now they might come after us, but the odds are they won't. If you're really eager for them to come, shoot your pistol and hit one of them."
"What if they do charge?" asked the girl; "there is no means of escape."
"What if they do charge?" the girl asked. "There’s no way to escape."
"Why, we should have to fight them," replied Tarzan.
"Well, we would have to fight them," replied Tarzan.
"What chance would we three have against them?" asked the girl.
"What chance do we three have against them?" asked the girl.
The ape-man shrugged his shoulders. "One must die sometime," he said. "To you doubtless it may seem terrible—such a death; but Tarzan of the Apes has always expected to go out in some such way. Few of us die of old age in the jungle, nor should I care to die thus. Some day Numa will get me, or Sheeta, or a black warrior. These or some of the others. What difference does it make which it is, or whether it comes tonight or next year or in ten years? After it is over it will be all the same."
The ape-man shrugged. "We all have to die eventually," he said. "To you, it might seem awful—such a death; but Tarzan of the Apes has always known he’d go out like this. Very few of us die of old age in the jungle, and I wouldn’t want to go that way anyway. Someday Numa will get me, or Sheeta, or a black warrior. One of them or maybe someone else. What difference does it make who it is, or whether it happens tonight, next year, or in ten years? Once it’s over, it’ll all be the same."
The girl shuddered. "Yes," she said in a dull, hopeless voice, "after it is over it will be all the same."
The girl shuddered. "Yeah," she said in a flat, hopeless voice, "after it’s over, it will all be the same."
Then she went into the cavern and lay down upon the sand. Smith-Oldwick sat in the entrance and leaned against the cliff. Tarzan squatted on the opposite side.
Then she entered the cave and lay down on the sand. Smith-Oldwick sat at the entrance, leaning against the cliff. Tarzan squatted on the other side.
"May I smoke?" questioned the officer of Tarzan. "I have been hoarding a few cigarettes and if it won't attract those bouncers out there I would like to have one last smoke before I cash in. Will you join me?" and he proffered the ape-man a cigarette.
"Can I smoke?" asked Tarzan's officer. "I’ve been saving a few cigarettes, and if it doesn’t draw the attention of those bouncers outside, I’d like to have one last smoke before I check out. Want to join me?" He held out a cigarette to the ape-man.
"No, thanks," said Tarzan, "but it will be all right if you smoke. No wild animal is particularly fond of the fumes of tobacco so it certainly won't entice them any closer."
"No, thanks," Tarzan said, "but it's fine if you want to smoke. No wild animal is really into tobacco fumes, so it definitely won't draw them any closer."
Smith-Oldwick lighted his cigarette and sat puffing slowly upon it. He had proffered one to the girl but she had refused, and thus they sat in silence for some time, the silence of the night ruffled occasionally by the faint crunching of padded feet upon the soft sands of the gorge's floor.
Smith-Oldwick lit his cigarette and sat puffing slowly on it. He had offered one to the girl, but she had declined, so they sat in silence for a while, the quiet of the night occasionally broken by the soft crunch of shoes on the sandy floor of the gorge.
It was Smith-Oldwick who broke the silence. "Aren't they unusually quiet for lions?" he asked.
It was Smith-Oldwick who broke the silence. "Aren't they being unusually quiet for lions?" he asked.
"No," replied the ape-man; "the lion that goes roaring around the jungle does not do it to attract prey. They are very quiet when they are stalking their quarry."
"No," replied the ape-man; "the lion that roars around the jungle doesn’t do it to attract prey. They are very quiet when they’re stalking their target."
"I wish they would roar," said the officer. "I wish they would do anything, even charge. Just knowing that they are there and occasionally seeing something like a shadow in the darkness and the faint sounds that come to us from them are getting on my nerves. But I hope," he said, "that all three don't charge at once."
"I wish they would roar," said the officer. "I wish they would do anything, even charge. Just knowing they’re there, occasionally catching a glimpse of something like a shadow in the dark, and the faint sounds coming from them are really getting on my nerves. But I hope," he said, "that all three don’t charge at once."
"Three?" said Tarzan. "There are seven of them out there now."
"Three?" Tarzan asked. "There are seven of them out there right now."
"Good Lord! exclaimed Smith-Oldwick.
"OMG!" exclaimed Smith-Oldwick.
"Couldn't we build a fire," asked the girl, "and frighten them away?"
"Couldn’t we start a fire?" the girl asked. "That might scare them off."
"I don't know that it would do any good," said Tarzan, "as I have an idea that these lions are a little different from any that we are familiar with and possibly for the same reason which at first puzzled me a little—I refer to the apparent docility in the presence of a man of the lion who was with us today. A man is out there now with those lions."
"I’m not sure it would make a difference," Tarzan said. "I think these lions might be a bit different from the ones we know, and that might be related to something that confused me at first—I’m talking about the unusual calmness of the lion that was with us today when it was near a man. There’s a man out there right now with those lions."
"It is impossible!" exclaimed Smith-Oldwick. "They would tear him to pieces."
"It’s impossible!" exclaimed Smith-Oldwick. "They would rip him apart."
"What makes you think there is a man there?" asked the girl.
"What makes you think there's a guy over there?" asked the girl.
Tarzan smiled and shook his head. "I am afraid you would not understand," he replied. "It is difficult for us to understand anything that is beyond our own powers."
Tarzan smiled and shook his head. "I'm afraid you wouldn't understand," he said. "It's hard for us to grasp anything that's beyond our own abilities."
"What do you mean by that?" asked the officer.
"What do you mean by that?" the officer asked.
"Well," said Tarzan, "if you had been born without eyes you could not understand sense impressions that the eyes of others transmit to their brains, and as you have both been born without any sense of smell I am afraid you cannot understand how I can know that there is a man there."
"Well," said Tarzan, "if you had been born without eyes, you wouldn't be able to understand the sensory impressions that other people's eyes send to their brains. And since both of you were born without any sense of smell, I'm afraid you can't grasp how I know there's a man over there."
"You mean that you scent a man?" asked the girl.
"You mean you smell a guy?" asked the girl.
Tarzan nodded affirmatively.
Tarzan nodded in agreement.
"And in the same way you know the number of lions?" asked the man.
"And in the same way, do you know how many lions there are?" asked the man.
"Yes," said Tarzan. "No two lions look alike, no two have the same scent."
"Yeah," said Tarzan. "No two lions look the same, and no two have the same scent."
The young Englishman shook his head. "No," he said, "I cannot understand."
The young Englishman shook his head. "No," he said, "I can't understand."
"I doubt if the lions or the man are here necessarily for the purpose of harming us," said Tarzan, "because there has been nothing to prevent their doing so long before had they wished to. I have a theory, but it is utterly preposterous."
"I doubt that the lions or the man are here just to harm us," said Tarzan, "because there’s been nothing stopping them from doing so long before if they had wanted to. I have a theory, but it’s completely ridiculous."
"What is it?" asked the girl.
"What is it?" the girl asked.
"I think they are here," replied Tarzan, "to prevent us from going some place that they do not wish us to go; in other words we are under surveillance, and possibly as long as we don't go where we are not wanted we shall not be bothered."
"I think they’re here," Tarzan replied, "to stop us from going somewhere they don’t want us to go; in other words, we’re being watched, and as long as we don’t go where we’re not welcome, we probably won’t be disturbed."
"But how are we to know where they don't want us to go?" asked Smith-Oldwick.
"But how are we supposed to know where they don't want us to go?" asked Smith-Oldwick.
"We can't know," replied Tarzan, "and the chances are that the very place we are seeking is the place they don't wish us to trespass on."
"We can't know," Tarzan replied, "and it's likely that the exact place we're looking for is the area they want to keep us away from."
"You mean the water?" asked the girl.
"You mean the water?" asked the girl.
"Yes," replied Tarzan.
"Yeah," replied Tarzan.
For some time they sat in silence which was broken only by an occasional sound of movement from the outer darkness. It must have been an hour later that the ape-man rose quietly and drew his long blade from its sheath. Smith-Oldwick was dozing against the rocky wall of the cavern entrance, while the girl, exhausted by the excitement and fatigue of the day, had fallen into deep slumber. An instant after Tarzan arose, Smith-Oldwick and the girl were aroused by a volley of thunderous roars and the noise of many padded feet rushing toward them.
For a while, they sat in silence, which was only interrupted by occasional sounds from the darkness outside. It must have been about an hour later when the ape-man quietly got up and took his long knife out of its sheath. Smith-Oldwick was dozing against the rocky wall at the entrance of the cave, while the girl, worn out from the day's excitement and exhaustion, had fallen into a deep sleep. Just after Tarzan got up, Smith-Oldwick and the girl were startled awake by a series of loud roars and the sound of many padded feet rushing towards them.
Tarzan of the Apes stood directly before the entrance to the cavern, his knife in his hand, awaiting the charge. The ape-man had not expected any such concerted action as he now realized had been taken by those watching them. He had known for some time that other men had joined those who were with the lions earlier in the evening, and when he arose to his feet it was because he knew that the lions and the men were moving cautiously closer to him and his party. He might easily have eluded them, for he had seen that the face of the cliff rising above the mouth of the cavern might be scaled by as good a climber as himself. It might have been wiser had he tried to escape, for he knew that in the face of such odds even he was helpless, but he stood his ground though I doubt if he could have told why.
Tarzan of the Apes stood right in front of the cave entrance, knife in hand, ready for the attack. The ape-man hadn’t expected this coordinated action from those watching them. He had known for a while that other men had joined those with the lions earlier that evening, and he got to his feet because he sensed the lions and the men were moving cautiously closer to him and his group. He could have easily escaped, as he noticed that the cliff above the cave entrance could be climbed by someone as skilled as him. It might have been smarter to try to get away, because he knew that against such odds, even he was vulnerable, but he stayed put even though he probably couldn’t explain why.
He owed nothing either of duty or friendship to the girl sleeping in the cavern, nor could he longer be of any protection to her or her companion. Yet something held him there in futile self-sacrifice.
He owed nothing in terms of duty or friendship to the girl sleeping in the cave, nor could he be of any help to her or her companion anymore. Yet something kept him there in pointless self-sacrifice.
The great Tarmangani had not even the satisfaction of striking a blow in self-defense. A veritable avalanche of savage beasts rolled over him and threw him heavily to the ground. In falling his head struck the rocky surface of the cliff, stunning him.
The great Tarmangani didn’t even get the chance to strike a blow in self-defense. A massive wave of wild beasts overwhelmed him and knocked him hard to the ground. As he fell, his head hit the rocky surface of the cliff, stunning him.
It was daylight when he regained consciousness. The first dim impression borne to his awakening mind was a confusion of savage sounds which gradually resolved themselves into the growling of lions, and then, little by little, there came back to him the recollections of what had preceded the blow that had felled him.
It was daytime when he woke up. The first blurry impression his mind registered was a mix of harsh sounds that slowly became clearer as the growling of lions. Then, bit by bit, he started to remember what had happened before the blow that knocked him out.
Strong in his nostrils was the scent of Numa, the lion, and against one naked leg he could feel the coat of some animal. Slowly Tarzan opened his eyes. He was lying on his side and as he looked down his body, he saw that a great lion stood straddling him—a great lion who growled hideously at something which Tarzan could not see.
Strong in his nostrils was the scent of Numa, the lion, and against one bare leg he could feel the coat of some animal. Slowly, Tarzan opened his eyes. He was lying on his side, and as he looked down his body, he saw that a huge lion stood over him—a huge lion that growled menacingly at something Tarzan couldn't see.
With the full return of his senses Tarzan's nose told him that the beast above him was Numa of the Wamabo pit.
With his senses fully restored, Tarzan's nose informed him that the creature above him was Numa from the Wamabo pit.
Thus reassured, the ape-man spoke to the lion and at the same time made a motion as though he would arise. Immediately Numa stepped from above him. As Tarzan raised his head, he saw that he still lay where he had fallen before the opening of the cliff where the girl had been sleeping and that Numa, backed against the cliffside, was apparently defending him from two other lions who paced to and fro a short distance from their intended victim.
Thus reassured, the ape-man spoke to the lion and at the same time made a motion as if he was going to get up. Immediately, Numa stepped away from above him. As Tarzan lifted his head, he realized that he was still lying where he had fallen before the cliff where the girl had been sleeping, and that Numa, backed up against the cliffside, was seemingly protecting him from two other lions that were pacing back and forth a short distance from their intended target.
And then Tarzan turned his eyes into the cave and saw that the girl and Smith-Oldwick were gone.
And then Tarzan looked into the cave and saw that the girl and Smith-Oldwick were gone.
His efforts had been for naught. With an angry toss of his head, the ape-man turned upon the two lions who had continued to pace back and forth a few yards from him. Numa of the lion pit turned a friendly glance in Tarzan's direction, rubbed his head against the ape-man's side, and then directed his snarling countenance toward the two hunters.
His efforts had been in vain. With an angry jerk of his head, the ape-man turned to the two lions that had been pacing back and forth a few yards away from him. Numa, the lion from the pit, gave a friendly look toward Tarzan, rubbed his head against the ape-man's side, and then turned his snarling face toward the two hunters.
"I think," said Tarzan to Numa, "that you and I together can make these beasts very unhappy." He spoke in English, which, of course, Numa did not understand at all, but there must have been something reassuring in the tone, for Numa whined pleadingly and moved impatiently to and fro parallel with their antagonists.
"I think," said Tarzan to Numa, "that you and I together can make these animals very unhappy." He spoke in English, which, of course, Numa did not understand at all, but there must have been something reassuring in the tone, for Numa whined pleadingly and moved impatiently back and forth alongside their opponents.
"Come," said Tarzan suddenly and grasping the lion's mane with his left hand he moved toward the other lions, his companion pacing at his side. As the two advanced the others drew slowly back and, finally separating, moved off to either side. Tarzan and Numa passed between them but neither the great black-maned lion nor the man failed to keep an eye upon the beast nearer him so that they were not caught unawares when, as though at some preconcerted signal, the two cats charged simultaneously from opposite directions.
"Come on," said Tarzan suddenly, gripping the lion's mane with his left hand as he moved toward the other lions, his companion walking beside him. As they advanced, the others slowly backed away and eventually separated, moving off to either side. Tarzan and Numa passed between them, but neither the massive black-maned lion nor the man took their eyes off the beast closest to them, ensuring they weren't caught off guard when, as if on a prearranged signal, the two cats lunged at the same time from opposite directions.
The ape-man met the charge of his antagonist after the same fashion of fighting that he had been accustomed to employing in previous encounters with Numa and Sheeta. To have attempted to meet the full shock of a lion's charge would have been suicidal even for the giant Tarmangani. Instead he resorted to methods of agility and cunning, for quick as are the great cats, even quicker is Tarzan of the Apes.
The ape-man faced his opponent's charge using the same fighting style he had relied on in previous encounters with Numa and Sheeta. Trying to confront a lion's full charge head-on would have been deadly, even for the giant Tarmangani. Instead, he used agility and cleverness, because as fast as the big cats are, Tarzan of the Apes is even quicker.
With outspread, raking talons and bared fangs Numa sprang for the naked chest of the ape-man. Throwing up his left arm as a boxer might ward off a blow, Tarzan struck upward beneath the left forearm of the lion, at the same time rushing in with his shoulder beneath the animal's body and simultaneously drove his blade into the tawny hide behind the shoulder. With a roar of pain Numa wheeled again, the personification of bestial rage. Now indeed would he exterminate this presumptuous man-thing who dared even to think that he could thwart the king of beasts in his desires. But as he wheeled, his intended quarry wheeled with him, brown fingers locked in the heavy mane on the powerful neck and again the blade struck deep into the lion's side.
With outspread, raking claws and bared teeth, Numa lunged for the bare chest of the ape-man. Raising his left arm like a boxer defending against a punch, Tarzan struck upwards beneath the lion's left forearm while rushing in with his shoulder under the animal's body and simultaneously drove his knife into the tawny fur behind the shoulder. With a roar of pain, Numa turned again, embodying bestial rage. Now he was determined to eliminate this arrogant man-thing who dared to think he could thwart the king of beasts. But as he turned, his intended target turned with him, brown fingers gripping the thick mane on the powerful neck, and again the blade plunged deep into the lion's side.
Then it was that Numa went mad with hate and pain and at the same instant the ape-man leaped full upon his back. Easily before had Tarzan locked his legs beneath the belly of a lion while he clung to its long mane and stabbed it until his point reached its heart. So easy it had seemed before that he experienced a sharp feeling of resentment that he was unable to do so now, for the quick movements of the lion prevented him, and presently, to his dismay, as the lion leaped and threw him about, the ape-man realized that he was swinging inevitably beneath those frightful talons.
Then Numa lost it, overwhelmed by hate and pain, and at the same moment, the ape-man jumped onto his back. Tarzan had easily locked his legs around a lion's belly before, gripping its long mane and stabbing it until the blade reached its heart. It had seemed so effortless before that he felt a sharp sense of frustration at his inability to do the same now, as the lion's quick movements hindered him. Soon, to his dismay, as the lion leaped and tossed him around, the ape-man realized he was helplessly swinging beneath those terrifying claws.
With a final effort he threw himself from Numa's back and sought, by his quickness, to elude the frenzied beast for the fraction of an instant that would permit him to regain his feet and meet the animal again upon a more even footing. But this time Numa was too quick for him and he was but partially up when a great paw struck him on the side of the head and bowled him over.
With one last push, he jumped off Numa's back and tried to use his speed to dodge the wild beast for just a moment, hoping to get back on his feet and face the animal again on better terms. But this time, Numa was too fast for him, and he was only partly up when a massive paw hit him on the side of the head and knocked him down.
As he fell he saw a black streak shoot above him and another lion close upon his antagonist. Rolling from beneath the two battling lions Tarzan regained his feet, though he was half dazed and staggering from the impact of the terrible blow he had received. Behind him he saw a lifeless lion lying torn and bleeding upon the sand, and before him Numa of the pit was savagely mauling the second lion.
As he fell, he saw a black blur rush above him and another lion close to his opponent. Rolling out from under the two fighting lions, Tarzan got back on his feet, though he was half dazed and staggering from the brutal blow he had taken. Behind him, he saw a dead lion lying torn and bleeding on the sand, and in front of him, Numa of the pit was viciously attacking the second lion.
He of the black coat tremendously outclassed his adversary in point of size and strength as well as in ferocity. The battling beasts made a few feints and passes at each other before the larger succeeded in fastening his fangs in the other's throat, and then, as a cat shakes a mouse, the larger lion shook the lesser, and when his dying foe sought to roll beneath and rake his conqueror with his hind claws, the other met him halfway at his own game, and as the great talons buried themselves in the lower part of the other's chest and then were raked downward with all the terrific strength of the mighty hind legs, the battle was ended.
He in the black coat completely outmatched his opponent in size, strength, and ferocity. The fighting beasts made a few fake attacks and moves at each other before the larger one managed to sink his teeth into the other's throat. Then, like a cat shaking a mouse, the bigger lion shook the smaller one. When his dying rival tried to roll under and claw at his conqueror with his back legs, the other met him halfway at his own game. As the powerful claws dug into the lower part of the other’s chest and then raked downward with all the strength of his massive hind legs, the battle was over.
As Numa rose from his second victim and shook himself, Tarzan could not but again note the wondrous proportions and symmetry of the beast. The lions they had bested were splendid specimens themselves and in their coats Tarzan noted a suggestion of the black which was such a strongly marked characteristic of Numa of the pit. Their manes were just a trifle darker than an ordinary black-maned lion but the tawny shade on the balance of their coats predominated. However, the ape-man realized that they were a distinct species from any he had seen as though they had sprung originally from a cross between the forest lion of his acquaintance and a breed of which Numa of the pit might be typical.
As Numa got up from his second victim and shook himself off, Tarzan couldn’t help but notice once again the incredible size and symmetry of the beast. The lions they had defeated were impressive specimens too, and in their fur, Tarzan saw hints of the black that was such a distinct feature of Numa from the pit. Their manes were slightly darker than a typical black-maned lion, but the tawny color on the rest of their bodies was more prominent. However, the ape-man understood that they were a different species from any he had encountered, as if they originated from a mix between the forest lion he knew and a breed that Numa from the pit might represent.
The immediate obstruction in his way having been removed, Tarzan was for setting out in search of the spoor of the girl and Smith-Oldwick, that he might discover their fate. He suddenly found himself tremendously hungry and as he circled about over the sandy bottom searching among the tangled network of innumerable tracks for those of his proteges, there broke from his lips involuntarily the whine of a hungry beast. Immediately Numa of the pit pricked up his ears and, regarding the ape-man steadily for a moment, he answered the call of hunger and started briskly off toward the south, stopping occasionally to see if Tarzan was following.
The immediate barrier in his way removed, Tarzan was setting out to find the trail of the girl and Smith-Oldwick, so he could discover what happened to them. He suddenly realized he was incredibly hungry, and as he searched among the tangled web of countless tracks on the sandy ground for those of his companions, he involuntarily let out a whine like a hungry animal. Instantly, Numa from the pit perked up his ears and, after looking at the ape-man for a moment, answered the call of hunger and started off briskly to the south, stopping now and then to check if Tarzan was following.
The ape-man realized that the beast was leading him to food, and so he followed and as he followed his keen eyes and sensitive nostrils sought for some indication of the direction taken by the man and the girl. Presently out of the mass of lion tracks, Tarzan picked up those of many sandaled feet and the scent spoor of the members of the strange race such as had been with the lions the night before, and then faintly he caught the scent spoor of the girl and a little later that of Smith-Oldwick. Presently the tracks thinned and here those of the girl and the Englishman became well marked.
The ape-man realized that the beast was leading him to food, so he followed it. As he did, his sharp eyes and sensitive nose searched for any signs of the direction taken by the man and the girl. Soon, amidst the lion tracks, Tarzan found the prints of many sandaled feet and the scent trail of the strange group that had been with the lions the night before. Then, he faintly picked up the scent trail of the girl, followed shortly after by that of Smith-Oldwick. Eventually, the tracks thinned out, and here the footprints of the girl and the Englishman became very clear.
They had been walking side by side and there had been men and lions to the right and left of them, and men and lions in front and behind. The ape-man was puzzled by the possibilities suggested by the tracks, but in the light of any previous experience he could not explain satisfactorily to himself what his perceptions indicated.
They had been walking side by side, surrounded by men and lions on their right and left, and men and lions in front and behind. The ape-man was confused by the possibilities hinted at by the tracks, but based on any past experiences, he couldn't adequately understand what his observations meant.
There was little change in the formation of the gorge; it still wound its erratic course between precipitous cliffs. In places it widened out and again it became very narrow and always deeper the further south they traveled. Presently the bottom of the gorge began to slope more rapidly. Here and there were indications of ancient rapids and waterfalls. The trail became more difficult but was well marked and showed indications of great antiquity, and, in places, the handiwork of man. They had proceeded for a half or three-quarters of a mile when, at a turning of the gorge, Tarzan saw before him a narrow valley cut deep into the living rock of the earth's crust, with lofty mountain ranges bounding it upon the south. How far it extended east and west he could not see, but apparently it was no more than three or four miles across from north to south.
There was hardly any change in the shape of the gorge; it still twisted along its unpredictable path between steep cliffs. In some spots, it expanded and then narrowed again, always getting deeper the further south they went. Soon, the bottom of the gorge started to slope down more steeply. Occasionally, there were signs of ancient rapids and waterfalls. The trail became more challenging but was well-marked, showing signs of great age and, in some places, evidence of human construction. They had traveled for about half a mile or three-quarters when, at a bend in the gorge, Tarzan noticed ahead of him a narrow valley carved deep into the solid rock of the Earth's surface, with tall mountain ranges surrounding it to the south. He couldn't tell how far it stretched to the east and west, but it seemed to be no more than three or four miles wide from north to south.
That it was a well-watered valley was indicated by the wealth of vegetation that carpeted its floor from the rocky cliffs upon the north to the mountains on the south.
That it was a lush valley was evident from the abundance of vegetation that covered the ground from the rocky cliffs to the north to the mountains in the south.
Over the edge of the cliffs from which the ape-man viewed the valley a trail had been hewn that led downward to the base. Preceded by the lion Tarzan descended into the valley, which, at this point, was forested with large trees. Before him the trail wound onward toward the center of the valley. Raucous-voiced birds of brilliant plumage screamed among the branches while innumerable monkeys chattered and scolded above him.
Over the edge of the cliffs where the ape-man looked out over the valley, a path had been carved down to the bottom. With the lion leading the way, Tarzan went down into the valley, which was filled with towering trees. Ahead of him, the trail curved toward the center of the valley. Loud, colorful birds shrieked among the branches while countless monkeys chattered and scolded above him.
The forest teemed with life, and yet there was borne in upon the ape-man a sense of unutterable loneliness, a sensation that he never before had felt in his beloved jungles. There was unreality in everything about him—in the valley itself, lying hidden and forgotten in what was supposed to be an arid waste. The birds and the monkeys, while similar in type to many with which he was familiar, were identical with none, nor was the vegetation without its idiosyncrasies. It was as though he had been suddenly transported to another world and he felt a strange restlessness that might easily have been a premonition of danger.
The forest was full of life, yet the ape-man felt an intense loneliness he had never experienced in his beloved jungles before. Everything around him felt surreal—in the valley itself, hidden and forgotten in what should have been a dry wasteland. The birds and monkeys, while similar to many he knew, weren’t identical to any, and the plants had their own quirks as well. It was like he had been suddenly moved to another world, and he felt a strange restlessness that could easily have been a sign of danger.
Fruits were growing among the trees and some of these he saw that Manu, the monkey, ate. Being hungry he swung to the lower branches and, amidst a great chattering of the monkeys, proceeded to eat such of the fruit as he saw the monkeys ate in safety. When he had partially satisfied his hunger, for meat alone could fully do so, he looked about him for Numa of the pit to discover that the lion had gone.
Fruits were growing among the trees, and he noticed that Manu, the monkey, was eating some of them. Feeling hungry, he swung down to the lower branches and, surrounded by a lot of chattering monkeys, started to eat the fruit that he saw the monkeys eating safely. When he had somewhat satisfied his hunger, since only meat could truly fill him up, he looked around for Numa of the pit and realized that the lion was gone.
Chapter XVII
The Walled City
Dropping to the ground once more he picked up the trail of the girl and her captors, which he followed easily along what appeared to be a well-beaten trail. It was not long before he came to a small stream, where he quenched his thirst, and thereafter he saw that the trail followed in the general direction of the stream, which ran southwesterly. Here and there were cross trails and others which joined the main avenue, and always upon each of them were the tracks and scent of the great cats, of Numa, the lion, and Sheeta, the panther.
Dropping to the ground again, he picked up the trail of the girl and her captors, which he easily followed along what looked like a well-worn path. It didn’t take long before he reached a small stream, where he drank to quench his thirst, and afterward he noticed that the trail continued in the general direction of the stream, which flowed southwest. Here and there were side trails and others that joined the main path, and on each of them were the tracks and scent of the big cats, Numa the lion and Sheeta the panther.
With the exception of a few small rodents there appeared to be no other wild life on the surface of the valley. There was no indication of Bara, the deer, or Horta, the boar, or of Gorgo, the buffalo, Buto, Tantor, or Duro. Histah, the snake, was there. He saw him in the trees in greater numbers than he ever had seen Histah before; and once beside a reedy pool he caught a scent that could have belonged to none other than Gimla the crocodile, but upon none of these did the Tarmangani care to feed.
Aside from a few small rodents, there didn’t seem to be any other wildlife on the valley's surface. There was no sign of Bara, the deer, or Horta, the boar, or of Gorgo, the buffalo, Buto, Tantor, or Duro. Histah, the snake, was present. He spotted him in the trees in greater numbers than he had ever seen before; and once near a reedy pool, he caught a scent that could only belong to Gimla the crocodile, but the Tarmangani had no interest in feeding on any of them.
And so, as he craved meat, he turned his attention to the birds above him. His assailants of the night before had not disarmed him. Either in the darkness and the rush of the charging lions the human foe had overlooked him or else they had considered him dead; but whatever the reason he still retained his weapons—his spear and his long knife, his bow and arrows, and his grass rope.
And so, as he craved meat, he looked up at the birds flying above him. The attackers from the night before hadn’t taken his weapons. Either in the darkness and chaos of the charging lions, his human enemies missed him or thought he was dead; but whatever the reason, he still had his gear—his spear, his long knife, his bow and arrows, and his grass rope.
Fitting a shaft to his bow Tarzan awaited an opportunity to bring down one of the larger birds, and when the opportunity finally presented itself he drove the arrow straight to its mark. As the gaily plumaged creature fluttered to earth its companions and the little monkeys set up a most terrific chorus of wails and screaming protests. The whole forest became suddenly a babel of hoarse screams and shrill shrieks.
Fitting a shaft to his bow, Tarzan waited for a chance to take down one of the bigger birds, and when that moment finally came, he shot the arrow straight to its target. As the brightly colored bird fell to the ground, its companions and the little monkeys erupted into a loud chorus of wails and screaming protests. The entire forest suddenly turned into a chaotic mix of harsh screams and high-pitched shrieks.
Tarzan would not have been surprised had one or two birds in the immediate vicinity given voice to terror as they fled, but that the whole life of the jungle should set up so weird a protest filled him with disgust. It was an angry face that he turned up toward the monkeys and the birds as there suddenly stirred within him a savage inclination to voice his displeasure and his answer to what he considered their challenge. And so it was that there broke upon this jungle for the first time Tarzan's hideous scream of victory and challenge.
Tarzan wouldn't have been shocked if one or two birds nearby had screeched in fear as they flew away, but the fact that the entire jungle seemed to join in such a strange outcry made him feel disgusted. He looked up at the monkeys and birds with an angry expression as a wild urge to express his annoyance and respond to what he saw as their challenge stirred within him. And so, for the first time, Tarzan let out a terrifying scream of victory and defiance that echoed through the jungle.
The effect upon the creatures above him was instantaneous. Where before the air had trembled to the din of their voices, now utter silence reigned and a moment later the ape-man was alone with his puny kill.
The impact on the creatures above him was immediate. Where the air had once vibrated with the noise of their voices, now there was complete silence, and moments later the ape-man was left alone with his insignificant kill.
The silence following so closely the previous tumult carried a sinister impression to the ape-man, which still further aroused his anger. Picking the bird from where it had fallen he withdrew his arrow from the body and returned it to his quiver. Then with his knife he quickly and deftly removed the skin and feathers together. He ate angrily, growling as though actually menaced by a near-by foe, and perhaps, too, his growls were partially induced by the fact that he did not care for the flesh of birds. Better this, however, than nothing and from what his senses had told him there was no flesh in the vicinity such as he was accustomed to and cared most for. How he would have enjoyed a juicy haunch from Pacco, the zebra, or a steak from the loin of Gorgo, the buffalo! The very thought made his mouth water and increased his resentment against this unnatural forest that harbored no such delicious quarry.
The silence that followed the earlier chaos felt unsettling to the ape-man, fueling his anger even more. He picked up the bird where it had fallen, took his arrow out of its body, and put it back in his quiver. Then, using his knife, he quickly and skillfully stripped off the skin and feathers together. He ate with irritation, growling as if he were threatened by a nearby enemy, and maybe his growls were partly because he didn't really like bird meat. Still, it was better than nothing, and from what he sensed, there was no meat around that he preferred. How he would have loved a juicy piece from Pacco, the zebra, or a steak from Gorgo, the buffalo! Just thinking about it made his mouth water and fueled his frustration with this strange forest that had no tasty prey.
He had but partially consumed his kill when he suddenly became aware of a movement in the brush at no great distance from him and downwind, and a moment later his nostrils picked up the scent of Numa from the opposite direction, and then upon either side he caught the fall of padded feet and the brushing of bodies against leafy branches. The ape-man smiled. What stupid creature did they think him, to be surprised by such clumsy stalkers? Gradually the sounds and scents indicated that lions were moving upon him from all directions, that he was in the center of a steadily converging circle of beasts. Evidently they were so sure of their prey that they were making no effort toward stealth, for he heard twigs crack beneath their feet, and the brushing of their bodies against the vegetation through which they forced their way.
He had only partially eaten his kill when he suddenly noticed movement in the brush not far from him and downwind. A moment later, he caught the scent of Numa coming from the opposite direction, and soon he heard the soft sounds of padded feet and bodies brushing against leafy branches on either side. The ape-man smiled. What did they think he was, to be surprised by such clumsy stalkers? Gradually, the sounds and scents made it clear that lions were closing in on him from all sides, and he was at the center of a tightening circle of beasts. Apparently, they were so confident in their hunt that they weren't trying to be stealthy at all, as he heard twigs snapping under their feet and the rustling of their bodies pushing through the vegetation.
He wondered what could have brought them. It seemed unreasonable to believe that the cries of the birds and the monkeys should have summoned them, and yet, if not, it was indeed a remarkable coincidence. His judgment told him that the death of a single bird in this forest which teemed with birds could scarce be of sufficient moment to warrant that which followed. Yet even in the face of reason and past experience he found that the whole affair perplexed him.
He wondered what could have brought them. It seemed unreasonable to think that the cries of the birds and monkeys could have summoned them, and yet, if not, it was quite a coincidence. His judgment told him that the death of just one bird in this forest filled with birds couldn’t be important enough to warrant what followed. Yet, despite reason and past experience, he found the whole situation confusing.
He stood in the center of the trail awaiting the coming of the lions and wondering what would be the method of their attack or if they would indeed attack. Presently a maned lion came into view along the trail below him. At sight of him the lion halted. The beast was similar to those that had attacked him earlier in the day, a trifle larger and a trifle darker than the lions of his native jungles, but neither so large nor so black as Numa of the pit.
He stood in the middle of the trail, waiting for the lions to show up and wondering how they would attack or if they would even attack at all. Soon, a maned lion appeared along the trail below him. When the lion spotted him, it stopped. The creature was like those that had attacked him earlier in the day, slightly larger and a bit darker than the lions from his home jungles, but not as big or as black as Numa from the pit.
Presently he distinguished the outlines of other lions in the surrounding brush and among the trees. Each of them halted as it came within sight of the ape-man and there they stood regarding him in silence. Tarzan wondered how long it would be before they charged and while he waited he resumed his feeding, though with every sense constantly alert.
Currently, he could make out the shapes of other lions in the nearby bushes and trees. Each one stopped as soon as it spotted the ape-man, standing still as they stared at him in silence. Tarzan wondered how long it would be before they charged, and while he waited, he went back to eating, though he stayed fully aware and alert.
One by one the lions lay down, but always their faces were toward him and their eyes upon him. There had been no growling and no roaring—just the quiet drawing of the silent circle about him. It was all so entirely foreign to anything that Tarzan ever before had seen lions do that it irritated him so that presently, having finished his repast, he fell to making insulting remarks to first one and then another of the lions, after the habit he had learned from the apes of his childhood.
One by one, the lions lay down, but their faces were always toward him, and their eyes were on him. There was no growling or roaring—just the quiet formation of a silent circle around him. It was so completely different from anything Tarzan had ever seen lions do before that it irritated him. Eventually, after he finished eating, he started making insulting comments to one lion after another, using the behavior he had learned from the apes in his childhood.
"Dango, eater of carrion," he called them, and he compared them most unfavorably with Histah, the snake, the most loathed and repulsive creature of the jungle. Finally he threw handfuls of earth at them and bits of broken twigs, and then the lions growled and bared their fangs, but none of them advanced.
"Dango, scavengers," he called them, comparing them unfavorably to Histah, the snake, the most hated and disgusting creature of the jungle. In frustration, he threw handfuls of dirt and broken twigs at them, causing the lions to growl and show their teeth, but none of them moved forward.
"Cowards," Tarzan taunted them. "Numa with a heart of Bara, the deer." He told them who he was, and after the manner of the jungle folk he boasted as to the horrible things he would do to them, but the lions only lay and watched him.
"Cowards," Tarzan mocked them. "Numa with the heart of a deer." He introduced himself and, in true jungle fashion, bragged about the terrible things he would do to them, but the lions just lay there and watched him.
It must have been a half hour after their coming that Tarzan caught in the distance along the trail the sound of footsteps approaching. They were the footsteps of a creature who walked upon two legs, and though Tarzan could catch no scent spoor from that direction he knew that a man was approaching. Nor had he long to wait before his judgment was confirmed by the appearance of a man who halted in the trail directly behind the first lion that Tarzan had seen.
It must have been about half an hour after they arrived when Tarzan heard footsteps in the distance along the trail. They belonged to a creature walking on two legs, and even though Tarzan couldn’t smell anything from that direction, he knew a man was coming. He didn't have to wait long before his instincts were confirmed by the sight of a man who stopped in the trail right behind the first lion that Tarzan had seen.
At sight of the newcomer the ape-man realized that here was one similar to those who had given off the unfamiliar scent spoor that he had detected the previous night, and he saw that not only in the matter of scent did the man differ from other human beings with whom Tarzan was familiar.
At the sight of the newcomer, the ape-man realized that this person was similar to those who had given off the strange scent he had noticed the night before, and he saw that the man was different from other humans Tarzan knew, not just in terms of scent.
The fellow was strongly built with skin of a leathery appearance, like parchment yellowed with age. His hair, which was coal black and three or four inches in length, grew out stiffly at right angles to his scalp. His eyes were close set and the irises densely black and very small, so that the white of the eyeball showed around them. The man's face was smooth except for a few straggly hairs on his chin and upper lip. The nose was aquiline and fine, but the hair grew so far down on the forehead as to suggest a very low and brutal type. The upper lip was short and fine while the lower lip was rather heavy and inclined to be pendulous, the chin being equally weak. Altogether the face carried the suggestion of a once strong and handsome countenance entirely altered by physical violence or by degraded habits and thoughts. The man's arms were long, though not abnormally so, while his legs were short, though straight.
The guy was stocky with skin that looked leathery, like parchment that had yellowed with age. His hair was coal black, about three or four inches long, and stuck out stiffly from his scalp at right angles. His eyes were close together with very small, dense black irises, making the whites of his eyes stand out. The man’s face was mostly smooth, except for a few stray hairs on his chin and upper lip. He had a fine, aquiline nose, but his hair extended down his forehead, giving him a rather low and brutish look. His upper lip was short and thin, while his lower lip was heavy and droopy, with a similarly weak chin. Overall, his face suggested that he had once been strong and handsome but had been completely changed by physical violence or degraded habits and thoughts. His arms were long, though not excessively so, while his legs were short but straight.
He was clothed in tight-fitting nether garments and a loose, sleeveless tunic that fell just below his hips, while his feet were shod in soft-soled sandals, the wrappings of which extended halfway to his knees, closely resembling a modern spiral military legging. He carried a short, heavy spear, and at his side swung a weapon that at first so astonished the ape-man that he could scarcely believe the evidence of his senses—a heavy saber in a leather-covered scabbard. The man's tunic appeared to have been fabricated upon a loom—it was certainly not made of skins, while the garments that covered his legs were quite as evidently made from the hides of rodents.
He was wearing tight-fitting pants and a loose, sleeveless tunic that hung just below his hips, and his feet were in soft-soled sandals with wrappings that went halfway up to his knees, looking a lot like modern military leggings. He carried a short, heavy spear, and at his side swung a weapon that initially shocked the ape-man so much that he could barely believe what he was seeing—a heavy saber in a leather-covered sheath. The man's tunic looked like it was made on a loom—it definitely wasn't made of animal skins, while the pants covering his legs were clearly made from rodent hides.
Tarzan noted the utter unconcern with which the man approached the lions, and the equal indifference of Numa to him. The fellow paused for a moment as though appraising the ape-man and then pushed on past the lions, brushing against the tawny hide as he passed him in the trail.
Tarzan noticed how completely unconcerned the man was as he walked towards the lions, and how Numa seemed equally indifferent to him. The guy stopped for a moment, as if sizing up the ape-man, and then continued past the lions, brushing against the tawny fur as he moved along the trail.
About twenty feet from Tarzan the man stopped, addressing the former in a strange jargon, no syllable of which was intelligible to the Tarmangani. His gestures indicated numerous references to the lions surrounding them, and once he touched his spear with the forefinger of his left hand and twice he struck the saber at his hip.
About twenty feet from Tarzan, the man stopped and spoke to him in a strange language that was completely unintelligible to the Tarmangani. His gestures seemed to reference the lions around them multiple times, and at one point, he touched his spear with the index finger of his left hand and then struck the saber at his hip twice.
While he spoke Tarzan studied the fellow closely, with the result that there fastened itself upon his mind a strange conviction—that the man who addressed him was what might only be described as a rational maniac. As the thought came to the ape-man he could not but smile, so paradoxical the description seemed. Yet a closer study of the man's features, carriage, and the contour of his head carried almost incontrovertibly the assurance that he was insane, while the tones of his voice and his gestures resembled those of a sane and intelligent mortal.
While he spoke, Tarzan watched the guy closely, and it struck him that the man addressing him could only be described as a rational maniac. The thought made him smile, as the description seemed so paradoxical. Yet, a closer look at the man's features, posture, and the shape of his head almost certainly suggested he was insane, while the tone of his voice and his gestures were similar to those of a sane and intelligent person.
Presently the man had concluded his speech and appeared to be waiting questioningly Tarzan's reply. The ape-man spoke to the other first in the language of the great apes, but he soon saw that the words carried no conviction to his listener. Then with equal futility he tried several native dialects but to none of these did the man respond.
Presently, the man had finished his speech and seemed to be waiting for Tarzan's response with a questioning look. The ape-man first spoke to the other in the language of the great apes, but he soon realized that his words didn't resonate with his listener. Then, with no better luck, he tried several native dialects, but the man didn’t respond to any of them.
By this time Tarzan began to lose patience. He had wasted sufficient time by the road, and as he had never depended much upon speech in the accomplishment of his ends, he now raised his spear and advanced toward the other. This, evidently, was a language common to both, for instantly the fellow raised his own weapon and at the same time a low call broke from his lips, a call which instantly brought to action every lion in the hitherto silent circle. A volley of roars shattered the silence of the forest and simultaneously lions sprang into view upon all sides as they closed in rapidly upon their quarry. The man who had called them stepped back, his teeth bared in a mirthless grin.
By this time, Tarzan started to lose his patience. He had spent enough time by the road, and since he had never relied much on words to get things done, he raised his spear and moved toward the other man. This was clearly a language they both understood, as the guy immediately raised his own weapon and simultaneously let out a low call, which instantly stirred every lion in the previously silent circle. A chorus of roars shattered the quiet of the forest, and lions suddenly appeared all around, quickly closing in on their target. The man who had called them stepped back, his teeth showing in a cold grin.
It was then that Tarzan first noticed that the fellow's upper canines were unusually long and exceedingly sharp. It was just a flashing glimpse he got of them as he leaped agilely from the ground and, to the consternation of both the lions and their master, disappeared in the foliage of the lower terrace, flinging back over his shoulder as he swung rapidly away: "I am Tarzan of the Apes; mighty hunter; mighty fighter! None in the jungle more powerful, none more cunning than Tarzan!"
It was then that Tarzan first saw that the guy's upper canines were unusually long and extremely sharp. He only caught a quick glimpse of them as he jumped nimbly from the ground and, to the shock of both the lions and their owner, vanished into the leaves of the lower terrace, shouting back over his shoulder as he swung swiftly away: "I am Tarzan of the Apes; great hunter; great fighter! No one in the jungle is more powerful, no one more clever than Tarzan!"
A short distance beyond the point at which they had surrounded him, Tarzan came to the trail again and sought for the spoor of Bertha Kircher and Lieutenant Smith-Oldwick. He found them quickly and continued upon his search for the two. The spoor lay directly along the trail for another half-mile when the way suddenly debouched from the forest into open land and there broke upon the astonished view of the ape-man the domes and minarets of a walled city.
A short distance past where they had trapped him, Tarzan found the path again and looked for the tracks of Bertha Kircher and Lieutenant Smith-Oldwick. He spotted them quickly and carried on searching for the two. The tracks followed the path for another half-mile when suddenly the trail opened up from the forest into a wide area, revealing the domes and minarets of a walled city in front of the astonished ape-man.
Directly before him in the wall nearest him Tarzan saw a low-arched gateway to which a well-beaten trail led from that which he had been following. In the open space between the forest and the city walls, quantities of garden stuff was growing, while before him at his feet, in an open man-made ditch, ran a stream of water! The plants in the garden were laid out in well-spaced, symmetrical rows and appeared to have been given excellent attention and cultivation. Tiny streams were trickling between the rows from the main ditch before him and at some distance to his right he could see people at work among the plants.
Directly in front of him, Tarzan noticed a low-arched gateway, with a well-worn path leading to it from the trail he had been following. In the open area between the forest and the city walls, there were lots of garden plants growing. Right at his feet, a stream of water flowed through a man-made ditch! The garden plants were arranged in neat, symmetrical rows and looked like they had been taken care of very well. Tiny streams were flowing between the rows from the main ditch in front of him, and a bit to his right, he could see people working among the plants.
The city wall appeared to be about thirty feet in height, its plastered expanse unbroken except by occasional embrasures. Beyond the wall rose the domes of several structures and numerous minarets dotted the sky line of the city. The largest and central dome appeared to be gilded, while others were red, or blue, or yellow. The architecture of the wall itself was of uncompromising simplicity. It was of a cream shade and appeared to be plastered and painted. At its base was a line of well-tended shrubs and at some distance towards its eastern extremity it was vine covered to the top.
The city wall looked to be about thirty feet tall, its smooth surface interrupted only by a few openings. Beyond the wall, several domes of buildings rose up, and numerous minarets dotted the city skyline. The largest dome seemed to be covered in gold, while others were red, blue, or yellow. The architecture of the wall was striking in its simplicity. It had a creamy color and seemed to be plastered and painted. At the bottom, there was a row of well-cared-for shrubs, and farther along towards the eastern end, it was covered in vines all the way to the top.
As he stood in the shadow of the trail, his keen eyes taking in every detail of the picture before him, he became aware of the approach of a party in his rear and there was borne to him the scent of the man and the lions whom he had so readily escaped. Taking to the trees Tarzan moved a short distance to the west and, finding a comfortable crotch at the edge of the forest where he could watch the trail leading through the gardens to the city gate, he awaited the return of his would-be captors. And soon they came—the strange man followed by the pack of great lions. Like dogs they moved along behind him down the trail among the gardens to the gate.
As he stood in the shadow of the path, his sharp eyes taking in every detail of the scene before him, he noticed a group approaching from behind, and he caught the scent of the man and the lions he had just escaped. Climbing into the trees, Tarzan moved a short distance to the west and found a comfortable spot at the edge of the forest where he could keep an eye on the path leading through the gardens to the city gate. He waited for his would-be captors to return. Soon enough, they arrived—the strange man followed by a pack of large lions. They moved along behind him down the path through the gardens to the gate like dogs.
Here the man struck upon the panels of the door with the butt of his spear, and when it opened in response to his signal he passed in with his lions. Beyond the open door Tarzan, from his distant perch, caught but a fleeting glimpse of life within the city, just enough to indicate that there were other human creatures who abode there, and then the door closed.
Here, the man hit the door with the end of his spear, and when it opened in response to his signal, he walked in with his lions. From his distant spot, Tarzan caught a brief glimpse of life inside the city, just enough to show that there were other people living there, and then the door closed.
Through that door he knew that the girl and the man whom he sought to succor had been taken into the city. What fate lay in store for them or whether already it had been meted out to them he could not even guess, nor where, within that forbidding wall, they were incarcerated he could not know. But of one thing he was assured: that if he were to aid them he could not do it from outside the wall. He must gain entrance to the city first, nor did he doubt, that once within, his keen senses would eventually reveal the whereabouts of those whom he sought.
Through that door, he knew the girl and the man he wanted to help had been taken into the city. He couldn't guess what fate awaited them or if it had already befallen them, nor could he know where, within that intimidating wall, they were locked away. But he was certain of one thing: if he was going to help them, he couldn’t do it from outside the wall. He had to get into the city first, and he had no doubt that once inside, his sharp instincts would eventually lead him to the ones he was searching for.
The low sun was casting long shadows across the gardens when Tarzan saw the workers returning from the eastern field. A man came first, and as he came he lowered little gates along the large ditch of running water, shutting off the streams that had run between the rows of growing plants; and behind him came other men carrying burdens of fresh vegetables in great woven baskets upon their shoulders. Tarzan had not realized that there had been so many men working in the field, but now as he sat there at the close of the day he saw a procession filing in from the east, bearing the tools and the produce back into the city.
The low sun was casting long shadows across the gardens when Tarzan saw the workers coming back from the eastern field. A man led the way, and as he walked, he lowered small gates along the large ditch of flowing water, cutting off the streams that had run between the rows of growing plants. Following him were other men carrying loads of fresh vegetables in large woven baskets on their shoulders. Tarzan hadn't realized there were so many men working in the field, but now, as he sat there at the end of the day, he saw a line of them making their way in from the east, bringing back tools and produce into the city.
And then, to gain a better view, the ape-man ascended to the topmost branches of a tall tree where he overlooked the nearer wall. From this point of vantage he saw that the city was long and narrow, and that while the outer walls formed a perfect rectangle, the streets within were winding. Toward the center of the city there appeared to be a low, white building around which the larger edifices of the city had been built, and here, in the fast-waning light, Tarzan thought that between two buildings he caught the glint of water, but of that he was not sure. His experience of the centers of civilization naturally inclined him to believe that this central area was a plaza about which the larger buildings were grouped and that there would be the most logical place to search first for Bertha Kircher and her companion.
And then, to get a better view, the ape-man climbed to the highest branches of a tall tree where he could see the nearby wall. From this vantage point, he noticed that the city was long and narrow, with the outer walls forming a perfect rectangle while the streets inside were winding. Toward the center of the city, there seemed to be a low, white building surrounded by the larger structures, and here, in the quickly fading light, Tarzan thought he spotted a glint of water between two buildings, but he wasn’t sure. His experiences in the centers of civilization led him to believe that this central area was a plaza with the bigger buildings surrounding it, and that would be the most logical place to start looking for Bertha Kircher and her companion.
And then the sun went down and darkness quickly enveloped the city—a darkness that was accentuated for the ape-man rather than relieved by the artificial lights which immediately appeared in many of the windows visible to him.
And then the sun set, and darkness quickly covered the city—a darkness that felt even more intense for the ape-man instead of being softened by the artificial lights that instantly lit up many of the windows he could see.
Tarzan had noticed that the roofs of most of the buildings were flat, the few exceptions being those of what he imagined to be the more pretentious public structures. How this city had come to exist in this forgotten part of unexplored Africa the ape-man could not conceive. Better than another, he realized something of the unsolved secrets of the Great Dark Continent, enormous areas of which have as yet been untouched by the foot of civilized man. Yet he could scarce believe that a city of this size and apparently thus well constructed could have existed for the generations that it must have been there, without intercourse with the outer world. Even though it was surrounded by a trackless desert waste, as he knew it to be, he could not conceive that generation after generation of men could be born and die there without attempting to solve the mysteries of the world beyond the confines of their little valley.
Tarzan had noticed that most of the buildings had flat roofs, with a few exceptions for what he figured were the more impressive public structures. He couldn't imagine how this city had come to be in this forgotten part of unexplored Africa. Better than most, he understood some of the unsolved mysteries of the Great Dark Continent, where vast areas still hadn't been touched by civilized humans. Yet, it was hard for him to believe that a city of this size and seemingly well-built could have existed for so many generations without any contact with the outside world. Even though it was surrounded by an endless desert wasteland, as he knew it was, he couldn’t wrap his head around the idea that generation after generation of people could be born and die there without trying to understand the mysteries of the world beyond their little valley.
And yet, here was the city surrounded by tilled land and filled with people!
And yet, here was the city surrounded by cultivated land and filled with people!
With the coming of night there arose throughout the jungle the cries of the great cats, the voice of Numa blended with that of Sheeta, and the thunderous roars of the great males reverberated through the forest until the earth trembled, and from within the city came the answering roars of other lions.
With night falling, the jungle echoed with the cries of the big cats. Numa's voice mixed with Sheeta's, and the booming roars of the dominant males resonated through the forest, making the ground shake. From the city came the response of other lions roaring back.
A simple plan for gaining entrance to the city had occurred to Tarzan, and now that darkness had fallen he set about to put it into effect. Its success hinged entirely upon the strength of the vines he had seen surmounting the wall toward the east. In this direction he made his way, while from out of the forest about him the cries of the flesh-eaters increased in volume and ferocity. A quarter of a mile intervened between the forest and the city wall—a quarter of a mile of cultivated land unrelieved by a single tree. Tarzan of the Apes realized his limitations and so he knew that it would undoubtedly spell death for him to be caught in the open space by one of the great black lions of the forest if, as he had already surmised, Numa of the pit was a specimen of the forest lion of the valley.
A straightforward plan to get into the city had come to Tarzan, and now that night had fallen, he set out to make it happen. Its success depended entirely on the strength of the vines he had noticed climbing over the wall to the east. He headed in that direction while the sounds of the flesh-eaters around him grew louder and more intense. There was a quarter of a mile between the forest and the city wall—a quarter of a mile of farmland without a single tree. Tarzan of the Apes understood his limitations, so he knew it would likely mean death if he got caught in that open space by one of the great black lions of the forest, especially if, as he suspected, Numa of the pit was one of the forest lions in the valley.
He must, therefore, depend entirely upon his cunning and his speed, and upon the chance that the vine would sustain his weight.
He must, therefore, rely completely on his cleverness and quickness, and on the possibility that the vine would hold his weight.
He moved through the middle terrace, where the way is always easiest, until he reached a point opposite the vine-clad portion of the wall, and there he waited, listening and scenting, until he might assure himself that there was no Numa within his immediate vicinity, or, at least, none that sought him. And when he was quite sure that there was no lion close by in the forest, and none in the clearing between himself and the wall, he dropped lightly to the ground and moved stealthily out into the open.
He walked through the middle terrace, where the path is always the easiest, until he reached a spot across from the vine-covered part of the wall, and there he paused, listening and smelling, until he was sure that there was no Numa nearby, or at least none that was looking for him. And when he was completely certain that there were no lions close in the forest, and none in the open space between him and the wall, he gently dropped to the ground and quietly stepped out into the open.
The rising moon, just topping the eastern cliffs, cast its bright rays upon the long stretch of open garden beneath the wall. And, too, it picked out in clear relief for any curious eyes that chanced to be cast in that direction, the figure of the giant ape-man moving across the clearing. It was only chance, of course, that a great lion hunting at the edge of the forest saw the figure of the man halfway between the forest and the wall. Suddenly there broke upon Tarzan's ears a menacing sound. It was not the roar of a hungry lion, but the roar of a lion in rage, and, as he glanced back in the direction from which the sound came, he saw a huge beast moving out from the shadow of the forest toward him.
The rising moon, just peeking over the eastern cliffs, sent its bright rays down onto the long stretch of open garden beneath the wall. It also highlighted the figure of the giant ape-man moving across the clearing for any curious onlookers in that direction. It was just coincidence that a great lion hunting at the edge of the forest spotted the man halfway between the forest and the wall. Suddenly, Tarzan heard a threatening sound. It wasn't the roar of a hungry lion, but the roar of one in rage, and as he looked back toward the source of the sound, he saw a massive beast stepping out from the shadows of the forest toward him.
Even in the moonlight and at a distance Tarzan saw that the lion was huge; that it was indeed another of the black-maned monsters similar to Numa of the pit. For an instant he was impelled to turn and fight, but at the same time the thought of the helpless girl imprisoned in the city flashed through his brain and, without an instant's hesitation, Tarzan of the Apes wheeled and ran for the wall. Then it was that Numa charged.
Even in the moonlight and from a distance, Tarzan saw that the lion was massive; it was another one of the black-maned beasts like Numa from the pit. For a moment, he felt urged to turn and fight, but then the thought of the helpless girl trapped in the city crossed his mind, and without a second's pause, Tarzan of the Apes turned and ran toward the wall. That was when Numa charged.
Numa, the lion, can run swiftly for a short distance, but he lacks endurance. For the period of an ordinary charge he can cover the ground with greater rapidity possibly than any other creature in the world. Tarzan, on the other hand, could run at great speed for long distances, though never as rapidly as Numa when the latter charged.
Numa, the lion, can sprint quickly for a short distance, but he doesn't have much stamina. During a typical charge, he can move faster than possibly any other creature in the world. Tarzan, on the other hand, could run fast over long distances, although he was never as fast as Numa when the lion charged.
The question of his fate, then, rested upon whether, with his start he could elude Numa for a few seconds; and, if so, if the lion would then have sufficient stamina remaining to pursue him at a reduced gait for the balance of the distance to the wall.
The question of his fate, then, depended on whether he could get away from Numa for a few seconds at the start; and if so, whether the lion would have enough energy left to chase him at a slower pace for the rest of the distance to the wall.
Never before, perhaps, was staged a more thrilling race, and yet it was run with only the moon and stars to see. Alone and in silence the two beasts sped across the moonlit clearing. Numa gained with appalling rapidity upon the fleeing man, yet at every bound Tarzan was nearer to the vine-clad wall. Once the ape-man glanced back. Numa was so close upon him that it seemed inevitable that at the next bound he should drag him down; so close was he that the ape-man drew his knife as he ran, that he might at least give a good account of himself in the last moments of his life.
Never before, maybe, was there a more exciting race, and yet it took place with only the moon and stars as witnesses. Alone and in silence, the two animals raced across the moonlit clearing. Numa caught up with terrifying speed to the fleeing man, yet with every leap, Tarzan was closer to the vine-covered wall. Once, the ape-man glanced back. Numa was so close that it seemed certain he would catch him on the next jump; so near that the ape-man pulled out his knife as he ran, ready to at least put up a fight in the final moments of his life.
But Numa had reached the limit of his speed and endurance. Gradually he dropped behind but he did not give up the pursuit, and now Tarzan realized how much hinged upon the strength of the untested vines.
But Numa had hit the limit of his speed and stamina. Gradually he fell behind, but he didn’t give up the chase, and now Tarzan understood how much depended on the strength of the untested vines.
If, at the inception of the race, only Goro and the stars had looked down upon the contestants, such was not the case at its finish, since from an embrasure near the summit of the wall two close-set black eyes peered down upon the two. Tarzan was a dozen yards ahead of Numa when he reached the wall. There was no time to stop and institute a search for sturdy stems and safe handholds. His fate was in the hands of chance and with the realization he gave a final spurt and running catlike up the side of the wall among the vines, sought with his hands for something that would sustain his weight. Below him Numa leaped also.
If, at the start of the race, only Goro and the stars had watched the contestants, that wasn’t the case at the end. From a gap near the top of the wall, two intense black eyes watched the two below. Tarzan was a dozen yards ahead of Numa when he reached the wall. There was no time to stop and look for sturdy branches and safe handholds. His fate was left to chance, and with that thought, he gave one last push, running like a cat up the side of the wall among the vines, searching for something to support his weight. Below him, Numa jumped too.
Chapter XVIII
Among the Maniacs
As the lions swarmed over her protectors, Bertha Kircher shrank back in the cave in a momentary paralysis of fright super-induced, perhaps, by the long days of terrific nerve strain which she had undergone.
As the lions overwhelmed her protectors, Bertha Kircher retreated into the cave, momentarily paralyzed by fear, possibly due to the long days of intense stress she had experienced.
Mingled with the roars of the lions had been the voices of men, and presently out of the confusion and turmoil she felt the near presence of a human being, and then hands reached forth and seized her. It was dark and she could see but little, nor any sign of the English officer or the ape-man. The man who seized her kept the lions from her with what appeared to be a stout spear, the haft of which he used to beat off the beasts. The fellow dragged her from the cavern the while he shouted what appeared to be commands and warnings to the lions.
Amidst the roars of the lions, she could hear the voices of men, and soon, through the chaos, she sensed the close presence of another human. Suddenly, hands reached out and grabbed her. It was dark, and she could barely see anything, nor could she spot the English officer or the ape-man. The man who took hold of her kept the lions at bay with what looked like a sturdy spear, using the handle to fend off the beasts. He pulled her out of the cave while shouting what sounded like commands and warnings to the lions.
Once out upon the light sands of the bottom of the gorge objects became more distinguishable, and then she saw that there were other men in the party and that two half led and half carried the stumbling figure of a third, whom she guessed must be Smith-Oldwick.
Once they were on the bright sands at the bottom of the gorge, things became clearer, and she noticed that there were other men in the group. Two of them were half leading and half carrying a stumbling figure of a third man, whom she guessed must be Smith-Oldwick.
For a time the lions made frenzied efforts to reach the two captives but always the men with them succeeded in beating them off. The fellows seemed utterly unafraid of the great beasts leaping and snarling about them, handling them much the same as one might handle a pack of obstreperous dogs. Along the bed of the old watercourse that once ran through the gorge they made their way, and as the first faint lightening of the eastern horizon presaged the coming dawn, they paused for a moment upon the edge of a declivity, which appeared to the girl in the strange light of the waning night as a vast, bottomless pit; but, as their captors resumed their way and the light of the new day became stronger, she saw that they were moving downward toward a dense forest.
For a while, the lions made desperate attempts to reach the two captives, but the men with them always managed to fend them off. The guys seemed completely unbothered by the huge beasts jumping and growling around them, handling them much like you would a bunch of unruly dogs. They made their way along the path of the old watercourse that used to flow through the gorge, and as the first light of dawn began to brighten the eastern horizon, they stopped for a moment at the edge of a slope, which looked to the girl in the dim light of the fading night like a huge, bottomless pit. But as their captors moved on and the morning light grew stronger, she realized they were heading down toward a thick forest.
Once beneath the over-arching trees all was again Cimmerian darkness, nor was the gloom relieved until the sun finally arose beyond the eastern cliffs, when she saw that they were following what appeared to be a broad and well-beaten game trail through a forest of great trees. The ground was unusually dry for an African forest and the underbrush, while heavily foliaged, was not nearly so rank and impenetrable as that which she had been accustomed to find in similar woods. It was as though the trees and the bushes grew in a waterless country, nor was there the musty odor of decaying vegetation or the myriads of tiny insects such as are bred in damp places.
Once they were under the sprawling trees, everything turned into a pitch-black darkness again, and it wasn't until the sun finally rose over the eastern cliffs that she realized they were following what looked like a wide and well-used game trail through a forest of large trees. The ground was surprisingly dry for an African forest, and the underbrush, although thick with leaves, wasn’t nearly as dense and impenetrable as what she had experienced in similar woods. It was as if the trees and bushes thrived in a dry land, and there was no musty smell of rotting vegetation or the countless tiny insects that usually live in wet areas.
As they proceeded and the sun rose higher, the voices of the arboreal jungle life rose in discordant notes and loud chattering about them. Innumerable monkeys scolded and screamed in the branches overhead, while harsh-voiced birds of brilliant plumage darted hither and thither. She noticed presently that their captors often cast apprehensive glances in the direction of the birds and on numerous occasions seemed to be addressing the winged denizens of the forest.
As they moved forward and the sun climbed higher, the sounds of the jungle came alive with loud and chaotic chatter all around them. Countless monkeys yelled and screeched in the trees above, while brightly colored, harsh-sounding birds flew back and forth. She soon realized that their captors frequently glanced nervously at the birds and often seemed to be speaking to the winged creatures of the forest.
One incident made a marked impression on her. The man who immediately preceded her was a fellow of powerful build, yet, when a brilliantly colored parrot swooped downward toward him, he dropped upon his knees and covering his face with his arms bent forward until his head touched the ground. Some of the others looked at him and laughed nervously. Presently the man glanced upward and seeing that the bird had gone, rose to his feet and continued along the trail.
One incident really stuck with her. The guy right before her was solidly built, but when a brightly colored parrot suddenly swooped down at him, he dropped to his knees and covered his face with his arms, bending forward until his head touched the ground. Some of the others looked at him and laughed uncomfortably. After a bit, the man looked up, saw that the bird was gone, got back on his feet, and carried on down the trail.
It was at this brief halt that Smith-Oldwick was brought to her side by the men who had been supporting him. He had been rather badly mauled by one of the lions; but was now able to walk alone, though he was extremely weak from shock and loss of blood.
It was at this short pause that the men who had been helping Smith-Oldwick brought him to her side. He had been pretty badly injured by one of the lions; but he was now able to walk on his own, even though he was very weak from shock and blood loss.
"Pretty mess, what?" he remarked with a wry smile, indicating his bloody and disheveled state.
"Pretty messy, huh?" he said with a wry smile, pointing to his bloody and disheveled appearance.
"It is terrible," said the girl. "I hope you are not suffering."
"It’s awful," the girl said. "I hope you’re not in pain."
"Not as much as I should have expected," he replied, "but I feel as weak as a fool. What sort of creatures are these beggars, anyway?"
"Not as much as I should have expected," he replied, "but I feel as weak as an idiot. What kind of creatures are these beggars, anyway?"
"I don't know," she replied, "there is something terribly uncanny about their appearance."
"I don't know," she replied, "there's something really weird about how they look."
The man regarded one of their captors closely for a moment and then, turning to the girl asked, "Did you ever visit a madhouse?"
The man stared at one of their captors for a moment and then, turning to the girl, asked, "Have you ever been to a mental hospital?"
She looked up at him in quick understanding and with a horrified expression in her eyes. "That's it!" she cried.
She looked up at him with quick understanding and a horrified expression in her eyes. "That's it!" she shouted.
"They have all the earmarks," he said. "Whites of the eyes showing all around the irises, hair growing stiffly erect from the scalp and low down upon the forehead—even their mannerisms and their carriage are those of maniacs."
"They show all the signs," he said. "The whites of their eyes are visible all around the irises, their hair is standing up stiffly from the scalp and down their foreheads—even their gestures and posture are those of crazies."
The girl shuddered.
The girl trembled.
"Another thing about them," continued the Englishman, "that doesn't appear normal is that they are afraid of parrots and utterly fearless of lions."
"Another thing about them," the Englishman continued, "that seems off is that they're scared of parrots but completely unafraid of lions."
"Yes," said the girl; "and did you notice that the birds seem utterly fearless of them—really seem to hold them in contempt? Have you any idea what language they speak?"
"Yes," said the girl, "and did you notice that the birds seem completely unafraid of them—actually seem to look down on them? Do you have any idea what language they speak?"
"No," said the man, "I have been trying to figure that out. It's not like any of the few native dialects of which I have any knowledge."
"No," said the man, "I've been trying to figure that out. It's not like any of the few native dialects I know."
"It doesn't sound at all like the native language," said the girl, "but there is something familiar about it. You know, every now and then I feel that I am just on the verge of understanding what they are saying, or at least that somewhere I have heard their tongue before, but final recognition always eludes me."
"It doesn't sound anything like the native language," said the girl, "but there’s something familiar about it. You know, every now and then I feel like I'm almost on the verge of understanding what they’re saying, or at least I feel like I’ve heard their language before, but I can never quite figure it out."
"I doubt if you ever heard their language spoken," said the man. "These people must have lived in this out-of-the-way valley for ages and even if they had retained the original language of their ancestors without change, which is doubtful, it must be some tongue that is no longer spoken in the outer world."
"I doubt you've ever heard their language," said the man. "These people have probably lived in this remote valley for ages, and even if they had kept the original language of their ancestors unchanged—which is unlikely—it must be a language that's no longer spoken outside of here."
At one point where a stream of water crossed the trail the party halted while the lions and the men drank. They motioned to their captives to drink too, and as Bertha Kircher and Smith-Oldwick, lying prone upon the ground drank from the clear, cool water of the rivulet, they were suddenly startled by the thunderous roar of a lion a short distance ahead of them. Instantly the lions with them set up a hideous response, moving restlessly to and fro with their eyes always either turned in the direction from which the roar had come or toward their masters, against whom the tawny beasts slunk. The men loosened the sabers in their scabbards, the weapons that had aroused Smith-Oldwick's curiosity as they had Tarzan's, and grasped their spears more firmly.
At one point where a stream crossed the trail, the group stopped while the lions and the men drank. They gestured for their captives to drink as well, and while Bertha Kircher and Smith-Oldwick, lying on the ground, sipped the clear, cool water from the stream, they were suddenly jolted by the thunderous roar of a lion just ahead of them. Immediately, the lions with them responded with a terrifying commotion, moving restlessly back and forth, their eyes either fixed on the direction of the roar or glancing nervously at their handlers, against whom the tawny beasts huddled. The men loosened their sabers in their scabbards, the weapons that had piqued Smith-Oldwick's interest just as they had Tarzan's, and gripped their spears more tightly.
Evidently there were lions and lions, and while they evinced no fear of the beasts which accompanied them, it was quite evident that the voice of the newcomer had an entirely different effect upon them, although the men seemed less terrified than the lions. Neither, however, showed any indication of an inclination to flee; on the contrary the entire party advanced along the trail in the direction of the menacing roars, and presently there appeared in the center of the path a black lion of gigantic proportions. To Smith-Oldwick and the girl he appeared to be the same lion that they had encountered at the plane and from which Tarzan had rescued them. But it was not Numa of the pit, although he resembled him closely.
Clearly, there were different kinds of lions, and while they showed no fear of the beasts around them, it was obvious that the voice of the newcomer had a completely different impact on them, even though the men seemed less scared than the lions. Neither party showed any sign of wanting to run away; instead, the whole group moved forward along the trail toward the loud roars, and soon a massive black lion appeared in the middle of the path. To Smith-Oldwick and the girl, he looked like the same lion they had faced on the plain, from which Tarzan had saved them. But this was not Numa from the pit, even though he looked very similar.
The black beast stood directly in the center of the trail lashing his tail and growling menacingly at the advancing party. The men urged on their own beasts, who growled and whined but hesitated to charge. Evidently becoming impatient, and in full consciousness of his might the intruder raised his tail stiffly erect and shot forward. Several of the defending lions made a half-hearted attempt to obstruct his passage, but they might as well have placed themselves in the path of an express train, as hurling them aside the great beast leaped straight for one of the men. A dozen spears were launched at him and a dozen sabers leaped from their scabbards; gleaming, razor-edged weapons they were, but for the instant rendered futile by the terrific speed of the charging beast.
The black beast stood right in the middle of the trail, lashing his tail and growling threateningly at the approaching group. The men urged their own animals forward, which growled and whined but hesitated to charge. Growing impatient and fully aware of his power, the intruder raised his tail straight up and charged ahead. Several of the defending lions made a weak attempt to block his way, but they might as well have stood in front of a speeding train, as the massive beast tossed them aside and leaped straight for one of the men. A dozen spears were thrown at him and a dozen sabers were drawn; they were shiny, sharp weapons, but for that moment, they were useless against the incredible speed of the charging beast.
Two of the spears entering his body but served to further enrage him as, with demoniacal roars, he sprang upon the hapless man he had singled out for his prey. Scarcely pausing in his charge he seized the fellow by the shoulder and, turning quickly at right angles, leaped into the concealing foliage that flanked the trail, and was gone, bearing his victim with him.
Two of the spears pierced his body, but that only fueled his rage as, with terrifying roars, he lunged at the unfortunate man he had chosen as his target. Barely slowing down, he grabbed the guy by the shoulder and, quickly turning to the side, jumped into the thick leaves that lined the path, disappearing with his victim.
So quickly had the whole occurrence transpired that the formation of the little party was scarcely altered. There had been no opportunity for flight, even if it had been contemplated; and now that the lion was gone with his prey the men made no move to pursue him. They paused only long enough to recall the two or three of their lions that had scattered and then resumed the march along the trail.
So quickly had everything happened that the group's makeup was hardly changed. There was no chance to escape, even if they had thought about it; and now that the lion had left with its catch, the men didn't try to follow him. They stopped just long enough to gather two or three of their lions that had strayed before continuing along the path.
"Might be an everyday occurrence from all the effect it has on them," remarked Smith-Oldwick to the girl.
"Might be something that happens all the time given how it affects them," Smith-Oldwick said to the girl.
"Yes," she said. "They seem to be neither surprised nor disconcerted, and evidently they are quite sure that the lion, having got what he came for, will not molest them further."
"Yes," she said. "They don't seem surprised or bothered, and clearly they're confident that the lion, having gotten what it wanted, won't bother them anymore."
"I had thought," said the Englishman, "that the lions of the Wamabo country were about the most ferocious in existence, but they are regular tabby cats by comparison with these big black fellows. Did you ever see anything more utterly fearless or more terribly irresistible than that charge?"
"I thought," said the Englishman, "that the lions of the Wamabo country were some of the fiercest in the world, but they seem like regular house cats compared to these big black guys. Have you ever seen anything more completely fearless or more frighteningly unstoppable than that charge?"
For a while, as they walked side by side, their thoughts and conversation centered upon this latest experience, until the trail emerging from the forest opened to their view a walled city and an area of cultivated land. Neither could suppress an exclamation of surprise.
For a while, as they walked next to each other, their thoughts and conversation focused on this recent experience, until the path coming out of the forest revealed a walled city and farmland. Neither could hold back a gasp of surprise.
"Why, that wall is a regular engineering job," exclaimed Smith-Oldwick.
"Wow, that wall is a real engineering feat," Smith-Oldwick exclaimed.
"And look at the domes and minarets of the city beyond," cried the girl. "There must be a civilized people beyond that wall. Possibly we are fortunate to have fallen into their hands."
"And look at the domes and minarets of the city over there," the girl exclaimed. "There has to be a civilized people beyond that wall. Maybe we're lucky to have ended up in their hands."
Smith-Oldwick shrugged his shoulders. "I hope so," he said, "though I am not at all sure about people who travel about with lions and are afraid of parrots. There must be something wrong with them."
Smith-Oldwick shrugged. "I hope so," he said, "but I'm really not sure about people who travel with lions and are scared of parrots. There has to be something off about that."
The party followed the trail across the field to an arched gateway which opened at the summons of one of their captors, who beat upon the heavy wooden panels with his spear. Beyond, the gate opened into a narrow street which seemed but a continuation of the jungle trail leading from the forest. Buildings on either hand adjoined the wall and fronted the narrow, winding street, which was only visible for a short distance ahead. The houses were practically all two-storied structures, the upper stories flush with the street while the walls of the first story were set back some ten feet, a series of simple columns and arches supporting the front of the second story and forming an arcade on either side of the narrow thoroughfare.
The group followed the path across the field to a curved gateway that opened when one of their captors knocked on the heavy wooden doors with his spear. On the other side, the gate led into a narrow street that felt like a continuation of the jungle path from the forest. Buildings lined both sides of the street, which twisted and turned, only visible for a short distance ahead. Most of the houses were two stories tall, with the upper floors aligned with the street while the lower floors were set back about ten feet. A series of simple columns and arches supported the front of the second story, creating an arcade on either side of the narrow street.
The pathway in the center of the street was unpaved, but the floors of the arcades were cut stone of various shapes and sizes but all carefully fitted and laid without mortar. These floors gave evidence of great antiquity, there being a distinct depression down the center as though the stone had been worn away by the passage of countless sandaled feet during the ages that it had lain there.
The walkway in the middle of the street was dirt, but the floors of the arcades were made of shaped stone in different sizes, all carefully fitted together without any mortar. These floors showed their age, with a noticeable dip in the center as if the stone had been worn down by the countless sandaled feet that had walked over it throughout the years.
There were few people astir at this early hour, and these were of the same type as their captors. At first those whom they saw were only men, but as they went deeper into the city they came upon a few naked children playing in the soft dust of the roadway. Many they passed showed the greatest surprise and curiosity in the prisoners, and often made inquiries of the guards, which the two assumed must have been in relation to themselves, while others appeared not to notice them at all.
There were only a few people awake at this early hour, and they were just like their captors. At first, the only ones they saw were men, but as they ventured further into the city, they stumbled upon a few naked children playing in the soft dust of the road. Many of those they passed looked very surprised and curious about the prisoners, often asking the guards questions, which the two assumed were about them, while others seemed to ignore them completely.
"I wish we could understand their bally language," exclaimed Smith-Oldwick.
"I wish we could understand their crazy language," exclaimed Smith-Oldwick.
"Yes," said the girl, "I would like to ask them what they are going to do with us."
"Yes," the girl said, "I want to ask them what they’re going to do with us."
"That would be interesting," said the man. "I have been doing considerable wondering along that line myself."
"That sounds interesting," said the man. "I've been thinking about that quite a bit myself."
"I don't like the way their canine teeth are filed," said the girl. "It's too suggestive of some of the cannibals I have seen."
"I don't like how their canine teeth are shaped," the girl said. "It reminds me too much of some of the cannibals I’ve seen."
"You don't really believe they are cannibals, do you?" asked the man. "You don't think white people are ever cannibals, do you?"
"You really don't believe they're cannibals, do you?" the man asked. "You don't think white people can be cannibals, do you?"
"Are these people white?" asked the girl.
"Are these people white?" asked the girl.
"They're not Negroes, that's certain," rejoined the man. "Their skin is yellow, but yet it doesn't resemble the Chinese exactly, nor are any of their features Chinese."
"They're not Black people, that's for sure," replied the man. "Their skin is yellow, but it doesn't look exactly like the Chinese, nor do any of their features resemble Chinese features."
It was at this juncture that they caught their first glimpse of a native woman. She was similar in most respects to the men though her stature was smaller and her figure more symmetrical. Her face was more repulsive than that of the men, possibly because of the fact that she was a woman, which rather accentuated the idiosyncrasies of eyes, pendulous lip, pointed tusks and stiff, low-growing hair. The latter was longer than that of the men and much heavier. It hung about her shoulders and was confined by a colored bit of some lacy fabric. Her single garment appeared to be nothing more than a filmy scarf which was wound tightly around her body from below her naked breasts, being caught up some way at the bottom near her ankles. Bits of shiny metal resembling gold, ornamented both the headdress and the skirt. Otherwise the woman was entirely without jewelry. Her bare arms were slender and shapely and her hands and feet well proportioned and symmetrical.
It was at this point that they caught their first glimpse of a native woman. She was similar to the men in many ways, though her height was shorter and her figure more balanced. Her face was less attractive than the men’s, possibly because she was a woman, which highlighted the unique features of her eyes, droopy lip, pointed tusks, and stiff, low-growing hair. Her hair was longer and much thicker than the men’s. It fell around her shoulders and was held back by a colorful piece of some lacy fabric. Her only piece of clothing seemed to be a thin scarf wrapped tightly around her body beneath her bare breasts, secured somehow near her ankles. Bits of shiny metal that resembled gold decorated both her headpiece and the scarf. Otherwise, the woman wore no jewelry. Her bare arms were slender and shapely, and her hands and feet were well-proportioned and symmetrical.
She came close to the party as they passed her, jabbering to the guards who paid no attention to her. The prisoners had an opportunity to observe her closely as she followed at their side for a short distance.
She approached the party as they passed her, chatting to the guards who ignored her. The prisoners had a chance to watch her attentively as she walked beside them for a brief moment.
"The figure of a houri," remarked Smith-Oldwick, "with the face of an imbecile."
"The image of a houri," Smith-Oldwick commented, "with the face of a fool."
The street they followed was intersected at irregular intervals by crossroads which, as they glanced down them, proved to be equally as tortuous as that through which they were being conducted. The houses varied but little in design. Occasionally there were bits of color, or some attempt at other architectural ornamentation. Through open windows and doors they could see that the walls of the houses were very thick and that all apertures were quite small, as though the people had built against extreme heat, which they realized must have been necessary in this valley buried deep in an African desert.
The street they followed was crossed at random points by other roads that, when they looked down them, turned out to be just as winding as the one they were on. The houses were mostly similar in design. Every now and then, there were pops of color or some effort at decorative features. Through open windows and doors, they could see that the walls of the houses were very thick and that all openings were pretty small, as if the residents had constructed them to withstand extreme heat, which they understood must have been essential in this valley deep in the African desert.
Ahead they occasionally caught glimpses of larger structures, and as they approached them, came upon what was evidently a part of the business section of the city. There were numerous small shops and bazaars interspersed among the residences, and over the doors of these were signs painted in characters strongly suggesting Greek origin and yet it was not Greek as both the Englishman and the girl knew.
Ahead, they occasionally caught sight of bigger buildings, and as they got closer, they discovered that they were in a part of the city’s business district. There were many small shops and markets mixed in with the houses, and above the doors of these places were signs painted in letters that strongly resembled Greek, though both the Englishman and the girl recognized it was not Greek.
Smith-Oldwick was by this time beginning to feel more acutely the pain of his wounds and the consequent weakness that was greatly aggravated by loss of blood. He staggered now occasionally and the girl, seeing his plight, offered him her arm.
Smith-Oldwick was starting to feel the pain of his wounds more intensely now, and the weakness from blood loss was making it worse. He stumbled occasionally, and the girl, noticing his condition, offered him her arm.
"No," he expostulated, "you have passed through too much yourself to have any extra burden imposed upon you." But though he made a valiant effort to keep up with their captors he occasionally lagged, and upon one such occasion the guards for the first time showed any disposition toward brutality.
"No," he protested, "you've gone through too much yourself to take on any more burdens." But even though he tried hard to keep pace with their captors, he sometimes fell behind, and on one of those occasions, the guards showed their first signs of brutality.
It was a big fellow who walked at Smith-Oldwick's left. Several times he took hold of the Englishman's arm and pushed him forward not ungently, but when the captive lagged again and again the fellow suddenly, and certainly with no just provocation, flew into a perfect frenzy of rage. He leaped upon the wounded man, striking him viciously with his fists and, bearing him to the ground, grasped his throat in his left hand while with his right he drew his long sharp saber. Screaming terribly he waved the blade above his head.
It was a big guy walking to Smith-Oldwick's left. Several times, he grabbed the Englishman's arm and nudged him forward gently, but when the captive kept falling behind, the guy suddenly exploded into a mad rage without any real reason. He jumped on the wounded man, hitting him brutally with his fists and, taking him down to the ground, grabbed his throat with his left hand while pulling out his long, sharp saber with his right. Screaming wildly, he waved the blade above his head.
The others stopped and turned to look upon the encounter with no particular show of interest. It was as though one of the party had paused to readjust a sandal and the others merely waited until he was ready to march on again.
The others stopped and turned to look at the encounter with no real interest. It was as if one of the group had stopped to fix a sandal, and the others just waited until he was ready to move on again.
But if their captors were indifferent, Bertha Kircher was not. The close-set blazing eyes, the snarling fanged face, and the frightful screams filled her with horror, while the brutal and wanton attack upon the wounded man aroused within her the spirit of protection for the weak that is inherent in all women. Forgetful of everything other than that a weak and defenseless man was being brutally murdered before her eyes, the girl cast aside discretion and, rushing to Smith-Oldwick's assistance, seized the uplifted sword arm of the shrieking creature upon the prostrate Englishman.
But while their captors were uncaring, Bertha Kircher was anything but. The closely set, fiery eyes, the snarling, fang-filled face, and the horrifying screams filled her with dread, while the violent and senseless attack on the injured man sparked a protective instinct within her that all women possess. Forgetting everything else except that a weak and defenseless man was being brutally killed right in front of her, she threw caution to the wind and, rushing to Smith-Oldwick's aid, grabbed the raised sword arm of the screaming monster looming over the fallen Englishman.
Clinging desperately to the fellow she surged backward with all her weight and strength with the result that she overbalanced him and sent him sprawling to the pavement upon his back. In his efforts to save himself he relaxed his grasp upon the grip of his saber which had no sooner fallen to the ground than it was seized upon by the girl. Standing erect beside the prostrate form of the English officer Bertha Kircher, the razor-edged weapon grasped firmly in her hand, faced their captors.
Clinging tightly to her partner, she pushed back with all her weight and strength, causing him to lose his balance and fall onto the pavement on his back. In trying to catch himself, he loosened his hold on his saber, which fell to the ground and was quickly grabbed by the girl. Standing tall beside the fallen English officer Bertha Kircher, the sharp weapon firmly in her hand, she confronted their captors.
She was a brave figure; even her soiled and torn riding togs and disheveled hair detracted nothing from her appearance. The creature she had felled scrambled quickly to his feet and in the instant his whole demeanor changed. From demoniacal rage he became suddenly convulsed with hysterical laughter although it was a question in the girl's mind as to which was the more terrifying. His companions stood looking on with vacuous grins upon their countenances, while he from whom the girl had wrested the weapon leaped up and down shrieking with laughter. If Bertha Kircher had needed further evidence to assure her that they were in the hands of a mentally deranged people the man's present actions would have been sufficient to convince her. The sudden uncontrolled rage and now the equally uncontrolled and mirthless laughter but emphasized the facial attributes of idiocy.
She was a courageous figure; even her dirty and torn riding clothes and messy hair didn’t take away from how she looked. The creature she had taken down quickly got to his feet, and in that moment, his entire demeanor shifted. From furious rage, he suddenly erupted into hysterical laughter, though the girl questioned which was more frightening. His companions stood by with blank grins on their faces, while the one from whom she had snatched the weapon jumped up and down, shrieking with laughter. If Bertha Kircher needed more proof that they were dealing with mentally unstable people, the man's current behavior would have been enough to convince her. The sudden, uncontrolled rage followed by equally unrestrained, hollow laughter only highlighted the idiot-like features on his face.
Suddenly realizing how helpless she was in the event any one of the men should seek to overpower her, and moved by a sudden revulsion of feeling that brought on almost a nausea of disgust, the girl hurled the weapon upon the ground at the feet of the laughing maniac and, turning, kneeled beside the Englishman.
Suddenly aware of how defenseless she was if any of the men tried to overpower her, and feeling a surge of anger that made her almost nauseous with disgust, the girl threw the weapon to the ground at the feet of the laughing maniac and, turning, knelt beside the Englishman.
"It was wonderful of you," he said, "but you shouldn't have done it. Don't antagonize them: I believe that they are all mad and you know they say that one should always humor a madman."
"It was really nice of you," he said, "but you shouldn't have done that. Don't provoke them: I think they're all crazy and you know they say you should always indulge a crazy person."
She shook her head. "I couldn't see him kill you," she said.
She shook her head. "I couldn't watch him kill you," she said.
A sudden light sprang to the man's eyes as he reached out a hand and grasped the girl's fingers. "Do you care a little now?" he asked. "Can't you tell me that you do—just a bit?"
A sudden light appeared in the man's eyes as he reached out and took the girl's fingers. "Do you care a little now?" he asked. "Can't you just tell me that you do—at least a little?"
She did not withdraw her hand from his but she shook her head sadly. "Please don't," she said. "I am sorry that I can only like you very much."
She didn’t pull her hand away from his, but she shook her head sadly. “Please don’t,” she said. “I’m sorry that I can only really like you.”
The light died from his eyes and his fingers relaxed their grasp on hers. "Please forgive me," he murmured. "I intended waiting until we got out of this mess and you were safe among your own people. It must have been the shock or something like that, and seeing you defending me as you did. Anyway, I couldn't help it and really it doesn't make much difference what I say now, does it?"
The light faded from his eyes and his fingers loosened their hold on hers. "Please forgive me," he whispered. "I meant to wait until we were out of this situation and you were safe with your own people. It must have been the shock or something along those lines, and seeing you stand up for me like that. Anyway, I couldn't hold back, and honestly, it doesn't really matter what I say now, does it?"
"What do you mean?" she asked quickly.
"What do you mean?" she asked hurriedly.
He shrugged and smiled ruefully. "I will never leave this city alive," he said. "I wouldn't mention it except that I realize that you must know it as well as I. I was pretty badly torn up by the lion and this fellow here has about finished me. There might be some hope if we were among civilized people, but here with these frightful creatures what care could we get even if they were friendly?"
He shrugged and gave a wry smile. "I’ll never leave this city alive," he said. "I wouldn’t bring it up if I didn’t think you knew it just as well as I do. I was pretty badly hurt by the lion, and this guy here has pretty much done me in. There might be some hope if we were around civilized people, but with these terrifying creatures, what help could we expect even if they were friendly?"
Bertha Kircher knew that he spoke the truth, and yet she could not bring herself to an admission that Smith-Oldwick would die. She was very fond of him, in fact her great regret was that she did not love him, but she knew that she did not.
Bertha Kircher knew he was telling the truth, but she couldn't admit that Smith-Oldwick would die. She cared for him a lot; in fact, her biggest regret was that she didn't love him, but she knew she didn't.
It seemed to her that it could be such an easy thing for any girl to love Lieutenant Harold Percy Smith-Oldwick—an English officer and a gentleman, the scion of an old family and himself a man of ample means, young, good-looking and affable. What more could a girl ask for than to have such a man love her and that she possessed Smith-Oldwick's love there was no doubt in Bertha Kircher's mind.
It seemed to her that it could be such an easy thing for any girl to love Lieutenant Harold Percy Smith-Oldwick—an English officer and a gentleman, from an old family and a man of considerable wealth, young, good-looking, and friendly. What more could a girl want than to have such a man love her? Bertha Kircher had no doubt that she had Smith-Oldwick's love.
She sighed, and then, laying her hand impulsively on his forehead, she whispered, "Do not give up hope, though. Try to live for my sake and for your sake I will try to love you."
She sighed, and then, putting her hand on his forehead, she whispered, "Don’t lose hope, okay? Try to live for my sake, and for your own sake, I’ll try to love you."
It was as though new life had suddenly been injected into the man's veins. His face lightened instantly and with strength that he himself did not know he possessed he rose slowly to his feet, albeit somewhat unsteadily. The girl helped him and supported him after he had arisen.
It was like new life had suddenly flooded into the man's veins. His face brightened immediately, and with a strength he didn’t even know he had, he gradually stood up, though a bit unsteadily. The girl helped him and supported him after he got up.
For the moment they had been entirely unconscious of their surroundings and now as she looked at their captors she saw that they had fallen again into their almost habitual manner of stolid indifference, and at a gesture from one of them the march was resumed as though no untoward incident had occurred.
For the moment, they had been completely unaware of their surroundings, and now as she looked at their captors, she noticed that they had returned to their usual state of cold indifference. With a gesture from one of them, the march resumed as if nothing unusual had happened.
Bertha Kircher experienced a sudden reaction from the momentary exaltation of her recent promise to the Englishman. She knew that she had spoken more for him than for herself but now that it was over she realized, as she had realized the moment before she had spoken, that it was unlikely she would ever care for him the way he wished. But what had she promised? Only that she would try to love him. "And now?" she asked herself.
Bertha Kircher felt a sudden response to the brief thrill of her recent promise to the Englishman. She understood that she had spoken more for him than for herself, but now that it was done, she realized—just as she had realized right before she spoke—that it was unlikely she would ever feel for him the way he desired. But what had she promised? Only that she would try to love him. "And now?" she asked herself.
She realized that there might be little hope of their ever returning to civilization. Even if these people should prove friendly and willing to let them depart in peace, how were they to find their way back to the coast? With Tarzan dead, as she fully believed him after having seen his body lying lifeless at the mouth of the cave when she had been dragged forth by her captor, there seemed no power at their command which could guide them safely.
She understood that there might be little hope of them ever getting back to civilization. Even if these people turned out to be friendly and willing to let them leave in peace, how would they find their way back to the coast? With Tarzan dead, which she was certain of after seeing his lifeless body at the entrance of the cave when her captor pulled her out, there seemed to be no strength or ability that could guide them safely.
The two had scarcely mentioned the ape-man since their capture, for each realized fully what his loss meant to them. They had compared notes relative to those few exciting moments of the final attack and capture and had found that they agreed perfectly upon all that had occurred. Smith-Oldwick had even seen the lion leap upon Tarzan at the instant that the former was awakened by the roars of the charging beasts, and though the night had been dark, he had been able to see that the body of the savage ape-man had never moved from the instant that it had come down beneath the beast.
The two had hardly talked about the ape-man since their capture, as they both understood what his loss meant to them. They had shared their thoughts about those few thrilling moments of the final attack and capture and found that they were completely in agreement about everything that had happened. Smith-Oldwick had even seen the lion pounce on Tarzan the moment he was roused by the roars of the charging animals, and although the night had been dark, he had noticed that the body of the wild ape-man hadn't moved since it went down under the beast.
And so, if at other times within the past few weeks Bertha Kircher had felt that her situation was particularly hopeless, she was now ready to admit that hope was absolutely extinct.
And so, if in the past few weeks Bertha Kircher had ever felt that her situation was particularly hopeless, she was now ready to admit that all hope was completely gone.
The streets were beginning to fill with the strange men and women of this strange city. Sometimes individuals would notice them and seem to take a great interest in them, and again others would pass with vacant stares, seemingly unconscious of their immediate surroundings and paying no attention whatsoever to the prisoners. Once they heard hideous screams up a side street, and looking they saw a man in the throes of a demoniacal outburst of rage, similar to that which they had witnessed in the recent attack upon Smith-Oldwick. This creature was venting his insane rage upon a child which he repeatedly struck and bit, pausing only long enough to shriek at frequent intervals. Finally, just before they passed out of sight the creature raised the limp body of the child high above his head and cast it down with all his strength upon the pavement, and then, wheeling and screaming madly at the top of his lungs, he dashed headlong up the winding street.
The streets were starting to fill with the strange men and women of this unfamiliar city. Sometimes people would notice them and take a keen interest, while at other times others walked by with blank expressions, seemingly unaware of their surroundings and ignoring the prisoners completely. They heard horrifying screams from a side street, and when they looked, they saw a man in a fit of furious rage, similar to what they had witnessed during the recent attack on Smith-Oldwick. This person was unleashing his insane anger on a child, whom he kept hitting and biting, only pausing to scream at regular intervals. Finally, just before they disappeared from view, the man lifted the limp body of the child high above his head and threw it down onto the pavement with all his might, then turned and ran wildly up the twisting street, screaming at the top of his lungs.
Two women and several men had stood looking on at the cruel attack. They were at too great a distance for the Europeans to know whether their facial expressions portrayed pity or rage, but be that as it may, none offered to interfere.
Two women and several men had stood watching the brutal attack. They were too far away for the Europeans to tell if their facial expressions showed pity or anger, but regardless, none of them stepped in to help.
A few yards farther on a hideous hag leaned from a second story window where she laughed and jibbered and made horrid grimaces at all who passed her. Others went their ways apparently attending to whatever duties called them, as soberly as the inhabitants of any civilized community.
A few yards further on, an ugly old woman leaned out of a second-story window, laughing and jabbering, making terrible faces at everyone who passed by. Others continued on their way, seemingly focused on whatever tasks they had, as seriously as the people in any civilized community.
"God," muttered Smith-Oldwick, "what an awful place!"
"God," Smith-Oldwick muttered, "what a terrible place!"
The girl turned suddenly toward him. "You still have your pistol?" she asked him.
The girl suddenly turned to him. "Do you still have your gun?" she asked.
"Yes," he replied. "I tucked it inside my shirt. They did not search me and it was too dark for them to see whether I carried any weapons or not. So I hid it in the hope that I might get through with it."
"Yeah," he responded. "I tucked it inside my shirt. They didn't search me and it was too dark for them to tell if I had any weapons or not. So I hid it, hoping I could get away with it."
She moved closer to him and took hold of his hand. "Save one cartridge for me, please?" she begged.
She moved closer to him and reached for his hand. "Can you save one cartridge for me, please?" she pleaded.
Smith-Oldwick looked down at her and blinked his eyes very rapidly. An unfamiliar and disconcerting moisture had come into them. He had realized, of course, how bad a plight was theirs but somehow it had seemed to affect him only: it did not seem possible that anyone could harm this sweet and beautiful girl.
Smith-Oldwick looked down at her and blinked his eyes quickly. An unfamiliar and unsettling moisture had formed in them. He knew, of course, how dire their situation was, but somehow it had only seemed to impact him: it didn’t feel like anyone could hurt this sweet and beautiful girl.
And that she should have to be destroyed—destroyed by him! It was too hideous: it was unbelievable, unthinkable! If he had been filled with apprehension before, he was doubly perturbed now.
And that she would have to be destroyed—destroyed by him! It was too horrific: it was unimaginable, unfathomable! If he had been anxious before, he was even more troubled now.
"I don't believe I could do it, Bertha," he said.
"I really don't think I can do it, Bertha," he said.
"Not even to save me from something worse?" she asked.
"Not even to protect me from something worse?" she asked.
He shook his head dismally. "I could never do it," he replied.
He shook his head sadly. "I could never do it," he said.
The street that they were following suddenly opened upon a wide avenue, and before them spread a broad and beautiful lagoon, the quiet surface of which mirrored the clear cerulean of the sky. Here the aspect of all their surroundings changed. The buildings were higher and much more pretentious in design and ornamentation. The street itself was paved in mosaics of barbaric but stunningly beautiful design. In the ornamentation of the buildings there was considerable color and a great deal of what appeared to be gold leaf. In all the decorations there was utilized in various ways the conventional figure of the parrot, and, to a lesser extent, that of the lion and the monkey.
The street they were following suddenly opened up to a wide avenue, revealing a broad and beautiful lagoon, its calm surface reflecting the clear blue sky. Here, everything around them changed dramatically. The buildings were taller and much more lavishly designed and decorated. The street itself was paved with mosaics that were strikingly beautiful, albeit a bit wild in style. The buildings were adorned with plenty of color and what looked like gold leaf. The decorations featured the familiar image of a parrot prominently and also included the figures of a lion and a monkey, though to a lesser extent.
Their captors led them along the pavement beside the lagoon for a short distance and then through an arched doorway into one of the buildings facing the avenue. Here, directly within the entrance was a large room furnished with massive benches and tables, many of which were elaborately hand carved with the figures of the inevitable parrot, the lion, or the monkey, the parrot always predominating.
Their captors led them along the walkway next to the lagoon for a short distance and then through an arched doorway into one of the buildings facing the street. Right inside the entrance was a large room filled with heavy benches and tables, many of which were intricately hand-carved with figures of the usual parrot, lion, or monkey, with the parrot always being the most prominent.
Behind one of the tables sat a man who differed in no way that the captives could discover from those who accompanied them. Before this person the party halted, and one of the men who had brought them made what seemed to be an oral report. Whether they were before a judge, a military officer, or a civil dignitary they could not know, but evidently he was a man of authority, for, after listening to whatever recital was being made to him the while he closely scrutinized the two captives, he made a single futile attempt to converse with them and then issued some curt orders to him who had made the report.
Behind one of the tables sat a man who looked exactly like the captives’ escorts. The group stopped in front of him, and one of the men who had brought them made what seemed like an oral report. They couldn't tell if they were in front of a judge, a military officer, or a civil official, but it was clear he was someone important. After listening to the report while closely examining the two captives, he made a brief, unsuccessful attempt to talk to them and then gave some short orders to the man who reported to him.
Almost immediately two of the men approached Bertha Kircher and signaled her to accompany them. Smith-Oldwick started to follow her but was intercepted by one of their guards. The girl stopped then and turned back, at the same time looking at the man at the table and making signs with her hands, indicating, as best she could, that she wished Smith-Oldwick to remain with her, but the fellow only shook his head negatively and motioned to the guards to remove her. The Englishman again attempted to follow but was restrained. He was too weak and helpless even to make an attempt to enforce his wishes. He thought of the pistol inside his shirt and then of the futility of attempting to overcome an entire city with the few rounds of ammunition left to him.
Almost immediately, two of the men approached Bertha Kircher and signaled for her to come with them. Smith-Oldwick tried to follow her, but one of their guards stopped him. The girl paused and turned back, also looking at the man at the table and gesturing with her hands, trying to indicate as best she could that she wanted Smith-Oldwick to stay with her, but the man just shook his head negatively and gestured for the guards to take her away. The Englishman tried to follow again but was held back. He was too weak and helpless to even attempt to assert his wishes. He thought about the pistol tucked inside his shirt and then about the futility of trying to take on an entire city with the few rounds of ammunition he had left.
So far, with the single exception of the attack made upon him, they had no reason to believe that they might not receive fair treatment from their captors, and so he reasoned that it might be wiser to avoid antagonizing them until such a time as he became thoroughly convinced that their intentions were entirely hostile. He saw the girl led from the building and just before she disappeared from his view she turned and waved her hand to him:
So far, except for the attack on him, they had no reason to think they wouldn’t be treated fairly by their captors. So, he figured it would be smarter to avoid upsetting them until he was completely sure their intentions were hostile. He saw the girl being taken out of the building, and just before she vanished from sight, she turned and waved to him.
"Good luck!" she cried, and was gone.
"Good luck!" she shouted, and then she left.
The lions that had entered the building with the party had, during their examination by the man at the table, been driven from the apartment through a doorway behind him. Toward this same doorway two of the men now led Smith-Oldwick. He found himself in a long corridor from the sides of which other doorways opened, presumably into other apartments of the building. At the far end of the corridor he saw a heavy grating beyond which appeared an open courtyard. Into this courtyard the prisoner was conducted, and as he entered it with the two guards he found himself in an opening which was bounded by the inner walls of the building. It was in the nature of a garden in which a number of trees and flowering shrubs grew. Beneath several of the trees were benches and there was a bench along the south wall, but what aroused his most immediate attention was the fact that the lions who had assisted in their capture and who had accompanied them upon the return to the city, lay sprawled about upon the ground or wandered restlessly to and fro.
The lions that had come into the building with the group had, during their inspection by the man at the table, been driven out through a doorway behind him. Now, two of the men were leading Smith-Oldwick toward the same doorway. He found himself in a long hallway with other doorways opening from the sides, likely leading to other rooms in the building. At the far end of the hallway, he noticed a heavy grate beyond which there was an open courtyard. As he entered the courtyard with the two guards, he realized he was in a space surrounded by the building's inner walls. It resembled a garden filled with several trees and flowering shrubs. Beneath some of the trees were benches, and there was a bench along the south wall. However, what caught his attention most was the fact that the lions who had helped capture them and had accompanied them back to the city were sprawled out on the ground or wandering around restlessly.
Just inside the gate his guard halted. The two men exchanged a few words and then turned and reentered the corridor. The Englishman was horror-stricken as the full realization of his terrible plight forced itself upon his tired brain. He turned and seized the grating in an attempt to open it and gain the safety of the corridor, but he found it securely locked against his every effort, and then he called aloud to the retreating figure of the men within. The only reply he received was a high-pitched, mirthless laugh, and then the two passed through the doorway at the far end of the corridor and he was alone with the lions.
Just inside the gate, his guard stopped. The two men exchanged a few words and then turned back into the corridor. The Englishman was terrified as he fully grasped his terrible situation, weighing heavily on his exhausted mind. He turned and grabbed the grating, trying to open it and escape into the corridor, but it was securely locked against all his efforts. Then he called out to the retreating figures of the men inside. The only response he got was a sharp, humorless laugh, and then the two disappeared through the doorway at the far end of the corridor, leaving him alone with the lions.
Chapter XIX
The Queen's Story
In the meantime Bertha Kircher was conducted the length of the plaza toward the largest and most pretentious of the buildings surrounding it. This edifice covered the entire width of one end of the plaza. It was several stories in height, the main entrance being approached by a wide flight of stone steps, the bottom of which was guarded by enormous stone lions, while at the top there were two pedestals flanking the entrance and of the same height, upon each of which was the stone image of a large parrot. As the girl neared these latter images she saw that the capital of each column was hewn into the semblance of a human skull upon which the parrots perched. Above the arched doorway and upon the walls of the building were the figures of other parrots, of lions, and of monkeys. Some of these were carved in bas-relief; others were delineated in mosaics, while still others appeared to have been painted upon the surface of the wall.
In the meantime, Bertha Kircher was led through the plaza toward the largest and most impressive building surrounding it. This structure spanned the entire width of one end of the plaza. It was several stories tall, with a wide flight of stone steps leading up to the main entrance, which was flanked at the bottom by enormous stone lions. At the top, there were two pedestals of equal height on either side of the entrance, each featuring a stone statue of a large parrot. As the girl approached these statues, she noticed that the top of each column was shaped like a human skull, with the parrots perched on them. Above the arched doorway and on the walls of the building were images of other parrots, lions, and monkeys. Some of these were carved in bas-relief, others were depicted in mosaics, and still others seemed to have been painted directly onto the wall.
The colorings of the last were apparently much subdued by age with the result that the general effect was soft and beautiful. The sculpturing and mosaic work were both finely executed, giving evidence of a high degree of artistic skill. Unlike the first building into which she had been conducted, the entrance to which had been doorless, massive doors closed the entrance which she now approached. In the niches formed by the columns which supported the door's arch, and about the base of the pedestals of the stone parrots, as well as in various other places on the broad stairway, lolled some score of armed men. The tunics of these were all of a vivid yellow and upon the breast and back of each was embroidered the figure of a parrot.
The colors of the last structure were clearly faded with age, which made the overall impression soft and beautiful. The sculpting and mosaic work were both expertly done, showing a high level of artistic skill. Unlike the first building she had entered, which had no doors, this entrance was closed off by massive doors. In the niches created by the columns supporting the door’s arch, and around the base of the stone parrots, as well as in several other spots on the wide staircase, there lounged a group of armed men. They all wore bright yellow tunics, each featuring an embroidered parrot on the front and back.
As she was conducted up the stairway one of these yellow-coated warriors approached and halted her guides at the top of the steps. Here they exchanged a few words and while they were talking the girl noticed that he who had halted them, as well as those whom she could see of his companions, appeared to be, if possible, of a lower mentality than her original captors.
As she was led up the stairs, one of the yellow-coated warriors approached and stopped her guides at the top. They exchanged a few words, and while they were talking, the girl noticed that the one who stopped them, along with the others she could see from his group, seemed to have an even lower intelligence than her original captors.
Their coarse, bristling hair grew so low upon their foreheads as, in some instances, to almost join their eyebrows, while the irises were smaller, exposing more of the white of the eyeball.
Their rough, spiky hair grew so low on their foreheads that in some cases it almost connected with their eyebrows, while their irises were smaller, revealing more of the white of their eyeballs.
After a short parley the man in charge of the doorway, for such he seemed to be, turned and struck upon one of the panels with the butt of his spear, at the same time calling to several of his companions, who rose and came forward at his command. Soon the great doors commenced slowly to swing creakingly open, and presently, as they separated, the girl saw behind them the motive force which operated the massive doors—to each door a half-dozen naked Negroes.
After a brief discussion, the man in charge of the doorway, as he appeared to be, turned and hit one of the panels with the end of his spear, while calling to a few of his companions, who stood up and came forward at his command. Soon, the large doors began to creak open slowly, and eventually, as they parted, the girl saw what powered the heavy doors—a half-dozen naked Black men for each door.
At the doorway her two guards were turned back and their places taken by a half dozen of the yellow-coated soldiery. These conducted her through the doorway which the blacks, pulling upon heavy chains, closed behind them. And as the girl watched them she noted with horror that the poor creatures were chained by the neck to the doors.
At the doorway, her two guards were sent away and replaced by half a dozen soldiers in yellow coats. They led her through the doorway, which the black-clad guards closed behind them by pulling on heavy chains. As the girl watched, she was horrified to see that the unfortunate beings were chained by the neck to the doors.
Before her led a broad hallway in the center of which was a little pool of clear water. Here again in floor and walls was repeated in new and ever-changing combinations and designs, the parrots, the monkeys, and the lions, but now many of the figures were of what the girl was convinced must be gold. The walls of the corridor consisted of a series of open archways through which, upon either side, other spacious apartments were visible. The hallway was entirely unfurnished, but the rooms on either side contained benches and tables. Glimpses of some of the walls revealed the fact that they were covered with hangings of some colored fabric, while upon the floors were thick rugs of barbaric design and the skins of black lions and beautifully marked leopards.
Before her was a wide hallway with a small pool of clear water in the center. Again, the floor and walls featured ever-changing combinations of designs showing parrots, monkeys, and lions, but now many of the figures seemed to be made of gold. The walls of the corridor were lined with open archways, revealing other spacious rooms on either side. The hallway was completely empty, but the rooms beside it had benches and tables. A glimpse of some walls showed they were covered in colorful fabric hangings, while the floors were adorned with thick rugs in bold patterns and the skins of black lions and beautifully patterned leopards.
The room directly to the right of the entrance was filled with men wearing the yellow tunics of her new guard while the walls were hung with numerous spears and sabers. At the far end of the corridor a low flight of steps led to another closed doorway. Here the guard was again halted. One of the guards at this doorway, after receiving the report of one of those who accompanied her, passed through the door, leaving them standing outside. It was fully fifteen minutes before he returned, when the guard was again changed and the girl conducted into the chamber beyond.
The room directly to the right of the entrance was filled with men in the yellow tunics of her new guard, while the walls were lined with various spears and sabers. At the far end of the corridor, a short flight of steps led to another closed doorway. The guard stopped here once more. One of the guards at this doorway, after hearing the report from one of her companions, went through the door, leaving them waiting outside. He returned a full fifteen minutes later, at which point the guard was changed again and the girl was taken into the chamber beyond.
Through three other chambers and past three more massive doors, at each of which her guard was changed, the girl was conducted before she was ushered into a comparatively small room, back and forth across the floor of which paced a man in a scarlet tunic, upon the front and back of which was embroidered an enormous parrot and upon whose head was a barbaric headdress surmounted by a stuffed parrot.
Through three more rooms and past three additional large doors, where her guard was switched each time, the girl was led until she entered a relatively small room. In this room, a man in a red tunic paced back and forth. The tunic had a huge parrot embroidered on both the front and back, and he wore an extravagant headdress topped with a stuffed parrot.
The walls of this room were entirely hidden by hangings upon which hundreds, even thousands, of parrots were embroidered. Inlaid in the floor were golden parrots, while, as thickly as they could be painted, upon the ceiling were brilliant-hued parrots with wings outspread as though in the act of flying.
The walls of this room were completely covered with hangings that featured hundreds, even thousands, of embroidered parrots. The floor was inlaid with golden parrots, and the ceiling was painted with brilliantly colored parrots that had their wings spread open as if they were about to take flight.
The man himself was larger of stature than any she had yet seen within the city. His parchment-like skin was wrinkled with age and he was much fatter than any other of his kind that she had seen. His bared arms, however, gave evidence of great strength and his gait was not that of an old man. His facial expression denoted almost utter imbecility and he was quite the most repulsive creature that ever Bertha Kircher had looked upon.
The man was taller than anyone she had seen in the city. His skin looked like parchment, wrinkled with age, and he was much heavier than any others of his kind she'd encountered. However, his bare arms showed he was really strong, and he didn't walk like an old man. His facial expression suggested he was nearly completely clueless, and he was the most disgusting person Bertha Kircher had ever laid eyes on.
For several minutes after she was conducted into his presence he appeared not to be aware that she was there but continued his restless pacing to and fro. Suddenly, without the slightest warning, and while he was at the far end of the room from her with his back toward her, he wheeled and rushed madly at her. Involuntarily the girl shrank back, extending her open palms toward the frightful creature as though to hold him aloof but a man upon either side of her, the two who had conducted her into the apartment, seized and held her.
For several minutes after she was brought into his presence, he seemed unaware of her being there and kept pacing restlessly back and forth. Suddenly, without any warning, while he was at the far end of the room with his back to her, he turned and rushed toward her wildly. The girl instinctively recoiled, thrusting her open palms toward the frightening figure as if to keep him away, but two men on either side of her, the ones who had brought her into the room, grabbed and held her.
Although he rushed violently toward her the man stopped without touching her. For a moment his horrid white-rimmed eyes glared searchingly into her face, immediately following which he burst into maniacal laughter. For two or three minutes the creature gave himself over to merriment and then, stopping as suddenly as he had commenced to laugh, he fell to examining the prisoner. He felt of her hair, her skin, the texture of the garment she wore and by means of signs made her understand she was to open her mouth. In the latter he seemed much interested, calling the attention of one of the guards to her canine teeth and then baring his own sharp fangs for the prisoner to see.
Although he charged at her, the man stopped just short of making contact. For a moment, his terrifying, white-rimmed eyes stared intensely into her face, and then he erupted into maniacal laughter. For two or three minutes, the creature indulged in his amusement, and then, stopping as abruptly as he had started, he began to examine the prisoner. He touched her hair, her skin, and the fabric of her clothing, and through gestures, he made her understand that she was supposed to open her mouth. He seemed particularly interested in this, drawing one of the guards' attention to her canine teeth and then exposing his own sharp fangs for her to see.
Presently he resumed pacing to and fro across the floor, and it was fully fifteen minutes before he again noticed the prisoner, and then it was to issue a curt order to her guards, who immediately conducted her from the apartment.
Currently, he started pacing back and forth across the floor, and it was a full fifteen minutes before he noticed the prisoner again, and then it was just to give a brief order to her guards, who promptly led her out of the room.
The guards now led the girl through a series of corridors and apartments to a narrow stone stairway which led to the floor above, finally stopping before a small door where stood a naked Negro armed with a spear. At a word from one of her guards the Negro opened the door and the party passed into a low-ceiled apartment, the windows of which immediately caught the girl's attention through the fact that they were heavily barred. The room was furnished similarly to those that she had seen in other parts of the building, the same carved tables and benches, the rugs upon the floor, the decorations upon the walls, although in every respect it was simpler than anything she had seen on the floor below. In one corner was a low couch covered with a rug similar to those on the floor except that it was of a lighter texture, and upon this sat a woman.
The guards led the girl through a series of hallways and rooms to a narrow stone staircase that took them to the floor above, finally stopping in front of a small door where a naked Black man stood with a spear. At a word from one of her guards, the man opened the door, and the group entered a room with a low ceiling. The windows immediately caught the girl's attention because they were heavily barred. The room was furnished similarly to others she had seen in the building, with the same carved tables and benches, rugs on the floor, and decorations on the walls, but everything was simpler than what she had seen on the floor below. In one corner was a low couch covered with a rug like the ones on the floor, but it was made of lighter material, and a woman was sitting on it.
As Bertha Kircher's eyes alighted upon the occupant of the room the girl gave a little gasp of astonishment, for she recognized immediately that here was a creature more nearly of her own kind than any she had seen within the city's walls. An old woman it was who looked at her through faded blue eyes, sunken deep in a wrinkled and toothless face. But the eyes were those of a sane and intelligent creature, and the wrinkled face was the face of a white woman.
As Bertha Kircher's eyes landed on the person in the room, she let out a small gasp of surprise because she instantly realized this was someone more like her than anyone she had encountered within the city. It was an old woman who looked at her through faded blue eyes, deeply set in a wrinkled and toothless face. But those eyes belonged to a sane and intelligent being, and the wrinkled face belonged to a white woman.
At sight of the girl the woman rose and came forward, her gait so feeble and unsteady that she was forced to support herself with a long staff which she grasped in both her hands. One of the guards spoke a few words to her and then the men turned and left the apartment. The girl stood just within the door waiting in silence for what might next befall her.
At the sight of the girl, the woman got up and approached, her walk so shaky and wobbly that she had to lean on a long stick she held with both hands. One of the guards said a few words to her, and then the men turned and left the room. The girl stood just inside the door, waiting quietly for what would happen next.
The old woman crossed the room and stopped before her, raising her weak and watery eyes to the fresh young face of the newcomer. Then she scanned her from head to foot and once again the old eyes returned to the girl's face. Bertha Kircher on her part was not less frank in her survey of the little old woman. It was the latter who spoke first. In a thin, cracked voice she spoke, hesitatingly, falteringly, as though she were using unfamiliar words and speaking a strange tongue.
The old woman walked across the room and paused in front of her, lifting her frail, watery eyes to the fresh young face of the newcomer. Then she looked her over from head to toe and, once again, her old eyes returned to the girl's face. Bertha Kircher, for her part, was just as open in her examination of the little old woman. It was the old woman who spoke first. In a thin, shaky voice, she spoke hesitantly, as if she were using unfamiliar words and speaking a language she didn't fully know.
"You are from the outer world?" she asked in English. "God grant that you may speak and understand this tongue."
"You’re from the outside world?" she asked in English. "I hope you can speak and understand this language."
"English?" the girl exclaimed, "Yes, of course, I speak English."
"English?" the girl exclaimed, "Yes, of course, I speak English."
"Thank God!" cried the little old woman. "I did not know whether I myself might speak it so that another could understand. For sixty years I have spoken only their accursed gibberish. For sixty years I have not heard a word in my native language. Poor creature! Poor creature!" she mumbled. "What accursed misfortune threw you into their hands?"
"Thank God!" shouted the little old woman. "I wasn't sure if I could speak it so that someone else could understand. For sixty years, I’ve only spoken their awful gibberish. For sixty years, I haven't heard a word in my own language. Poor thing! Poor thing!" she muttered. "What terrible misfortune brought you into their hands?"
"You are an English woman?" asked Bertha Kircher. "Did I understand you aright that you are an English woman and have been here for sixty years?"
"You’re an English woman?" asked Bertha Kircher. "Did I get that right that you’re an English woman and have been here for sixty years?"
The old woman nodded her head affirmatively. "For sixty years I have never been outside of this palace. Come," she said, stretching forth a bony hand. "I am very old and cannot stand long. Come and sit with me on my couch."
The old woman nodded her head in agreement. "For sixty years, I’ve never left this palace. Come," she said, extending a frail hand. "I’m very old and can’t stand for long. Come and sit with me on my couch."
The girl took the proffered hand and assisted the old lady back to the opposite side of the room and when she was seated the girl sat down beside her.
The girl took the offered hand and helped the old lady back to the other side of the room, and when she was seated, the girl sat down next to her.
"Poor child! Poor child!" moaned the old woman. "Far better to have died than to have let them bring you here. At first I might have destroyed myself but there was always the hope that someone would come who would take me away, but none ever comes. Tell me how they got you."
"Poor child! Poor child!" the old woman lamented. "It would have been better for you to die than to let them bring you here. At first, I thought I might lose myself, but there was always the hope that someone would come and take me away, but no one ever does. Tell me how they took you."
Very briefly the girl narrated the principal incidents which led up to her capture by some of the creatures of the city.
Very briefly, the girl recounted the main events that led to her being captured by some of the creatures in the city.
"Then there is a man with you in the city?" asked the old woman.
"Is there a man with you in the city?" the old woman asked.
"Yes," said the girl, "but I do not know where he is nor what are their intentions in regard to him. In fact, I do not know what their intentions toward me are."
"Yes," said the girl, "but I don't know where he is or what their plans are for him. Actually, I have no idea what their intentions are toward me either."
"No one might even guess," said the old woman. "They do not know themselves from one minute to the next what their intentions are, but I think you can rest assured, my poor child, that you will never see your friend again."
"No one would even guess," said the old woman. "They don't even know themselves what their intentions are from one moment to the next, but I think you can be sure, my poor child, that you will never see your friend again."
"But they haven't slain you," the girl reminded her, "and you have been their prisoner, you say, for sixty years."
"But they haven't killed you," the girl reminded her, "and you say you’ve been their prisoner for sixty years."
"No," replied her companion, "they have not killed me, nor will they kill you, though God knows before you have lived long in this horrible place you will beg them to kill you."
"No," replied her companion, "they haven't killed me, and they won't kill you either, although God knows that after you've lived in this awful place for a while, you'll be begging them to end it."
"Who are they—" asked Bertha Kircher, "what kind of people? They differ from any that I ever have seen. And tell me, too, how you came here."
"Who are they—" asked Bertha Kircher, "what kind of people are they? They're different from anyone I've ever seen. And also, please tell me how you got here."
"It was long ago," said the old woman, rocking back and forth on the couch. "It was long ago. Oh, how long it was! I was only twenty then. Think of it, child! Look at me. I have no mirror other than my bath, I cannot see what I look like for my eyes are old, but with my fingers I can feel my old and wrinkled face, my sunken eyes, and these flabby lips drawn in over toothless gums. I am old and bent and hideous, but then I was young and they said that I was beautiful. No, I will not be a hypocrite; I was beautiful. My glass told me that.
"It was a long time ago," the old woman said, rocking back and forth on the couch. "It was a long time ago. Oh, how long it was! I was only twenty back then. Can you imagine, child? Look at me. I have no mirror except for my bath; I can't see what I look like because my eyes are old, but with my fingers, I can feel my old, wrinkled face, my sunken eyes, and these sagging lips pulled over toothless gums. I am old, bent, and ugly, but back then, I was young, and they said I was beautiful. No, I won't be a hypocrite; I was beautiful. My mirror confirmed that."
"My father was a missionary in the interior and one day there came a band of Arabian slave raiders. They took the men and women of the little native village where my father labored, and they took me, too. They did not know much about our part of the country so they were compelled to rely upon the men of our village whom they had captured to guide them. They told me that they never before had been so far south and that they had heard there was a country rich in ivory and slaves west of us. They wanted to go there and from there they would take us north, where I was to be sold into the harem of some black sultan.
"My dad was a missionary in the interior, and one day a group of Arabian slave raiders showed up. They took the men and women from the small native village where my dad worked, and they took me as well. They didn’t know much about our area, so they had to rely on the captured villagers to guide them. They told me that they had never been this far south before and had heard there was a land rich in ivory and slaves to the west of us. They wanted to go there, and from there, they would take us north, where I was to be sold into the harem of some black sultan."
"They often discussed the price I would bring, and that that price might not lessen, they guarded me jealously from one another so the journeys were made as little fatiguing for me as possible. I was given the best food at their command and I was not harmed.
"They often talked about the price I would fetch, and that this price might not decrease. They kept a close eye on each other to make sure my journeys were as easy as possible for me. I was given the best food they could provide, and I was kept safe."
"But after a short time, when we had reached the confines of the country with which the men of our village were familiar and had entered upon a desolate and arid desert waste, the Arabs realized at last that we were lost. But they still kept on, ever toward the west, crossing hideous gorges and marching across the face of a burning land beneath the pitiless sun. The poor slaves they had captured were, of course, compelled to carry all the camp equipage and loot and thus heavily burdened, half starved and without water, they soon commenced to die like flies.
"But after a little while, when we reached the edge of the area that the people from our village knew and entered a barren and dry desert, the Arabs finally realized that we were lost. Yet they continued on, always heading west, navigating through ugly ravines and trudging across a scorching land under the relentless sun. The poor slaves they had captured were forced to carry all the camping gear and loot, and heavily loaded, half-starved, and without water, they quickly began to drop like flies."
"We had not been in the desert land long before the Arabs were forced to kill their horses for food, and when we reached the first gorge, across which it would have been impossible to transport the animals, the balance of them were slaughtered and the meat loaded upon the poor staggering blacks who still survived.
"We hadn't been in the desert long before the Arabs had to kill their horses for food, and when we got to the first gorge, where it would have been impossible to transport the animals, the rest of them were slaughtered and the meat was loaded onto the poor, staggering Black people who were still alive."
"Thus we continued for two more days and now all but a handful of blacks were dead, and the Arabs themselves had commenced to succumb to hunger and thirst and the intense heat of the desert. As far as the eye could reach back toward the land of plenty from whence we had come, our route was marked by circling vultures in the sky and by the bodies of the dead who lay down in the trackless waste for the last time. The ivory had been abandoned tusk by tusk as the blacks gave out, and along the trail of death was strewn the camp equipage and the horse trappings of a hundred men.
"So we carried on for two more days, and now only a few black people were alive, while the Arabs had started to give in to hunger, thirst, and the brutal heat of the desert. As far as we could see back towards the land of abundance we had come from, our path was marked by circling vultures in the sky and the bodies of the dead lying in the barren waste for the last time. The ivory had been left behind, tusk by tusk, as the black people fell behind, and along the trail of death lay the camp gear and horse equipment of a hundred men."
"For some reason the Arab chief favored me to the last, possibly with the idea that of all his other treasures I could be most easily transported, for I was young and strong and after the horses were killed I had walked and kept up with the best of the men. We English, you know, are great walkers, while these Arabians had never walked since they were old enough to ride a horse.
"For some reason, the Arab chief liked me until the end, maybe thinking that out of all his other treasures, I would be the easiest to carry because I was young and strong. After the horses were killed, I walked and kept up with the best of the men. You know, we English are great walkers, while these Arabians had never walked since they were old enough to ride a horse."
"I cannot tell you how much longer we kept on but at last, with our strength almost gone, a handful of us reached the bottom of a deep gorge. To scale the opposite side was out of the question and so we kept on down along the sands of what must have been the bed of an ancient river, until finally we came to a point where we looked out upon what appeared to be a beautiful valley in which we felt assured that we would find game in plenty.
"I can't say how much longer we kept going, but eventually, with our strength nearly gone, a small group of us reached the bottom of a deep gorge. Climbing up the other side was impossible, so we continued along the sands of what must have been an ancient riverbed, until we finally came to a spot where we looked out at what seemed to be a beautiful valley, where we felt confident we would find plenty of game."
"By then there were only two of us left—the chief and myself. I do not need to tell you what the valley was, for you found it in much the same way as I did. So quickly were we captured that it seemed they must have been waiting for us, and I learned later that such was the case, just as they were waiting for you.
"By then, there were only two of us left—the chief and me. I don't need to explain what the valley was, since you discovered it much like I did. We were captured so quickly that it felt like they had been waiting for us, and I found out later that was true, just like they were waiting for you."
"As you came through the forest you must have seen the monkeys and parrots and since you have entered the palace, how constantly these animals, and the lions, are used in the decorations. At home we were all familiar with talking parrots who repeated the things that they were taught to say, but these parrots are different in that they all talk in the same language that the people of the city use, and they say that the monkeys talk to the parrots and the parrots fly to the city and tell the people what the monkeys say. And, although it is hard to believe, I have learned that this is so, for I have lived here among them for sixty years in the palace of their king.
"As you walked through the forest, you must have noticed the monkeys and parrots, and now that you're in the palace, you can see how often these animals, along with the lions, are featured in the decorations. Back home, we were all used to talking parrots that repeated what they were taught, but these parrots are different because they all speak the same language as the city's people. They say the monkeys talk to the parrots, and the parrots fly to the city to tell the people what the monkeys say. Even though it sounds unbelievable, I’ve found this to be true, as I've lived with them for sixty years in the palace of their king."
"They brought me, as they brought you, directly to the palace. The Arabian chief was taken elsewhere. I never knew what became of him. Ago XXV was king then. I have seen many kings since that day. He was a terrible man; but then, they are all terrible."
"They took me, just like they took you, straight to the palace. The Arabian chief was taken somewhere else. I never found out what happened to him. Ago XXV was the king at that time. I've seen a lot of kings since that day. He was a harsh man, but then again, they’re all harsh."
"What is the matter with them?" asked the girl.
"What’s wrong with them?" asked the girl.
"They are a race of maniacs," replied the old woman. "Had you not guessed it? Among them are excellent craftsmen and good farmers and a certain amount of law and order, such as it is.
"They're a group of crazy people," replied the old woman. "Didn't you realize that? Among them are skilled artisans and decent farmers, and there's some level of law and order, whatever that may be."
"They reverence all birds, but the parrot is their chief deity. There is one who is held here in the palace in a very beautiful apartment. He is their god of gods. He is a very old bird. If what Ago told me when I came is true, he must be nearly three hundred years old by now. Their religious rites are revolting in the extreme, and I believe that it may be the practice of these rites through ages that has brought the race to its present condition of imbecility.
"They respect all birds, but the parrot is their main deity. There is one kept here in the palace in a very beautiful room. He is their supreme god. He’s a very old bird. If what Ago told me when I arrived is true, he must be nearly three hundred years old by now. Their religious rituals are extremely disgusting, and I believe that the ongoing practice of these rituals over the years has led the people to their current state of dullness."
"And yet, as I said, they are not without some redeeming qualities. If legend may be credited, their forebears—a little handful of men and women who came from somewhere out of the north and became lost in the wilderness of central Africa—found here only a barren desert valley. To my own knowledge rain seldom, if ever, falls here, and yet you have seen a great forest and luxuriant vegetation outside of the city as well as within. This miracle is accomplished by the utilization of natural springs which their ancestors developed, and upon which they have improved to such an extent that the entire valley receives an adequate amount of moisture at all times.
"And yet, as I mentioned, they do have some redeeming qualities. If we can believe the legends, their ancestors—a small group of men and women who came from somewhere in the north and got lost in the central African wilderness—found only a barren desert valley here. From what I know, it hardly ever rains here, yet you’ve seen a great forest and lush vegetation both outside the city and within. This miracle is achieved through the use of natural springs that their ancestors developed, and they’ve improved them to the point where the entire valley gets enough moisture all the time."
"Ago told me that many generations before his time the forest was irrigated by changing the course of the streams which carried the spring water to the city but that when the trees had sent their roots down to the natural moisture of the soil and required no further irrigation, the course of the stream was changed and other trees were planted. And so the forest grew until today it covers almost the entire floor of the valley except for the open space where the city stands. I do not know that this is true. It may be that the forest has always been here, but it is one of their legends and it is borne out by the fact that there is not sufficient rainfall here to support vegetation.
"Ago told me that many generations before his time, the forest was irrigated by rerouting the streams that brought spring water to the city. Once the trees had grown their roots deep enough to tap into the natural moisture in the soil and no longer needed irrigation, the stream's course was changed, and new trees were planted. That's how the forest has grown until today, covering almost the entire valley floor except for the open space where the city stands. I can't say if this is true; it might be that the forest has always been here, but it's one of their legends, and it makes sense given that there isn't enough rainfall in this area to support much vegetation."
"They are peculiar people in many respects, not only in their form of worship and religious rites but also in that they breed lions as other people breed cattle. You have seen how they use some of these lions but the majority of them they fatten and eat. At first, I imagine, they ate lion meat as a part of their religious ceremony but after many generations they came to crave it so that now it is practically the only flesh they eat. They would, of course, rather die than eat the flesh of a bird, nor will they eat monkey's meat, while the herbivorous animals they raise only for milk, hides, and flesh for the lions. Upon the south side of the city are the corrals and pastures where the herbivorous animals are raised. Boar, deer, and antelope are used principally for the lions, while goats are kept for milk for the human inhabitants of the city."
"They're unique in many ways, not just in their worship and religious rituals but also in that they raise lions like others raise cattle. You've seen how they use some of these lions, but most of them they fatten and eat. At first, I think they ate lion meat as part of their religious ceremonies, but after many generations, they started to crave it, so now it's pretty much the only meat they consume. Of course, they'd rather die than eat bird flesh, and they won't eat monkey meat either, while the herbivorous animals they raise are only for milk, hides, and for feeding the lions. On the south side of the city are the pens and pastures where they raise the herbivores. Wild boar, deer, and antelope are mainly for the lions, while goats are kept for milk for the human residents of the city."
"And you have lived here all these years," exclaimed the girl, "without ever seeing one of your own kind?"
"And you've lived here all these years," the girl exclaimed, "without ever seeing anyone like you?"
The old woman nodded affirmatively.
The elderly woman nodded yes.
"For sixty years you have lived here," continued Bertha Kircher, "and they have not harmed you!"
"For sixty years you’ve lived here," Bertha Kircher continued, "and they haven't harmed you!"
"I did not say they had not harmed me," said the old woman, "they did not kill me, that is all."
"I didn't say they hadn't hurt me," said the old woman, "they just didn't kill me, that's all."
"What"—the girl hesitated—"what," she continued at last, "was your position among them? Pardon me," she added quickly, "I think I know but I should like to hear from your own lips, for whatever your position was, mine will doubtless be the same."
"What," the girl paused, "what," she finally continued, "was your role among them? Sorry," she added quickly, "I think I know, but I’d love to hear it from you, since whatever your role was, mine will probably be the same."
The old woman nodded. "Yes," she said, "doubtless; if they can keep you away from the women."
The old woman nodded. "Yes," she said, "for sure; if they can keep you away from the women."
"What do you mean?" asked the girl.
"What do you mean?" asked the girl.
"For sixty years I have never been allowed near a woman. They would kill me, even now, if they could reach me. The men are frightful, God knows they are frightful! But heaven keep you from the women!"
"For sixty years, I've never been allowed near a woman. They would kill me, even now, if they could get to me. The men are terrifying, God knows they are terrifying! But God forbid you come near the women!"
"You mean," asked the girl, "that the men will not harm me?"
"You mean," the girl asked, "that the guys won't hurt me?"
"Ago XXV made me his queen," said the old woman. "But he had many other queens, nor were they all human. He was not murdered for ten years after I came here. Then the next king took me, and so it has been always. I am the oldest queen now. Very few of their women live to a great age. Not only are they constantly liable to assassination but, owing to their subnormal mentalities, they are subject to periods of depression during which they are very likely to destroy themselves."
"Ago XXV made me his queen," said the old woman. "But he had many other queens, and not all of them were human. He wasn't murdered for ten years after I came here. Then the next king took me, and that's how it’s always been. I’m the oldest queen now. Very few of their women live to be very old. Not only are they always at risk of being assassinated, but because of their lower mental capacities, they go through phases of depression during which they are very likely to harm themselves."
She turned suddenly and pointed to the barred windows. "You see this room," she said, "with the black eunuch outside? Wherever you see these you will know that there are women, for with very few exceptions they are never allowed out of captivity. They are considered and really are more violent than the men."
She turned abruptly and pointed to the barred windows. "You see this room," she said, "with the black eunuch outside? Whenever you see these, you'll know there are women inside, because with very few exceptions, they're never allowed out of captivity. They are thought to be—and actually are—more violent than the men."
For several minutes the two sat in silence, and then the younger woman turned to the older.
For a few minutes, the two sat in silence, and then the younger woman turned to the older one.
"Is there no way to escape?" she asked.
"Is there no way to get out of this?" she asked.
The old woman pointed again to the barred windows and then to the door, saying: "And there is the armed eunuch. And if you should pass him, how could you reach the street? And if you reached the street, how could you pass through the city to the outer wall? And even if, by some miracle, you should gain the outer wall, and, by another miracle, you should be permitted to pass through the gate, could you ever hope to traverse the forest where the great black lions roam and feed upon men? No!" she exclaimed, answering her own question, "there is no escape, for after one had escaped from the palace and the city and the forest it would be but to invite death in the frightful desert land beyond.
The old woman pointed again at the barred windows and then at the door, saying: "And there's the armed eunuch. If you manage to get past him, how would you reach the street? And if you made it to the street, how would you get through the city to the outer wall? And even if, by some miracle, you managed to reach the outer wall, and, by another miracle, you were allowed to pass through the gate, could you ever hope to get through the forest where the huge black lions roam and prey on men? No!" she exclaimed, answering her own question, "there's no escape, because after getting away from the palace, the city, and the forest, you'd just be inviting death in the terrifying desert land beyond."
"In sixty years you are the first to find this buried city. In a thousand no denizen of this valley has ever left it, and within the memory of man, or even in their legends, none had found them prior to my coming other than a single warlike giant, the story of whom has been handed down from father to son.
"In sixty years, you are the first to discover this buried city. For a thousand years, no resident of this valley has ever left it, and within human memory, or even in their legends, no one had found it before I came, except for a single warlike giant, whose story has been passed down from father to son."
"I think from the description that he must have been a Spaniard, a giant of a man in buckler and helmet, who fought his way through the terrible forest to the city gate, who fell upon those who were sent out to capture him and slew them with his mighty sword. And when he had eaten of the vegetables from the gardens, and the fruit from the trees and drank of the water from the stream, he turned about and fought his way back through the forest to the mouth of the gorge. But though he escaped the city and the forest he did not escape the desert. For a legend runs that the king, fearful that he would bring others to attack them, sent a party after him to slay him.
"I think from the description that he must have been a Spaniard, a giant of a man in armor and a helmet, who fought his way through the terrible forest to the city gate, who attacked those who were sent out to capture him and killed them with his powerful sword. And after he ate the vegetables from the gardens, the fruit from the trees, and drank the water from the stream, he turned around and fought his way back through the forest to the mouth of the gorge. But even though he escaped the city and the forest, he did not escape the desert. For a legend says that the king, fearing he would bring others to attack them, sent a group after him to kill him."
"For three weeks they did not find him, for they went in the wrong direction, but at last they came upon his bones picked clean by the vultures, lying a day's march up the same gorge through which you and I entered the valley. I do not know," continued the old woman, "that this is true. It is just one of their many legends."
"For three weeks, they couldn't find him because they went the wrong way, but eventually, they found his bones picked clean by vultures, lying a day's journey up the same gorge where you and I entered the valley. I don't know," the old woman continued, "if this is true. It's just one of their many legends."
"Yes," said the girl, "it is true. I am sure it is true, for I have seen the skeleton and the corroded armor of this great giant."
"Yeah," said the girl, "it’s true. I’m sure it’s true because I’ve seen the skeleton and the rusted armor of this huge giant."
At this juncture the door was thrown open without ceremony and a Negro entered bearing two flat vessels in which were several smaller ones. These he set down on one of the tables near the women, and, without a word, turned and left. With the entrance of the man with the vessels, a delightful odor of cooked food had aroused the realization in the girl's mind that she was very hungry, and at a word from the old woman she walked to the table to examine the viands. The larger vessels which contained the smaller ones were of pottery while those within them were quite evidently of hammered gold. To her intense surprise she found lying between the smaller vessels a spoon and a fork, which, while of quaint design, were quite as serviceable as any she had seen in more civilized communities. The tines of the fork were quite evidently of iron or steel, the girl did not know which, while the handle and the spoon were of the same material as the smaller vessels.
At that moment, the door swung open without any fuss, and a Black man came in carrying two flat dishes that held several smaller ones. He placed them on a table near the women and left without saying a word. As he entered with the dishes, a wonderful smell of cooked food hit the girl, reminding her that she was very hungry. At a signal from the older woman, she walked over to the table to check out the food. The larger dishes were made of pottery, while the smaller ones inside were clearly made of hammered gold. To her surprise, she found a spoon and a fork lying between the smaller dishes. Although they had a unique design, they were just as functional as any she had seen in more modern places. The fork's tines were clearly made of iron or steel; the girl couldn't tell which, while the handle and the spoon were made of the same material as the smaller dishes.
There was a highly seasoned stew with meat and vegetables, a dish of fresh fruit, and a bowl of milk beside which was a little jug containing something which resembled marmalade. So ravenous was she that she did not even wait for her companion to reach the table, and as she ate she could have sworn that never before had she tasted more palatable food. The old woman came slowly and sat down on one of the benches opposite her.
There was a rich stew with meat and vegetables, a plate of fresh fruit, and a bowl of milk next to a small jug filled with something that looked like marmalade. She was so hungry that she didn't even wait for her companion to sit down, and as she ate, she felt like she'd never tasted anything so delicious before. The old woman slowly came in and sat down on one of the benches across from her.
As she removed the smaller vessels from the larger and arranged them before her on the table a crooked smile twisted her lips as she watched the younger woman eat.
As she took the smaller bowls from the larger one and set them out on the table in front of her, a crooked smile played on her lips as she watched the younger woman eat.
"Hunger is a great leveler," she said with a laugh.
"Hunger is a great equalizer," she said with a laugh.
"What do you mean?" asked the girl.
"What do you mean?" the girl asked.
"I venture to say that a few weeks ago you would have been nauseated at the idea of eating cat."
"I bet a few weeks ago you would have felt sick at the thought of eating cat."
"Cat?" exclaimed the girl.
"Cat?" the girl exclaimed.
"Yes," said the old woman. "What is the difference—a lion is a cat."
"Yeah," said the old woman. "What's the difference—a lion is just a big cat."
"You mean I am eating lion now?"
"You mean I'm eating lion now?"
"Yes," said the old woman, "and as they prepare it, it is very palatable. You will grow very fond of it."
"Yes," said the old woman, "and as they make it, it's really tasty. You'll come to love it."
Bertha Kircher smiled a trifle dubiously. "I could not tell it," she said, "from lamb or veal."
Bertha Kircher smiled a bit uncertainly. "I couldn't tell if it was lamb or veal," she said.
"No," said the woman, "it tastes as good to me. But these lions are very carefully kept and very carefully fed and their flesh is so seasoned and prepared that it might be anything so far as taste is concerned."
"No," said the woman, "it tastes just as good to me. But these lions are very well taken care of and very well fed, and their meat is so seasoned and prepared that it could taste like anything."
And so Bertha Kircher broke her long fast upon strange fruits, lion meat, and goat's milk.
And so Bertha Kircher ended her long fast with unusual fruits, lion meat, and goat's milk.
Scarcely had she finished when again the door opened and there entered a yellow-coated soldier. He spoke to the old woman.
Scarcely had she finished when the door opened again and a soldier in a yellow coat walked in. He spoke to the old woman.
"The king," she said, "has commanded that you be prepared and brought to him. You are to share these apartments with me. The king knows that I am not like his other women. He never would have dared to put you with them. Herog XVI has occasional lucid intervals. You must have been brought to him during one of these. Like the rest of them he thinks that he alone of all the community is sane, but more than once I have thought that the various men with whom I have come in contact here, including the kings themselves, looked upon me as, at least, less mad than the others. Yet how I have retained my senses all these years is beyond me."
"The king," she said, "has ordered that you be ready and brought to him. You will be sharing these rooms with me. The king knows I’m not like his other women. He would never have dared to put you with them. Herog XVI has moments of clarity. You must have been brought to him during one of those times. Like the others, he believes he alone in the community is sane, but I’ve often thought that the various men I’ve encountered here, including the kings themselves, see me as at least less insane than the rest. Yet how I've managed to keep my sanity all these years is a mystery to me."
"What do you mean by prepare?" asked Bertha Kircher. "You said that the king had commanded I be prepared and brought to him."
"What do you mean by prepare?" asked Bertha Kircher. "You said that the king commanded I be ready and brought to him."
"You will be bathed and furnished with a robe similar to that which I wear."
"You will be cleaned up and given a robe like the one I’m wearing."
"Is there no escape?" asked the girl. "Is there no way even in which I can kill myself?"
"Is there no way out?" the girl asked. "Is there really no way for me to end my own life?"
The woman handed her the fork. "This is the only way," she said, "and you will notice that the tines are very short and blunt."
The woman gave her the fork. "This is the only way," she said, "and you’ll see that the tines are really short and dull."
The girl shuddered and the old woman laid a hand gently upon her shoulder. "He may only look at you and send you away," she said. "Ago XXV sent for me once, tried to talk with me, discovered that I could not understand him and that he could not understand me, ordered that I be taught the language of his people, and then apparently forgot me for a year. Sometimes I do not see the king for a long period. There was one king who ruled for five years whom I never saw. There is always hope; even I whose very memory has doubtless been forgotten beyond these palace walls still hope, though none knows better how futilely."
The girl shivered, and the old woman placed a gentle hand on her shoulder. "He might just look at you and send you away," she said. "Ago XXV called for me once, tried to talk to me, realized I couldn't understand him and he couldn't understand me, ordered that I be taught his people's language, and then I guess he forgot about me for a year. Sometimes I go a long time without seeing the king. There was one king who ruled for five years that I never saw. There's always hope; even I, whose memory has probably been forgotten beyond these palace walls, still hope, even though no one knows better how pointless it is."
The old woman led Bertha Kircher to an adjoining apartment in the floor of which was a pool of water. Here the girl bathed and afterward her companion brought her one of the clinging garments of the native women and adjusted it about her figure. The material of the robe was of a gauzy fabric which accentuated the rounded beauty of the girlish form.
The old woman took Bertha Kircher to a neighboring apartment, where there was a pool of water on the floor. Here, the girl washed herself, and afterward, her companion gave her one of the tight-fitting garments worn by the local women and arranged it around her body. The robe was made of a sheer fabric that highlighted the curves of the girl's figure.
"There," said the old woman, as she gave a final pat to one of the folds of the garment, "you are a queen indeed!"
"There," said the old woman, giving a final pat to one of the folds of the garment, "you are truly a queen!"
The girl looked down at her naked breasts and but half-concealed limbs in horror. "They are going to lead me into the presence of men in this half-nude condition!" she exclaimed.
The girl looked down at her bare breasts and only partially covered limbs in shock. "They’re going to take me in front of men like this?!" she exclaimed.
The old woman smiled her crooked smile. "It is nothing," she said. "You will become accustomed to it as did I who was brought up in the home of a minister of the gospel, where it was considered little short of a crime for a woman to expose her stockinged ankle. By comparison with what you will doubtless see and the things that you may be called upon to undergo, this is but a trifle."
The old woman smiled her crooked smile. "It's nothing," she said. "You'll get used to it just like I did, growing up in the home of a minister, where it was practically a crime for a woman to show her stockinged ankle. Compared to what you'll likely see and the things you might have to go through, this is just a small deal."
For what seemed hours to the distraught girl she paced the floor of her apartment, awaiting the final summons to the presence of the mad king. Darkness had fallen and the oil flares within the palace had been lighted long before two messengers appeared with instructions that Herog demanded her immediate presence and that the old woman, whom they called Xanila, was to accompany her. The girl felt some slight relief when she discovered that she was to have at least one friend with her, however powerless to assist her the old woman might be.
For what felt like hours to the distressed girl, she paced the floor of her apartment, waiting for the final call to see the insane king. Night had fallen, and the oil lamps in the palace had been lit long before two messengers arrived with the order that Herog demanded her immediate presence and that the old woman, whom they referred to as Xanila, was to go with her. The girl felt a bit of relief upon realizing she would at least have one friend with her, no matter how powerless the old woman might be to help.
The messengers conducted the two to a small apartment on the floor below. Xanila explained that this was one of the anterooms off the main throneroom in which the king was accustomed to hold court with his entire retinue. A number of yellow-tunicked warriors sat about upon the benches within the room. For the most part their eyes were bent upon the floor and their attitudes that of moody dejection. As the two women entered several glanced indifferently at them, but for the most part no attention was paid to them.
The messengers took the two to a small apartment on the floor below. Xanila explained that this was one of the anterooms off the main throne room where the king usually held court with his whole retinue. A number of warriors in yellow tunics sat on the benches in the room. Most of them had their eyes downcast and seemed pretty glum. As the two women walked in, a few of them glanced over indifferently, but for the most part, they ignored them.
While they were waiting in the anteroom there entered from another apartment a young man uniformed similarly to the others with the exception that upon his head was a fillet of gold, in the front of which a single parrot feather rose erectly above his forehead. As he entered, the other soldiers in the room rose to their feet.
While they were waiting in the anteroom, a young man walked in from another room, dressed like the others but wearing a gold band on his head, with a single parrot feather standing straight up above his forehead. When he entered, the other soldiers in the room stood up.
"That is Metak, one of the king's sons," Xanila whispered to the girl.
"That’s Metak, one of the king’s sons," Xanila whispered to the girl.
The prince was crossing the room toward the audience chamber when his glance happened to fall upon Bertha Kircher. He halted in his tracks and stood looking at her for a full minute without speaking. The girl, embarrassed by his bold stare and her scant attire, flushed and, dropping her gaze to the floor, turned away. Metak suddenly commenced to tremble from head to foot and then, without warning other than a loud, hoarse scream he sprang forward and seized the girl in his arms.
The prince was walking across the room towards the audience chamber when his eyes landed on Bertha Kircher. He stopped in his tracks and stared at her for a full minute without saying a word. The girl, feeling awkward from his intense gaze and her revealing outfit, blushed and, lowering her eyes to the floor, turned away. Metak suddenly started to shake all over, and then, without any warning other than a loud, hoarse scream, he lunged forward and grabbed the girl in his arms.
Instantly pandemonium ensued. The two messengers who had been charged with the duty of conducting the girl to the king's presence danced, shrieking, about the prince, waving their arms and gesticulating wildly as though they would force him to relinquish her, the while they dared not lay hands upon royalty. The other guardsmen, as though suffering in sympathy the madness of their prince, ran forward screaming and brandishing their sabers.
Instantly, chaos broke out. The two messengers who were responsible for bringing the girl to the king started dancing and screaming around the prince, waving their arms and gesturing wildly as if they were trying to make him let her go, all while being too afraid to touch royalty. The other guards, seemingly caught up in the madness of their prince, rushed forward yelling and waving their sabers.
The girl fought to release herself from the horrid embrace of the maniac, but with his left arm about her he held her as easily as though she had been but a babe, while with his free hand he drew his saber and struck viciously at those nearest him.
The girl struggled to break free from the horrible grip of the maniac, but with his left arm around her, he held her as effortlessly as if she were just a baby, while with his free hand he pulled out his sword and violently attacked those closest to him.
One of the messengers was the first to feel the keen edge of Metak's blade. With a single fierce cut the prince drove through the fellow's collar bone and downward to the center of his chest. With a shrill shriek that rose above the screaming of the other guardsmen the man dropped to the floor, and as the blood gushed from the frightful wound he struggled to rise once more to his feet and then sank back again and died in a great pool of his own blood.
One of the messengers was the first to feel the sharp edge of Metak's blade. With one fierce slice, the prince pierced the man's collarbone and plunged down to the center of his chest. Letting out a high-pitched scream that cut through the chaos of the other guardsmen, the man fell to the ground. As blood poured from the horrific wound, he fought to get back on his feet but then collapsed again, dying in a large pool of his own blood.
In the meantime Metak, still clinging desperately to the girl, had backed toward the opposite door. At the sight of the blood two of the guardsmen, as though suddenly aroused to maniacal frenzy, dropped their sabers to the floor and fell upon each other with nails and teeth, while some sought to reach the prince and some to defend him. In a corner of the room sat one of the guardsmen laughing uproariously and just as Metak succeeded in reaching the door and taking the girl through, she thought that she saw another of the men spring upon the corpse of the dead messenger and bury his teeth in its flesh.
In the meantime, Metak, desperately holding on to the girl, backed towards the opposite door. When they saw the blood, two of the guards, suddenly driven into a frenzy, dropped their sabers and lunged at each other with nails and teeth, while some tried to reach the prince and others aimed to defend him. In one corner of the room, a guard was laughing uncontrollably. Just as Metak managed to reach the door and pull the girl through, she thought she saw another guard leap onto the corpse of the dead messenger and sink his teeth into its flesh.
During the orgy of madness Xanila had kept closely at the girl's side but at the door of the room Metak had seen her and, wheeling suddenly, cut viciously at her. Fortunately for Xanila she was halfway through the door at the time, so that Metak's blade but dented itself upon the stone arch of the portal, and then Xanila, guided doubtless by the wisdom of sixty years of similar experiences, fled down the corridor as fast as her old and tottering legs would carry her.
During the chaotic frenzy, Xanila had stayed right by the girl's side, but standing at the door of the room, Metak noticed her and suddenly turned, striking at her fiercely. Luckily for Xanila, she was halfway through the door when it happened, so Metak's blade only hit the stone arch of the doorway. Then, probably drawing on sixty years of similar experiences, Xanila ran down the corridor as fast as her aging and unsteady legs could take her.
Metak, once outside the door, returned his saber to its scabbard and lifting the girl bodily from the ground carried her off in the opposite direction from that taken by Xanila.
Metak, once outside the door, put his saber back in its scabbard and lifted the girl off the ground, carrying her away in the opposite direction from where Xanila had gone.
Chapter XX
Came Tarzan
Just before dark that evening, an almost exhausted flier entered the headquarters of Colonel Capell of the Second Rhodesians and saluted.
Just before dark that evening, an almost exhausted pilot entered the headquarters of Colonel Capell of the Second Rhodesians and saluted.
"Well, Thompson," asked the superior, "what luck? The others have all returned. Never saw a thing of Oldwick or his plane. I guess we shall have to give it up unless you were more successful."
"Well, Thompson," the boss asked, "any luck? The others have all come back. Didn’t see anything of Oldwick or his plane. I suppose we’ll have to let it go unless you had better luck."
"I was," replied the young officer. "I found the plane."
"I was," said the young officer. "I found the plane."
"No!" ejaculated Colonel Capell. "Where was it? Any sign of Oldwick?"
"No!" shouted Colonel Capell. "Where was it? Any sign of Oldwick?"
"It is in the rottenest hole in the ground you ever saw, quite a bit inland. Narrow gorge. Saw the plane all right but can't reach it. There was a regular devil of a lion wandering around it. I landed near the edge of the cliff and was going to climb down and take a look at the plane. But this fellow hung around for an hour or more and I finally had to give it up."
"It’s in the dirtiest hole in the ground you’ve ever seen, quite a ways inland. It's a narrow gorge. I definitely spotted the plane but couldn’t get to it. There was a real monster of a lion roaming around it. I landed near the cliff's edge and was planning to climb down and check out the plane. But this guy lingered for over an hour, and I finally had to give up."
"Do you think the lions got Oldwick?" asked the colonel.
"Do you think the lions got Oldwick?" the colonel asked.
"I doubt it," replied Lieutenant Thompson, "from the fact that there was no indication that the lion had fed anywhere about the plane. I arose after I found it was impossible to get down around the plane and reconnoitered up and down the gorge. Several miles to the south I found a small, wooded valley in the center of which—please don't think me crazy, sir—is a regular city—streets, buildings, a central plaza with a lagoon, good-sized buildings with domes and minarets and all that sort of stuff."
"I don't think so," replied Lieutenant Thompson, "because there was no sign that the lion had eaten anywhere near the plane. I got up after realizing it was impossible to get down around the plane and checked the gorge, both up and down. A few miles to the south, I found a small, wooded valley that—please don't think I'm crazy, sir—actually has a real city in it—streets, buildings, a central plaza with a lagoon, and sizable buildings with domes and minarets and all that kind of stuff."
The elder officer looked at the younger compassionately. "You're all wrought up, Thompson," he said. "Go and take a good sleep. You have been on this job now for a long while and it must have gotten on your nerves."
The older officer looked at the younger one with sympathy. "You’re really stressed out, Thompson," he said. "Go and get some rest. You've been working at this for a long time, and it must be getting to you."
The young man shook his head a bit irritably. "Pardon me, sir," he said, "but I am telling you the truth. I am not mistaken. I circled over the place several times. It may be that Oldwick has found his way there—or has been captured by these people."
The young man shook his head a bit irritably. "Excuse me, sir," he said, "but I'm telling you the truth. I'm not wrong. I flew over the area several times. It’s possible that Oldwick has made his way there—or has been taken by these people."
"Were there people in the city?" asked the colonel.
"Were there people in the city?" the colonel asked.
"Yes, I saw them in the streets."
"Yeah, I saw them out on the streets."
"Do you think cavalry could reach the valley?" asked the colonel.
"Do you think the cavalry could make it to the valley?" asked the colonel.
"No," replied Thompson, "the country is all cut up with these deep gorges. Even infantry would have a devil of a time of it, and there is absolutely no water that I could discover for at least a two days' march."
"No," replied Thompson, "the country is all torn up with these deep canyons. Even foot soldiers would struggle a lot, and there’s absolutely no water that I could find for at least a two-day march."
It was at this juncture that a big Vauxhall drew up in front of the headquarters of the Second Rhodesians and a moment later General Smuts alighted and entered. Colonel Capell arose from his chair and saluted his superior, and the young lieutenant saluted and stood at attention.
It was at this point that a large Vauxhall pulled up in front of the headquarters of the Second Rhodesians, and a moment later, General Smuts got out and went inside. Colonel Capell stood up from his chair and saluted his superior, while the young lieutenant saluted and stood at attention.
"I was passing," said the general, "and I thought I would stop for a chat. By the way, how is the search for Lieutenant Smith-Oldwick progressing? I see Thompson here and I believe he was one of those detailed to the search."
"I was passing by," said the general, "and I thought I’d stop for a chat. By the way, how's the search for Lieutenant Smith-Oldwick going? I see Thompson here, and I think he was one of those assigned to the search."
"Yes," said Capell, "he was. He is the last to come in. He found the lieutenant's ship," and then he repeated what Lieutenant Thompson had reported to him. The general sat down at the table with Colonel Capell, and together the two officers, with the assistance of the flier, marked the approximate location of the city which Thompson had reported he'd discovered.
"Yes," Capell said, "he was. He’s the last one to arrive. He found the lieutenant's ship," and then he repeated what Lieutenant Thompson had told him. The general sat down at the table with Colonel Capell, and together, with the help of the flier, the two officers marked the rough location of the city that Thompson reported he’d discovered.
"It's a mighty rough country," remarked Smuts, "but we can't leave a stone unturned until we have exhausted every resource to find that boy. We will send out a small force; a small one will be more likely to succeed than a large one. About one company, Colonel, or say two, with sufficient motor lorries for transport of rations and water. Put a good man in command and let him establish a base as far to the west as the motors can travel. You can leave one company there and send the other forward. I am inclined to believe you can establish your base within a day's march of the city and if such is the case the force you send ahead should have no trouble on the score of lack of water as there certainly must be water in the valley where the city lies. Detail a couple of planes for reconnaissance and messenger service so that the base can keep in touch at all times with the advance party. When can your force move out?"
"It's a tough area," Smuts said, "but we can't leave any stone unturned until we've used every resource to find that boy. We'll send out a small team; a smaller group is more likely to succeed than a large one. About one company, Colonel, or two, with enough trucks to transport supplies and water. Put a good person in charge and have them set up a base as far west as the vehicles can go. You can leave one company there and send the other one ahead. I'm inclined to think you can set up your base within a day's march of the city, and if that's the case, the team you send forward shouldn't have trouble finding water since there must be some in the valley where the city is. Assign a couple of planes for reconnaissance and messaging so that the base can stay in touch with the advance team at all times. When can your team move
"We can load the lorries tonight," replied Capell, "and march about one o'clock tomorrow morning."
"We can load the trucks tonight," Capell replied, "and set off around one o'clock tomorrow morning."
"Good," said the general, "keep me advised," and returning the others' salutes he departed.
"Good," said the general, "keep me updated," and after returning the others' salutes, he left.
As Tarzan leaped for the vines he realized that the lion was close upon him and that his life depended upon the strength of the creepers clinging to the city walls; but to his intense relief he found the stems as large around as a man's arm, and the tendrils which had fastened themselves to the wall so firmly fixed, that his weight upon the stem appeared to have no appreciable effect upon them.
As Tarzan jumped for the vines, he knew the lion was right behind him and that his life depended on the strength of the vines clinging to the city walls. But to his great relief, he found the stems as thick as a man's arm, and the tendrils that had secured themselves to the wall were so firmly attached that his weight on the stem seemed to have no noticeable impact on them.
He heard Numa's baffled roar as the lion slipped downward clawing futilely at the leafy creepers, and then with the agility of the apes who had reared him, Tarzan bounded nimbly aloft to the summit of the wall.
He heard Numa's confused roar as the lion slipped down, scratching uselessly at the leafy vines, and then, with the agility of the apes that had raised him, Tarzan quickly jumped up to the top of the wall.
A few feet below him was the flat roof of the adjoining building and as he dropped to it his back was toward the niche from which an embrasure looked out upon the gardens and the forest beyond, so that he did not see the figure crouching there in the dark shadow. But if he did not see he was not long in ignorance of the fact that he was not alone, for scarcely had his feet touched the roof when a heavy body leaped upon him from behind and brawny arms encircled him about the waist.
A few feet below him was the flat roof of the neighboring building, and as he dropped down, his back was turned to the nook that overlooked the gardens and the forest beyond, so he didn't notice the figure crouching there in the dark shadow. But even though he didn't see it, he wasn’t unaware for long that he wasn’t alone, because just as his feet hit the roof, a heavy body lunged at him from behind, and strong arms wrapped around his waist.
Taken at a disadvantage and lifted from his feet, the ape-man was, for the time being, helpless. Whatever the creature was that had seized him, it apparently had a well-defined purpose in mind, for it walked directly toward the edge of the roof so that it was soon apparent to Tarzan that he was to be hurled to the pavement below—a most efficacious manner of disposing of an intruder. That he would be either maimed or killed the ape-man was confident; but he had no intention of permitting his assailant to carry out the plan.
Taken by surprise and lifted off his feet, the ape-man was helpless for the moment. Whatever the creature was that had grabbed him clearly had a specific goal in mind, as it walked straight toward the edge of the roof. It quickly became clear to Tarzan that he was about to be thrown down to the pavement below—a very effective way to get rid of an intruder. He was sure he would either be injured or killed, but he had no intention of letting his attacker go through with the plan.
Tarzan's arms and legs were free but he was in such a disadvantageous position that he could not use them to any good effect. His only hope lay in throwing the creature off its balance, and to this end Tarzan straightened his body and leaned as far back against his captor as he could, and then suddenly lunged forward. The result was as satisfactory as he could possibly have hoped. The great weight of the ape-man thrown suddenly out from an erect position caused the other also to lunge violently forward with the result that to save himself he involuntarily released his grasp. Catlike in his movements, the ape-man had no sooner touched the roof than he was upon his feet again, facing his adversary, a man almost as large as himself and armed with a saber which he now whipped from its scabbard. Tarzan, however, had no mind to allow the use of this formidable weapon and so he dove for the other's legs beneath the vicious cut that was directed at him from the side, and as a football player tackles an opposing runner, Tarzan tackled his antagonist, carrying him backward several yards and throwing him heavily to the roof upon his back.
Tarzan's arms and legs were free, but he was in such an awkward position that he couldn't use them effectively. His only chance was to throw the creature off balance, so he straightened his body and leaned back against his captor as far as he could, then suddenly lunged forward. The outcome was as good as he could have hoped for. The sudden shift of the ape-man’s weight from an upright position caused the other to lurch forward as well, which made him release his grip without meaning to. Quick as a cat, the ape-man barely touched the roof before he was on his feet again, facing his opponent, a man almost as big as he was, armed with a saber that he now drew from its sheath. However, Tarzan wasn’t about to let him use that dangerous weapon, so he dove for the man's legs, avoiding a vicious slash aimed at him from the side. Like a football player tackling an opposing runner, Tarzan took down his adversary, pushing him backward several yards and slamming him hard onto the roof, flat on his back.
No sooner had the man touched the roof than the ape-man was upon his chest, one brawny hand sought and found the sword wrist and the other the throat of the yellow-tunicked guardsman. Until then the fellow had fought in silence but just as Tarzan's fingers touched his throat he emitted a single piercing shriek that the brown fingers cut off almost instantly. The fellow struggled to escape the clutch of the naked creature upon his breast but equally as well might he have fought to escape the talons of Numa, the lion.
No sooner had the man touched the roof than the ape-man was on his chest, one strong hand grabbing his sword wrist and the other his throat. Until that moment, the guy had fought silently, but just as Tarzan's fingers brushed his throat, he let out a single, piercing scream that the brown fingers silenced almost immediately. The guy struggled to break free from the grip of the naked creature on his chest, but he might as well have been trying to escape the claws of Numa, the lion.
Gradually his struggles lessened, his pin-point eyes popped from their sockets, rolling horribly upward, while from his foam-flecked lips his swollen tongue protruded. As his struggles ceased Tarzan arose, and placing a foot upon the carcass of his kill, was upon the point of screaming forth his victory cry when the thought that the work before him required the utmost caution sealed his lips.
Gradually, his struggles faded, his sharp eyes bulged from their sockets, rolling terribly upward, while his swollen tongue hung out from his foam-covered lips. As he stopped moving, Tarzan stood up, and placing a foot on the body of his kill, was about to let out his victory cry when the realization that he needed to be extremely careful silenced him.
Walking to the edge of the roof he looked down into the narrow, winding street below. At intervals, apparently at each street intersection, an oil flare sputtered dimly from brackets set in the walls a trifle higher than a man's head. For the most part the winding alleys were in dense shadow and even in the immediate vicinity of the flares the illumination was far from brilliant. In the restricted area of his vision he could see that there were still a few of the strange inhabitants moving about the narrow thoroughfares.
Walking to the edge of the roof, he looked down into the narrow, winding street below. At intervals, seemingly at each street intersection, an oil flare flickered dimly from brackets mounted on the walls a little higher than a person's head. For the most part, the winding alleys were shrouded in deep shadow, and even near the flares, the light was far from bright. In his limited view, he could see that a few of the unusual inhabitants were still moving around the narrow pathways.
To prosecute his search for the young officer and the girl he must be able to move about the city as freely as possible, but to pass beneath one of the corner flares, naked as he was except for a loin cloth, and in every other respect markedly different from the inhabitants of the city, would be but to court almost immediate discovery. As these thoughts flashed through his mind and he cast about for some feasible plan of action, his eyes fell upon the corpse upon the roof near him, and immediately there occurred to him the possibility of disguising himself in the raiment of his conquered adversary.
To search for the young officer and the girl, he needed to move around the city as freely as possible. However, walking under one of the corner lights, dressed only in a loincloth and looking completely different from the city's residents, would lead to almost instant discovery. As these thoughts raced through his mind, he looked for a practical plan. His gaze landed on the corpse on the roof nearby, and immediately he thought about the possibility of disguising himself in the clothes of his defeated enemy.
It required but a few moments for the ape-man to clothe himself in the tights, sandals, and parrot emblazoned yellow tunic of the dead soldier. Around his waist he buckled the saber belt but beneath the tunic he retained the hunting knife of his dead father. His other weapons he could not lightly discard, and so, in the hope that he might eventually recover them, he carried them to the edge of the wall and dropped them among the foliage at its base. At the last moment he found it difficult to part with his rope, which, with his knife, was his most accustomed weapon, and one which he had used for the greatest length of time. He found that by removing the saber belt he could wind the rope about his waist beneath his tunic, and then replacing the belt still retain it entirely concealed from chance observation.
It only took a few moments for the ape-man to dress in the tights, sandals, and yellow tunic adorned with a parrot that belonged to the dead soldier. He buckled the saber belt around his waist but kept his dead father's hunting knife hidden under the tunic. He couldn't easily discard his other weapons, so he carried them to the edge of the wall and dropped them among the bushes at the bottom. At the last minute, he found it hard to let go of his rope, which, along with his knife, was his most familiar weapon and the one he had used the longest. He realized that by removing the saber belt, he could wrap the rope around his waist beneath the tunic and then put the belt back on, keeping it completely hidden from casual sight.
At last, satisfactorily disguised, and with even his shock of black hair adding to the verisimilitude of his likeness to the natives of the city, he sought for some means of reaching the street below. While he might have risked a drop from the eaves of the roof he feared to do so lest he attract the attention of passers-by, and probable discovery. The roofs of the buildings varied in height but as the ceilings were all low he found that he could easily travel along the roof tops and this he did for some little distance, until he suddenly discovered just ahead of him several figures reclining upon the roof of a near-by building.
Finally, thoroughly disguised, with his wild black hair enhancing his resemblance to the locals, he looked for a way to get down to the street below. Although he could have taken a leap from the edge of the roof, he was hesitant to do so for fear of attracting the attention of people passing by and risking discovery. The heights of the buildings varied, but since the ceilings were all low, he found he could easily move along the rooftops, which he did for a short distance until he unexpectedly spotted several figures lounging on the rooftop of a nearby building.
He had noticed openings in each roof, evidently giving ingress to the apartments below, and now, his advance cut off by those ahead of him, he decided to risk the chance of reaching the street through the interior of one of the buildings. Approaching one of the openings he leaned over the black hole, and listened for sounds of life in the apartment below. Neither his ears nor his nose registered evidence of the presence of any living creature in the immediate vicinity, and so without further hesitation the ape-man lowered his body through the aperture and was about to drop when his foot came in contact with the rung of a ladder, which he immediately took advantage of to descend to the floor of the room below.
He noticed openings in each roof that clearly led to the apartments below, and now, with his path blocked by those in front of him, he decided to take the chance of getting to the street by going through one of the buildings. As he approached one of the openings, he leaned over the dark hole and listened for any signs of life in the apartment below. Neither his ears nor his nose picked up any signs of a living being nearby, so without any more hesitation, the ape-man lowered himself through the opening and was about to drop when his foot touched the rung of a ladder, which he quickly used to descend to the floor of the room below.
Here, all was almost total darkness until his eyes became accustomed to the interior, the darkness of which was slightly alleviated by the reflected light from a distant street flare which shone intermittently through the narrow windows fronting the thoroughfare. Finally, assured that the apartment was unoccupied, Tarzan sought for a stairway to the ground floor. This he found in a dark hallway upon which the room opened—a flight of narrow stone steps leading downward toward the street. Chance favored him so that he reached the shadows of the arcade without encountering any of the inmates of the house.
Here, it was almost complete darkness until his eyes adjusted to the interior, which was slightly lit by the faint glow of a distant streetlight that flickered through the narrow windows facing the street. Finally, confident that the apartment was empty, Tarzan looked for a staircase to the ground floor. He found it in a dim hallway outside the room—a narrow stone staircase leading down to the street. Fortunately, he made it to the shelter of the arcade without running into any of the residents of the house.
Once on the street he was not at a loss as to the direction in which he wished to go, for he had tracked the two Europeans practically to the gate, which he felt assured must have given them entry to the city. His keen sense of direction and location made it possible for him to judge with considerable accuracy the point within the city where he might hope to pick up the spoor of those whom he sought.
Once he was on the street, he knew exactly where he wanted to go, as he had followed the two Europeans nearly to the gate, which he was sure led them into the city. His sharp sense of direction and awareness of his surroundings allowed him to estimate quite accurately where in the city he might be able to pick up the trail of those he was looking for.
The first need, however, was to discover a street paralleling the northern wall along which he could make his way in the direction of the gate he had seen from the forest. Realizing that his greatest hope of success lay in the boldness of his operations he moved off in the direction of the nearest street flare without making any other attempt at concealment than keeping in the shadows of the arcade, which he judged would draw no particular attention to him in that he saw other pedestrians doing likewise. The few he passed gave him no heed, and he had almost reached the nearest intersection when he saw several men wearing yellow tunics identical to that which he had taken from his prisoner.
The first thing he needed to do was find a street next to the northern wall that would lead him toward the gate he had spotted from the forest. Understanding that his best chance of success depended on being bold, he headed toward the nearest streetlight, making only minimal efforts to stay hidden, mainly by sticking to the shadows of the arcade. He noticed that other pedestrians were doing the same, so he figured it wouldn’t attract too much attention. The few people he passed ignored him, and he was almost at the nearest intersection when he spotted several men wearing yellow tunics just like the one he had taken from his prisoner.
They were coming directly toward him and the ape-man saw that should he continue on he would meet them directly at the intersection of the two streets in the full light of the flare. His first inclination was to go steadily on, for personally he had no objection to chancing a scrimmage with them; but a sudden recollection of the girl, possibly a helpless prisoner in the hands of these people, caused him to seek some other and less hazardous plan of action.
They were coming straight for him, and the ape-man realized that if he kept going, he would run right into them at the corner of the two streets, right in the bright light of the flare. At first, he thought about just moving ahead, as he wasn't against the idea of a scuffle with them. However, a sudden memory of the girl, who might be a powerless captive in their grasp, made him look for another, safer way to handle the situation.
He had almost emerged from the shadow of the arcade into the full light of the flare and the approaching men were but a few yards from him, when he suddenly kneeled and pretended to adjust the wrappings of his sandals—wrappings, which, by the way, he was not at all sure that he had adjusted as their makers had intended them to be adjusted. He was still kneeling when the soldiers came abreast of him. Like the others he had passed they paid no attention to him and the moment they were behind him he continued upon his way, turning to the right at the intersection of the two streets.
He had almost stepped out of the shadow of the arcade into the bright light of the flare, and the approaching men were just a few yards away from him when he suddenly kneeled down and pretended to adjust the wrappings of his sandals—wrappings that, by the way, he wasn’t completely sure he had tied the way the makers intended. He was still kneeling when the soldiers walked past him. Like the others he had seen, they ignored him, and once they were behind him, he carried on his way, turning right at the intersection of the two streets.
The street he now took was, at this point, so extremely winding that, for the most part, it received no benefit from the flares at either corner, so that he was forced practically to grope his way in the dense shadows of the arcade. The street became a little straighter just before he reached the next flare, and as he came within sight of it he saw silhouetted against a patch of light the figure of a lion. The beast was coming slowly down the street in Tarzan's direction.
The street he was on now was so winding that, for the most part, it didn’t really get any light from the flares at either corner, forcing him to feel his way through the thick shadows of the arcade. The street straightened out a bit just before he got to the next flare, and as he approached it, he saw the silhouette of a lion against a patch of light. The animal was slowly making its way down the street towards Tarzan.
A woman crossed the way directly in front of it and the lion paid no attention to her, nor she to the lion. An instant later a little child ran after the woman and so close did he run before the lion that the beast was forced to turn out of its way a step to avoid colliding with the little one. The ape-man grinned and crossed quickly to the opposite side of the street, for his delicate senses indicated that at this point the breeze stirring through the city streets and deflected by the opposite wall would now blow from the lion toward him as the beast passed, whereas if he remained upon the side of the street upon which he had been walking when he discovered the carnivore, his scent would have been borne to the nostrils of the animal, and Tarzan was sufficiently jungle-wise to realize that while he might deceive the eyes of man and beast he could not so easily disguise from the nostrils of one of the great cats that he was a creature of a different species from the inhabitants of the city, the only human beings, possibly, that Numa was familiar with. In him the cat would recognize a stranger, and, therefore, an enemy, and Tarzan had no desire to be delayed by an encounter with a savage lion. His ruse worked successfully, the lion passing him with not more than a side glance in his direction.
A woman walked right in front of it, and the lion ignored her, just like she ignored the lion. A moment later, a little child dashed after the woman, running so close to the lion that the beast had to step aside to avoid bumping into him. The ape-man grinned and quickly moved to the other side of the street because his keen senses told him that the breeze in the city streets, deflected by the opposite wall, would now blow from the lion towards him as the beast passed. If he stayed on the side of the street where he had spotted the carnivore, his scent would drift right to the animal's nose. Tarzan was smart enough to know that while he could trick the eyes of both humans and animals, he couldn't easily hide from the nose of one of the big cats. To the lion, he would be a stranger and thus, an enemy, and Tarzan wanted to avoid any delay caused by a confrontation with a fierce lion. His plan worked perfectly, and the lion passed him with just a quick glance.
He had proceeded for some little distance and had about reached a point where he judged he would find the street which led up from the city gate when, at an intersection of two streets, his nostrils caught the scent spoor of the girl. Out of a maze of other scent spoors the ape-man picked the familiar odor of the girl and, a second later, that of Smith-Oldwick. He had been forced to accomplish it, however, by bending very low at each street intersection in repeated attention to his sandal wrappings, bringing his nostrils as close to the pavement as possible.
He had walked a short distance and was almost at the point where he thought he would find the street leading up from the city gate when, at an intersection of two streets, he caught the faint scent of the girl. Amid a mix of other smells, the ape-man recognized the familiar scent of the girl, and a moment later, that of Smith-Oldwick. He had to do this by bending down low at each street corner, focusing intently on his sandal wrappings and bringing his nose as close to the ground as possible.
As he advanced along the street through which the two had been conducted earlier in the day he noted, as had they, the change in the type of buildings as he passed from a residence district into that portion occupied by shops and bazaars. Here the number of flares was increased so that they appeared not only at street intersections but midway between as well, and there were many more people abroad. The shops were open and lighted, for with the setting of the sun the intense heat of the day had given place to a pleasant coolness. Here also the number of lions, roaming loose through the thoroughfares, increased, and also for the first time Tarzan noted the idiosyncrasies of the people.
As he walked down the street where they had been earlier that day, he noticed, just like they did, the shift in the types of buildings as he moved from a residential area into the part filled with shops and markets. Here, the number of lights increased so that they were not just at street corners but also halfway between them, and there were many more people out and about. The shops were open and lit up because, with the sun setting, the intense heat of the day had turned into a pleasant coolness. Here, the number of lions roaming freely through the streets also increased, and for the first time, Tarzan noticed the quirks of the people.
Once he was nearly upset by a naked man running rapidly through the street screaming at the top of his voice. And again he nearly stumbled over a woman who was making her way in the shadows of one of the arcades upon all fours. At first the ape-man thought she was hunting for something she had dropped, but as he drew to one side to watch her, he saw that she was doing nothing of the kind—that she had merely elected to walk upon her hands and knees rather than erect upon her feet. In another block he saw two creatures struggling upon the roof of an adjacent building until finally one of them, wrenching himself free from the grasp of the other, gave his adversary a mighty push which hurled him to the pavement below, where he lay motionless upon the dusty road. For an instant a wild shriek re-echoed through the city from the lungs of the victor and then, without an instant's hesitation, the fellow leaped headfirst to the street beside the body of his victim. A lion moved out from the dense shadows of a doorway and approached the two bloody and lifeless things before him. Tarzan wondered what effect the odor of blood would have upon the beast and was surprised to see that the animal only sniffed at the corpses and the hot red blood and then lay down beside the two dead men.
Once, he got startled by a naked man sprinting down the street, screaming at the top of his lungs. Then he almost tripped over a woman crawling through the shadows of one of the arcades. At first, the ape-man thought she was looking for something she'd lost, but as he stepped aside to watch her, he realized she was doing nothing of the sort — she had simply chosen to move on her hands and knees instead of standing upright. A block later, he saw two creatures struggling on the roof of a nearby building until one of them broke free and pushed the other hard enough to send him crashing onto the pavement below, where he lay motionless on the dusty road. For a moment, a wild scream echoed through the city from the victor, and then, without a second thought, he jumped headfirst to the street beside his victim’s body. A lion stepped out from the deep shadows of a doorway and approached the two bloody, lifeless bodies before him. Tarzan wondered how the scent of blood would affect the beast and was surprised to see the animal merely sniff the corpses and the hot red blood before lying down next to the two dead men.
He had passed the lion but a short distance when his attention was called to the figure of a man lowering himself laboriously from the roof of a building upon the east side of the thoroughfare. Tarzan's curiosity was aroused.
He had just walked past the lion when he noticed a man struggling to lower himself from the roof of a building on the east side of the street. Tarzan's curiosity was piqued.
Chapter XXI
In the Alcove
As Smith-Oldwick realized that he was alone and practically defenseless in an enclosure filled with great lions he was, in his weakened condition, almost in a state verging upon hysterical terror. Clinging to the grating for support he dared not turn his head in the direction of the beasts behind him. He felt his knees giving weakly beneath him. Something within his head spun rapidly around. He became very dizzy and nauseated and then suddenly all went black before his eyes as his limp body collapsed at the foot of the grating.
As Smith-Oldwick realized he was alone and nearly defenseless in a space filled with huge lions, he felt a wave of almost hysterical terror wash over him in his weakened state. Gripping the grating for support, he wouldn’t even turn his head towards the beasts behind him. He felt his knees start to buckle. Something in his head was spinning out of control. He became extremely dizzy and nauseous, and then suddenly everything went dark as his limp body fell at the base of the grating.
How long he lay there unconscious he never knew; but as reason slowly reasserted itself in his semi-conscious state he was aware that he lay in a cool bed upon the whitest of linen in a bright and cheery room, and that upon one side close to him was an open window, the delicate hangings of which were fluttering in a soft summer breeze which blew in from a sun-kissed orchard of ripening fruit which he could see without—an old orchard in which soft, green grass grew between the laden trees, and where the sun filtered through the foliage; and upon the dappled greensward a little child was playing with a frolicsome puppy.
He had no idea how long he had been unconscious, but as his mind gradually started to clear in his semi-conscious state, he realized he was lying in a cool bed on the softest white sheets in a bright and cheerful room. There was an open window next to him, and the delicate curtains were fluttering in a gentle summer breeze coming in from a sunlit orchard filled with ripe fruit that he could see outside. It was an old orchard where soft green grass grew between the heavy trees, and sunlight filtered through the leaves. On the dappled grass, a little child was playing with an energetic puppy.
"God," thought the man, "what a horrible nightmare I have passed through!" and then he felt a hand stroking his brow and cheek—a cool and gentle hand that smoothed away his troubled recollections. For a long minute Smith-Oldwick lay in utter peace and content until gradually there was forced upon his sensibilities the fact that the hand had become rough, and that it was no longer cool but hot and moist; and suddenly he opened his eyes and looked up into the face of a huge lion.
"God," thought the man, "what a terrible nightmare I just went through!" Then he felt a hand gently stroking his forehead and cheek—a cool and soothing hand that eased away his troubled memories. For a long minute, Smith-Oldwick lay in complete peace and contentment until he gradually became aware that the hand had turned rough, and it was no longer cool but hot and sweaty; suddenly, he opened his eyes and looked up into the face of a massive lion.
Lieutenant Harold Percy Smith-Oldwick was not only an English gentleman and an officer in name, he was also what these implied—a brave man; but when he realized that the sweet picture he had looked upon was but the figment of a dream, and that in reality he still lay where he had fallen at the foot of the grating with a lion standing over him licking his face, the tears sprang to his eyes and ran down his cheeks. Never, he thought, had an unkind fate played so cruel a joke upon a human being.
Lieutenant Harold Percy Smith-Oldwick was not just an English gentleman and an officer in title; he embodied those qualities—he was a brave man. But when he realized that the beautiful scene he had envisioned was just a figment of his imagination, and that in reality he still lay where he had fallen at the foot of the grating with a lion standing over him, licking his face, tears sprang to his eyes and ran down his cheeks. Never had fate played such a cruel trick on anyone.
For some time he lay feigning death while the lion, having ceased to lick him, sniffed about his body. There are some things than which death is to be preferred; and there came at last to the Englishman the realization that it would be better to die swiftly than to lie in this horrible predicament until his mind broke beneath the strain and he went mad.
For a while, he pretended to be dead while the lion, having stopped licking him, sniffed around his body. There are some things worse than death; and finally, the Englishman realized that it would be better to die quickly than to stay in this terrible situation until his mind cracked under the pressure and he lost his sanity.
And so, deliberately and without haste, he rose, clinging to the grating for support. At his first move the lion growled, but after that he paid no further attention to the man, and when at last Smith-Oldwick had regained his feet the lion moved indifferently away. Then it was that the man turned and looked about the enclosure.
And so, intentionally and without rushing, he got up, holding onto the grate for support. The lion growled at his first movement, but after that, it ignored him, and when Smith-Oldwick finally got to his feet, the lion casually walked away. It was then that the man turned and surveyed the enclosure.
Sprawled beneath the shade of the trees and lying upon the long bench beside the south wall the great beasts rested, with the exception of two or three who moved restlessly about. It was these that the man feared and yet when two more of them had passed him by he began to feel reassured, recalling the fact that they were accustomed to the presence of man.
Sprawled beneath the shade of the trees and lying on the long bench next to the south wall, the large animals relaxed, except for two or three that moved around restlessly. It was these that the man feared, but when two more of them passed by him, he started to feel more at ease, remembering that they were used to the presence of humans.
And yet he dared not move from the grating. As the man examined his surroundings he noted that the branches of one of the trees near the further wall spread close beneath an open window. If he could reach that tree and had strength to do so, he could easily climb out upon the branch and escape, at least, from the enclosure of the lions. But in order to reach the tree he must pass the full length of the enclosure, and at the very bole of the tree itself two lions lay sprawled out in slumber.
And yet he didn't dare move from the grating. As he looked around, he noticed that the branches of a tree near the far wall extended right under an open window. If he could get to that tree and had the strength, he could easily climb out onto the branch and escape, at least from the lion enclosure. But to reach the tree, he would have to cross the entire length of the enclosure, and right at the base of the tree, two lions were sprawled out, fast asleep.
For half an hour the man stood gazing longingly at this seeming avenue of escape, and at last, with a muttered oath, he straightened up and throwing back his shoulders in a gesture of defiance, he walked slowly and deliberately down the center of the courtyard. One of the prowling lions turned from the side wall and moved toward the center directly in the man's path, but Smith-Oldwick was committed to what he considered his one chance, for even temporary safety, and so he kept on, ignoring the presence of the beast. The lion slouched to his side and sniffed him and then, growling, he bared his teeth.
For thirty minutes, the man stood staring longingly at what seemed like a way out, and finally, with a muttered curse, he straightened up and threw back his shoulders in a defiant gesture. He walked slowly and deliberately down the center of the courtyard. One of the prowling lions turned from the side wall and moved toward the middle, right in the man’s path, but Smith-Oldwick was determined to take what he saw as his only chance for even temporary safety, so he kept going, ignoring the beast. The lion slouched to his side, sniffed him, and then growled, baring his teeth.
Smith-Oldwick drew the pistol from his shirt. "If he has made up his mind to kill me," he thought. "I can't see that it will make any difference in the long run whether I infuriate him or not. The beggar can't kill me any deader in one mood than another."
Smith-Oldwick pulled the gun from his shirt. "If he’s decided to kill me," he thought, "I don’t see how it matters in the end if I provoke him or not. The guy can’t kill me any more dead depending on his mood."
But with the man's movement in withdrawing the weapon from his shirt the lion's attitude suddenly altered and though he still growled he turned and sprang away, and then at last the Englishman stood almost at the foot of the tree that was his goal, and between him and safety sprawled a sleeping lion.
But when the man moved to take the weapon out from under his shirt, the lion's behavior changed instantly. Even though it still growled, it turned and leaped away. Finally, the Englishman found himself almost at the base of the tree he aimed for, with a sleeping lion lying between him and safety.
Above him was a limb that ordinarily he could have leaped for and reached with ease; but weak from his wounds and loss of blood he doubted his ability to do so now. There was even a question as to whether he would be able to ascend the tree at all. There was just one chance: the lowest branch left the bole within easy reach of a man standing on the ground close to the tree's stem, but to reach a position where the branch would be accessible he must step over the body of a lion. Taking a deep breath he placed one foot between the sprawled legs of the beast and gingerly raised the other to plant it upon the opposite side of the tawny body. "What," he thought, "if the beggar should happen to wake now?" The suggestion sent a shudder through his frame but he did not hesitate or withdraw his foot. Gingerly he planted it beyond the lion, threw his weight forward upon it and cautiously brought his other foot to the side of the first. He had passed and the lion had not awakened.
Above him was a branch that normally he could have jumped for and reached easily, but weak from his injuries and loss of blood, he doubted his ability to do so now. He even wondered if he would be able to climb the tree at all. There was only one chance: the lowest branch was within easy reach of a person standing on the ground near the tree's trunk, but to get to a spot where the branch was accessible, he had to step over the body of a lion. Taking a deep breath, he placed one foot between the lion's sprawled legs and carefully raised the other to place it on the opposite side of the tawny body. "What if the beast wakes up now?" he thought. The idea sent a shiver through him, but he didn’t hesitate or pull back his foot. Carefully, he placed it past the lion, leaned his weight on it, and cautiously brought his other foot over to the side of the first. He had passed, and the lion had not stirred.
Smith-Oldwick was weak from loss of blood and the hardships he had undergone, but the realization of his situation impelled him to a show of agility and energy which he probably could scarcely have equaled when in possession of his normal strength. With his life depending upon the success of his efforts, he swung himself quickly to the lower branches of the tree and scrambled upward out of reach of possible harm from the lions below—though the sudden movement in the branches above them awakened both the sleeping beasts. The animals raised their heads and looked questioningly up for a moment and then lay back again to resume their broken slumber.
Smith-Oldwick was weak from blood loss and the hardships he had faced, but the awareness of his situation drove him to show agility and energy that he probably couldn’t have matched even in his prime. With his life relying on the success of his efforts, he quickly swung himself to the lower branches of the tree and climbed upward to stay out of reach of any danger from the lions below—though his sudden movement in the branches above stirred both of the sleeping beasts. The animals lifted their heads and glanced up curiously for a moment before settling back down to continue their interrupted sleep.
So easily had the Englishman succeeded thus far that he suddenly began to question as to whether he had at any time been in real danger. The lions, as he knew, were accustomed to the presence of men, but yet they were still lions and he was free to admit that he breathed more easily now that he was safe above their clutches.
So effortlessly had the Englishman succeeded so far that he suddenly started to wonder if he had ever really been in any danger. The lions, as he knew, were used to people, but they were still lions, and he had to admit that he felt much more at ease now that he was out of their reach.
Before him lay the open window he had seen from the ground. He was now on a level with it and could see an apparently unoccupied chamber beyond, and toward this he made his way along a stout branch that swung beneath the opening. It was not a difficult feat to reach the window, and a moment later he drew himself over the sill and dropped into the room.
Before him was the open window he had seen from the ground. He was now level with it and could see an apparently empty room beyond, so he made his way along a sturdy branch that hung below the opening. It wasn’t hard to reach the window, and a moment later, he pulled himself over the sill and dropped into the room.
He found himself in a rather spacious apartment, the floor of which was covered with rugs of barbaric design, while the few pieces of furniture were of a similar type to that which he had seen in the room on the first floor into which he and Bertha Kircher had been ushered at the conclusion of their journey. At one end of the room was what appeared to be a curtained alcove, the heavy hangings of which completely hid the interior. In the wall opposite the window and near the alcove was a closed door, apparently the only exit from the room.
He found himself in a fairly spacious apartment, with rugs featuring bold designs covering the floor, while the few pieces of furniture were similar to those he had seen in the room on the first floor where he and Bertha Kircher had been taken at the end of their trip. At one end of the room was a curtained alcove, with heavy drapes completely concealing the inside. On the wall opposite the window and near the alcove was a closed door, apparently the only way out of the room.
He could see, in the waning light without, that the close of the day was fast approaching, and he hesitated while he deliberated the advisability of waiting until darkness had fallen, or of immediately searching for some means of escape from the building and the city. He at last decided that it would do no harm to investigate beyond the room, that he might have some idea as how best to plan his escape after dark. To this end he crossed the room toward the door but he had taken only a few steps when the hangings before the alcove separated and the figure of a woman appeared in the opening.
He could see, in the fading light outside, that night was quickly approaching, and he hesitated as he considered whether it would be wise to wait until it was dark or to start looking for a way to escape the building and the city right away. He finally decided it wouldn’t hurt to check beyond the room so he could figure out the best way to plan his escape after dark. With that in mind, he moved across the room toward the door, but he had only taken a few steps when the curtains in the alcove parted, and a woman appeared in the opening.
She was young and beautifully formed; the single drapery wound around her body from below her breasts left no detail of her symmetrical proportions unrevealed, but her face was the face of an imbecile. At sight of her Smith-Oldwick halted, momentarily expecting that his presence would elicit screams for help from her. On the contrary she came toward him smiling, and when she was close her slender, shapely fingers touched the sleeve of his torn blouse as a curious child might handle a new toy, and still with the same smile she examined him from head to foot, taking in, in childish wonderment, every detail of his apparel.
She was young and beautifully shaped; the single piece of fabric wrapped around her body just below her breasts revealed every detail of her symmetrical figure, but her face looked vacant. When Smith-Oldwick saw her, he paused, briefly expecting her to scream for help. Instead, she approached him with a smile, and as she got closer, her slender, graceful fingers brushed against the sleeve of his torn shirt like a curious child exploring a new toy. Still smiling, she scanned him from head to toe, taking in every detail of his clothing with childlike awe.
Presently she spoke to him in a soft, well-modulated voice which contrasted sharply with her facial appearance. The voice and the girlish figure harmonized perfectly and seemed to belong to each other, while the head and face were those of another creature. Smith-Oldwick could understand no word of what she said, but nevertheless he spoke to her in his own cultured tone, the effect of which upon her was evidently most gratifying, for before he realized her intentions or could prevent her she had thrown both arms about his neck and was kissing him with the utmost abandon.
Right now, she spoke to him in a soft, well-controlled voice that sharply contrasted with her facial appearance. Her voice and youthful figure matched perfectly and seemed to belong together, while her head and face belonged to someone else entirely. Smith-Oldwick couldn’t understand a word she said, but still, he spoke to her in his refined tone, which clearly pleased her a lot, because before he even realized what she was doing, she had wrapped both arms around his neck and was kissing him passionately.
The man tried to free himself from her rather surprising attentions, but she only clung more tightly to him, and suddenly, as he recalled that he had always heard that one must humor the mentally deficient, and at the same time seeing in her a possible agency of escape, he closed his eyes and returned her embraces.
The man attempted to break free from her unexpected attention, but she just held on tighter to him. Suddenly, as he remembered that people say you should be understanding with those who are mentally challenged, and at the same time seeing in her a possible way out, he closed his eyes and embraced her back.
It was at this juncture that the door opened and a man entered. With the sound from the first movement of the latch, Smith-Oldwick opened his eyes, but though he endeavored to disengage himself from the girl he realized that the newcomer had seen their rather compromising position. The girl, whose back was toward the door, seemed at first not to realize that someone had entered, but when she did she turned quickly and as her eyes fell upon the man whose terrible face was now distorted with an expression of hideous rage she turned, screaming, and fled toward the alcove. The Englishman, flushed and embarrassed, stood where she had left him. With the sudden realization of the futility of attempting an explanation, came that of the menacing appearance of the man, whom he now recognized as the official who had received them in the room below. The fellow's face, livid with insane rage and, possibly, jealousy, was twitching violently, accentuating the maniacal expression that it habitually wore.
It was at that moment that the door swung open and a man walked in. As the latch clicked, Smith-Oldwick opened his eyes, but when he tried to pull away from the girl, he realized that the newcomer had noticed their somewhat compromising position. The girl, with her back to the door, initially seemed unaware that someone had entered, but when she did notice, she turned around quickly. When her eyes fell on the man, whose terrifying face was now contorted with a look of sheer rage, she screamed and dashed toward the alcove. The Englishman, red-faced and embarrassed, stood frozen where she had left him. Suddenly realizing that any attempt at explanation was pointless, he also recognized the menacing figure of the man, who he now identified as the official who had received them in the room below. The man's face, pale with insane anger and possibly jealousy, twitched violently, emphasizing the maniacal expression that always seemed to be on his face.
For a moment he seemed paralyzed by anger, and then with a loud shriek that rose into an uncanny wail, he drew his curved saber and sprang toward the Englishman. To Smith-Oldwick there seemed no possible hope of escaping the keen-edged weapon in the hands of the infuriated man, and though he felt assured that it would draw down upon him an equally sudden and possibly more terrible death, he did the only thing that remained for him to do—drew his pistol and fired straight for the heart of the oncoming man. Without even so much as a groan the fellow lunged forward upon the floor at Smith-Oldwick's feet—killed instantly with a bullet through the heart. For several seconds the silence of the tomb reigned in the apartment.
For a moment, he looked frozen with rage, and then with a loud shriek that turned into an eerie wail, he pulled out his curved sword and charged at the Englishman. To Smith-Oldwick, it seemed there was no chance of avoiding the sharp weapon in the hands of the enraged man, and although he knew it would likely lead to a quick and maybe even worse death for himself, he did the only thing left to do—he drew his gun and shot straight for the heart of the approaching man. Without so much as a groan, the man collapsed on the floor at Smith-Oldwick's feet—instantly killed by a bullet to the heart. For several seconds, there was a silence like that of a tomb in the room.
The Englishman, standing over the prostrate figure of the dead man, watched the door with drawn weapon, expecting momentarily to hear the rush of feet of those whom he was sure would immediately investigate the report of the pistol. But no sounds came from below to indicate that anyone there had heard the explosion, and presently the man's attention was distracted from the door to the alcove, between the hangings of which the face of the girl appeared. The eyes were widely dilated and the lower jaw dropped in an expression of surprise and awe.
The Englishman stood over the lifeless body of the dead man, keeping a close watch on the door with his weapon drawn, expecting to hear the sound of footsteps from those he was certain would come to check out the gunshot. But no noise came from downstairs to show that anyone had heard the blast, and soon the man’s focus shifted from the door to the alcove, where the girl’s face emerged between the drapes. Her eyes were wide with shock, and her mouth hung open in surprise and awe.
The girl's gaze was riveted upon the figure upon the floor, and presently she crept stealthily into the room and tiptoed toward the corpse. She appeared as though constantly poised for flight, and when she had come to within two or three feet of the body she stopped and, looking up at Smith-Oldwick, voiced some interrogation which he could not, of course, understand. Then she came close to the side of the dead man and kneeling upon the floor felt gingerly of the body.
The girl's eyes were fixed on the figure on the floor, and soon she quietly entered the room and tiptoed toward the corpse. She seemed ready to run at any moment, and when she got within two or three feet of the body, she paused and, looking up at Smith-Oldwick, asked a question he couldn't understand. Then she approached the dead man, knelt down, and cautiously touched the body.
Presently she shook the corpse by the shoulder, and then with a show of strength which her tenderly girlish form belied, she turned the body over on its back. If she had been in doubt before, one glance at the hideous features set in death must have convinced her that life was extinct, and with the realization there broke from her lips peal after peal of mad, maniacal laughter as with her little hands she beat upon the upturned face and breast of the dead man. It was a gruesome sight from which the Englishman involuntarily drew back—a gruesome, disgusting sight such as, he realized, might never be witnessed outside a madhouse or this frightful city.
Right now, she shook the corpse by the shoulder, and then, putting on a display of strength that her delicate, feminine form contradicted, she flipped the body over onto its back. If she had been unsure before, one look at the horrifying features set in death must have convinced her that life was gone, and with that realization, she erupted into fits of wild, maniacal laughter as she pounded her little hands on the dead man's upturned face and chest. It was a gruesome sight from which the Englishman instinctively recoiled—a gruesome, disgusting sight that he realized might never be seen outside of a madhouse or this terrifying city.
In the midst of her frenzied rejoicing at the death of the man, and Smith-Oldwick could attribute her actions to no other cause, she suddenly desisted from her futile attacks upon the insensate flesh and, leaping to her feet, ran quickly to the door, where she shot a wooden bolt into its socket, thus securing them from interference from without. Then she returned to the center of the room and spoke rapidly to the Englishman, gesturing occasionally toward the body of the slain man. When he could not understand, she presently became provoked and in a sudden hysteria of madness she rushed forward as though to strike the Englishman. Smith-Oldwick dropped back a few steps and leveled his pistol upon her. Mad though she must have been, she evidently was not so mad but what she had connected the loud report, the diminutive weapon, and the sudden death of the man in whose house she dwelt, for she instantly desisted and quite as suddenly as it had come upon her, her homicidal mood departed.
In the middle of her wild celebration at the man's death, which Smith-Oldwick could only attribute to that, she suddenly stopped her pointless attacks on the lifeless body. Jumping to her feet, she quickly ran to the door, where she secured it by sliding a wooden bolt into place, preventing any outside interference. She then returned to the center of the room and spoke rapidly to the Englishman, occasionally gesturing toward the body of the slain man. When he couldn't understand her, she became frustrated and in a sudden fit of madness, she lunged at the Englishman. Smith-Oldwick took a few steps back and aimed his pistol at her. Although she seemed to be out of her mind, she was clearly aware enough to connect the loud gunshot, the small weapon, and the sudden death of the man in whose house she lived, because she instantly stopped and just as quickly as her rage had taken over, it left her.
Again the vacuous, imbecile smile took possession of her features, and her voice, dropping its harshness, resumed the soft, well-modulated tones with which she had first addressed him. Now she attempted by signs to indicate her wishes, and motioning Smith-Oldwick to follow her she went to the hangings and opening them disclosed the alcove. It was rather more than an alcove, being a fair-sized room heavy with rugs and hangings and soft, pillowed couches. Turning at the entrance she pointed to the corpse upon the floor of the outer room, and then crossing the alcove she raised some draperies which covered a couch and fell to the floor upon all sides, disclosing an opening beneath the furniture.
Again, the blank, silly smile took over her face, and her voice, losing its edge, returned to the smooth, well-modulated tones she had first used with him. Now she tried to communicate her wishes with gestures, motioning for Smith-Oldwick to follow her as she approached the hangings and pulled them back to reveal the alcove. It was more than just an alcove; it was a decent-sized room filled with rugs, drapes, and soft, cushioned couches. Turning at the entrance, she pointed to the body on the floor of the outer room, and then, crossing into the alcove, she lifted some drapes that covered a couch, allowing an opening beneath the furniture to be seen.
To this opening she pointed and then again to the corpse, indicating plainly to the Englishman that it was her desire that the body be hidden here. But if he had been in doubt, she essayed to dispel it by grasping his sleeve and urging him in the direction of the body which the two of them then lifted and half carried and half dragged into the alcove. At first they encountered some difficulty when they endeavored to force the body of the man into the small space she had selected for it, but eventually they succeeded in doing so. Smith-Oldwick was again impressed by the fiendish brutality of the girl. In the center of the room lay a blood-stained rug which the girl quickly gathered up and draped over a piece of furniture in such a way that the stain was hidden. By rearranging the other rugs and by bringing one from the alcove she restored the room to order so no outward indication of the tragedy so recently enacted there was apparent.
To this opening, she pointed and then again to the body, clearly indicating to the Englishman that she wanted it hidden here. But if he had any doubts, she tried to clear them up by grabbing his sleeve and urging him towards the body. Together, they lifted and half-carried, half-dragged it into the alcove. At first, they struggled to push the man’s body into the small space she had chosen, but eventually, they managed to do it. Smith-Oldwick was once again struck by the cruel brutality of the girl. In the center of the room lay a blood-stained rug, which the girl quickly gathered up and draped over a piece of furniture to hide the stain. By rearranging the other rugs and bringing one from the alcove, she restored the room to order so that there was no outward sign of the tragedy that had just unfolded there.
These things attended to, and the hangings draped once more about the couch that they might hide the gruesome thing beneath, the girl once more threw her arms about the Englishman's neck and dragged him toward the soft and luxurious pillows above the dead man. Acutely conscious of the horror of his position, filled with loathing, disgust, and an outraged sense of decency, Smith-Oldwick was also acutely alive to the demands of self-preservation. He felt that he was warranted in buying his life at almost any price; but there was a point at which his finer nature rebelled.
Once everything was taken care of, and the drapes were hung back over the couch to conceal the gruesome sight underneath, the girl wrapped her arms around the Englishman’s neck and pulled him toward the soft, luxurious pillows above the dead man. Smith-Oldwick was painfully aware of the horror of his situation, filled with revulsion, disgust, and a strong sense of decency outraged. Yet, he was also very aware of his instinct for survival. He felt justified in doing whatever it took to save his life, but there was a limit where his better nature fought back.
It was at this juncture that a loud knock sounded upon the door of the outer room. Springing from the couch, the girl seized the man by the arm and dragged him after her to the wall close by the head of the couch. Here she drew back one of the hangings, revealing a little niche behind, into which she shoved the Englishman and dropped the hangings before him, effectually hiding him from observation from the rooms beyond.
It was at this moment that a loud knock echoed on the door of the outer room. Jumping up from the couch, the girl grabbed the man by the arm and pulled him with her to the wall near the head of the couch. There, she pulled back one of the drapes, revealing a small niche behind it, into which she pushed the Englishman and dropped the drapes in front of him, successfully hiding him from view from the rooms beyond.
He heard her cross the alcove to the door of the outer room, and heard the bolt withdrawn followed by the voice of a man mingled with that of the girl. The tones of both seemed rational so that he might have been listening to an ordinary conversation in some foreign tongue. Yet with the gruesome experiences of the day behind him, he could not but momentarily expect some insane outbreak from beyond the hangings.
He heard her walk across the alcove to the door of the outer room, and he heard the bolt slide open, followed by a man's voice mixed with the girl's. Both sounded calm enough that it could have been an ordinary conversation in a foreign language. Yet, after the terrifying events of the day, he couldn’t help but temporarily brace for some crazy outburst from beyond the curtains.
He was aware from the sounds that the two had entered the alcove, and, prompted by a desire to know what manner of man he might next have to contend with, he slightly parted the heavy folds that hid the two from his view and looking out saw them sitting on the couch with their arms about each other, the girl with the same expressionless smile upon her face that she had vouchsafed him. He found he could so arrange the hangings that a very narrow slit between two of them permitted him to watch the actions of those in the alcove without revealing himself or increasing his liability of detection.
He heard the sounds that meant the two had entered the alcove, and, curious about the kind of man he might have to deal with next, he gently parted the heavy drapes that concealed them from his sight. Looking out, he saw them sitting on the couch with their arms around each other, the girl wearing the same blank smile she had shown him. He figured out a way to position the hangings so that a narrow gap between them allowed him to observe what was happening in the alcove without exposing himself or increasing the chance of being noticed.
He saw the girl lavishing her kisses upon the newcomer, a much younger man than he whom Smith-Oldwick had dispatched. Presently the girl disengaged herself from the embrace of her lover as though struck by a sudden memory. Her brows puckered as in labored thought and then with a startled expression, she threw a glance backward toward the hidden niche where the Englishman stood, after which she whispered rapidly to her companion, occasionally jerking her head in the direction of the niche and on several occasions making a move with one hand and forefinger, which Smith-Oldwick could not mistake as other than an attempt to describe his pistol and its use.
He saw the girl showering kisses on the newcomer, a much younger man than the one Smith-Oldwick had sent away. Soon, the girl pulled herself away from her lover as if suddenly remembering something. Her brows furrowed in deep thought, and with a look of surprise, she glanced back toward the hidden spot where the Englishman stood. Then, she quickly whispered to her companion, occasionally nodding toward the spot and several times making gestures with her hand and finger that Smith-Oldwick recognized as an attempt to describe his pistol and how it was used.
It was evident then to him that she was betraying him, and without further loss of time he turned his back toward the hangings and commenced a rapid examination of his hiding place. In the alcove the man and the girl whispered, and then cautiously and with great stealth, the man rose and drew his curved saber. On tiptoe he approached the hangings, the girl creeping at his side. Neither spoke now, nor was there any sound in the room as the girl sprang forward and with outstretched arm and pointing finger indicated a point upon the curtain at the height of a man's breast. Then she stepped to one side, and her companion, raising his blade to a horizontal position, lunged suddenly forward and with the full weight of his body and his right arm, drove the sharp point through the hangings and into the niche behind for its full length.
It was clear to him then that she was betraying him, and without wasting any more time, he turned away from the hangings and quickly started searching his hiding spot. In the alcove, the man and the girl whispered, and then slowly and quietly, the man stood up and drew his curved saber. On tiptoe, he moved towards the hangings, the girl creeping alongside him. They didn’t speak now, and there was complete silence in the room as the girl suddenly sprang forward and, with her arm outstretched and her finger pointing, indicated a spot on the curtain at chest height. Then she stepped aside, and her companion, raising his blade horizontally, lunged forward and drove the sharp point through the hangings and into the niche behind it with all his strength.
Bertha Kircher, finding her struggles futile and realizing that she must conserve her strength for some chance opportunity of escape, desisted from her efforts to break from the grasp of Prince Metak as the fellow fled with her through the dimly lighted corridors of the palace. Through many chambers the prince fled, bearing his prize. It was evident to the girl that, though her captor was the king's son, he was not above capture and punishment for his deeds, as otherwise he would not have shown such evident anxiety to escape with her, as well as from the results of his act.
Bertha Kircher, realizing her struggles were pointless and understanding that she needed to save her energy for a potential opportunity to escape, stopped trying to break free from Prince Metak as he hurried away with her through the dimly lit hallways of the palace. The prince raced through many rooms, carrying his prize. It was clear to her that, although he was the king's son, he wasn’t above being caught and punished for what he had done; otherwise, he wouldn’t have shown such obvious anxiety to flee with her and avoid the consequences of his actions.
From the fact that he was constantly turning affrighted eyes behind them, and glancing suspiciously into every nook and corner that they passed, she guessed that the prince's punishment might be both speedy and terrible were he caught.
From the way he was constantly looking back with scared eyes and glancing suspiciously into every nook and cranny they passed, she figured that the prince's punishment could be both quick and severe if he got caught.
She knew from their route that they must have doubled back several times although she had quite lost all sense of direction; but she did not know that the prince was as equally confused as she, and that really he was running in an aimless, erratic manner, hoping that he might stumble eventually upon a place of refuge.
She realized from their path that they must have gone back and forth several times, even though she had completely lost her sense of direction. However, she didn't know that the prince was just as confused as she was and that he was actually running around aimlessly, hoping to eventually find a safe place.
Nor is it to be wondered at that this offspring of maniacs should have difficulty in orienting himself in the winding mazes of a palace designed by maniacs for a maniac king. Now a corridor turned gradually and almost imperceptibly in a new direction, again one doubled back upon and crossed itself; here the floor rose gradually to the level of another story, or again there might be a spiral stairway down which the mad prince rushed dizzily with his burden. Upon what floor they were or in what part of the palace even Metak had no idea until, halting abruptly at a closed door, he pushed it open to step into a brilliantly lighted chamber filled with warriors, at one end of which sat the king upon a great throne; beside this, to the girl's surprise, she saw another throne where was seated a huge lioness, recalling to her the words of Xanila which, at the time, had made no impression on her: "But he had many other queens, nor were they all human."
It's not surprising that this child of crazies struggles to find his way through the twisting paths of a palace built by crazies for a crazy king. Now, one hallway turned slowly and nearly unnoticed in a different direction, while another doubled back on itself; here the floor gradually rose to the height of another level, or there might be a spiral staircase down which the mad prince rushed giddily with his load. Metak had no idea what floor they were on or where they were in the palace until he suddenly stopped at a closed door, pushed it open, and stepped into a brightly lit room filled with warriors. At one end sat the king on a grand throne; beside him, to the girl's surprise, was another throne occupied by a massive lioness, reminding her of Xanila's words, which had not registered with her at the time: "But he had many other queens, nor were they all human."
At sight of Metak and the girl, the king rose from his throne and started across the chamber, all semblance of royalty vanishing in the maniac's uncontrollable passion. And as he came he shrieked orders and commands at the top of his voice. No sooner had Metak so unwarily opened the door to this hornets' nest than he immediately withdrew and, turning, fled again in a new direction. But now a hundred men were close upon his heels, laughing, shrieking, and possibly cursing. He dodged hither and thither, distancing them for several minutes until, at the bottom of a long runway that inclined steeply downward from a higher level, he burst into a subterranean apartment lighted by many flares.
At the sight of Metak and the girl, the king stood up from his throne and rushed across the room, all traces of royalty disappearing in the man's uncontrollable rage. As he approached, he yelled orders and commands at the top of his lungs. The moment Metak had carelessly opened the door to this chaotic scene, he quickly backed away and ran in another direction. But now, a hundred men were right on his heels, laughing, screaming, and maybe cursing. He zigzagged this way and that, keeping them at bay for several minutes until, at the end of a long sloped path leading down from a higher level, he burst into an underground room illuminated by numerous torches.
In the center of the room was a pool of considerable size, the level of the water being but a few inches below the floor. Those behind the fleeing prince and his captive entered the chamber in time to see Metak leap into the water with the girl and disappear beneath the surface taking his captive with him, nor, though they waited excitedly around the rim of the pool, did either of the two again emerge.
In the middle of the room was a large pool, the water level just a few inches below the floor. Those following the escaping prince and his captive entered the chamber just in time to see Metak jump into the water with the girl and vanish under the surface. Despite their eager waiting around the edge of the pool, neither of them ever resurfaced.
When Smith-Oldwick turned to investigate his hiding place, his hands, groping upon the rear wall, immediately came in contact with the wooden panels of a door and a bolt such as that which secured the door of the outer room. Cautiously and silently drawing the wooden bar he pushed gently against the panel to find that the door swung easily and noiselessly outward into utter darkness. Moving carefully and feeling forward for each step he passed out of the niche, closing the door behind him.
When Smith-Oldwick turned to check his hiding spot, his hands, searching along the back wall, quickly touched the wooden panels of a door and a bolt similar to the one that secured the door of the outer room. Carefully and quietly pulling the wooden bar, he pushed gently against the panel to discover that the door swung open easily and silently into complete darkness. Moving slowly and feeling his way forward with each step, he stepped out of the niche, closing the door behind him.
Feeling about, he discovered that he was in a narrow corridor which he followed cautiously for a few yards to be brought up suddenly by what appeared to be a ladder across the passageway. He felt of the obstruction carefully with his hands until he was assured that it was indeed a ladder and that a solid wall was just beyond it, ending the corridor. Therefore, as he could not go forward and as the ladder ended at the floor upon which he stood, and as he did not care to retrace his steps, there was no alternative but to climb upward, and this he did, his pistol ready in a side pocket of his blouse.
Feeling around, he realized he was in a narrow hallway, which he cautiously followed for a few yards until he was suddenly stopped by what looked like a ladder blocking the passage. He carefully touched the obstruction with his hands until he confirmed it was indeed a ladder and that a solid wall was just beyond it, marking the end of the corridor. So, since he couldn't go forward and the ladder ended at the floor he was standing on, and he didn’t want to go back, the only option was to climb up, which he did, with his pistol ready in a side pocket of his shirt.
He had ascended but two or three rungs when his head came suddenly and painfully in contact with a hard surface above him. Groping about with one hand over his head he discovered that the obstacle seemed to be the covering to a trap door in the ceiling which, with a little effort, he succeeded in raising a couple of inches, revealing through the cracks the stars of a clear African night.
He had climbed just two or three rungs when his head suddenly and painfully hit a hard surface above him. Reaching up with one hand, he realized that the barrier was the cover of a trap door in the ceiling, which he managed to lift a couple of inches with some effort, revealing the stars of a clear African night through the gaps.
With a sigh of relief, but with unabated caution, he gently slid the trapdoor to one side far enough to permit him to raise his eyes above the level of the roof. A quick glance assured him that there was none near enough to observe his movements, nor, in fact, as far as he could see, was anyone in sight.
With a sigh of relief, but still being careful, he slowly pushed the trapdoor to the side just enough to lift his eyes above the roof level. A quick look confirmed that there was no one close enough to see his movements, and, as far as he could tell, there was no one in sight.
Drawing himself quickly through the aperture he replaced the cover and endeavored to regain his bearings. Directly to the south of him the low roof he stood upon adjoined a much loftier portion of the building, which rose several stories above his head. A few yards to the west he could see the flickering light of the flares of a winding street, and toward this he made his way.
Drawing himself quickly through the opening, he replaced the cover and tried to get his bearings. Directly south of him, the low roof he was on connected to a much taller section of the building, which rose several stories above him. A few yards to the west, he could see the flickering light of the flares from a winding street, and he headed in that direction.
From the edge of the roof he looked down upon the night life of the mad city. He saw men and women and children and lions, and of all that he saw it was quite evident to him that only the lions were sane. With the aid of the stars he easily picked out the points of the compass, and following carefully in his memory the steps that had led him into the city and to the roof upon which he now stood, he knew that the thoroughfare upon which he looked was the same along which he and Bertha Kircher had been led as prisoners earlier in the day.
From the edge of the roof, he looked down at the nightlife of the crazy city. He saw men, women, children, and lions, and it was clear to him that only the lions were sane. With the help of the stars, he easily identified the points of the compass, and carefully recalling the route that had brought him into the city and to the roof where he now stood, he realized that the street he was looking at was the same one he and Bertha Kircher had been taken along as prisoners earlier that day.
If he could reach this he might be able to pass undetected in the shadows of the arcade to the city gate. He had already given up as futile the thought of seeking out the girl and attempting to succor her, for he knew that alone and with the few remaining rounds of ammunition he possessed, he could do nothing against this city-full of armed men. That he could live to cross the lion-infested forest beyond the city was doubtful, and having, by some miracle, won to the desert beyond, his fate would be certainly sealed; but yet he was consumed with but one desire—to leave behind him as far as possible this horrid city of maniacs.
If he could reach this point, he might be able to slip unnoticed through the shadows of the arcade to the city gate. He had already abandoned the idea of searching for the girl and trying to help her, knowing that alone and with the few remaining bullets he had, he could do nothing against a city full of armed men. It was uncertain whether he could survive crossing the lion-infested forest beyond the city, and even if he somehow made it to the desert beyond, his fate would be sealed; yet he was driven by one desire—to get as far away as possible from this terrible city of crazies.
He saw that the roofs rose to the same level as that upon which he stood unbroken to the north to the next street intersection. Directly below him was a flare. To reach the pavement in safety it was necessary that he find as dark a portion of the avenue as possible. And so he sought along the edge of the roofs for a place where he might descend in comparative concealment.
He noticed that the roofs were level with the one he stood on, stretching unbroken to the next street intersection to the north. Right below him was a flare. To get down to the pavement safely, he needed to find the darkest part of the avenue possible. So, he searched along the edge of the roofs for a spot where he could descend with some cover.
He had proceeded some little way beyond a point where the street curved abruptly to the east before he discovered a location sufficiently to his liking. But even here he was compelled to wait a considerable time for a satisfactory moment for his descent, which he had decided to make down one of the pillars of the arcade. Each time he prepared to lower himself over the edge of the roofs, footsteps approaching in one direction or another deterred him until at last he had almost come to the conclusion that he would have to wait for the entire city to sleep before continuing his flight.
He had gone a short distance past a spot where the street suddenly curved to the east before he found a place he really liked. But even here, he had to wait quite a long time for the right moment to make his descent, which he planned to do down one of the pillars of the arcade. Every time he got ready to lower himself over the edge of the roofs, footsteps coming from one direction or another stopped him until he finally nearly decided that he would have to wait until the whole city was asleep before he could continue his escape.
But finally came a moment which he felt propitious and though with inward qualms, it was with outward calm that he commenced the descent to the street below.
But finally, a moment arrived that felt favorable, and although he had some internal doubts, he began his descent to the street below with an outward calm.
When at last he stood beneath the arcade he was congratulating himself upon the success that had attended his efforts up to this point when, at a slight sound behind him, he turned to see a tall figure in the yellow tunic of a warrior confronting him.
When he finally stood under the arcade, he was patting himself on the back for the success he had achieved so far when, at a faint noise behind him, he turned to see a tall figure in a yellow warrior's tunic staring at him.
Chapter XXII
Out of the Niche
Numa, the lion, growled futilely in baffled rage as he slipped back to the ground at the foot of the wall after his unsuccessful attempt to drag down the fleeing ape-man. He poised to make a second effort to follow his escaping quarry when his nose picked up a hitherto unnoticed quality in the scent spoor of his intended prey. Sniffing at the ground that Tarzan's feet had barely touched, Numa's growl changed to a low whine, for he had recognized the scent spoor of the man-thing that had rescued him from the pit of the Wamabos.
Numa, the lion, growled in frustrated anger as he fell back to the ground at the base of the wall after failing to catch the fleeing ape-man. He got ready to make another attempt to follow his escaping target when he noticed a previously undetected quality in the scent trail of his intended prey. Sniffing the ground that Tarzan's feet had barely brushed, Numa's growl shifted to a low whine, as he recognized the scent of the man-thing that had saved him from the pit of the Wamabos.
What thoughts passed through that massive head? Who may say? But now there was no indication of baffled rage as the great lion turned and moved majestically eastward along the wall. At the eastern end of the city he turned toward the south, continuing his way to the south side of the wall along which were the pens and corrals where the herbivorous flocks were fattened for the herds of domesticated lions within the city. The great black lions of the forest fed with almost equal impartiality upon the flesh of the grass-eaters and man. Like Numa of the pit they occasionally made excursions across the desert to the fertile valley of the Wamabos, but principally they took their toll of meat from the herds of the walled city of Herog, the mad king, or seized upon some of his luckless subjects.
What thoughts were swirling in that massive head? Who can say? But now, there was no hint of confused rage as the great lion turned and moved gracefully eastward along the wall. At the eastern edge of the city, he turned south, continuing his path along the southern side of the wall, where the pens and corrals were located for fattening the herbivorous flocks meant for the domesticated lions within the city. The great black lions of the forest fed almost equally on the flesh of both the grass-eaters and humans. Like Numa from the pit, they would occasionally venture across the desert to the fertile valley of the Wamabos, but mostly, they took their share of meat from the herds of the walled city of Herog, the mad king, or preyed on some of his unfortunate subjects.
Numa of the pit was in some respects an exception to the rule which guided his fellows of the forest in that as a cub he had been trapped and carried into the city, where he was kept for breeding purposes, only to escape in his second year. They had tried to teach him in the city of maniacs that he must not eat the flesh of man, and the result of their schooling was that only when aroused to anger or upon that one occasion that he had been impelled by the pangs of hunger, did he ever attack man.
Numa of the pit was somewhat different from the other animals in the forest because, as a cub, he had been captured and taken to the city, where he was held for breeding purposes, only to escape in his second year. They tried to teach him in that crazy city that he shouldn’t eat human flesh, and as a result of their efforts, he only attacked humans when he was really angry or during that one time when hunger drove him to do it.
The animal corrals of the maniacs are protected by an outer wall or palisade of upright logs, the lower ends of which are imbedded in the ground, the logs themselves being placed as close together as possible and further reinforced and bound together by withes. At intervals there are gates through which the flocks are turned on to the grazing land south of the city during the daytime. It is at such times that the black lions of the forest take their greatest toll from the herds, and it is infrequent that a lion attempts to enter the corrals at night. But Numa of the pit, having scented the spoor of his benefactor, was minded again to pass into the walled city, and with that idea in his cunning brain he crept stealthily along the outer side of the palisade, testing each gateway with a padded foot until at last he discovered one which seemed insecurely fastened. Lowering his great head he pressed against the gate, surging forward with all the weight of his huge body and the strength of his giant sinews—one mighty effort and Numa was within the corral.
The animal pens of the crazies are protected by an outer wall or fence made of upright logs, the lower ends of which are buried in the ground. The logs are placed as close together as possible and further reinforced and bound with branches. There are gates at intervals where the flocks are led out to graze south of the city during the day. It's during these times that the black lions of the forest take their biggest toll on the herds, and it's rare for a lion to try to enter the pens at night. But Numa of the pit, having caught the scent of his benefactor, was determined to enter the walled city again. With this thought in mind, he stealthily crept along the outside of the fence, testing each gate with a padded foot until he finally found one that seemed to be loosely fastened. Lowering his massive head, he pressed against the gate, surging forward with the full weight of his huge body and the strength of his powerful muscles—one mighty effort and Numa was inside the pen.
The enclosure contained a herd of goats which immediately upon the advent of the carnivore started a mad stampede to the opposite end of the corral which was bounded by the south wall of the city. Numa had been within such a corral as this before, so that he knew that somewhere in the wall was a small door through which the goatherd might pass from the city to his flock; toward this door he made his way, whether by plan or accident it is difficult to say, though in the light of ensuing events it seems possible that the former was the case.
The enclosure held a herd of goats that immediately started a wild stampede to the far end of the corral when the carnivore showed up, which was bordered by the south wall of the city. Numa had been in a corral like this before, so he knew there was a small door somewhere in the wall that the goatherd could use to get from the city to his flock. He made his way toward this door, and whether it was by design or coincidence is hard to tell; however, based on what happened next, it seems likely that it was intentional.
To reach the gate he must pass directly through the herd which had huddled affrightedly close to the opening so that once again there was a furious rush of hoofs as Numa strode quickly to the side of the portal. If Numa had planned, he had planned well, for scarcely had he reached his position when the door opened and a herder's head was projected into the enclosure, the fellow evidently seeking an explanation of the disturbance among his flock. Possibly he discovered the cause of the commotion, but it is doubtful, for it was dark and the great, taloned paw that reached up and struck downward a mighty blow that almost severed his head from his body, moved so quickly and silently that the man was dead within a fraction of a second from the moment that he opened the door, and then Numa, knowing now his way, passed through the wall into the dimly lighted streets of the city beyond.
To get to the gate, he had to walk right through the herd, which had huddled in fear near the opening. Again, there was a chaotic rush of hooves as Numa quickly moved to the side of the door. If Numa had a plan, it was a good one because just as he got into position, the door opened and a herder's head popped into the enclosure, clearly trying to figure out what was going on with his flock. He might have found out what caused the ruckus, but it’s hard to say for sure because it was dark. The massive, clawed paw that struck down a powerful blow, nearly decapitating him, moved so fast and quietly that the man was dead in a split second from when he opened the door. Then Numa, now familiar with the way, slipped through the wall into the dimly lit streets of the city beyond.
Smith-Oldwick's first thought when he was accosted by the figure in the yellow tunic of a soldier was to shoot the man dead and trust to his legs and the dimly lighted, winding streets to permit his escape, for he knew that to be accosted was equivalent to recapture since no inhabitant of this weird city but would recognize him as an alien. It would be a simple thing to shoot the man from the pocket where the pistol lay without drawing the weapon, and with this purpose in mind the Englishman slipped his hands into the side pocket of his blouse, but simultaneously with this action his wrist was seized in a powerful grasp and a low voice whispered in English: "Lieutenant, it is I, Tarzan of the Apes."
Smith-Oldwick's first thought when he was approached by the figure in the yellow uniform of a soldier was to shoot the man dead and rely on his legs and the dimly lit, winding streets to help him escape. He knew that being approached meant he’d be recaptured, as everyone in this strange city would recognize him as an outsider. It would be easy to shoot the man from the pocket where his pistol lay without drawing the weapon, and with that intention in mind, the Englishman slipped his hands into the side pocket of his shirt. But at that moment, his wrist was grabbed in a strong grip, and a low voice whispered in English: "Lieutenant, it’s me, Tarzan of the Apes."
The relief from the nervous strain under which he had been laboring for so long, left Smith-Oldwick suddenly as weak as a babe, so that he was forced to grasp the ape-man's arm for support—and when he found his voice all he could do was to repeat: "You? You? I thought you were dead!"
The relief from the nervous stress he had been under for so long left Smith-Oldwick feeling as weak as a baby, so he had to grab the ape-man's arm for support—and when he finally found his voice, all he could say was, "You? You? I thought you were dead!"
"No, not dead," replied Tarzan, "and I see that you are not either. But how about the girl?"
"No, not dead," Tarzan replied, "and I can see that you're not either. But what about the girl?"
"I haven't seen her," replied the Englishman, "since we were brought here. We were taken into a building on the plaza close by and there we were separated. She was led away by guards and I was put into a den of lions. I haven't seen her since."
"I haven't seen her," replied the Englishman, "since we were brought here. We were taken into a nearby building on the plaza, and there we were separated. She was taken away by guards, and I was thrown into a den of lions. I haven't seen her since."
"How did you escape?" asked the ape-man.
"How did you get away?" asked the ape-man.
"The lions didn't seem to pay much attention to me and I climbed out of the place by way of a tree and through a window into a room on the second floor. Had a little scrimmage there with a fellow and was hidden by one of their women in a hole in the wall. The loony thing then betrayed me to another bounder who happened in, but I found a way out and up onto the roof where I have been for quite some time now waiting for a chance to get down into the street without being seen. That's all I know, but I haven't the slightest idea in the world where to look for Miss Kircher."
"The lions didn't really pay much attention to me, so I climbed out using a tree and through a window into a room on the second floor. I got into a bit of a scuffle there with a guy and was hidden by one of their women in a hole in the wall. The crazy thing then betrayed me to another jerk who showed up, but I found a way out and got up onto the roof where I've been for quite a while now, waiting for a chance to get down to the street without being spotted. That's all I know, but I have no idea at all where to look for Miss Kircher."
"Where were you going now?" asked Tarzan.
"Where are you headed now?" asked Tarzan.
Smith-Oldwick hesitated. "I—well, I couldn't do anything here alone and I was going to try to get out of the city and in some way reach the British forces east and bring help."
Smith-Oldwick hesitated. "I—well, I couldn’t do anything here by myself, and I was planning to leave the city and somehow get to the British forces in the east to bring help."
"You couldn't do it," said Tarzan. "Even if you got through the forest alive you could never cross the desert country without food or water."
"You can't do it," said Tarzan. "Even if you make it through the forest alive, you would never get across the desert without food or water."
"What shall we do, then?" asked the Englishman.
"What should we do, then?" asked the Englishman.
"We will see if we can find the girl," replied the ape-man, and then, as though he had forgotten the presence of the Englishman and was arguing to convince himself, "She may be a German and a spy, but she is a woman—a white woman—I can't leave her here."
"We'll see if we can find the girl," replied the ape-man, and then, as if he had forgotten the Englishman was there and was trying to convince himself, "She might be German and a spy, but she’s a woman—a white woman—I can’t leave her here."
"But how are we going to find her?" asked the Englishman.
"But how are we going to find her?" asked the Englishman.
"I have followed her this far," replied Tarzan, "and unless I am greatly mistaken I can follow her still farther."
"I've followed her this far," Tarzan replied, "and unless I'm really wrong, I can follow her even further."
"But I cannot accompany you in these clothes without exposing us both to detection and arrest," argued Smith-Oldwick.
"But I can't go with you in these clothes without putting us both at risk of being caught and arrested," argued Smith-Oldwick.
"We will get you other clothes, then," said Tarzan.
"We'll get you some other clothes, then," said Tarzan.
"How?" asked the Englishman.
"How?" asked the Brit.
"Go back to the roof beside the city wall where I entered," replied the ape-man with a grim smile, "and ask the naked dead man there how I got my disguise."
"Go back to the roof next to the city wall where I came in," replied the ape-man with a smirk, "and ask the naked dead guy there how I got my disguise."
Smith-Oldwick looked quickly up at his companion. "I have it," he exclaimed. "I know where there is a fellow who doesn't need his clothes anymore, and if we can get back on this roof I think we can find him and get his apparel without much resistance. Only a girl and a young fellow whom we could easily surprise and overcome."
Smith-Oldwick glanced up at his friend. "I've got it," he said excitedly. "I know a guy who doesn’t need his clothes anymore, and if we can get back on this roof, I think we can find him and grab his stuff without much trouble. It’s just a girl and a young guy we could easily catch off guard."
"What do you mean?" asked Tarzan. "How do you know that the man doesn't need his clothes any more."
"What do you mean?" asked Tarzan. "How do you know that the guy doesn't need his clothes anymore?"
"I know he doesn't need them," replied the Englishman, "because I killed him."
"I know he doesn't need them," replied the Englishman, "because I killed him."
"Oh!" exclaimed the ape-man, "I see. I guess it might be easier that way than to tackle one of these fellows in the street where there is more chance of our being interrupted."
"Oh!" exclaimed the ape-man, "I get it. It might be easier that way instead of confronting one of these guys in the street where we might get interrupted."
"But how are we going to reach the roof again, after all?" queried Smith-Oldwick.
"But how are we going to get back to the roof, after all?" asked Smith-Oldwick.
"The same way you came down," replied Tarzan. "This roof is low and there is a little ledge formed by the capital of each column; I noticed that when you descended. Some of the buildings wouldn't have been so easy to negotiate."
"The same way you came down," replied Tarzan. "This roof is low, and there’s a small ledge on each column’s capital; I saw that when you went down. Some of the buildings wouldn’t have been so easy to get through."
Smith-Oldwick looked up toward the eaves of the low roof. "It's not very high," he said, "but I am afraid I can't make it. I'll try—I've been pretty weak since a lion mauled me and the guards beat me up, and too, I haven't eaten since yesterday."
Smith-Oldwick looked up at the eaves of the low roof. "It's not very high," he said, "but I'm afraid I can't make it. I'll try—I've been feeling pretty weak since a lion attacked me and the guards beat me up, plus I haven't eaten since yesterday."
Tarzan thought a moment. "You've got to go with me," he said at last. "I can't leave you here. The only chance you have of escape is through me and I can't go with you now until we have found the girl."
Tarzan paused for a moment. "You have to come with me," he finally said. "I can't leave you here. Your only chance of getting away is with me, and I can't go with you just yet until we find the girl."
"I want to go with you," replied Smith-Oldwick. "I'm not much good now but at that two of us may be better than one."
"I want to come with you," replied Smith-Oldwick. "I'm not very helpful right now, but having both of us might be better than just one."
"All right," said Tarzan, "come on," and before the Englishman realized what the other contemplated Tarzan had picked him up and thrown him across his shoulder. "Now, hang on," whispered the ape-man, and with a short run he clambered apelike up the front of the low arcade. So quickly and easily was it done that the Englishman scarcely had time to realize what was happening before he was deposited safely upon the roof.
"Okay," said Tarzan, "let's go," and before the Englishman knew what was happening, Tarzan had lifted him and tossed him over his shoulder. "Now, hold on," whispered the ape-man, and with a quick run, he climbed up the front of the low arcade like an ape. It happened so fast and smoothly that the Englishman barely had time to grasp what was going on before he was safely set down on the roof.
"There," remarked Tarzan. "Now, lead me to the place you speak of."
"There," Tarzan said. "Now, take me to the place you're talking about."
Smith-Oldwick had no difficulty in locating the trap in the roof through which he had escaped. Removing the cover the ape-man bent low, listening and sniffing. "Come," he said after a moment's investigation and lowered himself to the floor beneath. Smith-Oldwick followed him, and together the two crept through the darkness toward the door in the back wall of the niche in which the Englishman had been hidden by the girl. They found the door ajar and opening it Tarzan saw a streak of light showing through the hangings that separated it from the alcove.
Smith-Oldwick easily found the trapdoor in the roof through which he had escaped. After removing the cover, the ape-man crouched down, listening and sniffing. "Come on," he said after a moment's check and lowered himself to the floor below. Smith-Oldwick followed him, and together they crawled through the darkness towards the door in the back wall of the niche where the girl had hidden the Englishman. They discovered the door slightly open, and as Tarzan pushed it open, he saw a beam of light shining through the drapes that separated it from the alcove.
Placing his eye close to the aperture he saw the girl and the young man of which the Englishman had spoken seated on opposite sides of a low table upon which food was spread. Serving them was a giant Negro and it was he whom the ape-man watched most closely. Familiar with the tribal idiosyncrasies of a great number of African tribes over a considerable proportion of the Dark Continent, the Tarmangani at last felt reasonably assured that he knew from what part of Africa this slave had come, and the dialect of his people. There was, however, the chance that the fellow had been captured in childhood and that through long years of non-use his native language had become lost to him, but then there always had been an element of chance connected with nearly every event of Tarzan's life, so he waited patiently until in the performance of his duties the black man approached a little table which stood near the niche in which Tarzan and the Englishman hid.
Placing his eye close to the opening, he saw the girl and the young man the Englishman had mentioned, sitting across from each other at a low table covered with food. A huge Black man was serving them, and that was the person the ape-man focused on the most. Familiar with the customs of many African tribes across a large part of the continent, the Tarmangani felt fairly confident he could identify where this slave came from and the language of his people. However, there was a possibility that the man had been captured in childhood and had lost his native language over many years of not using it. But then again, there had always been an element of chance in almost every event of Tarzan's life, so he waited patiently until the Black man moved closer to a small table near the alcove where Tarzan and the Englishman were hiding.
As the slave bent over some dish which stood upon the table his ear was not far from the aperture through which Tarzan looked. Apparently from a solid wall, for the Negro had no knowledge of the existence of the niche, came to him in the tongue of his own people, the whispered words: "If you would return to the land of the Wamabo say nothing, but do as I bid you."
As the slave leaned over a dish on the table, his ear was close to the opening where Tarzan was watching. Coming from what seemed like a solid wall, since the man had no idea about the niche's existence, he heard whispered words in his own language: "If you want to go back to the land of the Wamabo, say nothing, but follow my instructions."
The black rolled terrified eyes toward the hangings at his side. The ape-man could see him tremble and for a moment was fearful that in his terror he would betray them. "Fear not," he whispered, "we are your friends."
The black rolled terrified eyes toward the hangings at his side. The ape-man could see him tremble and for a moment was afraid that in his fear he would give them away. "Don't be afraid," he whispered, "we're your friends."
At last the Negro spoke in a low whisper, scarcely audible even to the keen ears of the ape-man. "What," he asked, "can poor Otobu do for the god who speaks to him out of the solid wall?"
At last, the Black man spoke in a low whisper, barely audible even to the sharp ears of the ape-man. "What," he asked, "can poor Otobu do for the god who speaks to him from the solid wall?"
"This," replied Tarzan. "Two of us are coming into this room. Help us prevent this man and woman from escaping or raising an outcry that will bring others to their aid."
"This," said Tarzan. "Two of us are coming into this room. Help us keep this man and woman from escaping or making a scene that will alert others to help them."
"I will help you," replied the Negro, "to keep them within this room, but do not fear that their outcries will bring others. These walls are built so that no sound may pass through, and even if it did what difference would it make in this village which is constantly filled with the screams of its mad people. Do not fear their cries. No one will notice them. I go to do your bidding."
"I'll help you," the man said, "to keep them in this room, but don't worry about their shouting attracting anyone else. These walls are designed so that no sound can get out, and even if it did, what difference would it make in this village that's always filled with the screams of its crazy people? Don’t be afraid of their cries. No one will notice. I'm going to do what you asked."
Tarzan saw the black cross the room to the table upon which he placed another dish of food before the feasters. Then he stepped to a place behind the man and as he did so raised his eyes to the point in the wall from which the ape-man's voice had come to him, as much as to say, "Master, I am ready."
Tarzan watched the black figure cross the room to the table where he set down another dish of food for the diners. Then he moved to a spot behind the man, looking up at the spot on the wall where the ape-man's voice had reached him, as if to say, "Master, I’m ready."
Without more delay Tarzan threw aside the hangings and stepped into the room. As he did so the young man rose from the table to be instantly seized from behind by the black slave. The girl, whose back was toward the ape-man and his companion, was not at first aware of their presence but saw only the attack of the slave upon her lover, and with a loud scream she leaped forward to assist the latter. Tarzan sprang to her side and laid a heavy hand upon her arm before she could interfere with Otobu's attentions to the young man. At first, as she turned toward the ape-man, her face reflected only mad rage, but almost instantly this changed into the vapid smile with which Smith-Oldwick was already familiar and her slim fingers commenced their soft appraisement of the newcomer.
Without any hesitation, Tarzan pushed aside the curtains and entered the room. As he did, the young man stood up only to be immediately grabbed from behind by the black slave. The girl, who had her back turned to the ape-man and his companion, initially didn’t notice their presence but only saw the slave attacking her lover. With a loud scream, she jumped forward to help him. Tarzan rushed to her side and placed a firm hand on her arm to stop her from interfering with Otobu's assault on the young man. At first, as she turned to face the ape-man, her expression was one of pure rage, but almost instantly it transformed into the vacant smile that Smith-Oldwick was already familiar with, and her slender fingers began to softly explore the newcomer.
Almost immediately she discovered Smith-Oldwick but there was neither surprise nor anger upon her countenance. Evidently the poor mad creature knew but two principal moods, from one to the other of which she changed with lightning-like rapidity.
Almost immediately, she noticed Smith-Oldwick, but there was no surprise or anger on her face. Clearly, the poor mad woman only experienced two main emotions, switching between them with lightning speed.
"Watch her a moment," said Tarzan to the Englishman, "while I disarm that fellow," and stepping to the side of the young man whom Otobu was having difficulty in subduing Tarzan relieved him of his saber. "Tell them," he said to the Negro, "if you speak their language, that we will not harm them if they leave us alone and let us depart in peace."
"Keep an eye on her for a second," Tarzan said to the Englishman, "while I take care of that guy." He moved over to the young man that Otobu was struggling to subdue and took his saber. "Tell them," he said to the Black man, "if you understand their language, that we won't hurt them if they leave us alone and let us go in peace."
The black had been looking at Tarzan with wide eyes, evidently not comprehending how this god could appear in so material a form, and with the voice of a white bwana and the uniform of a warrior of this city to which he quite evidently did not belong. But nevertheless his first confidence in the voice that offered him freedom was not lessened and he did as Tarzan bid him.
The black man had been staring at Tarzan with wide eyes, clearly not understanding how this god could take such a physical form, speaking with the voice of a white leader and dressed in the uniform of a warrior from a city he obviously didn't belong to. Yet, despite that confusion, his initial trust in the voice that promised him freedom remained unshaken, and he followed Tarzan's command.
"They want to know what you want," said Otobu, after he had spoken to the man and the girl.
"They want to know what you want," Otobu said after talking to the man and the girl.
"Tell them that we want food for one thing," said Tarzan, "and something else that we know where to find in this room. Take the man's spear, Otobu; I see it leaning against the wall in the corner of the room. And you, Lieutenant, take his saber," and then again to Otobu, "I will watch the man while you go and bring forth that which is beneath the couch over against this wall," and Tarzan indicated the location of the piece of furniture.
"Tell them we want food, for starters," said Tarzan, "and something else that we know where to find in this room. Take the man's spear, Otobu; I see it leaning against the wall in the corner. And you, Lieutenant, take his saber." Then, looking at Otobu again, he added, "I'll keep an eye on the man while you go and bring what's under the couch over by this wall," and Tarzan pointed to where the piece of furniture was.
Otobu, trained to obey, did as he was bid. The eyes of the man and the girl followed him, and as he drew back the hangings and dragged forth the corpse of the man Smith-Oldwick had slain, the girl's lover voiced a loud scream and attempted to leap forward to the side of the corpse. Tarzan, however, seized him and then the fellow turned upon him with teeth and nails. It was with no little difficulty that Tarzan finally subdued the man, and while Otobu was removing the outer clothing from the corpse, Tarzan asked the black to question the young man as to his evident excitement at the sight of the body.
Otobu, trained to obey, did as he was told. The eyes of the man and the girl followed him, and as he pulled back the curtains and dragged out the corpse of the man Smith-Oldwick had killed, the girl's lover let out a loud scream and tried to rush forward to the corpse. However, Tarzan grabbed him, and then the guy turned on him with teeth and fists. Tarzan had a hard time finally subduing him, and while Otobu was taking off the outer clothing from the corpse, Tarzan asked the black man to question the young man about his visible reaction to seeing the body.
"I can tell you Bwana," replied Otobu. "This man was his father."
"I can tell you, sir," replied Otobu. "This man was his father."
"What is he saying to the girl?" asked Tarzan.
"What is he saying to the girl?" Tarzan asked.
"He is asking her if she knew that the body of his father was under the couch. And she is saying that she did not know it."
"He’s asking her if she knew that his father’s body was under the couch. And she says she didn’t know."
Tarzan repeated the conversation to Smith-Oldwick, who smiled. "If the chap could have seen her removing all evidence of the crime and arranging the hangings of the couch so that the body was concealed after she had helped me drag it across the room, he wouldn't have very much doubt as to her knowledge of the affair. The rug you see draped over the bench in the corner was arranged to hide the blood stain—in some ways they are not so loony after all."
Tarzan told Smith-Oldwick about the conversation, and he smiled. "If that guy could have seen her cleaning up the crime scene and fixing the couch hangings to hide the body after she helped me move it across the room, he wouldn’t have any doubts about what she knew. The rug draped over the bench in the corner was placed there to cover the blood stain—in some ways, they aren’t so crazy after all."
The black man had now removed the outer garments from the dead man, and Smith-Oldwick was hastily drawing them on over his own clothing. "And now," said Tarzan, "we will sit down and eat. One accomplishes little on an empty stomach." As they ate the ape-man attempted to carry on a conversation with the two natives through Otobu. He learned that they were in the palace which had belonged to the dead man lying upon the floor beside them. He had held an official position of some nature, and he and his family were of the ruling class but were not members of the court.
The black man had now taken off the outer clothes from the dead man, and Smith-Oldwick was quickly putting them on over his own clothes. "Now," said Tarzan, "let's sit down and eat. You can't accomplish much on an empty stomach." While they ate, the ape-man tried to have a conversation with the two natives through Otobu. He found out that they were in the palace that had belonged to the dead man lying on the floor next to them. He had held some sort of official position, and he and his family were part of the ruling class but weren't members of the court.
When Tarzan questioned them about Bertha Kircher, the young man said that she had been taken to the king's palace; and when asked why replied: "For the king, of course."
When Tarzan asked them about Bertha Kircher, the young man said she had been taken to the king's palace; and when asked why, he replied, "For the king, of course."
During the conversation both the man and the girl appeared quite rational, even asking some questions as to the country from which their uninvited guests had come, and evidencing much surprise when informed that there was anything but waterless wastes beyond their own valley.
During the conversation, both the man and the girl seemed very rational, even asking questions about the country their unexpected guests came from, and showing a lot of surprise when they were told there was more than just barren land beyond their own valley.
When Otobu asked the man, at Tarzan's suggestion, if he was familiar with the interior of the king's palace, he replied that he was; that he was a friend of Prince Metak, one of the king's sons, and that he often visited the palace and that Metak also came here to his father's palace frequently. As Tarzan ate he racked his brain for some plan whereby he might utilize the knowledge of the young man to gain entrance to the palace, but he had arrived at nothing which he considered feasible when there came a loud knocking upon the door of the outer room.
When Otobu asked the man, as suggested by Tarzan, if he knew the inside of the king's palace, he answered that he did; he was a friend of Prince Metak, one of the king's sons, and that he often visited the palace, while Metak also came here to his father's palace regularly. As Tarzan ate, he tried to think of a way to use the young man's knowledge to gain access to the palace, but he hadn’t come up with anything he thought would work when there was a loud knock on the door of the outer room.
For a moment no one spoke and then the young man raised his voice and cried aloud to those without. Immediately Otobu sprang for the fellow and attempted to smother his words by clapping a palm over his mouth.
For a moment, no one said anything, and then the young man raised his voice and shouted to those outside. Instantly, Otobu jumped at him and tried to cover his mouth with his hand.
"What is he saying?" asked Tarzan.
"What is he saying?" Tarzan asked.
"He is telling them to break down the door and rescue him and the girl from two strangers who entered and made them prisoners. If they enter they will kill us all."
"He’s telling them to break down the door and save him and the girl from two strangers who came in and took them hostage. If they come in, they’ll kill us all."
"Tell him," said Tarzan, "to hold his peace or I will slay him."
"Tell him," Tarzan said, "to be quiet or I'll kill him."
Otobu did as he was instructed and the young maniac lapsed into scowling silence. Tarzan crossed the alcove and entered the outer room to note the effect of the assaults upon the door. Smith-Oldwick followed him a few steps, leaving Otobu to guard the two prisoners. The ape-man saw that the door could not long withstand the heavy blows being dealt the panels from without. "I wanted to use that fellow in the other room," he said to Smith-Oldwick, "but I am afraid we will have to get out of here the way we came. We can't accomplish anything by waiting here and meeting these fellows. From the noise out there there must be a dozen of them. Come," he said, "you go first and I will follow."
Otobu did what he was told, and the young maniac fell into a sullen silence. Tarzan crossed the alcove and stepped into the outer room to check the damage from the pounding on the door. Smith-Oldwick followed him a few steps, leaving Otobu to watch over the two prisoners. The ape-man noticed that the door wouldn't hold up much longer against the heavy blows coming from outside. "I wanted to use that guy in the other room," he said to Smith-Oldwick, "but I’m afraid we’ll have to leave the way we came. We can’t achieve anything by just waiting here and facing these guys. From the noise out there, there must be a dozen of them. Come on," he said, "you go first, and I’ll follow."
As the two turned back from the alcove they witnessed an entirely different scene from that upon which they had turned their backs but a moment or two before. Stretched on the floor and apparently lifeless lay the body of the black slave, while the two prisoners had vanished completely.
As the two turned back from the alcove, they saw a completely different scene from the one they had just turned away from a moment ago. Lying on the floor, seemingly lifeless, was the body of the Black slave, while the two prisoners had disappeared entirely.
Chapter XXIII
The Flight from Xuja
As Metak bore Bertha Kircher toward the edge of the pool, the girl at first had no conception of the deed he contemplated but when, as they approached the edge, he did not lessen his speed she guessed the frightful truth. As he leaped head foremost with her into the water, she closed her eyes and breathed a silent prayer, for she was confident that the maniac had no other purpose than to drown himself and her. And yet, so potent is the first law of nature that even in the face of certain death, as she surely believed herself, she clung tenaciously to life, and while she struggled to free herself from the powerful clutches of the madman, she held her breath against the final moment when the asphyxiating waters must inevitably flood her lungs.
As Metak carried Bertha Kircher toward the edge of the pool, she initially had no idea of his terrible intent. But as they neared the edge and he didn’t slow down, she realized the horrifying truth. When he jumped headfirst into the water with her, she shut her eyes and silently prayed, convinced that the maniac's only goal was to drown both of them. Yet, the instinct to survive is so strong that even in the face of certain death—something she believed she was facing—she clung desperately to life. As she fought to escape from the madman's grip, she held her breath, bracing for the moment when the suffocating water would inevitably fill her lungs.
Through the frightful ordeal she maintained absolute control of her senses so that, after the first plunge, she was aware that the man was swimming with her beneath the surface. He took perhaps not more than a dozen strokes directly toward the end wall of the pool and then he arose; and once again she knew that her head was above the surface. She opened her eyes to see that they were in a corridor dimly lighted by gratings set in its roof—a winding corridor, water filled from wall to wall.
Through the terrifying experience, she kept complete control of her senses so that, after the initial plunge, she realized the man was swimming with her beneath the surface. He swam maybe a dozen strokes straight toward the end wall of the pool and then he surfaced; and once again she was aware that her head was above the water. She opened her eyes to see that they were in a corridor dimly lit by grates in the ceiling—a winding corridor, filled with water from wall to wall.
Along this the man was swimming with easy powerful strokes, at the same time holding her chin above the water. For ten minutes he swam thus without stopping and the girl heard him speak to her, though she could not understand what he said, as he evidently immediately realized, for, half floating, he shifted his hold upon her so that he could touch her nose and mouth with the fingers of one hand. She grasped what he meant and immediately took a deep breath, whereat he dove quickly beneath the surface pulling her down with him and again for a dozen strokes or more he swam thus wholly submerged.
Along the way, the man was swimming with smooth, powerful strokes, while keeping her chin above the water. He swam like this for ten minutes without stopping, and the girl could hear him talking to her, even though she didn’t understand what he was saying. He realized this right away, so while half-floating, he adjusted his grip on her to touch her nose and mouth with the fingers of one hand. She understood what he meant and immediately took a deep breath, at which point he quickly dove below the surface, pulling her down with him, and for a dozen strokes or more, he swam completely submerged.
When they again came to the surface, Bertha Kircher saw that they were in a large lagoon and that the bright stars were shining high above them, while on either hand domed and minareted buildings were silhouetted sharply against the starlit sky. Metak swam swiftly to the north side of the lagoon where, by means of a ladder, the two climbed out upon the embankment. There were others in the plaza but they paid but little if any attention to the two bedraggled figures. As Metak walked quickly across the pavement with the girl at his side, Bertha Kircher could only guess at the man's intentions. She could see no way in which to escape and so she went docilely with him, hoping against hope that some fortuitous circumstance might eventually arise that would give her the coveted chance for freedom and life.
When they surfaced again, Bertha Kircher saw they were in a large lagoon, and the bright stars were shining high above them. On either side, the domed and minareted buildings were sharply outlined against the starlit sky. Metak swam quickly to the north side of the lagoon, where they climbed out onto the embankment using a ladder. There were others in the plaza, but they paid little to no attention to the two disheveled figures. As Metak walked briskly across the pavement with the girl beside him, Bertha Kircher could only guess at his intentions. She saw no way to escape, so she followed him obediently, holding onto the hope that some lucky chance might eventually give her the chance for freedom and life.
Metak led her toward a building which, as she entered, she recognized as the same to which she and Lieutenant Smith-Oldwick had been led when they were brought into the city. There was no man sitting behind the carved desk now, but about the room were a dozen or more warriors in the tunics of the house to which they were attached, in this case white with a small lion in the form of a crest or badge upon the breast and back of each.
Metak guided her toward a building that she realized was the same one she and Lieutenant Smith-Oldwick had been taken to when they first arrived in the city. There was no man at the carved desk now, but scattered around the room were a dozen or so warriors wearing the tunics of their house, which in this case were white with a small lion crest on the front and back of each.
As Metak entered and the men recognized him they arose, and in answer to a query he put, they pointed to an arched doorway at the rear of the room. Toward this Metak led the girl, and then, as though filled with a sudden suspicion, his eyes narrowed cunningly and turning toward the soldiery he issued an order which resulted in their all preceding him through the small doorway and up a flight of stairs a short distance beyond.
As Metak walked in and the men recognized him, they got up, and in response to a question he asked, they pointed to an arched doorway at the back of the room. Metak then led the girl toward this doorway, but suddenly, as if overcome by suspicion, his eyes narrowed with cunning. He turned to the soldiers and gave an order that had them all go through the small doorway and up a short flight of stairs beyond.
The stairway and the corridor above were lighted by small flares which revealed several doors in the walls of the upper passageway. To one of these the men led the prince. Bertha Kircher saw them knock upon the door and heard a voice reply faintly through the thick door to the summons. The effect upon those about her was electrical. Instantly excitement reigned, and in response to orders from the king's son the soldiers commenced to beat heavily upon the door, to throw their bodies against it and to attempt to hew away the panels with their sabers. The girl wondered at the cause of the evident excitement of her captors.
The stairway and the corridor above were lit by small flares that showed several doors in the walls of the upper passage. The men led the prince to one of these doors. Bertha Kircher saw them knock on the door and heard a faint voice respond through the thick wood. The reaction from those around her was electric. Excitement erupted, and in response to orders from the king's son, the soldiers began to bang heavily on the door, throw their bodies against it, and try to slice through the panels with their sabers. The girl was puzzled by the clear excitement of her captors.
She saw the door giving to each renewed assault, but what she did not see just before it crashed inward was the figures of the two men who alone, in all the world, might have saved her, pass between the heavy hangings in an adjoining alcove and disappear into a dark corridor.
She noticed the door bending with each new hit, but what she didn’t see just before it burst open was the two men who were her only hope in the entire world slipping between the heavy curtains in a nearby alcove and disappearing into a dark hallway.
As the door gave and the warriors rushed into the apartment followed by the prince, the latter became immediately filled with baffled rage, for the rooms were deserted except for the dead body of the owner of the palace, and the still form of the black slave, Otobu, where they lay stretched upon the floor of the alcove.
As the door swung open and the warriors charged into the apartment with the prince right behind them, he was instantly overwhelmed with confused anger because the rooms were empty except for the lifeless body of the palace owner and the motionless figure of the Black servant, Otobu, lying on the floor of the alcove.
The prince rushed to the windows and looked out, but as the suite overlooked the barred den of lions from which, the prince thought, there could be no escape, his puzzlement was only increased. Though he searched about the room for some clue to the whereabouts of its former occupants he did not discover the niche behind the hangings. With the fickleness of insanity he quickly tired of the search, and, turning to the soldiers who had accompanied him from the floor below, dismissed them.
The prince hurried to the windows and looked outside, but since the suite overlooked the barred lion enclosure that, he believed, had no way out, his confusion only grew. Although he searched the room for any sign of its previous occupants, he failed to find the hidden spot behind the curtains. With the unpredictability of madness, he quickly grew bored of the search and, turning to the soldiers who had come with him from the floor below, sent them away.
After setting up the broken door as best they could, the men left the apartment and when they were again alone Metak turned toward the girl. As he approached her, his face distorted by a hideous leer, his features worked rapidly in spasmodic twitches. The girl, who was standing at the entrance of the alcove, shrank back, her horror reflected in her face. Step by step she backed across the room, while the crouching maniac crept stealthily after her with claw-like fingers poised in anticipation of the moment they should leap forth and seize her.
After fixing the broken door as best they could, the men left the apartment, and once they were alone again, Metak turned toward the girl. As he got closer, his face twisted into a grotesque grin, his features twitching uncontrollably. The girl, standing at the entrance of the alcove, recoiled, her fear clear on her face. She backed away across the room, while the crouching maniac crept silently after her, his claw-like fingers ready to spring out and grab her.
As she passed the body of the Negro, her foot touched some obstacle at her side, and glancing down she saw the spear with which Otobu had been supposed to hold the prisoners. Instantly she leaned forward and snatched it from the floor with its sharp point directed at the body of the madman. The effect upon Metak was electrical. From stealthy silence he broke into harsh peals of laughter, and drawing his saber danced to and fro before the girl, but whichever way he went the point of the spear still threatened him.
As she walked past the body of the Black man, her foot hit something next to her, and when she looked down, she saw the spear that Otobu was supposed to use to keep the prisoners in check. Without hesitation, she leaned forward and grabbed it off the ground, pointing the sharp end at the madman's body. The effect on Metak was electric. He erupted from his quietness into loud, harsh laughter, and drawing his saber, he danced back and forth in front of the girl, but no matter which direction he moved, the spear's point still menaced him.
Gradually the girl noticed a change in the tone of the creature's screams that was also reflected in the changing expression upon his hideous countenance. His hysterical laughter was slowly changing into cries of rage while the silly leer upon his face was supplanted by a ferocious scowl and up-curled lips, which revealed the sharpened fangs beneath.
Gradually, the girl noticed a shift in the creature's screams, which was also mirrored in the changing expression on his hideous face. His hysterical laughter was slowly transforming into cries of anger, while the silly grin on his face was replaced by an intense scowl and curled lips that revealed the sharp fangs underneath.
He now ran rapidly in almost to the spear's point, only to jump away, run a few steps to one side and again attempt to make an entrance, the while he slashed and hewed at the spear with such violence that it was with difficulty the girl maintained her guard, and all the time was forced to give ground step by step. She had reached the point where she was standing squarely against the couch at the side of the room when, with an incredibly swift movement, Metak stooped and grasping a low stool hurled it directly at her head.
He sprinted almost right up to the spear's tip, only to leap back, take a few steps to the side, and try to get in again. Meanwhile, he swung violently at the spear, making it hard for the girl to keep her guard, and she was constantly pushed back step by step. She found herself standing directly against the couch on the side of the room when, with an incredibly quick move, Metak bent down, grabbed a low stool, and threw it straight at her head.
She raised the spear to fend off the heavy missile, but she was not entirely successful, and the impact of the blow carried her backward upon the couch, and instantly Metak was upon her.
She lifted the spear to block the heavy projectile, but she didn't completely succeed, and the force of the hit knocked her back onto the couch, and immediately Metak was on her.
Tarzan and Smith-Oldwick gave little thought as to what had become of the other two occupants of the room. They were gone, and so far as these two were concerned they might never return. Tarzan's one desire was to reach the street again, where, now that both of them were in some sort of disguise, they should be able to proceed with comparative safety to the palace and continue their search for the girl.
Tarzan and Smith-Oldwick didn’t think much about what happened to the other two people in the room. They were gone, and as far as these two were concerned, they might never come back. Tarzan's only wish was to get back to the street, where, now that they were both in some kind of disguise, they could move on with relative safety to the palace and keep looking for the girl.
Smith-Oldwick preceded Tarzan along the corridor and as they reached the ladder he climbed aloft to remove the trap. He worked for a moment and then, turning, addressed Tarzan.
Smith-Oldwick led the way down the hallway, and when they got to the ladder, he climbed up to take off the trap. He worked for a moment and then turned to talk to Tarzan.
"Did we replace the cover on this trap when we came down? I don't recall that we did."
"Did we put the cover back on this trap when we came down? I don't remember us doing that."
"No," said Tarzan, "it was left open."
"No," said Tarzan, "it was left open."
"So I thought," said Smith-Oldwick, "but it's closed now and locked. I cannot move it. Possibly you can," and he descended the ladder.
"So I thought," said Smith-Oldwick, "but it's closed now and locked. I can't move it. Maybe you can," and he climbed down the ladder.
Even Tarzan's immense strength, however, had no effect other than to break one of the rungs of the ladder against which he was pushing, nearly precipitating him to the floor below. After the rung broke he rested for a moment before renewing his efforts, and as he stood with his head near the cover of the trap, he distinctly heard voices on the roof above him.
Even Tarzan's incredible strength only managed to break one of the rungs of the ladder he was pushing against, almost sending him crashing to the floor below. After the rung snapped, he took a moment to catch his breath before trying again, and as he stood with his head close to the trapdoor, he clearly heard voices above him on the roof.
Dropping down to Oldwick's side he told him what he had heard. "We had better find some other way out," he said, and the two started to retrace their steps toward the alcove. Tarzan was again in the lead, and as he opened the door in the back of the niche, he was suddenly startled to hear, in tones of terror and in a woman's voice, the words: "O God, be merciful" from just beyond the hangings.
Dropping down to Oldwick's side, he told him what he had heard. "We should find another way out," he said, and the two began to retrace their steps toward the alcove. Tarzan took the lead again, and as he opened the door at the back of the niche, he was suddenly startled to hear, in a woman's terrified voice, the words: "O God, be merciful," coming from just beyond the hangings.
Here was no time for cautious investigation and, not even waiting to find the aperture and part the hangings, but with one sweep of a brawny hand dragging them from their support, the ape-man leaped from the niche into the alcove.
Here was no time for careful investigation and, without even waiting to find the opening and move the drapes aside, the ape-man leaped from the niche into the alcove with one powerful sweep of his arm, yanking the curtains down.
At the sound of his entry the maniac looked up, and as he saw at first only a man in the uniform of his father's soldiers, he shrieked forth an angry order, but at the second glance, which revealed the face of the newcomer, the madman leaped from the prostrate form of his victim and, apparently forgetful of the saber which he had dropped upon the floor beside the couch as he leaped to grapple with the girl, closed with bare hands upon his antagonist, his sharp-filed teeth searching for the other's throat.
At the sound of his arrival, the maniac looked up. Initially seeing only a man in his father's soldiers' uniform, he yelled an angry command. But with a second glance that revealed the newcomer's face, the madman jumped off the unconscious victim and, seemingly forgetting the saber he had dropped on the floor next to the couch, lunged at his opponent, his sharp teeth aiming for the other's throat.
Metak, the son of Herog, was no weakling. Powerful by nature and rendered still more so in the throes of one of his maniacal fits of fury he was no mean antagonist, even for the mighty ape-man, and to this a distinct advantage for him was added by the fact that almost at the outset of their battle Tarzan, in stepping backward, struck his heel against the corpse of the man whom Smith-Oldwick had killed, and fell heavily backward to the floor with Metak upon his breast.
Metak, the son of Herog, wasn’t weak. He was powerful by nature, and during one of his maniacal fits of rage, he became even stronger, making him a formidable opponent, even for the mighty ape-man. To make things worse for Tarzan, right at the start of their fight, he stepped back and accidentally kicked the corpse of the man that Smith-Oldwick had killed, causing him to fall heavily backward onto the floor with Metak on top of him.
With the quickness of a cat the maniac made an attempt to fasten his teeth in Tarzan's jugular, but a quick movement of the latter resulted in his finding a hold only upon the Tarmangani's shoulder. Here he clung while his fingers sought Tarzan's throat, and it was then that the ape-man, realizing the possibility of defeat, called to Smith-Oldwick to take the girl and seek to escape.
With the speed of a cat, the maniac tried to sink his teeth into Tarzan's neck, but a quick move from Tarzan meant he only managed to grab onto the Tarmangani's shoulder. He hung on while his fingers searched for Tarzan's throat, and it was at that moment that the ape-man, realizing he could be defeated, called out to Smith-Oldwick to take the girl and try to escape.
The Englishman looked questioningly at Bertha Kircher, who had now risen from the couch, shaking and trembling. She saw the question in his eyes and with an effort she drew herself to her full height. "No," she cried, "if he dies here I shall die with him. Go if you wish to. You can do nothing here, but I—I cannot go."
The Englishman looked at Bertha Kircher with a puzzled expression as she stood up from the couch, shaking and trembling. She noticed the question in his eyes and, with some effort, straightened up. "No," she shouted, "if he dies here, I’ll die with him. Go if you want to. You can't do anything here, but I—I can't leave."
Tarzan had now regained his feet, but the maniac still clung to him tenaciously. The girl turned suddenly to Smith-Oldwick. "Your pistol!" she cried. "Why don't you shoot him?"
Tarzan was back on his feet, but the maniac was still holding on to him tightly. The girl suddenly turned to Smith-Oldwick. "Your gun!" she shouted. "Why don’t you shoot him?"
The man drew the weapon from his pocket and approached the two antagonists, but by this time they were moving so rapidly that there was no opportunity for shooting one without the danger of hitting the other. At the same time Bertha Kircher circled about them with the prince's saber, but neither could she find an opening. Again and again the two men fell to the floor, until presently Tarzan found a hold upon the other's throat, against which contingency Metak had been constantly battling, and slowly, as the giant fingers closed, the other's mad eyes protruded from his livid face, his jaws gaped and released their hold upon Tarzan's shoulder, and then in a sudden excess of disgust and rage the ape-man lifted the body of the prince high above his head and with all the strength of his great arms hurled it across the room and through the window where it fell with a sickening thud into the pit of lions beneath.
The man pulled the weapon from his pocket and moved toward the two adversaries, but by then they were moving so fast that there was no chance to shoot one without risking hitting the other. At the same time, Bertha Kircher circled around them with the prince's saber, but she couldn’t find an opening either. Over and over, the two men fell to the floor until eventually Tarzan managed to get a grip on the other man's throat, against which Metak had been constantly struggling. Slowly, as Tarzan's powerful fingers tightened, the other man's wild eyes bulged from his pale face, his jaws dropped and released their grip on Tarzan's shoulder, and then in a sudden fit of disgust and rage, the ape-man lifted the prince's body high above his head and with all the strength in his massive arms, threw it across the room and out the window where it landed with a sickening thud in the lion pit below.
As Tarzan turned again toward his companions, the girl was standing with the saber still in her hand and an expression upon her face that he never had seen there before. Her eyes were wide and misty with unshed tears, while her sensitive lips trembled as though she were upon the point of giving way to some pent emotion which her rapidly rising and falling bosom plainly indicated she was fighting to control.
As Tarzan turned back to his friends, the girl stood there with the sword still in her hand, wearing a look he had never seen before. Her eyes were wide and watery with unshed tears, while her trembling lips suggested she was about to break down from some intense feeling that her quickly rising and falling chest clearly showed she was struggling to manage.
"If we are going to get out of here," said the ape-man, "we can't lose any time. We are together at last and nothing can be gained by delay. The question now is the safest way. The couple who escaped us evidently departed through the passageway to the roof and secured the trap against us so that we are cut off in that direction. What chance have we below? You came that way," and he turned toward the girl.
"If we're going to get out of here," said the ape-man, "we can't waste any time. We're finally together, and delaying won't help us. The real question now is the safest way out. The couple who got away from us clearly left through the passageway to the roof and blocked the trap behind them, so we're stuck in that direction. What chance do we have below? You came that way," he said, turning toward the girl.
"At the foot of the stairs," she said, "is a room full of armed men. I doubt if we could pass that way."
"At the bottom of the stairs," she said, "there's a room full of armed men. I don’t think we can get past that."
It was then that Otobu raised himself to a sitting posture. "So you are not dead after all," exclaimed the ape-man. "Come, how badly are you hurt?"
It was then that Otobu sat up. "So you're not dead after all," the ape-man exclaimed. "Come on, how badly are you hurt?"
The Negro rose gingerly to his feet, moved his arms and legs and felt of his head.
The Black man got up slowly, moved his arms and legs, and touched his head.
"Otobu does not seem to be hurt at all, Bwana," he replied, "only for a great ache in his head."
"Otobu doesn’t appear to be hurt at all, Bwana," he replied, "just has a really bad headache."
"Good," said the ape-man. "You want to return to the Wamabo country?"
"Good," said the ape-man. "Do you want to go back to the Wamabo country?"
"Yes, Bwana."
"Yes, Boss."
"Then lead us from the city by the safest way."
"Then guide us out of the city by the safest route."
"There is no safe way," replied the black, "and even if we reach the gates we shall have to fight. I can lead you from this building to a side street with little danger of meeting anyone on the way. Beyond that we must take our chance of discovery. You are all dressed as are the people of this wicked city so perhaps we may pass unnoticed, but at the gate it will be a different matter, for none is permitted to leave the city at night."
"There’s no safe way," replied the black, "and even if we get to the gates, we’ll have to fight. I can guide you from this building to a side street with minimal risk of running into anyone on the way. After that, we’ll have to take our chances of being seen. You’re all dressed like the people from this corrupt city, so maybe we can go unnoticed, but at the gate, it’ll be a different story since no one is allowed to leave the city at night."
"Very well," replied the ape-man, "let us be on our way."
"Alright," said the ape-man, "let's get going."
Otobu led them through the broken door of the outer room, and part way down the corridor he turned into another apartment at the right. This they crossed to a passageway beyond, and, finally, traversing several rooms and corridors, he led them down a flight of steps to a door which opened directly upon a side street in rear of the palace.
Otobu guided them through the broken door of the outer room, and halfway down the corridor, he turned into another room on the right. They crossed this room to a passageway beyond, and finally, after moving through several rooms and corridors, he led them down a flight of stairs to a door that opened right onto a side street behind the palace.
Two men, a woman, and a black slave were not so extraordinary a sight upon the streets of the city as to arouse comment. When passing beneath the flares the three Europeans were careful to choose a moment when no chance pedestrian might happen to get a view of their features, but in the shadow of the arcades there seemed little danger of detection. They had covered a good portion of the distance to the gate without mishap when there came to their ears from the central portion of the city sounds of a great commotion.
Two men, a woman, and a Black slave weren’t an unusual sight on the city streets to draw any attention. When they walked under the lights, the three Europeans made sure to wait for a moment when no random passerby could see their faces, but in the shadows of the arcades, there seemed to be little risk of getting caught. They had covered a good part of the distance to the gate without any problems when they suddenly heard a lot of noise coming from the center of the city.
"What does that mean?" Tarzan asked of Otobu, who was now trembling violently.
"What does that mean?" Tarzan asked Otobu, who was now shaking uncontrollably.
"Master," he replied, "they have discovered that which has happened in the palace of Veza, mayor of the city. His son and the girl escaped and summoned soldiers who have now doubtless discovered the body of Veza."
"Master," he replied, "they found out what happened in the palace of Veza, the mayor of the city. His son and the girl got away and called in the soldiers, who have probably now found Veza's body."
"I wonder," said Tarzan, "if they have discovered the party I threw through the window."
"I wonder," said Tarzan, "if they've found the party I threw out the window."
Bertha Kircher, who understood enough of the dialect to follow their conversation, asked Tarzan if he knew that the man he had thrown from the window was the king's son. The ape-man laughed. "No," he said, "I did not. That rather complicates matters—at least if they have found him."
Bertha Kircher, who knew enough of the dialect to keep up with their conversation, asked Tarzan if he realized that the guy he had thrown out of the window was the king's son. The ape-man chuckled. "No," he replied, "I didn't. That definitely makes things more complicated—at least if they've found him."
Suddenly there broke above the turmoil behind them the clear strains of a bugle. Otobu increased his pace. "Hurry, Master," he cried, "it is worse than I had thought."
Suddenly, above the chaos behind them, the clear sound of a bugle rang out. Otobu quickened his pace. "Hurry, Master," he shouted, "it's worse than I thought."
"What do you mean?" asked Tarzan.
"What do you mean?" Tarzan asked.
"For some reason the king's guard and the king's lions are being called out. I fear, O Bwana, that we cannot escape them. But why they should be called out for us I do not know."
"For some reason, the king's guard and the king's lions are being summoned. I’m worried, O Bwana, that we can't get away from them. But I don’t understand why they should be called out for us."
But if Otobu did not know, Tarzan at least guessed that they had found the body of the king's son. Once again the notes of the bugle rose high and clear upon the night air. "Calling more lions?" asked Tarzan.
But if Otobu didn’t know, Tarzan at least suspected that they had found the body of the king’s son. Once again, the sound of the bugle rose high and clear in the night air. “Calling more lions?” Tarzan asked.
"No, Master," replied Otobu. "It is the parrots they are calling."
"No, Master," Otobu replied. "They're calling the parrots."
They moved on rapidly in silence for a few minutes when their attention was attracted by the flapping of the wings of a bird above them. They looked up to discover a parrot circling about over their heads.
They continued on quickly and silently for a few minutes until the sound of a bird flapping its wings caught their attention. They looked up to see a parrot flying in circles above them.
"Here are the parrots, Otobu," said Tarzan with a grin. "Do they expect to kill us with parrots?"
"Here are the parrots, Otobu," Tarzan said with a grin. "Do they think they can take us down with parrots?"
The Negro moaned as the bird darted suddenly ahead of them toward the city wall. "Now indeed are we lost, Master," cried the black. "The bird that found us has flown to the gate to warn the guard."
The Black man groaned as the bird suddenly shot ahead of them toward the city wall. "Now we're definitely lost, Master," he exclaimed. "The bird that led us has gone to the gate to alert the guard."
"Come, Otobu, what are you talking about?" exclaimed Tarzan irritably. "Have you lived among these lunatics so long that you are yourself mad?"
"Come on, Otobu, what are you talking about?" Tarzan said irritably. "Have you lived among these crazy people for so long that you’ve gone mad yourself?"
"No, Master," replied Otobu. "I am not mad. You do not know them. These terrible birds are like human beings without hearts or souls. They speak the language of the people of this city of Xuja. They are demons, Master, and when in sufficient numbers they might even attack and kill us."
"No, Master," Otobu replied. "I’m not crazy. You don’t know them. These awful birds are like humans without hearts or souls. They speak the language of the people in this city of Xuja. They are demons, Master, and if there are enough of them, they could even attack and kill us."
"How far are we from the gate?" asked Tarzan.
"How far are we from the gate?" Tarzan asked.
"We are not very far," replied the Negro. "Beyond this next turn we will see it a few paces ahead of us. But the bird has reached it before us and by now they are summoning the guard," the truth of which statement was almost immediately indicated by sounds of many voices raised evidently in commands just ahead of them, while from behind came increased evidence of approaching pursuit—loud screams and the roars of lions.
"We're not far now," replied the Black man. "Just around this next bend, we'll see it a little ahead. But the bird got there before us, and they're probably calling the guard," which was almost immediately confirmed by the sounds of many voices shouting commands just ahead, while from behind came increasing signs of someone chasing them—loud screams and the roars of lions.
A few steps ahead a narrow alley opened from the east into the thoroughfare they were following and as they approached it there emerged from its dark shadows the figure of a mighty lion. Otobu halted in his tracks and shrank back against Tarzan. "Look, Master," he whimpered, "a great black lion of the forest!"
A few steps ahead, a narrow alley led from the east into the street they were walking on, and as they got closer, a massive lion stepped out from its dark shadows. Otobu stopped dead and pressed himself against Tarzan. "Look, Master," he said nervously, "a huge black lion from the forest!"
Tarzan drew the saber which still hung at his side. "We cannot go back," he said. "Lions, parrots, or men, it must be all the same," and he moved steadily forward in the direction of the gate. What wind was stirring in the city street moved from Tarzan toward the lion and when the ape-man had approached to within a few yards of the beast, who had stood silently eyeing them up to this time, instead of the expected roar, a whine broke from the beast's throat. The ape-man was conscious of a very decided feeling of relief. "It's Numa of the pit," he called back to his companions, and to Otobu, "Do not fear, this lion will not harm us."
Tarzan pulled out the saber that was still at his side. "We can't go back," he said. "Whether it's lions, parrots, or people, it doesn't really matter," and he moved steadily toward the gate. The breeze in the city street blew from Tarzan toward the lion, and when the ape-man got within a few yards of the beast, which had been silently watching them until now, instead of the expected roar, a whine came from the lion's throat. The ape-man felt a clear sense of relief. "It's Numa from the pit," he called back to his friends, and to Otobu, "Don't worry, this lion won't hurt us."
Numa moved forward to the ape-man's side and then turning, paced beside him along the narrow street. At the next turn they came in sight of the gate, where, beneath several flares, they saw a group of at least twenty warriors prepared to seize them, while from the opposite direction the roars of the pursuing lions sounded close upon them, mingling with the screams of numerous parrots which now circled about their heads. Tarzan halted and turned to the young aviator. "How many rounds of ammunition have you left?" he asked.
Numa moved up to the ape-man's side and then, turning, walked alongside him down the narrow street. At the next corner, they spotted the gate, where, under several flares, they saw a group of at least twenty warriors ready to capture them. Meanwhile, from the other direction, the roars of the chasing lions echoed close by, blending with the cries of countless parrots now circling around their heads. Tarzan stopped and turned to the young aviator. "How many rounds of ammunition do you have left?" he asked.
"I have seven in the pistol," replied Smith-Oldwick, "and perhaps a dozen more cartridges in my blouse pocket."
"I have seven in the gun," replied Smith-Oldwick, "and maybe a dozen more bullets in my jacket pocket."
"I'm going to rush them," said Tarzan. "Otobu, you stay at the side of the woman. Oldwick, you and I will go ahead, you upon my left. I think we need not try to tell Numa what to do," for even then the great lion was baring his fangs and growling ferociously at the guardsmen, who appeared uneasy in the face of this creature which, above all others, they feared.
"I'm going to charge at them," said Tarzan. "Otobu, you stay by the woman. Oldwick, you and I will move ahead, with you on my left. I don’t think we need to give Numa any instructions," since even then the massive lion was showing his teeth and growling fiercely at the guardsmen, who looked nervous in front of this creature that they feared more than any other.
"As we advance, Oldwick," said the ape-man, "fire one shot. It may frighten them, and after that fire only when necessary. All ready? Let's go!" and he moved forward toward the gate. At the same time, Smith-Oldwick discharged his weapon and a yellow-coated warrior screamed and crumpled forward upon his face. For a minute the others showed symptoms of panic but one, who seemed to be an officer, rallied them. "Now," said Tarzan, "all together!" and he started at a run for the gate. Simultaneously the lion, evidently scenting the purpose of the Tarmangani, broke into a full charge toward the guard.
"As we move forward, Oldwick," said the ape-man, "shoot once. It might scare them, and after that, only fire when you need to. Ready? Let's go!" He stepped toward the gate. At the same time, Smith-Oldwick fired his weapon, and a warrior in yellow armor let out a scream and collapsed face-first. For a moment, the others appeared to panic, but one who looked like an officer got them organized. "Now," said Tarzan, "everyone together!" and he took off running toward the gate. At the same time, the lion, clearly sensing what the Tarmangani were up to, charged straight at the guard.
Shaken by the report of the unfamiliar weapon, the ranks of the guardsmen broke before the furious assault of the great beast. The officer screamed forth a volley of commands in a mad fury of uncontrolled rage but the guardsmen, obeying the first law of nature as well as actuated by their inherent fear of the black denizen of the forest scattered to right and left to elude the monster. With ferocious growls Numa wheeled to the right, and with raking talons struck right and left among a little handful of terrified guardsmen who were endeavoring to elude him, and then Tarzan and Smith-Oldwick closed with the others.
Shaken by the news of the strange weapon, the guardsmen fell apart under the fierce attack of the massive beast. The officer shouted a barrage of orders in a fit of uncontrollable anger, but the guardsmen, following the most basic instinct and driven by their deep fear of the dark creature from the forest, scattered to the sides to escape the monster. With menacing growls, Numa turned to the right and, with his powerful claws, struck out at the small group of terrified guardsmen trying to avoid him, and then Tarzan and Smith-Oldwick joined up with the others.
For a moment their most formidable antagonist was the officer in command. He wielded his curved saber as only an adept might as he faced Tarzan, to whom the similar weapon in his own hand was most unfamiliar. Smith-Oldwick could not fire for fear of hitting the ape-man when suddenly to his dismay he saw Tarzan's weapon fly from his grasp as the Xujan warrior neatly disarmed his opponent. With a scream the fellow raised his saber for the final cut that would terminate the earthly career of Tarzan of the Apes when, to the astonishment of both the ape-man and Smith-Oldwick, the fellow stiffened rigidly, his weapon dropped from the nerveless fingers of his upraised hand, his mad eyes rolled upward and foam flecked his bared lip. Gasping as though in the throes of strangulation the fellow pitched forward at Tarzan's feet.
For a moment, their most formidable opponent was the officer in charge. He swung his curved saber like a skilled fighter as he faced Tarzan, who was unfamiliar with the similar weapon in his own hand. Smith-Oldwick couldn’t fire for fear of hitting the ape-man, when suddenly, to his shock, he saw Tarzan's weapon fly from his grip as the Xujan warrior expertly disarmed him. With a scream, the warrior raised his saber for the final blow that would end Tarzan’s life when, to the surprise of both the ape-man and Smith-Oldwick, the warrior suddenly froze, his weapon falling from the limp fingers of his raised hand, his wild eyes rolling back, and foam gathering on his exposed lip. Gasping as if he were being strangled, the warrior collapsed forward at Tarzan's feet.
Tarzan stooped and picked up the dead man's weapon, a smile upon his face as he turned and glanced toward the young Englishman.
Tarzan bent down and picked up the dead man's weapon, smiling as he turned to look at the young Englishman.
"The fellow is an epileptic," said Smith-Oldwick. "I suppose many of them are. Their nervous condition is not without its good points—a normal man would have gotten you."
"The guy is an epileptic," said Smith-Oldwick. "I guess a lot of them are. Their condition has its perks—a normal person would have caught you."
The other guardsmen seemed utterly demoralized at the loss of their leader. They were huddled upon the opposite side of the street at the left of the gate, screaming at the tops of their voices and looking in the direction from which sounds of reinforcements were coming, as though urging on the men and lions that were already too close for the comfort of the fugitives. Six guardsmen still stood with their backs against the gate, their weapons flashing in the light of the flares and their parchment-like faces distorted in horrid grimaces of rage and terror.
The other guardsmen looked completely defeated after losing their leader. They were gathered on the far side of the street to the left of the gate, shouting loudly and staring toward the direction of the reinforcements, as if trying to rally the soldiers and lions that were already too close for the comfort of the people trying to escape. Six guardsmen remained against the gate, their weapons gleaming in the light of the flares, their faces, thin and drawn, twisted in horrifying expressions of anger and fear.
Numa had pursued two fleeing warriors down the street which paralleled the wall for a short distance at this point. The ape-man turned to Smith-Oldwick. "You will have to use your pistol now," he said, "and we must get by these fellows at once;" and as the young Englishman fired, Tarzan rushed in to close quarters as though he had not already discovered that with the saber he was no match for these trained swordsmen. Two men fell to Smith-Oldwick's first two shots and then he missed, while the four remaining divided, two leaping for the aviator and two for Tarzan.
Numa had chased two fleeing warriors down the street that ran alongside the wall for a short distance. The ape-man turned to Smith-Oldwick. "You need to use your pistol now," he said, "and we have to get past these guys quickly;" and as the young Englishman fired, Tarzan charged in to close the distance as if he hadn't already realized that he was no match for these skilled swordsmen with just a saber. Two men went down from Smith-Oldwick's first two shots, but then he missed, while the four remaining split up, with two jumping toward the aviator and two heading for Tarzan.
The ape-man rushed in in an effort to close with one of his antagonists where the other's saber would be comparatively useless. Smith-Oldwick dropped one of his assailants with a bullet through the chest and pulled his trigger on the second, only to have the hammer fall futilely upon an empty chamber. The cartridges in his weapon were exhausted and the warrior with his razor-edged, gleaming saber was upon him.
The ape-man charged in, trying to get close to one of his enemies, where the other one's saber would be pretty ineffective. Smith-Oldwick took out one of his attackers with a bullet to the chest and aimed at the second, only to hear the click of the hammer hitting an empty chamber. His gun was out of bullets, and the warrior with the sharp, shiny saber was on him.
Tarzan raised his own weapon but once and that to divert a vicious cut for his head. Then he was upon one of his assailants and before the fellow could regain his equilibrium and leap back after delivering his cut, the ape-man had seized him by the neck and crotch. Tarzan's other antagonist was edging around to one side where he might use his weapon, and as he raised the blade to strike at the back of the Tarmangani's neck, the latter swung the body of his comrade upward so that it received the full force of the blow. The blade sank deep into the body of the warrior, eliciting a single frightful scream, and then Tarzan hurled the dying man in the face of his final adversary.
Tarzan lifted his weapon just once, and that was to deflect a brutal strike aimed at his head. Then he charged at one of his attackers, and before the guy could regain his balance and jump back after swinging his weapon, the ape-man grabbed him by the neck and the groin. Tarzan's other opponent was trying to move to the side to use his weapon, and as he raised the blade to hit the back of the Tarmangani’s neck, Tarzan swung his comrade's body upward so it took the full impact of the blow. The blade drove deep into the warrior’s body, letting out a single terrifying scream, and then Tarzan threw the dying man at his last enemy.
Smith-Oldwick, hard pressed and now utterly defenseless, had given up all hope in the instant that he realized his weapon was empty, when, from his left, a living bolt of black-maned ferocity shot past him to the breast of his opponent. Down went the Xujan, his face bitten away by one snap of the powerful jaws of Numa of the pit.
Smith-Oldwick, feeling desperate and completely defenseless, had lost all hope the moment he realized his weapon was empty. Then, from his left, a living missile of black-maned ferocity shot past him toward his opponent. Down went the Xujan, his face torn apart by a swift snap of the powerful jaws of Numa of the pit.
In the few seconds that had been required for the consummation of these rapidly ensuing events, Otobu had dragged Bertha Kircher to the gate which he had unbarred and thrown open, and with the vanquishing of the last of the active guardsmen, the party passed out of the maniac city of Xuja into the outer darkness beyond. At the same moment a half dozen lions rounded the last turn in the road leading back toward the plaza, and at sight of them Numa of the pit wheeled and charged. For a moment the lions of the city stood their ground, but only for a moment, and then before the black beast was upon them, they turned and fled, while Tarzan and his party moved rapidly toward the blackness of the forest beyond the garden.
In the few seconds it took for these quickly unfolding events, Otobu had pulled Bertha Kircher to the gate he had unbarred and opened, and with the defeat of the last of the active guards, the group escaped from the crazy city of Xuja into the darkness outside. At that moment, a half dozen lions rounded the last curve of the road leading back to the plaza, and seeing them, Numa from the pit turned and charged. For a brief moment, the city’s lions stood their ground, but only for a moment, before the massive black beast was upon them, prompting them to turn and flee, while Tarzan and his group hurried toward the dark forest beyond the garden.
"Will they follow us out of the city?" Tarzan asked Otobu.
"Are they going to follow us out of the city?" Tarzan asked Otobu.
"Not at night," replied the black. "I have been a slave here for five years but never have I known these people to leave the city by night. If they go beyond the forest in the daytime they usually wait until the dawn of another day before they return, as they fear to pass through the country of the black lions after dark. No, I think, Master, that they will not follow us tonight, but tomorrow they will come, and, O Bwana, then will they surely get us, or those that are left of us, for at least one among us must be the toll of the black lions as we pass through their forest."
"Not at night," replied the Black man. "I've been a slave here for five years and I've never seen these people leave the city after dark. If they venture beyond the forest during the day, they usually wait until dawn to come back because they’re afraid to pass through the land of the black lions after nightfall. No, I think, Master, they won't chase us tonight, but they will come tomorrow, and, oh Bwana, then they will definitely catch us, or those of us who are still alive, because at least one of us will be the price for the black lions as we go through their forest."
As they crossed the garden, Smith-Oldwick refilled the magazine of his pistol and inserted a cartridge in the chamber. The girl moved silently at Tarzan's left, between him and the aviator. Suddenly the ape-man stopped and turned toward the city, his mighty frame, clothed in the yellow tunic of Herog's soldiery, plainly visible to the others beneath the light of the stars. They saw him raise his head and they heard break from his lips the plaintive note of a lion calling to his fellows. Smith-Oldwick felt a distinct shudder pass through his frame, while Otobu, rolling the whites of his eyes in terrified surprise, sank tremblingly to his knees. But the girl thrilled and she felt her heart beat in a strange exultation, and then she drew nearer to the beast-man until her shoulder touched his arm. The act was involuntary and for a moment she scarce realized what she had done, and then she stepped silently back, thankful that the light of the stars was not sufficient to reveal to the eyes of her companions the flush which she felt mantling her cheek. Yet she was not ashamed of the impulse that had prompted her, but rather of the act itself which she knew, had Tarzan noticed it, would have been repulsive to him.
As they walked through the garden, Smith-Oldwick reloaded his pistol and put a bullet in the chamber. The girl moved quietly to Tarzan's left, between him and the aviator. Suddenly, the ape-man stopped and turned toward the city, his powerful frame, dressed in the yellow uniform of Herog's soldiers, clearly visible to the others under the starlight. They saw him lift his head and heard the mournful sound of a lion calling to its pride. Smith-Oldwick felt a noticeable shiver run through him, while Otobu, his eyes wide with fear, sank trembling to his knees. But the girl felt a thrill, her heart racing with a strange joy, and she moved closer to the beast-man until her shoulder brushed against his arm. It was an instinctive action, and for a moment she barely realized she had done it, then she quietly stepped back, relieved that the starlight was not bright enough for her companions to see the flush on her cheeks. Yet she felt no shame about the urge that had led her to it, only about the act itself, which she knew, if Tarzan had noticed, would have disgusted him.
From the open gate of the city of maniacs came the answering cry of a lion. The little group waited where they stood until presently they saw the majestic proportions of the black lion as he approached them along the trail. When he had rejoined them Tarzan fastened the fingers of one hand in the black mane and started on once more toward the forest. Behind them, from the city, rose a bedlam of horrid sounds, the roaring of lions mingling with the raucous voices of the screaming parrots and the mad shrieks of the maniacs. As they entered the Stygian darkness of the forest the girl once again involuntarily shrank closer to the ape-man, and this time Tarzan was aware of the contact.
From the open gate of the city of lunatics came the answering roar of a lion. The small group waited where they were until they finally saw the impressive silhouette of the black lion as he made his way toward them along the path. Once he joined them, Tarzan gripped the thick mane of the lion with one hand and began moving toward the forest again. Behind them, from the city, a chaotic mix of terrifying sounds erupted—lions roaring, loud voices of screaming parrots, and the frenzied shrieks of the maniacs. As they stepped into the pitch-black darkness of the forest, the girl instinctively drew closer to the ape-man, and this time Tarzan noticed the contact.
Himself without fear, he yet instinctively appreciated how terrified the girl must be. Actuated by a sudden kindly impulse he found her hand and took it in his own and thus they continued upon their way, groping through the blackness of the trail. Twice they were approached by forest lions, but upon both occasions the deep growls of Numa of the pit drove off their assailants. Several times they were compelled to rest, for Smith-Oldwick was constantly upon the verge of exhaustion, and toward morning Tarzan was forced to carry him on the steep ascent from the bed of the valley.
Without any fear himself, he could still sense how scared the girl must be. Driven by a sudden kind impulse, he found her hand and held it in his. They continued on their way, feeling their way through the darkness of the trail. Twice, forest lions approached them, but each time, the deep growls of Numa of the pit scared them off. They had to rest several times because Smith-Oldwick was always on the brink of exhaustion, and by morning, Tarzan had to carry him up the steep slope from the valley floor.
Chapter XXIV
The Tommies
Daylight overtook them after they had entered the gorge, but, tired as they all were with the exception of Tarzan, they realized that they must keep on at all costs until they found a spot where they might ascend the precipitous side of the gorge to the floor of the plateau above. Tarzan and Otobu were both equally confident that the Xujans would not follow them beyond the gorge, but though they scanned every inch of the frowning cliffs upon either hand noon came and there was still no indication of any avenue of escape to right or left. There were places where the ape-man alone might have negotiated the ascent but none where the others could hope successfully to reach the plateau, nor where Tarzan, powerful and agile as he was, could have ventured safely to carry them aloft.
Daylight hit them after they entered the gorge, but even though they were all tired except for Tarzan, they knew they had to keep moving until they found a place to climb up the steep side of the gorge to the plateau above. Both Tarzan and Otobu were sure the Xujans wouldn’t follow them past the gorge, but as they scanned the daunting cliffs on either side, noon came and there was still no sign of a way out to the right or left. There were spots where only the ape-man could have managed the climb, but none where the others had any chance of reaching the plateau. Even Tarzan, strong and agile as he was, couldn’t safely carry them up.
For half a day the ape-man had been either carrying or supporting Smith-Oldwick and now, to his chagrin, he saw that the girl was faltering. He had realized well how much she had undergone and how greatly the hardships and dangers and the fatigue of the past weeks must have told upon her vitality. He saw how bravely she attempted to keep up, yet how often she stumbled and staggered as she labored through the sand and gravel of the gorge. Nor could he help but admire her fortitude and the uncomplaining effort she was making to push on.
For half a day, the ape-man had been either carrying or supporting Smith-Oldwick, and now, to his dismay, he noticed that the girl was struggling. He understood just how much she had endured and how the hardships, dangers, and exhaustion of the past weeks had affected her strength. He saw how bravely she tried to keep up, yet how often she stumbled and faltered as she trudged through the sand and gravel of the gorge. He couldn’t help but admire her determination and the quiet effort she was putting in to keep going.
The Englishman must have noticed her condition too, for some time after noon, he stopped suddenly and sat down in the sand. "It's no use," he said to Tarzan. "I can go no farther. Miss Kircher is rapidly weakening. You will have to go on without me."
The Englishman must have noticed her condition too, because some time after noon, he suddenly stopped and sat down in the sand. "I can’t go any farther," he said to Tarzan. "Miss Kircher is getting weaker. You’ll have to go on without me."
"No," said the girl, "we cannot do that. We have all been through so much together and the chances of our escape are still so remote that whatever comes, let us remain together, unless," and she looked up at Tarzan, "you, who have done so much for us to whom you are under no obligations, will go on without us. I for one wish that you would. It must be as evident to you as it is to me that you cannot save us, for though you succeeded in dragging us from the path of our pursuers, even your great strength and endurance could never take one of us across the desert waste which lies between here and the nearest fertile country."
"No," said the girl, "we can't do that. We've been through so much together, and the chances of us escaping are still so slim that whatever happens, we should stick together, unless," she glanced at Tarzan, "you, who have done so much for us and are under no obligation, decide to leave us behind. Personally, I wish you would. It must be as obvious to you as it is to me that you can't save us, because even though you managed to pull us away from our pursuers, your incredible strength and stamina could never get any of us across the barren desert that lies between here and the nearest fertile land."
The ape-man returned her serious look with a smile. "You are not dead," he said to her, "nor is the lieutenant, nor Otobu, nor myself. One is either dead or alive, and until we are dead we should plan only upon continuing to live. Because we remain here and rest is no indication that we shall die here. I cannot carry you both to the country of the Wamabos, which is the nearest spot at which we may expect to find game and water, but we shall not give up on that account. So far we have found a way. Let us take things as they come. Let us rest now because you and Lieutenant Smith-Oldwick need the rest, and when you are stronger we will go on again."
The ape-man met her serious expression with a smile. "You’re not dead," he told her, "and neither is the lieutenant, nor Otobu, nor I. You’re either alive or dead, and as long as we’re alive, we should focus on living. Just because we’re here and resting doesn’t mean we’re going to die here. I can’t carry both of you to the Wamabo land, which is the closest place where we might find food and water, but we won’t give up because of that. So far, we’ve managed to figure things out. Let’s take it one step at a time. Let’s rest now since you and Lieutenant Smith-Oldwick need it, and when you’re feeling stronger, we’ll move on again."
"But the Xujans—?" she asked, "may they not follow us here?"
"But what about the Xujans?" she asked. "Can they follow us here?"
"Yes," he said, "they probably will. But we need not be concerned with them until they come."
"Yes," he said, "they probably will. But we shouldn't worry about them until they arrive."
"I wish," said the girl, "that I possessed your philosophy but I am afraid it is beyond me."
"I wish," said the girl, "that I had your outlook on life, but I'm afraid it's beyond me."
"You were not born and reared in the jungle by wild beasts and among wild beasts, or you would possess, as I do, the fatalism of the jungle."
"You weren't born and raised in the jungle with wild animals, or you'd have the same fatalism of the jungle that I do."
And so they moved to the side of the gorge beneath the shade of an overhanging rock and lay down in the hot sand to rest. Numa wandered restlessly to and fro and finally, after sprawling for a moment close beside the ape-man, rose and moved off up the gorge to be lost to view a moment later beyond the nearest turn.
And so they shifted to the edge of the gorge under the shade of a jutting rock and lay down in the hot sand to take a break. Numa paced back and forth restlessly and finally, after lounging for a moment next to the ape-man, got up and walked further up the gorge, disappearing a moment later around the nearest bend.
For an hour the little party rested and then Tarzan suddenly rose and, motioning the others to silence, listened. For a minute he stood motionless, his keen ears acutely receptive to sounds so faint and distant that none of the other three could detect the slightest break in the utter and deathlike quiet of the gorge. Finally the ape-man relaxed and turned toward them. "What is it?" asked the girl.
For an hour, the small group took a break, and then Tarzan suddenly stood up, signaling for the others to be quiet as he listened. He remained still for a minute, his sharp ears tuned to sounds so faint and far away that the other three couldn’t sense the slightest disturbance in the complete silence of the gorge. Finally, the ape-man relaxed and looked toward them. "What is it?" the girl asked.
"They are coming," he replied. "They are yet some distance away, though not far, for the sandaled feet of the men and the pads of the lions make little noise upon the soft sands."
"They're coming," he replied. "They're still a ways off, but not too far, since the sandals of the men and the pads of the lions make hardly any sound on the soft sand."
"What shall we do—try to go on?" asked Smith-Oldwick. "I believe I could make a go of it now for a short way. I am much rested. How about you Miss Kircher?"
"What should we do—try to keep going?" asked Smith-Oldwick. "I think I could manage a little farther now that I've had some rest. What about you, Miss Kircher?"
"Oh, yes," she said, "I am much stronger. Yes, surely I can go on."
"Oh, yes," she said, "I'm much stronger now. Of course, I can keep going."
Tarzan knew that neither of them quite spoke the truth, that people do not recover so quickly from utter exhaustion, but he saw no other way and there was always the hope that just beyond the next turn would be a way out of the gorge.
Tarzan knew that neither of them was being completely honest, that people don’t bounce back so quickly from total exhaustion, but he saw no other option and there was always the hope that just around the next bend would be a way out of the gorge.
"You help the lieutenant, Otobu," he said, turning to the black, "and I will carry Miss Kircher," and though the girl objected, saying that he must not waste his strength, he lifted her lightly in his arms and moved off up the canyon, followed by Otobu and the Englishman. They had gone no great distance when the others of the party became aware of the sounds of pursuit, for now the lions were whining as though the fresh scent spoor of their quarry had reached their nostrils.
"You assist the lieutenant, Otobu," he said, looking at the black man, "and I’ll carry Miss Kircher." Even though the girl protested, insisting that he shouldn't waste his strength, he effortlessly picked her up in his arms and started making his way up the canyon, with Otobu and the Englishman following behind. They hadn’t gone very far when the rest of the group noticed the sounds of pursuit, as the lions were now whining, as if the fresh scent of their target had reached them.
"I wish that your Numa would return," said the girl.
"I wish your Numa would come back," said the girl.
"Yes," said Tarzan, "but we shall have to do the best we can without him. I should like to find some place where we can barricade ourselves against attack from all sides. Possibly then we might hold them off. Smith-Oldwick is a good shot and if there are not too many men he might be able to dispose of them provided they can only come at him one at a time. The lions don't bother me so much. Sometimes they are stupid animals, and I am sure that these that pursue us, and who are so dependent upon the masters that have raised and trained them, will be easily handled after the warriors are disposed of."
"Yeah," said Tarzan, "but we’ll have to make the best of it without him. I’d like to find a place where we can barricade ourselves against attacks from all sides. If we do that, maybe we can hold them off. Smith-Oldwick is a good shot, and if there aren't too many of them, he might be able to take them out as long as they come at him one by one. The lions don’t worry me much. Sometimes they can be pretty dumb, and I’m sure the ones chasing us, who are so reliant on the masters that have raised and trained them, will be easy to deal with once the warriors are taken care of."
"You think there is some hope, then?" she asked.
"You think there's some hope, then?" she asked.
"We are still alive," was his only answer.
"We're still alive," was his only response.
"There," he said presently, "I thought I recalled this very spot." He pointed toward a fragment that had evidently fallen from the summit of the cliff and which now lay imbedded in the sand a few feet from the base. It was a jagged fragment of rock which rose some ten feet above the surface of the sand, leaving a narrow aperture between it and the cliff behind. Toward this they directed their steps and when finally they reached their goal they found a space about two feet wide and ten feet long between the rock and the cliff. To be sure it was open at both ends but at least they could not be attacked upon all sides at once.
"There," he said after a moment, "I thought I recognized this exact spot." He pointed to a piece that had clearly fallen from the top of the cliff and was now stuck in the sand a few feet from the base. It was a jagged chunk of rock that rose about ten feet above the sand, leaving a narrow gap between it and the cliff behind. They headed toward it, and when they finally arrived, they found a space about two feet wide and ten feet long between the rock and the cliff. It was open at both ends, but at least they wouldn't be attacked from all sides at once.
They had scarcely concealed themselves before Tarzan's quick ears caught a sound upon the face of the cliff above them, and looking up he saw a diminutive monkey perched upon a slight projection—an ugly-faced little monkey who looked down upon them for a moment and then scampered away toward the south in the direction from which their pursuers were coming. Otobu had seen the monkey too. "He will tell the parrots," said the black, "and the parrots will tell the madmen."
They had barely hidden themselves when Tarzan's sharp ears picked up a noise from the cliff above them. Looking up, he spotted a small monkey sitting on a little ledge—an ugly little thing that glanced down at them for a moment before scampering off toward the south, where their pursuers were approaching. Otobu had seen the monkey as well. "He'll inform the parrots," said the black, "and the parrots will tell the crazies."
"It is all the same," replied Tarzan; "the lions would have found us here. We could not hope to hide from them."
"It doesn't matter," Tarzan replied. "The lions would have found us here. We couldn't expect to hide from them."
He placed Smith-Oldwick, with his pistol, at the north opening of their haven and told Otobu to stand with his spear at the Englishman's shoulder, while he himself prepared to guard the southern approach. Between them he had the girl lie down in the sand. "You will be safe there in the event that they use their spears," he said.
He put Smith-Oldwick, with his gun, at the north entrance of their hideout and told Otobu to stand with his spear by the Englishman's side, while he got ready to watch the southern approach. He had the girl lie down in the sand between them. "You’ll be safe there if they use their spears," he said.
The minutes that dragged by seemed veritable eternities to Bertha Kircher and then at last, and almost with relief, she knew that the pursuers were upon them. She heard the angry roaring of the lions and the cries of the madmen. For several minutes the men seemed to be investigating the stronghold which their quarry had discovered. She could hear them both to the north and south and then from where she lay she saw a lion charging for the ape-man before her. She saw the giant arm swing back with the curved saber and she saw it fall with terrific velocity and meet the lion as he rose to grapple with the man, cleaving his skull as cleanly as a butcher opens up a sheep.
The minutes that dragged on felt like they lasted forever to Bertha Kircher, and finally, with a sense of relief, she realized the pursuers were closing in on them. She heard the angry roars of the lions and the screams of the madmen. For several minutes, the men seemed to be searching the stronghold that their prey had found. She could hear them both to the north and south, and then from where she lay, she saw a lion charge at the ape-man in front of her. She watched as the giant arm swung back with the curved sword and then come crashing down with incredible force, striking the lion as it lunged to fight the man, splitting its skull as cleanly as a butcher slaughters a sheep.
Then she heard footsteps running rapidly toward Smith-Oldwick and, as his pistol spoke, there was a scream and the sound of a falling body. Evidently disheartened by the failure of their first attempt the assaulters drew off, but only for a short time. Again they came, this time a man opposing Tarzan and a lion seeking to overcome Smith-Oldwick. Tarzan had cautioned the young Englishman not to waste his cartridges upon the lions and it was Otobu with the Xujan spear who met the beast, which was not subdued until both he and Smith-Oldwick had been mauled, and the latter had succeeded in running the point of the saber the girl had carried, into the beast's heart. The man who opposed Tarzan inadvertently came too close in an attempt to cut at the ape-man's head, with the result that an instant later his corpse lay with the neck broken upon the body of the lion.
Then she heard footsteps running quickly toward Smith-Oldwick, and as his gun fired, there was a scream and the sound of a body hitting the ground. Clearly discouraged by their initial failure, the attackers backed off, but only for a short while. They returned again, this time with a man facing Tarzan and a lion trying to take down Smith-Oldwick. Tarzan had advised the young Englishman not to waste his bullets on the lions, and it was Otobu with the Xujan spear who confronted the beast, which wasn’t subdued until both he and Smith-Oldwick had been injured, and the latter managed to drive the point of the saber the girl had carried into the lion's heart. The man who challenged Tarzan accidentally got too close while trying to strike at the ape-man's head, and a moment later, his lifeless body lay with a broken neck on top of the lion.
Once again the enemy withdrew, but again only for a short time, and now they came in full force, the lions and the men, possibly a half dozen of each, the men casting their spears and the lions waiting just behind, evidently for the signal to charge.
Once more, the enemy retreated, but only for a brief moment, and now they approached in full force, the lions and the men, possibly half a dozen of each, with the men throwing their spears and the lions hanging back, clearly waiting for the signal to attack.
"Is this the end?" asked the girl.
"Is this the end?" the girl asked.
"No," cried the ape-man, "for we still live!"
"No," shouted the ape-man, "because we are still alive!"
The words had scarcely passed his lips when the remaining warriors, rushing in, cast their spears simultaneously from both sides. In attempting to shield the girl, Tarzan received one of the shafts in the shoulder, and so heavily had the weapon been hurled that it bore him backward to the ground. Smith-Oldwick fired his pistol twice when he too was struck down, the weapon entering his right leg midway between hip and knee. Only Otobu remained to face the enemy, for the Englishman, already weak from his wounds and from the latest mauling he had received at the claws of the lion, had lost consciousness as he sank to the ground with this new hurt.
The words had barely left his mouth when the other warriors rushed in and threw their spears from both sides at the same time. Trying to protect the girl, Tarzan took one of the spears in the shoulder, and it was thrown with such force that it knocked him backward to the ground. Smith-Oldwick shot his pistol twice before he was also hit, the bullet hitting his right leg between the hip and knee. Only Otobu was left to confront the enemy, as the Englishman, already weak from his injuries and the recent attack by the lion, had passed out as he collapsed to the ground with this new wound.
As he fell his pistol dropped from his fingers, and the girl, seeing, snatched it up. As Tarzan struggled to rise, one of the warriors leaped full upon his breast and bore him back as, with fiendish shrieks, he raised the point of his saber above the other's heart. Before he could drive it home the girl leveled Smith-Oldwick's pistol and fired point-blank at the fiend's face.
As he fell, his pistol slipped from his fingers, and the girl, noticing, quickly picked it up. As Tarzan tried to get up, one of the warriors jumped onto his chest and pushed him back while, with savage screams, he raised the tip of his saber above Tarzan's heart. Before he could stab down, the girl aimed Smith-Oldwick's pistol and shot directly at the monster’s face.
Simultaneously there broke upon the astonished ears of both attackers and attacked a volley of shots from the gorge. With the sweetness of the voice of an angel from heaven the Europeans heard the sharp-barked commands of an English noncom. Even above the roars of the lions and the screams of the maniacs, those beloved tones reached the ears of Tarzan and the girl at the very moment that even the ape-man had given up the last vestige of hope.
At the same time, a loud burst of gunfire echoed in the ears of both the attackers and the attacked. The Europeans heard the sharp, commanding voice of an English sergeant, as lovely as an angel’s song. Even above the roars of the lions and the screams of the crazed, those comforting tones reached Tarzan and the girl just when the ape-man had completely lost hope.
Rolling the body of the warrior to one side Tarzan struggled to his feet, the spear still protruding from his shoulder. The girl rose too, and as Tarzan wrenched the weapon from his flesh and stepped out from behind the concealment of their refuge, she followed at his side. The skirmish that had resulted in their rescue was soon over. Most of the lions escaped but all of the pursuing Xujans had been slain. As Tarzan and the girl came into full view of the group, a British Tommy leveled his rifle at the ape-man. Seeing the fellow's actions and realizing instantly the natural error that Tarzan's yellow tunic had occasioned the girl sprang between him and the soldier. "Don't shoot," she cried to the latter, "we are both friends."
Rolling the warrior's body to the side, Tarzan struggled to his feet, the spear still sticking out of his shoulder. The girl got up too, and as Tarzan yanked the weapon out of his flesh and stepped out from behind their hiding spot, she followed him closely. The fight that had led to their rescue was quickly over. Most of the lions got away, but all of the chasing Xujans had been killed. As Tarzan and the girl came into full view of the group, a British soldier aimed his rifle at the ape-man. Seeing what was happening and realizing the misunderstanding caused by Tarzan's yellow tunic, the girl jumped in front of him and shouted to the soldier, "Don't shoot! We're both friends."
"Hold up your hands, you, then," he commanded Tarzan. "I ain't taking no chances with any duffer with a yellow shirt."
"Put your hands up, you," he ordered Tarzan. "I’m not taking any chances with some fool in a yellow shirt."
At this juncture the British sergeant who had been in command of the advance guard approached and when Tarzan and the girl spoke to him in English, explaining their disguises, he accepted their word, since they were evidently not of the same race as the creatures which lay dead about them. Ten minutes later the main body of the expedition came into view. Smith-Oldwick's wounds were dressed, as well as were those of the ape-man, and in half an hour they were on their way to the camp of their rescuers.
At this point, the British sergeant in charge of the advance guard approached. When Tarzan and the girl spoke to him in English, explaining their disguises, he took their word for it, since they clearly were not the same race as the creatures lying dead around them. Ten minutes later, the main group of the expedition appeared. Smith-Oldwick's injuries were treated, just like the ape-man's, and in half an hour, they were on their way to the camp of their rescuers.
That night it was arranged that the following day Smith-Oldwick and Bertha Kircher should be transported to British headquarters near the coast by aeroplane, the two planes attached to the expeditionary force being requisitioned for the purpose. Tarzan and Otobu declined the offers of the British captain to accompany his force overland on the return march as Tarzan explained that his country lay to the west, as did Otobu's, and that they would travel together as far as the country of the Wamabos.
That night, it was decided that the next day, Smith-Oldwick and Bertha Kircher would be flown to the British headquarters near the coast using the two planes assigned to the expeditionary force. Tarzan and Otobu turned down the British captain's offer to join his force on the return journey, as Tarzan explained that their countries were to the west, just like Otobu's, and that they would travel together as far as the Wamabo territory.
"You are not going back with us, then?" asked the girl.
"You’re not coming back with us, then?" asked the girl.
"No," replied the ape-man. "My home is upon the west coast. I will continue my journey in that direction."
"No," said the ape-man. "I live on the west coast. I’m going to keep traveling that way."
She cast appealing eyes toward him. "You will go back into that terrible jungle?" she asked. "We shall never see you again?"
She looked at him with hopeful eyes. "Are you really going back into that awful jungle?" she asked. "Will we ever see you again?"
He looked at her a moment in silence. "Never," he said, and without another word turned and walked away.
He stared at her for a moment in silence. "Never," he said, and without another word, he turned and walked away.
In the morning Colonel Capell came from the base camp in one of the planes that was to carry Smith-Oldwick and the girl to the east. Tarzan was standing some distance away as the ship landed and the officer descended to the ground. He saw the colonel greet his junior in command of the advance detachment, and then he saw him turn toward Bertha Kircher who was standing a few paces behind the captain. Tarzan wondered how the German spy felt in this situation, especially when she must know that there was one there who knew her real status. He saw Colonel Capell walk toward her with outstretched hands and smiling face and, although he could not hear the words of his greeting, he saw that it was friendly and cordial to a degree.
In the morning, Colonel Capell arrived from the base camp in one of the planes that was going to take Smith-Oldwick and the girl east. Tarzan stood some distance away as the plane landed and the officer stepped onto the ground. He noticed the colonel greet his junior officer in charge of the advance detachment, and then he saw him turn towards Bertha Kircher, who was standing a few steps behind the captain. Tarzan wondered how the German spy felt in this situation, especially knowing that someone there was aware of her true identity. He watched Colonel Capell approach her with outstretched hands and a smiling face, and although he couldn't hear the words of his greeting, he could see it was friendly and very warm.
Tarzan turned away scowling, and if any had been close by they might have heard a low growl rumble from his chest. He knew that his country was at war with Germany and that not only his duty to the land of his fathers, but also his personal grievance against the enemy people and his hatred of them, demanded that he expose the girl's perfidy, and yet he hesitated, and because he hesitated he growled—not at the German spy but at himself for his weakness.
Tarzan turned away with a scowl, and if anyone had been nearby, they might have heard a low growl rumble from his chest. He knew that his country was at war with Germany and that not only his duty to the land of his ancestors, but also his personal grievance against the enemy and his hatred for them, demanded that he reveal the girl's betrayal. Yet, he hesitated, and because he hesitated, he growled—not at the German spy but at himself for his weakness.
He did not see her again before she entered a plane and was borne away toward the east. He bid farewell to Smith-Oldwick and received again the oft-repeated thanks of the young Englishman. And then he saw him too borne aloft in the high circling plane and watched until the ship became a speck far above the eastern horizon to disappear at last high in air.
He didn't see her again before she got on a plane and was taken away east. He said goodbye to Smith-Oldwick and received once more the many thanks from the young Englishman. Then he watched him too as he was lifted up in the plane, observing until the aircraft was just a tiny dot far above the eastern horizon, finally vanishing high in the sky.
The Tommies, their packs and accouterments slung, were waiting the summons to continue their return march. Colonel Capell had, through a desire to personally observe the stretch of country between the camp of the advance detachment and the base, decided to march back his troops. Now that all was in readiness for departure he turned to Tarzan. "I wish you would come back with us, Greystoke," he said, "and if my appeal carries no inducement possibly that of Smith-Oldwick and the young lady who just left us may. They asked me to urge you to return to civilization."
The soldiers, their packs and gear slung over their shoulders, were waiting for the signal to continue their march back. Colonel Capell wanted to personally check out the area between the camp of the advance unit and the base, so he decided to lead his troops back. Now that everything was set for departure, he turned to Tarzan. "I really wish you would come back with us, Greystoke," he said, "and if my request doesn't convince you, maybe Smith-Oldwick and the young lady who just left can persuade you. They asked me to encourage you to return to civilization."
"No;" said Tarzan, "I shall go my own way. Miss Kircher and Lieutenant Smith-Oldwick were only prompted by a sense of gratitude in considering my welfare."
"No," Tarzan said, "I'm going my own way. Miss Kircher and Lieutenant Smith-Oldwick were only motivated by a sense of gratitude when they thought about my well-being."
"Miss Kircher?" exclaimed Capell and then he laughed, "You know her then as Bertha Kircher, the German spy?"
"Miss Kircher?" Capell exclaimed, then laughed, "So you know her as Bertha Kircher, the German spy?"
Tarzan looked at the other a moment in silence. It was beyond him to conceive that a British officer should thus laconically speak of an enemy spy whom he had had within his power and permitted to escape. "Yes," he replied, "I knew that she was Bertha Kircher, the German spy?"
Tarzan stared at the other person for a moment in silence. He couldn't understand how a British officer could casually talk about an enemy spy he had captured and then let go. "Yes," he replied, "I knew she was Bertha Kircher, the German spy."
"Is that all you knew?" asked Capell.
"Is that everything you knew?" asked Capell.
"That is all," said the ape-man.
"That's it," said the ape-man.
"She is the Honorable Patricia Canby," said Capell, "one of the most valuable members of the British Intelligence Service attached to the East African forces. Her father and I served in India together and I have known her ever since she was born.
"She is the Honorable Patricia Canby," Capell said, "one of the most valuable members of the British Intelligence Service working with the East African forces. Her father and I served in India together, and I've known her since she was born."
"Why, here's a packet of papers she took from a German officer and has been carrying it through all her vicissitudes—single-minded in the performance of her duty. Look! I haven't yet had time to examine them but as you see here is a military sketch map, a bundle of reports, and the diary of one Hauptmann Fritz Schneider."
"Look, here’s a stack of papers she took from a German officer and has been carrying through all her challenges—focused on doing her job. Check it out! I haven’t had a chance to go through them yet, but as you can see, there’s a military sketch map, a bunch of reports, and the diary of one Captain Fritz Schneider."
"The diary of Hauptmann Fritz Schneider!" repeated Tarzan in a constrained voice. "May I see it, Capell? He is the man who murdered Lady Greystoke."
"The diary of Captain Fritz Schneider!" Tarzan repeated in a stiff voice. "Can I see it, Capell? He’s the one who killed Lady Greystoke."
The Englishman handed the little volume over to the other without a word. Tarzan ran through the pages quickly looking for a certain date—the date that the horror had been committed—and when he found it he read rapidly. Suddenly a gasp of incredulity burst from his lips. Capell looked at him questioningly.
The Englishman silently passed the small book to the other person. Tarzan flipped through the pages quickly, searching for a specific date—the date the terrible event took place—and when he found it, he read swiftly. Suddenly, a gasp of disbelief escaped his lips. Capell looked at him, puzzled.
"God!" exclaimed the ape-man. "Can this be true? Listen!" and he read an excerpt from the closely written page:
"God!" the ape-man exclaimed. "Could this be real? Listen!" Then he read a passage from the densely written page:
"'Played a little joke on the English pig. When he comes home he will find the burned body of his wife in her boudoir—but he will only think it is his wife. Had von Goss substitute the body of a dead Negress and char it after putting Lady Greystoke's rings on it—Lady G will be of more value to the High Command alive than dead.'"
"'Played a little prank on the English pig. When he gets home, he will find the burned body of his wife in her bedroom—but he will just think it's his wife. Had von Goss switch the body with a dead Black woman and burn it after putting Lady Greystoke's rings on it—Lady G will be more valuable to the High Command alive than dead.'"
"She lives!" cried Tarzan.
"She's alive!" cried Tarzan.
"Thank God!" exclaimed Capell. "And now?"
"Thank God!" Capell exclaimed. "So, what's next?"
"I will return with you, of course. How terribly I have wronged Miss Canby, but how could I know? I even told Smith-Oldwick, who loves her, that she was a German spy.
"I will come back with you, of course. I've really messed up with Miss Canby, but how was I supposed to know? I even told Smith-Oldwick, who cares for her, that she was a German spy."
"Not only must I return to find my wife but I must right this wrong."
"Not only do I have to go back to find my wife, but I also need to fix this mistake."
"Don't worry about that," said Capell, "she must have convinced him that she is no enemy spy, for just before they left this morning he told me she had promised to marry him."
"Don't worry about that," Capell said. "She must have convinced him that she's not an enemy spy, because just before they left this morning, he told me she promised to marry him."
Note: I have made the following changes to the text: PAGE LINE ORIGINAL CHANGED TO 25 10 noislessly noiselessly 40 34 hole bole 41 45 later latter 53 43 but "but 66 19 half-smiled half-smile 69 45 to many too many 75 16 fine find 81 3 forth fourth 86 14 hoplessly hopelessly 86 42 interferred interfered 93 15 born borne 101 40 Englishman Englishmen 108 16 divertisements divertissements 110 29 asid said 127 14 apppreciate appreciate 128 45 fuseluge fuselage 138 25 as the at the 142 34 girls' girl's 146 44 sourroundings, surroundings, 148 30 spirit on spirit of 149 33 upon upon. 153 3 immediately immediate 153 39 nothwithstanding notwithstanding 159 43 "The The 163 45 known know 171 8 one the on the 172 8 sandled sandaled 175 2 junlgle jungle 181 46 swifty swiftly 189 23 not, not. 198 45 "Come," Come," 219 1 still sill 225 21 sigh or sigh of 227 20 occasionaly occasionally 228 5 gazing grazing 234 24 prisoners. prisoners. 237 11 qiuckly quickly 237 16 opproached approached 243 16 is his in his 244 32 second seconds I have also omitted the page-wide line beneath each chapter heading.
Note: I have made the following changes to the text: PAGE LINE ORIGINAL CHANGED TO 25 10 noislessly noiselessly 40 34 hole bole 41 45 later latter 53 43 but "but 66 19 half-smiled half-smile 69 45 to many too many 75 16 fine find 81 3 forth fourth 86 14 hoplessly hopelessly 86 42 interferred interfered 93 15 born borne 101 40 Englishman Englishmen 108 16 divertisements divertissements 110 29 asid said 127 14 apppreciate appreciate 128 45 fuseluge fuselage 138 25 as the at the 142 34 girls' girl's 146 44 sourroundings, surroundings, 148 30 spirit on spirit of 149 33 upon upon. 153 3 immediately immediate 153 39 nothwithstanding notwithstanding 159 43 "The The 163 45 known know 171 8 one the on the 172 8 sandled sandaled 175 2 junlgle jungle 181 46 swifty swiftly 189 23 not, not. 198 45 "Come," Come," 219 1 still sill 225 21 sigh or sigh of 227 20 occasionaly occasionally 228 5 gazing grazing 234 24 prisoners. prisoners. 237 11 qiuckly quickly 237 16 opproached approached 243 16 is his in his 244 32 second seconds I have also omitted the page-wide line beneath each chapter heading.
Download ePUB
If you like this ebook, consider a donation!